This is a modern-English version of The Oregon Trail: Sketches of Prairie and Rocky-Mountain Life, originally written by Parkman, Francis. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.





THE OREGON TRAIL



by Francis Parkman, Jr.










CONTENTS


__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_11__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_12__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_13__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_14__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_15__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_16__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_17__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_18__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_19__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_20__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_21__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_22__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_23__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_24__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_25__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_26__






CHAPTER I

THE FRONTIER

Last spring, 1846, was a busy season in the City of St. Louis. Not only were emigrants from every part of the country preparing for the journey to Oregon and California, but an unusual number of traders were making ready their wagons and outfits for Santa Fe. Many of the emigrants, especially of those bound for California, were persons of wealth and standing. The hotels were crowded, and the gunsmiths and saddlers were kept constantly at work in providing arms and equipments for the different parties of travelers. Almost every day steamboats were leaving the levee and passing up the Missouri, crowded with passengers on their way to the frontier.

Last spring, 1846, was a busy time in St. Louis. Emigrants from all over the country were getting ready for their journeys to Oregon and California, and a surprisingly high number of traders were preparing their wagons and supplies for Santa Fe. Many of the emigrants, especially those heading to California, were wealthy and prominent individuals. The hotels were packed, and gunsmiths and saddlers were always busy supplying arms and gear for the various groups of travelers. Almost every day, steamboats were leaving the levee, filled with passengers heading to the frontier.

In one of these, the Radnor, since snagged and lost, my friend and relative, Quincy A. Shaw, and myself, left St. Louis on the 28th of April, on a tour of curiosity and amusement to the Rocky Mountains. The boat was loaded until the water broke alternately over her guards. Her upper deck was covered with large weapons of a peculiar form, for the Santa Fe trade, and her hold was crammed with goods for the same destination. There were also the equipments and provisions of a party of Oregon emigrants, a band of mules and horses, piles of saddles and harness, and a multitude of nondescript articles, indispensable on the prairies. Almost hidden in this medley one might have seen a small French cart, of the sort very appropriately called a “mule-killer” beyond the frontiers, and not far distant a tent, together with a miscellaneous assortment of boxes and barrels. The whole equipage was far from prepossessing in its appearance; yet, such as it was, it was destined to a long and arduous journey, on which the persevering reader will accompany it.

In one of these boats, the Radnor, which is now lost, my friend and relative, Quincy A. Shaw, and I left St. Louis on April 28th for a trip to the Rocky Mountains, seeking adventure and excitement. The boat was so loaded that water splashed over its sides. The upper deck was filled with large, oddly shaped weapons meant for the Santa Fe trade, and the cargo hold was packed with goods for the same destination. There were also supplies and gear for a group of Oregon emigrants, a bunch of mules and horses, stacks of saddles and harnesses, and a variety of essential items for the prairies. Almost hidden among this clutter was a small French cart, aptly nicknamed a “mule-killer” beyond the borders, along with a tent and a random assortment of boxes and barrels. The whole setup was far from attractive; however, it was set for a long and challenging journey, which the determined reader will join.

The passengers on board the Radnor corresponded with her freight. In her cabin were Santa Fe traders, gamblers, speculators, and adventurers of various descriptions, and her steerage was crowded with Oregon emigrants, “mountain men,” negroes, and a party of Kansas Indians, who had been on a visit to St. Louis.

The passengers on the Radnor matched her cargo. In her cabin were Santa Fe traders, gamblers, speculators, and various types of adventurers, while her steerage was packed with Oregon emigrants, “mountain men,” African Americans, and a group of Kansas Indians who had just returned from a visit to St. Louis.

Thus laden, the boat struggled upward for seven or eight days against the rapid current of the Missouri, grating upon snags, and hanging for two or three hours at a time upon sand-bars. We entered the mouth of the Missouri in a drizzling rain, but the weather soon became clear, and showed distinctly the broad and turbid river, with its eddies, its sand-bars, its ragged islands, and forest-covered shores. The Missouri is constantly changing its course; wearing away its banks on one side, while it forms new ones on the other. Its channel is shifting continually. Islands are formed, and then washed away; and while the old forests on one side are undermined and swept off, a young growth springs up from the new soil upon the other. With all these changes, the water is so charged with mud and sand that it is perfectly opaque, and in a few minutes deposits a sediment an inch thick in the bottom of a tumbler. The river was now high; but when we descended in the autumn it was fallen very low, and all the secrets of its treacherous shallows were exposed to view. It was frightful to see the dead and broken trees, thick-set as a military abatis, firmly imbedded in the sand, and all pointing down stream, ready to impale any unhappy steamboat that at high water should pass over that dangerous ground.

Loaded down, the boat struggled for seven or eight days against the strong current of the Missouri, scraping against snags, and getting stuck on sandbars for two or three hours at a time. We entered the mouth of the Missouri in a light rain, but the weather soon cleared up, revealing the wide, muddy river, with its swirling eddies, sandbars, jagged islands, and forested shores. The Missouri constantly changes its path; wearing away its banks on one side while creating new ones on the other. Its channel keeps shifting. Islands form and then get washed away; as the old forests on one side are eroded and swept away, new growth emerges from the fresh soil on the other. With all these changes, the water is so full of mud and sand that it is completely opaque, and within minutes leaves an inch-thick layer of sediment at the bottom of a glass. The river was high then, but when we traveled down in the autumn, it had dropped significantly, revealing all the hidden dangers of its shallow areas. It was terrifying to see the dead and broken trees, thick as a military barrier, firmly lodged in the sand, all pointing downstream, ready to impale any unfortunate steamboat that might pass over that treacherous ground during high water.

In five or six days we began to see signs of the great western movement that was then taking place. Parties of emigrants, with their tents and wagons, would be encamped on open spots near the bank, on their way to the common rendezvous at Independence. On a rainy day, near sunset, we reached the landing of this place, which is situated some miles from the river, on the extreme frontier of Missouri. The scene was characteristic, for here were represented at one view the most remarkable features of this wild and enterprising region. On the muddy shore stood some thirty or forty dark slavish-looking Spaniards, gazing stupidly out from beneath their broad hats. They were attached to one of the Santa Fe companies, whose wagons were crowded together on the banks above. In the midst of these, crouching over a smoldering fire, was a group of Indians, belonging to a remote Mexican tribe. One or two French hunters from the mountains with their long hair and buckskin dresses, were looking at the boat; and seated on a log close at hand were three men, with rifles lying across their knees. The foremost of these, a tall, strong figure, with a clear blue eye and an open, intelligent face, might very well represent that race of restless and intrepid pioneers whose axes and rifles have opened a path from the Alleghenies to the western prairies. He was on his way to Oregon, probably a more congenial field to him than any that now remained on this side the great plains.

In five or six days, we started to notice signs of the massive westward migration that was happening at the time. Groups of travelers, with their tents and wagons, were camped in open areas near the bank, all heading toward the common meeting point at Independence. On a rainy day, just before sunset, we arrived at the landing of this place, which is located a few miles from the river, at the far edge of Missouri. The scene was typical, showcasing the most notable features of this wild and adventurous region. On the muddy shore, there were about thirty or forty dark, enslaved-looking Spaniards, staring blankly from under their wide-brimmed hats. They were part of one of the Santa Fe companies, whose wagons were huddled together on the banks above. Among them, crouched around a smoldering fire, was a group of Indigenous people from a distant Mexican tribe. A couple of French hunters from the mountains, with their long hair and buckskin outfits, were eyeing the boat; and sitting on a nearby log were three men with rifles resting on their laps. The tallest of these, a strong figure with clear blue eyes and an open, intelligent face, could easily represent that breed of restless and fearless pioneers whose axes and rifles have cleared a path from the Alleghenies to the western prairies. He was headed to Oregon, likely a more suitable place for him than any remaining areas on this side of the vast plains.

Early on the next morning we reached Kansas, about five hundred miles from the mouth of the Missouri. Here we landed and leaving our equipments in charge of my good friend Colonel Chick, whose log-house was the substitute for a tavern, we set out in a wagon for Westport, where we hoped to procure mules and horses for the journey.

Early the next morning, we arrived in Kansas, about five hundred miles from the mouth of the Missouri. We landed here and left our gear in the care of my good friend Colonel Chick, whose log cabin served as a makeshift inn. We then set off in a wagon for Westport, where we hoped to find mules and horses for our journey.

It was a remarkably fresh and beautiful May morning. The rich and luxuriant woods through which the miserable road conducted us were lighted by the bright sunshine and enlivened by a multitude of birds. We overtook on the way our late fellow-travelers, the Kansas Indians, who, adorned with all their finery, were proceeding homeward at a round pace; and whatever they might have seemed on board the boat, they made a very striking and picturesque feature in the forest landscape.

It was a refreshingly beautiful May morning. The lush woods lining the miserable road we traveled were illuminated by bright sunshine and filled with the cheerful sounds of birds. Along the way, we passed our fellow travelers, the Kansas Indians, who were dressed in their finest and heading home at a brisk pace. Whatever impression they had made on the boat, they now stood out as a striking and picturesque part of the forest scenery.

Westport was full of Indians, whose little shaggy ponies were tied by dozens along the houses and fences. Sacs and Foxes, with shaved heads and painted faces, Shawanoes and Delawares, fluttering in calico frocks, and turbans, Wyandottes dressed like white men, and a few wretched Kansas wrapped in old blankets, were strolling about the streets, or lounging in and out of the shops and houses.

Westport was crowded with Native Americans, whose small shaggy ponies were tied up by the dozens along the houses and fences. Sacs and Foxes had shaved heads and painted faces, while Shawanoes and Delawares wore calico dresses and turbans. Wyandottes dressed like white people, and a few poor Kansans wrapped in old blankets were wandering the streets or hanging out in and out of the shops and houses.

As I stood at the door of the tavern, I saw a remarkable looking person coming up the street. He had a ruddy face, garnished with the stumps of a bristly red beard and mustache; on one side of his head was a round cap with a knob at the top, such as Scottish laborers sometimes wear; his coat was of a nondescript form, and made of a gray Scotch plaid, with the fringes hanging all about it; he wore pantaloons of coarse homespun, and hob-nailed shoes; and to complete his equipment, a little black pipe was stuck in one corner of his mouth. In this curious attire, I recognized Captain C. of the British army, who, with his brother, and Mr. R., an English gentleman, was bound on a hunting expedition across the continent. I had seen the captain and his companions at St. Louis. They had now been for some time at Westport, making preparations for their departure, and waiting for a re-enforcement, since they were too few in number to attempt it alone. They might, it is true, have joined some of the parties of emigrants who were on the point of setting out for Oregon and California; but they professed great disinclination to have any connection with the “Kentucky fellows.”

As I stood at the door of the tavern, I saw a striking person coming up the street. He had a ruddy face, framed by the stubs of a bristly red beard and mustache; on one side of his head was a round cap with a knob on top, like the ones Scottish workers sometimes wear; his coat was a vague shape made of gray plaid fabric, with fringes hanging all around it; he wore pants made of rough homespun and hob-nailed shoes; and to top it off, a little black pipe was sticking out of one corner of his mouth. In this odd outfit, I recognized Captain C. of the British army, who, along with his brother and Mr. R., an English gentleman, was headed for a hunting trip across the continent. I had seen the captain and his companions in St. Louis. They had been in Westport for a while, getting ready to leave and waiting for reinforcements since they were too few in number to attempt it alone. They could have joined some of the groups of emigrants getting ready to head for Oregon and California; but they expressed a strong dislike for associating with the “Kentucky fellows.”

The captain now urged it upon us, that we should join forces and proceed to the mountains in company. Feeling no greater partiality for the society of the emigrants than they did, we thought the arrangement an advantageous one, and consented to it. Our future fellow-travelers had installed themselves in a little log-house, where we found them all surrounded by saddles, harness, guns, pistols, telescopes, knives, and in short their complete appointments for the prairie. R., who professed a taste for natural history, sat at a table stuffing a woodpecker; the brother of the captain, who was an Irishman, was splicing a trail-rope on the floor, as he had been an amateur sailor. The captain pointed out, with much complacency, the different articles of their outfit. “You see,” said he, “that we are all old travelers. I am convinced that no party ever went upon the prairie better provided.” The hunter whom they had employed, a surly looking Canadian, named Sorel, and their muleteer, an American from St. Louis, were lounging about the building. In a little log stable close at hand were their horses and mules, selected by the captain, who was an excellent judge.

The captain encouraged us to team up and head to the mountains together. Not being particularly fond of the emigrants' company ourselves, we still thought this plan was a good one and agreed to it. Our future travel companions had settled into a small log cabin, where we found them surrounded by saddles, harnesses, guns, pistols, telescopes, knives, and everything else they needed for the prairie. R., who claimed to have an interest in natural history, was at a table stuffing a woodpecker; the captain's brother, an Irishman, was on the floor splicing a trail rope since he had been a hobbyist sailor. The captain proudly pointed out the various items in their gear. “You see,” he said, “we're all seasoned travelers. I'm convinced that no group has ever set out on the prairie better equipped.” The hunter they had hired, a grumpy Canadian named Sorel, and their muleteer, an American from St. Louis, were lounging around the building. In a nearby log stable were their horses and mules, which the captain had chosen since he was an excellent judge of animals.

The alliance entered into, we left them to complete their arrangements, while we pushed our own to all convenient speed. The emigrants for whom our friends professed such contempt were encamped on the prairie about eight or ten miles distant, to the number of a thousand or more, and new parties were constantly passing out from Independence to join them. They were in great confusion, holding meetings, passing resolutions, and drawing up regulations, but unable to unite in the choice of leaders to conduct them across the prairie. Being at leisure one day, I rode over to Independence. The town was crowded. A multitude of shops had sprung up to furnish the emigrants and Santa Fe traders with necessaries for their journey; and there was an incessant hammering and banging from a dozen blacksmiths’ sheds, where the heavy wagons were being repaired, and the horses and oxen shod. The streets were thronged with men, horses, and mules. While I was in the town, a train of emigrant wagons from Illinois passed through, to join the camp on the prairie, and stopped in the principal street. A multitude of healthy children’s faces were peeping out from under the covers of the wagons. Here and there a buxom damsel was seated on horseback, holding over her sunburnt face an old umbrella or a parasol, once gaudy enough but now miserably faded. The men, very sober-looking countrymen, stood about their oxen; and as I passed I noticed three old fellows, who, with their long whips in their hands, were zealously discussing the doctrine of regeneration. The emigrants, however, are not all of this stamp. Among them are some of the vilest outcasts in the country. I have often perplexed myself to divine the various motives that give impulse to this strange migration; but whatever they may be, whether an insane hope of a better condition in life, or a desire of shaking off restraints of law and society, or mere restlessness, certain it is that multitudes bitterly repent the journey, and after they have reached the land of promise are happy enough to escape from it.

The alliance we formed, we let them handle their arrangements while we hurried to complete ours. The emigrants our friends looked down on were camped on the prairie about eight or ten miles away, numbering over a thousand, with new groups continuously leaving Independence to join them. They were in a state of chaos, holding meetings, passing resolutions, and creating rules, but they couldn’t agree on leaders to guide them across the prairie. One day, with some free time, I rode over to Independence. The town was packed. Many shops had popped up to provide the emigrants and Santa Fe traders with supplies for their journey; the sound of clanging metal came from several blacksmiths’ shops, where heavy wagons were being repaired and horses and oxen were being shod. The streets were bustling with people, horses, and mules. While I was there, a caravan of emigrant wagons from Illinois passed through to join the camp on the prairie and stopped on the main street. A bunch of healthy kids peeked out from under the wagon covers. Here and there, a cheerful young woman sat on horseback, shielding her sunburned face with an old umbrella or a once-bright parasol that was now faded. The men, looking serious, were gathered around their oxen; as I walked by, I spotted three older men, who, with long whips in hand, were passionately discussing the idea of regeneration. However, not all the emigrants were like this. Among them are some of the worst outcasts in the country. I’ve often puzzled over the different reasons driving this strange migration; but whatever they may be—whether it’s a crazy hope for a better life, a desire to escape the constraints of law and society, or just plain restlessness—it’s clear that many deeply regret the journey, and once they reach the promised land, they’re often relieved to leave it behind.

In the course of seven or eight days we had brought our preparations near to a close. Meanwhile our friends had completed theirs, and becoming tired of Westport, they told us that they would set out in advance and wait at the crossing of the Kansas till we should come up. Accordingly R. and the muleteers went forward with the wagon and tent, while the captain and his brother, together with Sorel, and a trapper named Boisverd, who had joined them, followed with the band of horses. The commencement of the journey was ominous, for the captain was scarcely a mile from Westport, riding along in state at the head of his party, leading his intended buffalo horse by a rope, when a tremendous thunderstorm came on, and drenched them all to the skin. They hurried on to reach the place, about seven miles off, where R. was to have had the camp in readiness to receive them. But this prudent person, when he saw the storm approaching, had selected a sheltered glade in the woods, where he pitched his tent, and was sipping a comfortable cup of coffee, while the captain galloped for miles beyond through the rain to look for him. At length the storm cleared away, and the sharp-eyed trapper succeeded in discovering his tent: R. had by this time finished his coffee, and was seated on a buffalo robe smoking his pipe. The captain was one of the most easy-tempered men in existence, so he bore his ill-luck with great composure, shared the dregs of the coffee with his brother, and lay down to sleep in his wet clothes.

Over the course of seven or eight days, we had almost wrapped up our preparations. Meanwhile, our friends had finished theirs, and feeling tired of Westport, they told us they would head out ahead and wait at the Kansas crossing until we caught up. So, R. and the muleteers moved forward with the wagon and tent, while the captain, his brother, Sorel, and a trapper named Boisverd, who had joined them, followed with the group of horses. The start of the journey was a bad sign, as the captain was barely a mile from Westport, riding grandly at the front of his group, leading his future buffalo horse by a rope, when a huge thunderstorm hit, soaking everyone to the skin. They rushed on to reach the spot, about seven miles away, where R. had planned to have the camp ready for them. However, this sensible guy, seeing the storm coming, had chosen a sheltered spot in the woods to set up his tent and was enjoying a nice cup of coffee while the captain rode for miles in the rain looking for him. Eventually, the storm passed, and the sharp-eyed trapper managed to spot his tent: by then, R. had finished his coffee and was sitting on a buffalo robe smoking his pipe. The captain was one of the most easygoing guys around, so he dealt with his bad luck calmly, shared the leftovers of the coffee with his brother, and lay down to sleep in his wet clothes.

We ourselves had our share of the deluge. We were leading a pair of mules to Kansas when the storm broke. Such sharp and incessant flashes of lightning, such stunning and continuous thunder, I have never known before. The woods were completely obscured by the diagonal sheets of rain that fell with a heavy roar, and rose in spray from the ground; and the streams rose so rapidly that we could hardly ford them. At length, looming through the rain, we saw the log-house of Colonel Chick, who received us with his usual bland hospitality; while his wife, who, though a little soured and stiffened by too frequent attendance on camp-meetings, was not behind him in hospitable feeling, supplied us with the means of repairing our drenched and bedraggled condition. The storm, clearing away at about sunset, opened a noble prospect from the porch of the colonel’s house, which stands upon a high hill. The sun streamed from the breaking clouds upon the swift and angry Missouri, and on the immense expanse of luxuriant forest that stretched from its banks back to the distant bluffs.

We also experienced our share of the downpour. We were leading a pair of mules to Kansas when the storm hit. I’ve never seen such sharp and nonstop flashes of lightning, or heard thunder so loud and continuous before. The woods were completely hidden by the sheets of heavy rain that fell with a tremendous roar and kicked up spray from the ground; the streams rose so quickly that we could barely cross them. Finally, through the rain, we spotted Colonel Chick’s log house, where he welcomed us with his usual warm hospitality. His wife, a bit sour and stiff from too many camp meetings, also shared his generous spirit and helped us clean up our soaked and disheveled appearance. The storm cleared around sunset, revealing a stunning view from the porch of the colonel’s house, which sits on a high hill. The sun broke through the clouds and lit up the swift and furious Missouri River and the vast expanse of lush forest that stretched from its banks to the distant bluffs.

Returning on the next day to Westport, we received a message from the captain, who had ridden back to deliver it in person, but finding that we were in Kansas, had intrusted it with an acquaintance of his named Vogel, who kept a small grocery and liquor shop. Whisky by the way circulates more freely in Westport than is altogether safe in a place where every man carries a loaded pistol in his pocket. As we passed this establishment, we saw Vogel’s broad German face and knavish-looking eyes thrust from his door. He said he had something to tell us, and invited us to take a dram. Neither his liquor nor his message was very palatable. The captain had returned to give us notice that R., who assumed the direction of his party, had determined upon another route from that agreed upon between us; and instead of taking the course of the traders, to pass northward by Fort Leavenworth, and follow the path marked out by the dragoons in their expedition of last summer. To adopt such a plan without consulting us, we looked upon as a very high-handed proceeding; but suppressing our dissatisfaction as well as we could, we made up our minds to join them at Fort Leavenworth, where they were to wait for us.

The next day in Westport, we got a message from the captain, who had come back to deliver it personally. But since we were in Kansas, he entrusted it to a guy he knew named Vogel, who ran a small grocery and liquor store. By the way, whisky flows more freely in Westport than is really safe in a place where every man carries a loaded pistol. As we passed by Vogel's shop, we saw his broad German face and sneaky-looking eyes peering out from the door. He said he had something to tell us and invited us to have a drink. Neither his drink nor his message was very pleasant. The captain had returned to let us know that R., who was leading his party, had decided to take a different route than what we had agreed upon; instead of following the usual course by Fort Leavenworth, he was planning to take the path marked by the dragoons during their expedition last summer. We thought it was pretty rude to make such a decision without asking us first, but we tried to suppress our frustration as best we could and decided to join them at Fort Leavenworth, where they were going to wait for us.

Accordingly, our preparation being now complete, we attempted one fine morning to commence our journey. The first step was an unfortunate one. No sooner were our animals put in harness, than the shaft mule reared and plunged, burst ropes and straps, and nearly flung the cart into the Missouri. Finding her wholly uncontrollable, we exchanged her for another, with which we were furnished by our friend Mr. Boone of Westport, a grandson of Daniel Boone, the pioneer. This foretaste of prairie experience was very soon followed by another. Westport was scarcely out of sight, when we encountered a deep muddy gully, of a species that afterward became but too familiar to us; and here for the space of an hour or more the car stuck fast.

With our preparations finally complete, we tried to start our journey one beautiful morning. The first step was a disaster. As soon as we harnessed our animals, the mule drawing the cart bucked and kicked, broke its ropes and straps, and almost tipped the cart into the Missouri. Since she was completely unmanageable, we swapped her for another mule provided by our friend Mr. Boone of Westport, who is a grandson of the pioneer Daniel Boone. This little taste of life on the prairie was quickly followed by another challenge. We had barely lost sight of Westport when we came across a deep, muddy gully, something that would soon become all too familiar to us; and for over an hour, the cart was stuck there.





CHAPTER II

BREAKING THE ICE

Both Shaw and myself were tolerably inured to the vicissitudes of traveling. We had experienced them under various forms, and a birch canoe was as familiar to us as a steamboat. The restlessness, the love of wilds and hatred of cities, natural perhaps in early years to every unperverted son of Adam, was not our only motive for undertaking the present journey. My companion hoped to shake off the effects of a disorder that had impaired a constitution originally hardy and robust; and I was anxious to pursue some inquiries relative to the character and usages of the remote Indian nations, being already familiar with many of the border tribes.

Both Shaw and I were pretty used to the ups and downs of traveling. We had encountered them in many different ways, and a birch canoe felt just as familiar to us as a steamboat. Our restlessness, love for the wild, and dislike of cities—natural, I suppose, for any decent guy in his early years—wasn’t the only reason we decided to take this trip. My friend wanted to recover from an illness that had weakened his once strong and healthy body; I was eager to explore some questions about the character and customs of the distant Indian nations, as I already knew quite a bit about many of the border tribes.

Emerging from the mud-hole where we last took leave of the reader, we pursued our way for some time along the narrow track, in the checkered sunshine and shadow of the woods, till at length, issuing forth into the broad light, we left behind us the farthest outskirts of that great forest, that once spread unbroken from the western plains to the shore of the Atlantic. Looking over an intervening belt of shrubbery, we saw the green, oceanlike expanse of prairie, stretching swell over swell to the horizon.

Emerging from the muddy area where we last left off, we continued for a while along the narrow path, moving through the dappled sunlight and shade of the woods, until we finally stepped into the bright light and left behind the outer edges of that vast forest, which once stretched uninterrupted from the western plains to the Atlantic coast. Over a patch of shrubs, we saw the green, ocean-like expanse of prairie, rolling gently to the horizon.

It was a mild, calm spring day; a day when one is more disposed to musing and reverie than to action, and the softest part of his nature is apt to gain the ascendency. I rode in advance of the party, as we passed through the shrubbery, and as a nook of green grass offered a strong temptation, I dismounted and lay down there. All the trees and saplings were in flower, or budding into fresh leaf; the red clusters of the maple-blossoms and the rich flowers of the Indian apple were there in profusion; and I was half inclined to regret leaving behind the land of gardens for the rude and stern scenes of the prairie and the mountains.

It was a mild, calm spring day—one of those days when you're more in the mood for daydreaming than doing anything, and your softer side tends to take over. I rode ahead of the group as we made our way through the bushes, and when I spotted a patch of green grass, I couldn’t resist dismounting and lying down there. All the trees and young plants were blooming or getting ready to sprout new leaves; the red clusters of maple blossoms and the vibrant flowers of the Indian apple were everywhere. I found myself somewhat wishing I hadn't left the garden-filled land for the harsh and rugged scenes of the prairie and mountains.

Meanwhile the party came in sight from out of the bushes. Foremost rode Henry Chatillon, our guide and hunter, a fine athletic figure, mounted on a hardy gray Wyandotte pony. He wore a white blanket-coat, a broad hat of felt, moccasins, and pantaloons of deerskin, ornamented along the seams with rows of long fringes. His knife was stuck in his belt; his bullet-pouch and powder-horn hung at his side, and his rifle lay before him, resting against the high pommel of his saddle, which, like all his equipments, had seen hard service, and was much the worse for wear. Shaw followed close, mounted on a little sorrel horse, and leading a larger animal by a rope. His outfit, which resembled mine, had been provided with a view to use rather than ornament. It consisted of a plain, black Spanish saddle, with holsters of heavy pistols, a blanket rolled up behind it, and the trail-rope attached to his horse’s neck hanging coiled in front. He carried a double-barreled smooth-bore, while I boasted a rifle of some fifteen pounds’ weight. At that time our attire, though far from elegant, bore some marks of civilization, and offered a very favorable contrast to the inimitable shabbiness of our appearance on the return journey. A red flannel shirt, belted around the waist like a frock, then constituted our upper garment; moccasins had supplanted our failing boots; and the remaining essential portion of our attire consisted of an extraordinary article, manufactured by a squaw out of smoked buckskin. Our muleteer, Delorier, brought up the rear with his cart, waddling ankle-deep in the mud, alternately puffing at his pipe, and ejaculating in his prairie patois: “Sacre enfant de garce!” as one of the mules would seem to recoil before some abyss of unusual profundity. The cart was of the kind that one may see by scores around the market-place in Montreal, and had a white covering to protect the articles within. These were our provisions and a tent, with ammunition, blankets, and presents for the Indians.

Meanwhile, the group emerged from the bushes. Leading the way was Henry Chatillon, our guide and hunter, a strong athletic figure riding a sturdy gray Wyandotte pony. He wore a white blanket coat, a wide felt hat, moccasins, and deerskin pants decorated with rows of long fringes along the seams. His knife was tucked in his belt; his bullet pouch and powder horn hung at his side, and his rifle was propped against the high front of his saddle, which, like all his gear, had seen a lot of use and was pretty worn out. Shaw followed closely, riding a small sorrel horse and leading a larger one with a rope. His outfit, similar to mine, was designed for practicality rather than style. It included a simple black Spanish saddle with holsters for heavy pistols, a rolled-up blanket behind it, and a trail rope coiled in front of his horse’s neck. He carried a double-barreled smoothbore, while I had a rifle weighing about fifteen pounds. At that time, our clothing, though far from fancy, showed some signs of civilization and provided a stark contrast to the unmistakable raggedness of our appearance on the way back. Our upper garment was a red flannel shirt belted around the waist like a frock; moccasins had replaced our worn-out boots; and the remaining key part of our attire was an unusual piece made by a squaw from smoked buckskin. Our muleteer, Delorier, brought up the rear with his cart, trudging ankle-deep in mud, puffing on his pipe, and exclaiming in his prairie dialect, “Sacre enfant de garce!” as one of the mules would seem to shy away from some unusually deep spot. The cart looked like the many seen around the market in Montreal and had a white cover to protect the items inside. These included our food supplies, a tent, ammunition, blankets, and gifts for the Indians.

We were in all four men with eight animals; for besides the spare horses led by Shaw and myself, an additional mule was driven along with us as a reserve in case of accident.

We were four men with eight animals; in addition to the spare horses led by Shaw and me, we also had an extra mule along as a backup in case anything went wrong.

After this summing up of our forces, it may not be amiss to glance at the characters of the two men who accompanied us.

After reviewing our strengths, it might be helpful to look at the personalities of the two men who joined us.

Delorier was a Canadian, with all the characteristics of the true Jean Baptiste. Neither fatigue, exposure, nor hard labor could ever impair his cheerfulness and gayety, or his obsequious politeness to his bourgeois; and when night came he would sit down by the fire, smoke his pipe, and tell stories with the utmost contentment. In fact, the prairie was his congenial element. Henry Chatillon was of a different stamp. When we were at St. Louis, several gentlemen of the Fur Company had kindly offered to procure for us a hunter and guide suited for our purposes, and on coming one afternoon to the office, we found there a tall and exceedingly well-dressed man with a face so open and frank that it attracted our notice at once. We were surprised at being told that it was he who wished to guide us to the mountains. He was born in a little French town near St. Louis, and from the age of fifteen years had been constantly in the neighborhood of the Rocky Mountains, employed for the most part by the Company to supply their forts with buffalo meat. As a hunter he had but one rival in the whole region, a man named Cimoneau, with whom, to the honor of both of them, he was on terms of the closest friendship. He had arrived at St. Louis the day before, from the mountains, where he had remained for four years; and he now only asked to go and spend a day with his mother before setting out on another expedition. His age was about thirty; he was six feet high, and very powerfully and gracefully molded. The prairies had been his school; he could neither read nor write, but he had a natural refinement and delicacy of mind such as is rarely found, even in women. His manly face was a perfect mirror of uprightness, simplicity, and kindness of heart; he had, moreover, a keen perception of character and a tact that would preserve him from flagrant error in any society. Henry had not the restless energy of an Anglo-American. He was content to take things as he found them; and his chief fault arose from an excess of easy generosity, impelling him to give away too profusely ever to thrive in the world. Yet it was commonly remarked of him, that whatever he might choose to do with what belonged to himself, the property of others was always safe in his hands. His bravery was as much celebrated in the mountains as his skill in hunting; but it is characteristic of him that in a country where the rifle is the chief arbiter between man and man, Henry was very seldom involved in quarrels. Once or twice, indeed, his quiet good-nature had been mistaken and presumed upon, but the consequences of the error were so formidable that no one was ever known to repeat it. No better evidence of the intrepidity of his temper could be wished than the common report that he had killed more than thirty grizzly bears. He was a proof of what unaided nature will sometimes do. I have never, in the city or in the wilderness, met a better man than my noble and true-hearted friend, Henry Chatillon.

Delorier was a Canadian, with all the traits of a true Jean Baptiste. Neither fatigue, harsh weather, nor hard work could dampen his cheerfulness and good humor, or his polite behavior toward his affluent neighbors; and when night fell, he would sit by the fire, smoke his pipe, and share stories with great satisfaction. The prairie was truly where he belonged. Henry Chatillon, on the other hand, was quite different. When we were in St. Louis, several men from the Fur Company generously offered to find us a suitable hunter and guide, and one afternoon when we came to the office, we found a tall, very well-dressed man with such an open and honest face that it caught our attention right away. We were surprised to learn that he was the one who wanted to guide us to the mountains. He was born in a small French town near St. Louis and had spent most of his life since he was fifteen in the area around the Rocky Mountains, primarily working for the Company to supply their forts with buffalo meat. As a hunter, he had only one rival in the whole region, a man named Cimoneau, and they were very close friends. He had arrived in St. Louis the day before after spending four years in the mountains, and he just wanted to visit his mother for a day before heading out on another expedition. He was about thirty years old, stood six feet tall, and was very strong and well-built. The prairies had been his education; he couldn't read or write, but he had a natural elegance and sensitivity of mind that is rare, even among women. His manly face perfectly reflected honesty, simplicity, and kindness; he also had a sharp understanding of character and a sense of tact that kept him out of major mistakes in any social setting. Henry didn't have the restless energy typical of many Anglo-Americans. He was fine with accepting things as they were, and his main flaw was an excess of easygoing generosity, which led him to give away so much that it made it hard for him to get ahead in life. However, people often commented that while he could do what he liked with his own belongings, other people's property was always safe with him. His bravery was as well-known in the mountains as his hunting skills, but interestingly, despite living in a place where disputes often ended with rifles, Henry was very seldom involved in fights. A couple of times, his easygoing nature was misunderstood, but those who made that mistake learned their lesson, as the outcomes were quite serious. There was widespread belief that he had killed more than thirty grizzly bears, which showed how fearless he was. He was an example of what natural talent could achieve. I have never met a better person, in the city or wilderness, than my noble and true-hearted friend, Henry Chatillon.

We were soon free of the woods and bushes, and fairly upon the broad prairie. Now and then a Shawanoe passed us, riding his little shaggy pony at a “lope”; his calico shirt, his gaudy sash, and the gay handkerchief bound around his snaky hair fluttering in the wind. At noon we stopped to rest not far from a little creek replete with frogs and young turtles. There had been an Indian encampment at the place, and the framework of their lodges still remained, enabling us very easily to gain a shelter from the sun, by merely spreading one or two blankets over them. Thus shaded, we sat upon our saddles, and Shaw for the first time lighted his favorite Indian pipe; while Delorier was squatted over a hot bed of coals, shading his eyes with one hand, and holding a little stick in the other, with which he regulated the hissing contents of the frying-pan. The horses were turned to feed among the scattered bushes of a low oozy meadow. A drowzy springlike sultriness pervaded the air, and the voices of ten thousand young frogs and insects, just awakened into life, rose in varied chorus from the creek and the meadows.

We soon left the woods and shrubs behind and found ourselves on the wide prairie. Occasionally, a Shawanoe would ride past us on his little shaggy pony at a canter, his colorful shirt, flashy sash, and bright handkerchief tied around his curly hair fluttering in the breeze. At noon, we paused to rest near a small creek filled with frogs and baby turtles. There had been an Indian camp at the spot, and the frame of their lodges was still there, making it easy for us to create some shade from the sun by draping one or two blankets over them. Sitting in the shade, we perched on our saddles, and Shaw lit up his favorite Indian pipe for the first time; meanwhile, Delorier squatted over a hot bed of coals, shielding his eyes with one hand and using a stick in the other to manage the sizzling contents of the frying pan. The horses grazed among the scattered bushes of a low, marshy meadow. A warm, sleepy spring-like heaviness filled the air, and the sounds of countless young frogs and insects, just coming to life, blended into a varied chorus from the creek and meadows.

Scarcely were we seated when a visitor approached. This was an old Kansas Indian; a man of distinction, if one might judge from his dress. His head was shaved and painted red, and from the tuft of hair remaining on the crown dangled several eagles’ feathers, and the tails of two or three rattlesnakes. His cheeks, too, were daubed with vermilion; his ears were adorned with green glass pendants; a collar of grizzly bears’ claws surrounded his neck, and several large necklaces of wampum hung on his breast. Having shaken us by the hand with a cordial grunt of salutation, the old man, dropping his red blanket from his shoulders, sat down cross-legged on the ground. In the absence of liquor we offered him a cup of sweetened water, at which he ejaculated “Good!” and was beginning to tell us how great a man he was, and how many Pawnees he had killed, when suddenly a motley concourse appeared wading across the creek toward us. They filed past in rapid succession, men, women, and children; some were on horseback, some on foot, but all were alike squalid and wretched. Old squaws, mounted astride of shaggy, meager little ponies, with perhaps one or two snake-eyed children seated behind them, clinging to their tattered blankets; tall lank young men on foot, with bows and arrows in their hands; and girls whose native ugliness not all the charms of glass beads and scarlet cloth could disguise, made up the procession; although here and there was a man who, like our visitor, seemed to hold some rank in this respectable community. They were the dregs of the Kansas nation, who, while their betters were gone to hunt buffalo, had left the village on a begging expedition to Westport.

As soon as we sat down, a visitor approached us. He was an old Kansas Indian, a man of distinction based on his attire. His head was shaved and painted red, and from the tuft of hair left on his crown hung several eagle feathers and the tails of a couple of rattlesnakes. His cheeks were also painted with red; he had green glass earrings, a collar made of grizzly bear claws around his neck, and several large wampum necklaces hanging on his chest. After giving us a firm handshake and a friendly grunt of greeting, the old man dropped his red blanket from his shoulders and sat down cross-legged on the ground. Since we didn't have any liquor, we offered him a cup of sweetened water, to which he exclaimed, “Good!” He was about to tell us how great he was and how many Pawnees he had killed when suddenly a diverse group appeared, wading across the creek toward us. They moved past us in quick succession—men, women, and children; some rode on horseback, while others walked, but all looked dirty and miserable. Old women rode on scraggly little ponies, possibly with one or two wide-eyed children sitting behind them, clutching their tattered blankets; tall, skinny young men walked by holding bows and arrows; and there were girls whose natural unattractiveness could not be masked by glass beads and bright cloth. Among them were a few men, like our visitor, who seemed to hold some position of respect in this community. They were the poorest members of the Kansas nation, who, while their more fortunate peers were out hunting buffalo, had left the village to go begging in Westport.

When this ragamuffin horde had passed, we caught our horses, saddled, harnessed, and resumed our journey. Fording the creek, the low roofs of a number of rude buildings appeared, rising from a cluster of groves and woods on the left; and riding up through a long lane, amid a profusion of wild roses and early spring flowers, we found the log-church and school-houses belonging to the Methodist Shawanoe Mission. The Indians were on the point of gathering to a religious meeting. Some scores of them, tall men in half-civilized dress, were seated on wooden benches under the trees; while their horses were tied to the sheds and fences. Their chief, Parks, a remarkably large and athletic man, was just arrived from Westport, where he owns a trading establishment. Beside this, he has a fine farm and a considerable number of slaves. Indeed the Shawanoes have made greater progress in agriculture than any other tribe on the Missouri frontier; and both in appearance and in character form a marked contrast to our late acquaintance, the Kansas.

Once this ragtag group had passed, we caught our horses, saddled them up, and continued our journey. We forded the creek, and the low roofs of several simple buildings came into view, rising from a cluster of groves and woods to our left. Riding up a long lane filled with wild roses and early spring flowers, we discovered the log church and schoolhouses of the Methodist Shawanoe Mission. The Indians were about to gather for a religious meeting. Several dozen of them, tall men in semi-civilized clothing, sat on wooden benches under the trees while their horses were tied to the sheds and fences. Their chief, Parks, a notably large and strong man, had just arrived from Westport, where he runs a trading business. In addition, he owns a nice farm and a significant number of slaves. In fact, the Shawanoes have made more progress in farming than any other tribe on the Missouri frontier, and both in looks and character, they stand in stark contrast to our recent acquaintances, the Kansas.

A few hours’ ride brought us to the banks of the river Kansas. Traversing the woods that lined it, and plowing through the deep sand, we encamped not far from the bank, at the Lower Delaware crossing. Our tent was erected for the first time on a meadow close to the woods, and the camp preparations being complete we began to think of supper. An old Delaware woman, of some three hundred pounds’ weight, sat in the porch of a little log-house close to the water, and a very pretty half-breed girl was engaged, under her superintendence, in feeding a large flock of turkeys that were fluttering and gobbling about the door. But no offers of money, or even of tobacco, could induce her to part with one of her favorites; so I took my rifle, to see if the woods or the river could furnish us anything. A multitude of quails were plaintively whistling in the woods and meadows; but nothing appropriate to the rifle was to be seen, except three buzzards, seated on the spectral limbs of an old dead sycamore, that thrust itself out over the river from the dense sunny wall of fresh foliage. Their ugly heads were drawn down between their shoulders, and they seemed to luxuriate in the soft sunshine that was pouring from the west. As they offered no epicurean temptations, I refrained from disturbing their enjoyment; but contented myself with admiring the calm beauty of the sunset, for the river, eddying swiftly in deep purple shadows between the impending woods, formed a wild but tranquillizing scene.

A few hours of riding brought us to the banks of the Kansas River. We made our way through the woods lining it and trudged through the deep sand, setting up camp not far from the bank at the Lower Delaware crossing. This was the first time we pitched our tent on a meadow close to the woods, and once our camp preparations were complete, we started thinking about dinner. An old Delaware woman, weighing around three hundred pounds, sat on the porch of a little log cabin near the water, while a pretty half-breed girl, under her watch, fed a large flock of turkeys fluttering and gobbling at the door. But no amount of money or even tobacco could convince her to part with one of her favorites, so I grabbed my rifle to see if the woods or river could provide us with something. A bunch of quails were sadly whistling in the woods and meadows, but nothing suitable for the rifle was in sight, except for three buzzards perched on the eerie branches of an old dead sycamore that extended over the river from the dense, sunlit wall of fresh foliage. Their ugly heads were tucked between their shoulders, and they appeared to bask in the soft sunlight pouring in from the west. Since they offered no culinary appeal, I decided not to disturb their relaxation and instead enjoyed the serene beauty of the sunset, as the river swirled swiftly in deep purple shadows between the looming woods, creating a wild yet calming scene.

When I returned to the camp I found Shaw and an old Indian seated on the ground in close conference, passing the pipe between them. The old man was explaining that he loved the whites, and had an especial partiality for tobacco. Delorier was arranging upon the ground our service of tin cups and plates; and as other viands were not to be had, he set before us a repast of biscuit and bacon, and a large pot of coffee. Unsheathing our knives, we attacked it, disposed of the greater part, and tossed the residue to the Indian. Meanwhile our horses, now hobbled for the first time, stood among the trees, with their fore-legs tied together, in great disgust and astonishment. They seemed by no means to relish this foretaste of what was before them. Mine, in particular, had conceived a moral aversion to the prairie life. One of them, christened Hendrick, an animal whose strength and hardihood were his only merits, and who yielded to nothing but the cogent arguments of the whip, looked toward us with an indignant countenance, as if he meditated avenging his wrongs with a kick. The other, Pontiac, a good horse, though of plebeian lineage, stood with his head drooping and his mane hanging about his eyes, with the grieved and sulky air of a lubberly boy sent off to school. Poor Pontiac! his forebodings were but too just; for when I last heard from him, he was under the lash of an Ogallalla brave, on a war party against the Crows.

When I got back to the camp, I saw Shaw and an old Native American sitting on the ground deep in conversation, passing the pipe between them. The old man was saying that he loved white people and had a special fondness for tobacco. Delorier was setting up our tin cups and plates on the ground, and since there were no other foods available, he served us a meal of biscuits, bacon, and a large pot of coffee. We pulled out our knives and dug in, finishing most of it and tossing the leftovers to the Indian. Meanwhile, our horses, now hobbled for the first time, stood among the trees with their front legs tied together, looking utterly disgusted and baffled. They certainly didn’t seem to enjoy this sneak peek of what was ahead. Mine, in particular, had developed a strong dislike for life on the prairie. One of them, named Hendrick, was powerful and tough, though he only responded to the firm persuasion of the whip. He looked at us with an outraged expression, as if he was plotting to take revenge with a kick. The other, Pontiac, was a decent horse, though of common ancestry, standing with his head low and his mane hanging in his eyes, looking grumpy and sulky like a lazy boy being sent off to school. Poor Pontiac! His fears were all too well founded; the last I heard of him, he was being whipped by an Ogallalla warrior on a war party against the Crows.

As it grew dark, and the voices of the whip-poor-wills succeeded the whistle of the quails, we removed our saddles to the tent, to serve as pillows, spread our blankets upon the ground, and prepared to bivouac for the first time that season. Each man selected the place in the tent which he was to occupy for the journey. To Delorier, however, was assigned the cart, into which he could creep in wet weather, and find a much better shelter than his bourgeois enjoyed in the tent.

As it got dark and the calls of the whip-poor-wills replaced the whistle of the quails, we took our saddles to the tent to use as pillows, laid out our blankets on the ground, and got ready to camp for the first time this season. Each guy picked the spot in the tent he would sleep in for the trip. However, Delorier was assigned to the cart, where he could crawl in during rainy weather and find much better shelter than his fellow campers did in the tent.

The river Kansas at this point forms the boundary line between the country of the Shawanoes and that of the Delawares. We crossed it on the following day, rafting over our horses and equipage with much difficulty, and unloading our cart in order to make our way up the steep ascent on the farther bank. It was a Sunday morning; warm, tranquil and bright; and a perfect stillness reigned over the rough inclosures and neglected fields of the Delawares, except the ceaseless hum and chirruping of myriads of insects. Now and then, an Indian rode past on his way to the meeting-house, or through the dilapidated entrance of some shattered log-house an old woman might be discerned, enjoying all the luxury of idleness. There was no village bell, for the Delawares have none; and yet upon that forlorn and rude settlement was the same spirit of Sabbath repose and tranquillity as in some little New England village among the mountains of New Hampshire or the Vermont woods.

The Kansas River at this point marks the boundary between the Shawnee territory and that of the Delawares. We crossed it the next day, rafting our horses and gear with a lot of difficulty, and unloading our cart to climb up the steep hill on the other side. It was a Sunday morning; warm, calm, and bright; and a perfect stillness filled the rough enclosures and neglected fields of the Delawares, except for the constant buzz and chirping of countless insects. Every now and then, an Indian would ride by on his way to the meeting house, or you could catch sight of an old woman through the broken entrance of some rundown log cabin, savoring the luxury of doing nothing. There was no village bell, as the Delawares don’t have one; yet this desolate and rough settlement had the same spirit of Sunday rest and peace as a small New England village nestled in the mountains of New Hampshire or the woods of Vermont.

Having at present no leisure for such reflections, we pursued our journey. A military road led from this point to Fort Leavenworth, and for many miles the farms and cabins of the Delawares were scattered at short intervals on either hand. The little rude structures of logs, erected usually on the borders of a tract of woods, made a picturesque feature in the landscape. But the scenery needed no foreign aid. Nature had done enough for it; and the alteration of rich green prairies and groves that stood in clusters or lined the banks of the numerous little streams, had all the softened and polished beauty of a region that has been for centuries under the hand of man. At that early season, too, it was in the height of its freshness and luxuriance. The woods were flushed with the red buds of the maple; there were frequent flowering shrubs unknown in the east; and the green swells of the prairies were thickly studded with blossoms.

Having no time for such thoughts right now, we continued our journey. A military road led from here to Fort Leavenworth, and for many miles, the farms and cabins of the Delawares were scattered at short intervals on both sides. The small, rough log structures, usually built on the edges of wooded areas, added a picturesque touch to the landscape. But the scenery didn’t need anything extra. Nature had done enough; the rich green prairies and groves, which stood in clusters or lined the banks of the many small streams, had all the softened and polished beauty of a place that has been shaped by human hands for centuries. At this early time of year, it was also at the peak of its freshness and lushness. The woods were vibrant with the red buds of the maple; there were often flowering shrubs not found in the east; and the gentle hills of the prairies were densely sprinkled with blooms.

Encamping near a spring by the side of a hill, we resumed our journey in the morning, and early in the afternoon had arrived within a few miles of Fort Leavenworth. The road crossed a stream densely bordered with trees, and running in the bottom of a deep woody hollow. We were about to descend into it, when a wild and confused procession appeared, passing through the water below, and coming up the steep ascent toward us. We stopped to let them pass. They were Delawares, just returned from a hunting expedition. All, both men and women, were mounted on horseback, and drove along with them a considerable number of pack mules, laden with the furs they had taken, together with the buffalo robes, kettles, and other articles of their traveling equipment, which as well as their clothing and their weapons, had a worn and dingy aspect, as if they had seen hard service of late. At the rear of the party was an old man, who, as he came up, stopped his horse to speak to us. He rode a little tough shaggy pony, with mane and tail well knotted with burrs, and a rusty Spanish bit in its mouth, to which, by way of reins, was attached a string of raw hide. His saddle, robbed probably from a Mexican, had no covering, being merely a tree of the Spanish form, with a piece of grizzly bear’s skin laid over it, a pair of rude wooden stirrups attached, and in the absence of girth, a thong of hide passing around the horse’s belly. The rider’s dark features and keen snaky eyes were unequivocally Indian. He wore a buckskin frock, which, like his fringed leggings, was well polished and blackened by grease and long service; and an old handkerchief was tied around his head. Resting on the saddle before him lay his rifle; a weapon in the use of which the Delawares are skillful; though from its weight, the distant prairie Indians are too lazy to carry it.

Camping near a spring on the side of a hill, we continued our journey in the morning and by early afternoon, we had gotten within a few miles of Fort Leavenworth. The road crossed a stream thickly lined with trees, running through the bottom of a deep wooded hollow. We were about to head down into it when a wild and chaotic group appeared, moving through the water below and climbing the steep slope towards us. We stopped to let them through. They were Delawares, just back from a hunting trip. Everyone, both men and women, was on horseback, driving a good number of pack mules loaded with the furs they had collected, along with buffalo robes, kettles, and other travel gear, which, along with their clothing and weapons, looked worn and dirty, as if they had been used hard recently. At the end of the group was an old man who, as he approached, stopped his horse to talk to us. He rode on a scruffy little pony, with its mane and tail tangled with burrs and a rusty Spanish bit in its mouth, with a rawhide string serving as reins. His saddle, probably taken from a Mexican, had no covering; it was just the tree of the Spanish style, with a piece of grizzly bear skin laid over it, a pair of crude wooden stirrups attached, and without a girth, a hide thong wrapped around the horse's belly. The rider's dark features and sharp, snake-like eyes clearly showed he was Indian. He wore a buckskin coat, which, like his fringed leggings, was well-worn and stained from grease and long use, and an old handkerchief was tied around his head. Resting on the saddle in front of him was his rifle, a weapon the Delawares are skilled with; however, due to its weight, the distant prairie Indians are too lazy to carry it.

“Who’s your chief?” he immediately inquired.

“Who’s your boss?” he immediately asked.

Henry Chatillon pointed to us. The old Delaware fixed his eyes intently upon us for a moment, and then sententiously remarked:

Henry Chatillon pointed us out. The old Delaware stared at us intently for a moment, and then said thoughtfully:

“No good! Too young!” With this flattering comment he left us, and rode after his people.

“No good! Too young!” With that nice comment, he left us and rode off after his group.

This tribe, the Delawares, once the peaceful allies of William Penn, the tributaries of the conquering Iroquois, are now the most adventurous and dreaded warriors upon the prairies. They make war upon remote tribes the very names of which were unknown to their fathers in their ancient seats in Pennsylvania; and they push these new quarrels with true Indian rancor, sending out their little war parties as far as the Rocky Mountains, and into the Mexican territories. Their neighbors and former confederates, the Shawanoes, who are tolerable farmers, are in a prosperous condition; but the Delawares dwindle every year, from the number of men lost in their warlike expeditions.

This tribe, the Delawares, once peaceful allies of William Penn and tributaries of the conquering Iroquois, are now the most adventurous and feared warriors on the plains. They wage war on distant tribes that were unknown to their ancestors in their ancient homeland in Pennsylvania; they engage in these new conflicts with genuine Indian anger, sending out their small war parties as far as the Rocky Mountains and into Mexican territories. Their neighbors and former allies, the Shawanoes, who are decent farmers, are doing well, but the Delawares are dwindling each year due to the number of men lost in their military campaigns.

Soon after leaving this party, we saw, stretching on the right, the forests that follow the course of the Missouri, and the deep woody channel through which at this point it runs. At a distance in front were the white barracks of Fort Leavenworth, just visible through the trees upon an eminence above a bend of the river. A wide green meadow, as level as a lake, lay between us and the Missouri, and upon this, close to a line of trees that bordered a little brook, stood the tent of the captain and his companions, with their horses feeding around it, but they themselves were invisible. Wright, their muleteer, was there, seated on the tongue of the wagon, repairing his harness. Boisverd stood cleaning his rifle at the door of the tent, and Sorel lounged idly about. On closer examination, however, we discovered the captain’s brother, Jack, sitting in the tent, at his old occupation of splicing trail-ropes. He welcomed us in his broad Irish brogue, and said that his brother was fishing in the river, and R. gone to the garrison. They returned before sunset. Meanwhile we erected our own tent not far off, and after supper a council was held, in which it was resolved to remain one day at Fort Leavenworth, and on the next to bid a final adieu to the frontier: or in the phraseology of the region, to “jump off.” Our deliberations were conducted by the ruddy light from a distant swell of the prairie, where the long dry grass of last summer was on fire.

Soon after leaving the party, we saw to our right the forests that follow the course of the Missouri, along with the deep wooded channel through which it flows here. In the distance ahead were the white barracks of Fort Leavenworth, barely visible through the trees on a rise above a bend in the river. A vast green meadow, as flat as a lake, lay between us and the Missouri. Close to a line of trees bordering a small creek stood the captain's tent with his companions, while their horses grazed nearby, though they themselves were nowhere to be seen. Wright, their muleteer, was sitting on the wagon tongue, fixing his harness. Boisverd was cleaning his rifle at the tent door, and Sorel was lounging around aimlessly. Upon closer inspection, we spotted the captain's brother, Jack, sitting in the tent, busy splicing trail ropes. He greeted us with his strong Irish accent and mentioned that his brother was fishing in the river and R. had gone to the garrison. They returned before sunset. In the meantime, we set up our own tent not far away, and after dinner, we held a meeting where we decided to stay one more day at Fort Leavenworth, and then the next day to say a final goodbye to the frontier: or as they say around here, to "jump off." Our discussions were illuminated by the red glow from a distant rise on the prairie, where last summer's long dry grass was on fire.





CHAPTER III

FORT LEAVENWORTH

On the next morning we rode to Fort Leavenworth. Colonel, now General, Kearny, to whom I had had the honor of an introduction when at St. Louis, was just arrived, and received us at his headquarters with the high-bred courtesy habitual to him. Fort Leavenworth is in fact no fort, being without defensive works, except two block-houses. No rumors of war had as yet disturbed its tranquillity. In the square grassy area, surrounded by barracks and the quarters of the officers, the men were passing and repassing, or lounging among the trees; although not many weeks afterward it presented a different scene; for here the very off-scourings of the frontier were congregated, to be marshaled for the expedition against Santa Fe.

The next morning, we rode to Fort Leavenworth. Colonel, now General, Kearny, whom I had the honor of meeting in St. Louis, had just arrived and welcomed us at his headquarters with his usual graciousness. Fort Leavenworth isn’t really a fort, as it lacks defensive structures except for two blockhouses. No rumors of war had yet disturbed its peace. In the grassy square surrounded by barracks and officer quarters, soldiers were coming and going or relaxing under the trees; yet, just a few weeks later, it would look very different, as the rough edges of the frontier would gather here to prepare for the expedition against Santa Fe.

Passing through the garrison, we rode toward the Kickapoo village, five or six miles beyond. The path, a rather dubious and uncertain one, led us along the ridge of high bluffs that bordered the Missouri; and by looking to the right or to the left, we could enjoy a strange contrast of opposite scenery. On the left stretched the prairie, rising into swells and undulations, thickly sprinkled with groves, or gracefully expanding into wide grassy basins of miles in extent; while its curvatures, swelling against the horizon, were often surmounted by lines of sunny woods; a scene to which the freshness of the season and the peculiar mellowness of the atmosphere gave additional softness. Below us, on the right, was a tract of ragged and broken woods. We could look down on the summits of the trees, some living and some dead; some erect, others leaning at every angle, and others still piled in masses together by the passage of a hurricane. Beyond their extreme verge, the turbid waters of the Missouri were discernible through the boughs, rolling powerfully along at the foot of the woody declivities of its farther bank.

Riding through the garrison, we headed toward the Kickapoo village, about five or six miles ahead. The path, kind of sketchy and uncertain, took us along the ridge of high bluffs that lined the Missouri River. By looking to the right or left, we could see a striking contrast in the scenery. To the left was the prairie, rising into gentle swells and dips, dotted with groves, and smoothly expanding into wide grassy basins stretching for miles. The curves of the land rising against the horizon were often topped by sunlit woods; a view made even softer by the freshness of the season and the unique warmth of the atmosphere. Below us, on the right, was a patch of tangled and broken woods. We could see the tops of the trees, some alive and some dead; some standing tall, others leaning at odd angles, and some piled together in heaps from the force of a hurricane. Beyond the edge of the trees, the murky waters of the Missouri were visible between the branches, flowing powerfully along at the base of the wooded slopes on the other side.

The path soon after led inland; and as we crossed an open meadow we saw a cluster of buildings on a rising ground before us, with a crowd of people surrounding them. They were the storehouse, cottage, and stables of the Kickapoo trader’s establishment. Just at that moment, as it chanced, he was beset with half the Indians of the settlement. They had tied their wretched, neglected little ponies by dozens along the fences and outhouses, and were either lounging about the place, or crowding into the trading house. Here were faces of various colors; red, green, white, and black, curiously intermingled and disposed over the visage in a variety of patterns. Calico shirts, red and blue blankets, brass ear-rings, wampum necklaces, appeared in profusion. The trader was a blue-eyed open-faced man who neither in his manners nor his appearance betrayed any of the roughness of the frontier; though just at present he was obliged to keep a lynx eye on his suspicious customers, who, men and women, were climbing on his counter and seating themselves among his boxes and bales.

The path quickly turned inland, and as we crossed an open meadow, we noticed a cluster of buildings on higher ground ahead of us, surrounded by a crowd of people. They were the storehouse, cottage, and stables of the Kickapoo trader’s setup. Just then, he happened to be surrounded by half the Indians from the settlement. They had tied their poorly cared-for little ponies in droves along the fences and outbuildings, either lounging around or crowding into the trading house. Faces of different colors—red, green, white, and black—were intermingled and displayed in various patterns. Calico shirts, red and blue blankets, brass earrings, and wampum necklaces were abundantly visible. The trader was a blue-eyed, friendly man who, in both his manner and appearance, showed none of the roughness typical of the frontier; however, at that moment, he had to keep a close eye on his suspicious customers, who, both men and women, were climbing onto his counter and sitting among his boxes and bales.

The village itself was not far off, and sufficiently illustrated the condition of its unfortunate and self-abandoned occupants. Fancy to yourself a little swift stream, working its devious way down a woody valley; sometimes wholly hidden under logs and fallen trees, sometimes issuing forth and spreading into a broad, clear pool; and on its banks in little nooks cleared away among the trees, miniature log-houses in utter ruin and neglect. A labyrinth of narrow, obstructed paths connected these habitations one with another. Sometimes we met a stray calf, a pig or a pony, belonging to some of the villagers, who usually lay in the sun in front of their dwellings, and looked on us with cold, suspicious eyes as we approached. Farther on, in place of the log-huts of the Kickapoos, we found the pukwi lodges of their neighbors, the Pottawattamies, whose condition seemed no better than theirs.

The village wasn't far away and clearly showed the state of its unfortunate and neglected inhabitants. Imagine a little swift stream winding through a wooded valley; sometimes completely hidden under logs and fallen trees, sometimes emerging to form a broad, clear pool; and along its banks, in little clearings among the trees, were tiny log houses in total ruin and neglect. A maze of narrow, blocked paths connected these homes to each other. Occasionally, we spotted a stray calf, a pig, or a pony belonging to some villagers, who typically lay in the sun in front of their homes and watched us with cold, wary eyes as we got closer. Further along, instead of the log cabins of the Kickapoos, we encountered the pukwi lodges of their neighbors, the Pottawattamies, whose situation seemed just as dire.

Growing tired at last, and exhausted by the excessive heat and sultriness of the day, we returned to our friend, the trader. By this time the crowd around him had dispersed, and left him at leisure. He invited us to his cottage, a little white-and-green building, in the style of the old French settlements; and ushered us into a neat, well-furnished room. The blinds were closed, and the heat and glare of the sun excluded; the room was as cool as a cavern. It was neatly carpeted too and furnished in a manner that we hardly expected on the frontier. The sofas, chairs, tables, and a well-filled bookcase would not have disgraced an Eastern city; though there were one or two little tokens that indicated the rather questionable civilization of the region. A pistol, loaded and capped, lay on the mantelpiece; and through the glass of the bookcase, peeping above the works of John Milton glittered the handle of a very mischievous-looking knife.

Growing tired at last, and worn out by the intense heat and humidity of the day, we returned to our friend, the trader. By this time, the crowd around him had scattered, leaving him free. He invited us to his cottage, a small white-and-green building styled after the old French settlements, and led us into a tidy, well-furnished room. The blinds were drawn, blocking out the heat and bright sunlight; the room felt cool like a cave. It was also neatly carpeted and decorated in a way we hardly expected on the frontier. The sofas, chairs, tables, and a well-stocked bookcase wouldn’t have looked out of place in an Eastern city, although there were a couple of items that hinted at the somewhat uncertain civilization of the area. A loaded and capped pistol rested on the mantelpiece, and through the glass of the bookcase, peeking above the works of John Milton, the handle of a rather mischievous-looking knife sparkled.

Our host went out, and returned with iced water, glasses, and a bottle of excellent claret; a refreshment most welcome in the extreme heat of the day; and soon after appeared a merry, laughing woman, who must have been, a year of two before, a very rich and luxuriant specimen of Creole beauty. She came to say that lunch was ready in the next room. Our hostess evidently lived on the sunny side of life, and troubled herself with none of its cares. She sat down and entertained us while we were at table with anecdotes of fishing parties, frolics, and the officers at the fort. Taking leave at length of the hospitable trader and his friend, we rode back to the garrison.

Our host went out and came back with chilled water, glasses, and a bottle of great red wine; a refreshment that was very welcome in the sweltering heat of the day. Soon after, a cheerful, laughing woman appeared who, a year or two earlier, must have been a stunning example of Creole beauty. She came to let us know that lunch was ready in the next room. Our hostess clearly lived life to the fullest and didn't worry about its troubles. She sat down and entertained us at the table with stories about fishing trips, fun times, and the officers at the fort. Finally taking our leave from the friendly trader and his companion, we rode back to the garrison.

Shaw passed on to the camp, while I remained to call upon Colonel Kearny. I found him still at table. There sat our friend the captain, in the same remarkable habiliments in which we saw him at Westport; the black pipe, however, being for the present laid aside. He dangled his little cap in his hand and talked of steeple-chases, touching occasionally upon his anticipated exploits in buffalo-hunting. There, too, was R., somewhat more elegantly attired. For the last time we tasted the luxuries of civilization, and drank adieus to it in wine good enough to make us almost regret the leave-taking. Then, mounting, we rode together to the camp, where everything was in readiness for departure on the morrow.

Shaw went on to the camp while I stayed to visit Colonel Kearny. I found him still at the table. Our friend the captain was there, wearing the same striking outfit we saw him in at Westport; he had set aside his black pipe for now. He swung his little cap in his hand and talked about steeplechases, occasionally mentioning his upcoming adventures in buffalo hunting. R. was also there, dressed a bit more elegantly. For the last time, we enjoyed the comforts of civilization and toasted our farewell with wine good enough to make us almost regret leaving. Then, we got on our horses and rode together to the camp, where everything was ready for our departure the next day.





CHAPTER IV

“JUMPING OFF”

The reader need not be told that John Bull never leaves home without encumbering himself with the greatest possible load of luggage. Our companions were no exception to the rule. They had a wagon drawn by six mules and crammed with provisions for six months, besides ammunition enough for a regiment; spare rifles and fowling-pieces, ropes and harness; personal baggage, and a miscellaneous assortment of articles, which produced infinite embarrassment on the journey. They had also decorated their persons with telescopes and portable compasses, and carried English double-barreled rifles of sixteen to the pound caliber, slung to their saddles in dragoon fashion.

The reader should know that John Bull never leaves home without loading himself down with as much luggage as possible. Our companions were no different. They had a wagon pulled by six mules, packed with enough supplies for six months, along with enough ammunition for a whole regiment; spare rifles and shotguns, ropes and harness; personal belongings, and a mixed collection of items that caused endless difficulties on the trip. They also adorned themselves with telescopes and portable compasses, and carried English double-barreled rifles with a sixteen-pound caliber, slung to their saddles in a dragoons-style.

By sunrise on the 23d of May we had breakfasted; the tents were leveled, the animals saddled and harnessed, and all was prepared. “Avance donc! get up!” cried Delorier from his seat in front of the cart. Wright, our friend’s muleteer, after some swearing and lashing, got his insubordinate train in motion, and then the whole party filed from the ground. Thus we bade a long adieu to bed and board, and the principles of Blackstone’s Commentaries. The day was a most auspicious one; and yet Shaw and I felt certain misgivings, which in the sequel proved but too well founded. We had just learned that though R. had taken it upon him to adopt this course without consulting us, not a single man in the party was acquainted with it; and the absurdity of our friend’s high-handed measure very soon became manifest. His plan was to strike the trail of several companies of dragoons, who last summer had made an expedition under Colonel Kearny to Fort Laramie, and by this means to reach the grand trail of the Oregon emigrants up the Platte.

By sunrise on May 23rd, we had eaten breakfast; the tents were taken down, the animals were saddled and harnessed, and everything was ready. “Let’s go! Get up!” shouted Delorier from his spot at the front of the cart. Wright, our friend’s mule handler, after some cursing and whipping, finally got his stubborn pack moving, and then the whole group left the campsite. We said a long goodbye to our bed and meals and the ideas from Blackstone’s Commentaries. The day was looking promising; still, Shaw and I had some nagging doubts, which turned out to be well-founded. We had just found out that while R. had decided to take this route without consulting us, not a single person in the group was aware of it, and the ridiculousness of our friend's unilateral decision quickly became obvious. His plan was to follow the trail of several companies of dragoons who, last summer, had gone on an expedition under Colonel Kearny to Fort Laramie, in order to reach the main trail for Oregon emigrants up the Platte.

We rode for an hour or two when a familiar cluster of buildings appeared on a little hill. “Hallo!” shouted the Kickapoo trader from over his fence. “Where are you going?” A few rather emphatic exclamations might have been heard among us, when we found that we had gone miles out of our way, and were not advanced an inch toward the Rocky Mountains. So we turned in the direction the trader indicated, and with the sun for a guide, began to trace a “bee line” across the prairies. We struggled through copses and lines of wood; we waded brooks and pools of water; we traversed prairies as green as an emerald, expanding before us for mile after mile; wider and more wild than the wastes Mazeppa rode over:

We rode for an hour or two when a familiar cluster of buildings appeared on a little hill. “Hey!” shouted the Kickapoo trader from over his fence. “Where are you headed?” A few rather loud exclamations could be heard among us when we realized that we had gone miles off course and hadn’t made any progress toward the Rocky Mountains. So, we turned in the direction the trader indicated, and with the sun as our guide, started to head straight across the prairies. We struggled through thickets and rows of trees; we waded through streams and pools of water; we crossed prairies as green as an emerald, stretching out before us mile after mile, wider and wilder than the lands Mazeppa rode over:

     “Man nor brute,
     Nor dint of hoof, nor print of foot,
     Lay in the wild luxuriant soil;
     No sign of travel; none of toil;
     The very air was mute.”
 
     “Neither man nor beast,
     No hoofprint or footprint,
     Lay in the wild, lush soil;
     No sign of passage; none of labor;
     The very air was silent.”

Riding in advance, we passed over one of these great plains; we looked back and saw the line of scattered horsemen stretching for a mile or more; and far in the rear against the horizon, the white wagons creeping slowly along. “Here we are at last!” shouted the captain. And in truth we had struck upon the traces of a large body of horse. We turned joyfully and followed this new course, with tempers somewhat improved; and toward sunset encamped on a high swell of the prairie, at the foot of which a lazy stream soaked along through clumps of rank grass. It was getting dark. We turned the horses loose to feed. “Drive down the tent-pickets hard,” said Henry Chatillon, “it is going to blow.” We did so, and secured the tent as well as we could; for the sky had changed totally, and a fresh damp smell in the wind warned us that a stormy night was likely to succeed the hot clear day. The prairie also wore a new aspect, and its vast swells had grown black and somber under the shadow of the clouds. The thunder soon began to growl at a distance. Picketing and hobbling the horses among the rich grass at the foot of the slope, where we encamped, we gained a shelter just as the rain began to fall; and sat at the opening of the tent, watching the proceedings of the captain. In defiance of the rain he was stalking among the horses, wrapped in an old Scotch plaid. An extreme solicitude tormented him, lest some of his favorites should escape, or some accident should befall them; and he cast an anxious eye toward three wolves who were sneaking along over the dreary surface of the plain, as if he dreaded some hostile demonstration on their part.

Riding ahead, we crossed one of those vast plains; looking back, we saw a line of scattered horsemen stretching for a mile or more; and far in the distance against the horizon, the white wagons slowly made their way. “We made it at last!” shouted the captain. And indeed, we had discovered signs of a large group of horses. We turned around happily and followed this new path, our moods brighter; and by sunset, we set up camp on a high rise in the prairie, at the bottom of which a lazy stream meandered through patches of tall grass. It was getting dark. We let the horses loose to graze. “Drive the tent stakes in tight,” said Henry Chatillon, “it's going to get windy.” We did as he suggested and secured the tent as best as we could; for the sky had completely changed, and a fresh, damp smell in the air warned us that a stormy night was likely to follow the hot, clear day. The prairie looked different too, its vast swells turned dark and gloomy under the clouds’ shadow. Soon, we could hear distant thunder rumbling. After securing the horses among the lush grass at the base of the slope where we camped, we found shelter just as the rain started to fall; we sat at the tent’s entrance, watching the captain's actions. Despite the rain, he was walking among the horses, wrapped in an old plaid blanket. He was extremely worried that some of his favorites might escape or that something bad might happen to them; he cast a worried glance at three wolves that were sneaking across the desolate plain, as if he feared they might pose a threat.

On the next morning we had gone but a mile or two, when we came to an extensive belt of woods, through the midst of which ran a stream, wide, deep, and of an appearance particularly muddy and treacherous. Delorier was in advance with his cart; he jerked his pipe from his mouth, lashed his mules, and poured forth a volley of Canadian ejaculations. In plunged the cart, but midway it stuck fast. Delorier leaped out knee-deep in water, and by dint of sacres and a vigorous application of the whip, he urged the mules out of the slough. Then approached the long team and heavy wagon of our friends; but it paused on the brink.

The next morning, we had only gone a mile or two when we reached a large area of woods with a stream running through it. The water was wide, deep, and looked especially muddy and dangerous. Delorier was ahead with his cart; he pulled his pipe out of his mouth, whipped his mules, and shouted a stream of Canadian exclamations. He drove the cart in, but it got stuck halfway. Delorier jumped out into the knee-deep water, and with a mix of curses and a strong application of the whip, he got the mules out of the mud. Then our friends' long team and heavy wagon came up, but it stopped at the edge.

“Now my advice is—” began the captain, who had been anxiously contemplating the muddy gulf.

“Now my advice is—” began the captain, who had been nervously staring at the muddy swamp.

“Drive on!” cried R.

"Keep driving!" shouted R.

But Wright, the muleteer, apparently had not as yet decided the point in his own mind; and he sat still in his seat on one of the shaft-mules, whistling in a low contemplative strain to himself.

But Wright, the muleteer, didn’t seem to have made up his mind yet; he sat quietly on one of the shaft mules, whistling softly to himself in a thoughtful way.

“My advice is,” resumed the captain, “that we unload; for I’ll bet any man five pounds that if we try to go through, we shall stick fast.”

“My advice is,” the captain continued, “that we unload; I’d bet any man five pounds that if we try to go through, we’ll get stuck.”

“By the powers, we shall stick fast!” echoed Jack, the captain’s brother, shaking his large head with an air of firm conviction.

“By the powers, we will hold strong!” echoed Jack, the captain’s brother, shaking his large head with a sense of strong conviction.

“Drive on! drive on!” cried R. petulantly.

“Drive on! drive on!” shouted R. impatiently.

“Well,” observed the captain, turning to us as we sat looking on, much edified by this by-play among our confederates, “I can only give my advice and if people won’t be reasonable, why, they won’t; that’s all!”

“Well,” said the captain, turning to us as we watched, quite entertained by this interaction among our allies, “I can only offer my advice, and if people aren’t willing to be reasonable, then they aren’t; that’s all!”

Meanwhile Wright had apparently made up his mind; for he suddenly began to shout forth a volley of oaths and curses, that, compared with the French imprecations of Delorier, sounded like the roaring of heavy cannon after the popping and sputtering of a bunch of Chinese crackers. At the same time he discharged a shower of blows upon his mules, who hastily dived into the mud and drew the wagon lumbering after them. For a moment the issue was dubious. Wright writhed about in his saddle, and swore and lashed like a madman; but who can count on a team of half-broken mules? At the most critical point, when all should have been harmony and combined effort, the perverse brutes fell into lamentable disorder, and huddled together in confusion on the farther bank. There was the wagon up to the hub in mud, and visibly settling every instant. There was nothing for it but to unload; then to dig away the mud from before the wheels with a spade, and lay a causeway of bushes and branches. This agreeable labor accomplished, the wagon at last emerged; but if I mention that some interruption of this sort occurred at least four or five times a day for a fortnight, the reader will understand that our progress toward the Platte was not without its obstacles.

Meanwhile, Wright had clearly made his decision; he suddenly began shouting a stream of curses and swearing that, compared to Delorier's French curses, sounded like heavy artillery after the popping and crackling of a bunch of firecrackers. At the same time, he unleashed a flurry of blows on his mules, who quickly plunged into the mud, dragging the wagon along behind them. For a moment, it was unclear what would happen. Wright twisted in his saddle, yelling and hitting like a madman; but who can rely on a team of half-trained mules? At the most critical moment, when everything should have been in sync and working together, the stubborn animals fell into complete chaos and huddled together in confusion on the other bank. The wagon was stuck in the mud up to the hubs and was visibly sinking by the second. There was nothing to do but unload it, then dig the mud away from in front of the wheels with a shovel, and create a makeshift path of branches and bushes. Once this labor was completed, the wagon finally got free; but if I mention that some setback like this happened at least four or five times a day for two weeks, the reader will understand that our journey to the Platte was not without its challenges.

We traveled six or seven miles farther, and “nooned” near a brook. On the point of resuming our journey, when the horses were all driven down to water, my homesick charger, Pontiac, made a sudden leap across, and set off at a round trot for the settlements. I mounted my remaining horse, and started in pursuit. Making a circuit, I headed the runaway, hoping to drive him back to camp; but he instantly broke into a gallop, made a wide tour on the prairie, and got past me again. I tried this plan repeatedly, with the same result; Pontiac was evidently disgusted with the prairie; so I abandoned it, and tried another, trotting along gently behind him, in hopes that I might quietly get near enough to seize the trail-rope which was fastened to his neck, and dragged about a dozen feet behind him. The chase grew interesting. For mile after mile I followed the rascal, with the utmost care not to alarm him, and gradually got nearer, until at length old Hendrick’s nose was fairly brushed by the whisking tail of the unsuspecting Pontiac. Without drawing rein, I slid softly to the ground; but my long heavy rifle encumbered me, and the low sound it made in striking the horn of the saddle startled him; he pricked up his ears, and sprang off at a run. “My friend,” thought I, remounting, “do that again, and I will shoot you!”

We traveled six or seven miles further and took a break by a stream. Just as we were about to continue our journey, with the horses all down by the water, my homesick horse, Pontiac, suddenly jumped across and took off at a brisk trot toward the settlements. I got on my other horse and set off after him. I tried to cut him off by circling around, hoping to drive him back to camp, but he instantly started galloping, took a wide turn on the prairie, and got past me again. I attempted this tactic multiple times, but Pontiac was clearly fed up with the prairie, so I gave it up and came up with a new plan. I trotted gently behind him, hoping to quietly get close enough to grab the trail rope that was attached to his neck and trailing about a dozen feet behind him. The chase got interesting. For mile after mile, I followed the rascal, being careful not to spook him, and gradually got closer, until finally, old Hendrick’s nose brushed against the swishing tail of the oblivious Pontiac. Without stopping, I quietly slid off my horse; but my long, heavy rifle got in the way, and when it struck the saddle horn, the noise startled him. He perked up his ears and bolted away. “My friend,” I thought as I got back in the saddle, “if you do that again, I’ll shoot you!”

Fort Leavenworth was about forty miles distant, and thither I determined to follow him. I made up my mind to spend a solitary and supperless night, and then set out again in the morning. One hope, however, remained. The creek where the wagon had stuck was just before us; Pontiac might be thirsty with his run, and stop there to drink. I kept as near to him as possible, taking every precaution not to alarm him again; and the result proved as I had hoped: for he walked deliberately among the trees, and stooped down to the water. I alighted, dragged old Hendrick through the mud, and with a feeling of infinite satisfaction picked up the slimy trail-rope and twisted it three times round my hand. “Now let me see you get away again!” I thought, as I remounted. But Pontiac was exceedingly reluctant to turn back; Hendrick, too, who had evidently flattered himself with vain hopes, showed the utmost repugnance, and grumbled in a manner peculiar to himself at being compelled to face about. A smart cut of the whip restored his cheerfulness; and dragging the recovered truant behind, I set out in search of the camp. An hour or two elapsed, when, near sunset, I saw the tents, standing on a rich swell of the prairie, beyond a line of woods, while the bands of horses were feeding in a low meadow close at hand. There sat Jack C., cross-legged, in the sun, splicing a trail-rope, and the rest were lying on the grass, smoking and telling stories. That night we enjoyed a serenade from the wolves, more lively than any with which they had yet favored us; and in the morning one of the musicians appeared, not many rods from the tents, quietly seated among the horses, looking at us with a pair of large gray eyes; but perceiving a rifle leveled at him, he leaped up and made off in hot haste.

Fort Leavenworth was about forty miles away, and I decided to follow him there. I resolved to spend a lonely night without dinner and set out again in the morning. One hope remained, though. The creek where the wagon had gotten stuck was right ahead; Pontiac might be thirsty after running and stop there to drink. I stayed as close to him as I could, taking every precaution not to scare him again, and my hopes were rewarded: he walked calmly among the trees and bent down to drink from the water. I got off, pulled old Hendrick through the mud, and with a sense of great satisfaction picked up the slimy lead rope and wrapped it three times around my hand. “Let’s see you get away again!” I thought as I got back on. But Pontiac was very reluctant to turn around; Hendrick, too, who clearly had been dreaming of freedom, showed a lot of resistance and complained in his usual way about being forced to turn back. A sharp crack of the whip brought back his spirits; and pulling the recovered runaway behind me, I headed out to find the camp. After an hour or two, near sunset, I spotted the tents on a rise of the prairie beyond a line of woods, while the horses were grazing in a low meadow nearby. Jack C. was sitting cross-legged in the sun, splicing a lead rope, while the others lounged on the grass, smoking and sharing stories. That night, we were treated to a lively serenade from the wolves, more spirited than any before. In the morning, one of the wolves appeared not far from the tents, calmly sitting among the horses and watching us with large gray eyes; but as soon as he saw a rifle aimed at him, he jumped up and took off quickly.

I pass by the following day or two of our journey, for nothing occurred worthy of record. Should any one of my readers ever be impelled to visit the prairies, and should he choose the route of the Platte (the best, perhaps, that can be adopted), I can assure him that he need not think to enter at once upon the paradise of his imagination. A dreary preliminary, protracted crossing of the threshold awaits him before he finds himself fairly upon the verge of the “great American desert,” those barren wastes, the haunts of the buffalo and the Indian, where the very shadow of civilization lies a hundred leagues behind him. The intervening country, the wide and fertile belt that extends for several hundred miles beyond the extreme frontier, will probably answer tolerably well to his preconceived ideas of the prairie; for this it is from which picturesque tourists, painters, poets, and novelists, who have seldom penetrated farther, have derived their conceptions of the whole region. If he has a painter’s eye, he may find his period of probation not wholly void of interest. The scenery, though tame, is graceful and pleasing. Here are level plains, too wide for the eye to measure green undulations, like motionless swells of the ocean; abundance of streams, followed through all their windings by lines of woods and scattered groves. But let him be as enthusiastic as he may, he will find enough to damp his ardor. His wagons will stick in the mud; his horses will break loose; harness will give way, and axle-trees prove unsound. His bed will be a soft one, consisting often of black mud, of the richest consistency. As for food, he must content himself with biscuit and salt provisions; for strange as it may seem, this tract of country produces very little game. As he advances, indeed, he will see, moldering in the grass by his path, the vast antlers of the elk, and farther on, the whitened skulls of the buffalo, once swarming over this now deserted region. Perhaps, like us, he may journey for a fortnight, and see not so much as the hoof-print of a deer; in the spring, not even a prairie hen is to be had.

I’ll skip the next day or two of our journey since nothing noteworthy happened. If any of my readers ever feel the urge to visit the prairies, and decide to take the Platte route (which is probably the best option), I can assure them that they shouldn’t expect to step right into a paradise like they imagined. A long and dreary first stretch awaits them before they truly reach the edge of the “great American desert,” those barren expanses that buffalo and Native Americans roamed, where the shadow of civilization is far behind. The land in between, the broad and fertile area that stretches several hundred miles beyond the farthest frontier, will probably match their ideas of the prairie pretty well; it’s from this area that picturesque tourists, painters, poets, and novelists—who rarely ventured deeper—have formed their images of the entire region. If they have an artist's eye, they might find their initial journey somewhat interesting. The scenery, while not thrilling, is gentle and charming. There are flat plains, too vast to gauge, green hills that roll like calm ocean swells, and plenty of streams bordered by lines of trees and scattered groves. But no matter how enthusiastic they are, there will be enough to dampen their excitement. Their wagons will get stuck in the mud; their horses will break free; harnesses will fail, and axle trees will be weak. Their bed will often be soft, made up of rich black mud. As for food, they’ll have to settle for biscuits and preserved goods; oddly enough, this area doesn’t yield much game. As they move forward, they might spot the decaying antlers of elk in the grass beside the path and further on, the bleached skulls of buffalo, once numerous in this now empty region. Perhaps, like us, they may travel for two weeks and not see a single track of a deer; in spring, they may not even find a prairie hen.

Yet, to compensate him for this unlooked-for deficiency of game, he will find himself beset with “varmints” innumerable. The wolves will entertain him with a concerto at night, and skulk around him by day, just beyond rifle shot; his horse will step into badger-holes; from every marsh and mud puddle will arise the bellowing, croaking, and trilling of legions of frogs, infinitely various in color, shape and dimensions. A profusion of snakes will glide away from under his horse’s feet, or quietly visit him in his tent at night; while the pertinacious humming of unnumbered mosquitoes will banish sleep from his eyelids. When thirsty with a long ride in the scorching sun over some boundless reach of prairie, he comes at length to a pool of water, and alights to drink, he discovers a troop of young tadpoles sporting in the bottom of his cup. Add to this, that all the morning the hot sun beats upon him with sultry, penetrating heat, and that, with provoking regularity, at about four o’clock in the afternoon, a thunderstorm rises and drenches him to the skin. Such being the charms of this favored region, the reader will easily conceive the extent of our gratification at learning that for a week we had been journeying on the wrong track! How this agreeable discovery was made I will presently explain.

Yet, to make up for the unexpected lack of game, he will find himself surrounded by countless "varmints." The wolves will entertain him with a concert at night and sneak around him by day, just out of rifle range; his horse will stumble into badger holes; from every marsh and puddle will come the loud croaking and trilling of legions of frogs, all different in color, shape, and size. A multitude of snakes will slither away from under his horse's feet or quietly visit him in his tent at night, while the persistent buzzing of countless mosquitoes will keep him awake. After a long ride under the blazing sun across vast stretches of prairie, he finally reaches a pool of water, only to find a group of young tadpoles playing in the bottom of his cup. To top it off, all morning the hot sun beats down on him with stifling heat, and, like clockwork, around four o'clock in the afternoon, a thunderstorm rolls in and soaks him to the skin. With such charms in this favored region, the reader can easily understand how pleased we were to discover that we had been traveling the wrong way for a week! I will explain how this delightful discovery was made shortly.

One day, after a protracted morning’s ride, we stopped to rest at noon upon the open prairie. No trees were in sight; but close at hand, a little dribbling brook was twisting from side to side through a hollow; now forming holes of stagnant water, and now gliding over the mud in a scarcely perceptible current, among a growth of sickly bushes, and great clumps of tall rank grass. The day was excessively hot and oppressive. The horses and mules were rolling on the prairie to refresh themselves, or feeding among the bushes in the hollow. We had dined; and Delorier, puffing at his pipe, knelt on the grass, scrubbing our service of tin plate. Shaw lay in the shade, under the cart, to rest for a while, before the word should be given to “catch up.” Henry Chatillon, before lying down, was looking about for signs of snakes, the only living things that he feared, and uttering various ejaculations of disgust, at finding several suspicious-looking holes close to the cart. I sat leaning against the wheel in a scanty strip of shade, making a pair of hobbles to replace those which my contumacious steed Pontiac had broken the night before. The camp of our friends, a rod or two distant, presented the same scene of lazy tranquillity.

One day, after a long morning ride, we stopped to rest at noon on the open prairie. There were no trees around; but nearby, a little brook was meandering back and forth through a hollow, sometimes creating stagnant pools of water and sometimes barely flowing over the mud among a patch of unhealthy bushes and tall, thick grass. The day was extremely hot and heavy. The horses and mules were rolling on the prairie to cool off or grazing among the bushes in the hollow. We had eaten, and Delorier, puffing on his pipe, knelt on the grass, cleaning our tin plates. Shaw lay in the shade under the cart to take a break before the signal to “catch up” was given. Before lying down, Henry Chatillon was looking around for signs of snakes, the only creatures he was afraid of, and he voiced his disgust upon discovering several questionable-looking holes near the cart. I sat leaning against the wheel in a small patch of shade, making a new pair of hobbles to replace the ones my stubborn horse Pontiac had broken the night before. Our friends' camp, a short distance away, displayed the same scene of lazy calm.

“Hallo!” cried Henry, looking up from his inspection of the snake-holes, “here comes the old captain!”

“Hey!” shouted Henry, looking up from checking the snake holes, “here comes the old captain!”

The captain approached, and stood for a moment contemplating us in silence.

The captain walked over and paused for a moment, watching us in silence.

“I say, Parkman,” he began, “look at Shaw there, asleep under the cart, with the tar dripping off the hub of the wheel on his shoulder!”

“I say, Parkman,” he started, “check out Shaw over there, sleeping under the cart, with the tar dripping off the wheel hub onto his shoulder!”

At this Shaw got up, with his eyes half opened, and feeling the part indicated, he found his hand glued fast to his red flannel shirt.

At this, he got up, his eyes half-opened, and when he felt the area indicated, he discovered that his hand was stuck to his red flannel shirt.

“He’ll look well when he gets among the squaws, won’t he?” observed the captain, with a grin.

“He’ll look good when he’s with the women, right?” said the captain with a grin.

He then crawled under the cart, and began to tell stories of which his stock was inexhaustible. Yet every moment he would glance nervously at the horses. At last he jumped up in great excitement. “See that horse! There—that fellow just walking over the hill! By Jove; he’s off. It’s your big horse, Shaw; no it isn’t, it’s Jack’s! Jack! Jack! hallo, Jack!” Jack thus invoked, jumped up and stared vacantly at us.

He crawled under the cart and started telling endless stories. But every now and then, he would nervously glance at the horses. Finally, he jumped up in excitement. “Look at that horse! There—that one just walking over the hill! Wow; he’s getting away. It’s your big horse, Shaw; wait, no it’s Jack’s! Jack! Jack! Hey, Jack!” Jack, called out like this, jumped up and looked at us blankly.

“Go and catch your horse, if you don’t want to lose him!” roared the captain.

“Go and grab your horse if you don’t want to lose him!” shouted the captain.

Jack instantly set off at a run through the grass, his broad pantaloons flapping about his feet. The captain gazed anxiously till he saw that the horse was caught; then he sat down, with a countenance of thoughtfulness and care.

Jack immediately took off running through the grass, his wide pants flapping around his ankles. The captain watched nervously until he saw that the horse was caught; then he sat down, looking thoughtful and concerned.

“I tell you what it is,” he said, “this will never do at all. We shall lose every horse in the band someday or other, and then a pretty plight we should be in! Now I am convinced that the only way for us is to have every man in the camp stand horse-guard in rotation whenever we stop. Supposing a hundred Pawnees should jump up out of that ravine, all yelling and flapping their buffalo robes, in the way they do? Why, in two minutes not a hoof would be in sight.” We reminded the captain that a hundred Pawnees would probably demolish the horse-guard, if he were to resist their depredations.

“I'll tell you what,” he said, “this just won’t work. We’re going to lose every horse in the group sooner or later, and then we’ll be in real trouble! I’m convinced the only solution is for every man in the camp to take turns on horse guard whenever we stop. What if a hundred Pawnees suddenly came out of that ravine, all yelling and waving their buffalo robes like they usually do? In two minutes, we wouldn’t see a single horse!” We reminded the captain that a hundred Pawnees would likely take out the horse guard if he tried to stop them.

“At any rate,” pursued the captain, evading the point, “our whole system is wrong; I’m convinced of it; it is totally unmilitary. Why, the way we travel, strung out over the prairie for a mile, an enemy might attack the foremost men, and cut them off before the rest could come up.”

“At any rate,” continued the captain, avoiding the topic, “our entire system is flawed; I'm sure of it; it's completely unmilitary. I mean, the way we travel, stretched out over the prairie for a mile, an enemy could attack the men at the front and cut them off before the rest could catch up.”

“We are not in an enemy’s country, yet,” said Shaw; “when we are, we’ll travel together.”

“We're not in enemy territory yet,” Shaw said. “When we are, we'll travel together.”

“Then,” said the captain, “we might be attacked in camp. We’ve no sentinels; we camp in disorder; no precautions at all to guard against surprise. My own convictions are that we ought to camp in a hollow square, with the fires in the center; and have sentinels, and a regular password appointed for every night. Besides, there should be vedettes, riding in advance, to find a place for the camp and give warning of an enemy. These are my convictions. I don’t want to dictate to any man. I give advice to the best of my judgment, that’s all; and then let people do as they please.”

“Then,” said the captain, “we could be attacked while we’re in camp. We don’t have any watchmen; our camp is disorganized; there are no precautions at all to protect against surprises. I believe we should set up camp in a hollow square, with the fires in the center; have watchmen, and establish a regular password for each night. Plus, there should be scouts riding ahead to find a good spot for the camp and to warn us of any enemy. These are my thoughts. I don’t want to boss anyone around. I’m just giving advice based on my best judgment, and then people can do as they choose.”

We intimated that perhaps it would be as well to postpone such burdensome precautions until there should be some actual need of them; but he shook his head dubiously. The captain’s sense of military propriety had been severely shocked by what he considered the irregular proceedings of the party; and this was not the first time he had expressed himself upon the subject. But his convictions seldom produced any practical results. In the present case, he contented himself, as usual, with enlarging on the importance of his suggestions, and wondering that they were not adopted. But his plan of sending out vedettes seemed particularly dear to him; and as no one else was disposed to second his views on this point, he took it into his head to ride forward that afternoon, himself.

We suggested that maybe it would be better to delay those burdensome precautions until there was a real need for them, but he shook his head doubtfully. The captain’s sense of military propriety had been badly shaken by what he saw as the irregular actions of the group; and this wasn’t the first time he had voiced his thoughts on the matter. However, his convictions rarely led to any real change. In this instance, he settled into his usual routine of emphasizing the importance of his suggestions and wondering why they weren’t being followed. But his idea of sending out scouts seemed especially important to him; and since no one else was willing to support his views on this, he decided to ride ahead that afternoon himself.

“Come, Parkman,” said he, “will you go with me?”

“Come on, Parkman,” he said, “are you going to join me?”

We set out together, and rode a mile or two in advance. The captain, in the course of twenty years’ service in the British army, had seen something of life; one extensive side of it, at least, he had enjoyed the best opportunities for studying; and being naturally a pleasant fellow, he was a very entertaining companion. He cracked jokes and told stories for an hour or two; until, looking back, we saw the prairie behind us stretching away to the horizon, without a horseman or a wagon in sight.

We started out together and rode a mile or two ahead. The captain, with twenty years of experience in the British army, had seen a lot of life; he had the best opportunities to study one broad aspect of it, and being a naturally sociable guy, he was a really entertaining companion. He joked and shared stories for an hour or two until we looked back and saw the prairie behind us stretching to the horizon, completely empty of any horsemen or wagons.

“Now,” said the captain, “I think the vedettes had better stop till the main body comes up.”

“Okay,” said the captain, “I think the scouts should hold back until the main group arrives.”

I was of the same opinion. There was a thick growth of woods just before us, with a stream running through them. Having crossed this, we found on the other side a fine level meadow, half encircled by the trees; and fastening our horses to some bushes, we sat down on the grass; while, with an old stump of a tree for a target, I began to display the superiority of the renowned rifle of the back woods over the foreign innovation borne by the captain. At length voices could be heard in the distance behind the trees.

I felt the same way. There was a thick patch of woods right in front of us, with a stream flowing through it. After we crossed it, we discovered a nice flat meadow on the other side, partially surrounded by trees. We tied our horses to some bushes and settled down on the grass. Using an old tree stump as our target, I started to show off how much better the famous backwoods rifle was compared to the foreign one carried by the captain. Eventually, we could hear voices coming from behind the trees in the distance.

“There they come!” said the captain: “let’s go and see how they get through the creek.”

“There they come!” said the captain. “Let’s go check out how they get across the creek.”

We mounted and rode to the bank of the stream, where the trail crossed it. It ran in a deep hollow, full of trees; as we looked down, we saw a confused crowd of horsemen riding through the water; and among the dingy habiliment of our party glittered the uniforms of four dragoons.

We got on our horses and rode to the edge of the stream, where the trail crossed it. It flowed in a deep dip, surrounded by trees; as we looked down, we saw a chaotic group of riders moving through the water; and among the dull clothing of our team sparkled the uniforms of four dragoons.

Shaw came whipping his horse up the back, in advance of the rest, with a somewhat indignant countenance. The first word he spoke was a blessing fervently invoked on the head of R., who was riding, with a crest-fallen air, in the rear. Thanks to the ingenious devices of the gentleman, we had missed the track entirely, and wandered, not toward the Platte, but to the village of the Iowa Indians. This we learned from the dragoons, who had lately deserted from Fort Leavenworth. They told us that our best plan now was to keep to the northward until we should strike the trail formed by several parties of Oregon emigrants, who had that season set out from St. Joseph’s in Missouri.

Shaw came riding hard on his horse from behind, ahead of everyone else, looking somewhat annoyed. The first thing he said was a heartfelt blessing directed at R., who was riding at the back with a downcast expression. Thanks to the clever tricks of that guy, we had completely missed the trail and ended up not heading toward the Platte River, but instead to the village of the Iowa Indians. We learned this from the soldiers who had recently deserted from Fort Leavenworth. They told us that our best move now was to head north until we found the trail created by several groups of Oregon emigrants who had left St. Joseph's in Missouri that season.

In extremely bad temper, we encamped on this ill-starred spot; while the deserters, whose case admitted of no delay rode rapidly forward. On the day following, striking the St. Joseph’s trail, we turned our horses’ heads toward Fort Laramie, then about seven hundred miles to the westward.

In a really bad mood, we set up camp in this unfortunate place, while the deserters, whose situation couldn’t wait, quickly moved ahead. The next day, we picked up the St. Joseph’s trail and directed our horses towards Fort Laramie, which was about seven hundred miles to the west.





CHAPTER V

“THE BIG BLUE”

The great medley of Oregon and California emigrants, at their camps around Independence, had heard reports that several additional parties were on the point of setting out from St. Joseph’s farther to the northward. The prevailing impression was that these were Mormons, twenty-three hundred in number; and a great alarm was excited in consequence. The people of Illinois and Missouri, who composed by far the greater part of the emigrants, have never been on the best terms with the “Latter Day Saints”; and it is notorious throughout the country how much blood has been spilt in their feuds, even far within the limits of the settlements. No one could predict what would be the result, when large armed bodies of these fanatics should encounter the most impetuous and reckless of their old enemies on the broad prairie, far beyond the reach of law or military force. The women and children at Independence raised a great outcry; the men themselves were seriously alarmed; and, as I learned, they sent to Colonel Kearny, requesting an escort of dragoons as far as the Platte. This was refused; and as the sequel proved, there was no occasion for it. The St. Joseph’s emigrants were as good Christians and as zealous Mormon-haters as the rest; and the very few families of the “Saints” who passed out this season by the route of the Platte remained behind until the great tide of emigration had gone by; standing in quite as much awe of the “gentiles” as the latter did of them.

The large group of Oregon and California emigrants camping around Independence had heard that several more groups were about to leave from St. Joseph’s further north. The general feeling was that these were Mormons, numbering twenty-three hundred, which caused a lot of concern. The people from Illinois and Missouri, who made up most of the emigrants, had never gotten along well with the “Latter Day Saints”; it was well-known across the country how much violence had occurred in their conflicts, even within the settled areas. No one could say what would happen when large armed groups of these fanatics faced off against the most hot-headed and reckless of their old enemies on the vast prairie, far away from any law or military support. The women and children in Independence were in a panic; the men were seriously worried too, and I learned that they reached out to Colonel Kearny, asking for a military escort up to the Platte. This request was denied, and as it turned out, there was no need for it. The St. Joseph’s emigrants were just as good Christians and just as eager to oppose Mormons as anyone else; and the very few families of the “Saints” who traveled this route that season waited until the major wave of emigration had passed, equally intimidated by the “gentiles” as the latter were of them.

We were now, as I before mentioned, upon this St. Joseph’s trail. It was evident, by the traces, that large parties were a few days in advance of us; and as we too supposed them to be Mormons, we had some apprehension of interruption.

We were now, as I mentioned earlier, on St. Joseph’s trail. It was clear, from the signs, that large groups had been ahead of us just a few days earlier; and since we thought they were Mormons, we were a bit worried about possible interruptions.

The journey was somewhat monotonous. One day we rode on for hours, without seeing a tree or a bush; before, behind, and on either side, stretched the vast expanse, rolling in a succession of graceful swells, covered with the unbroken carpet of fresh green grass. Here and there a crow, or a raven, or a turkey-buzzard, relieved the uniformity.

The trip was kind of dull. One day we traveled for hours without seeing a tree or a bush; in front, behind, and on both sides, there was a huge stretch of land, rolling in gentle hills, covered by an unbroken blanket of vibrant green grass. Occasionally, a crow, a raven, or a turkey vulture broke up the sameness.

“What shall we do to-night for wood and water?” we began to ask of each other; for the sun was within an hour of setting. At length a dark green speck appeared, far off on the right; it was the top of a tree, peering over a swell of the prairie; and leaving the trail, we made all haste toward it. It proved to be the vanguard of a cluster of bushes and low trees, that surrounded some pools of water in an extensive hollow; so we encamped on the rising ground near it.

“What should we do tonight for wood and water?” we started to ask each other, since the sun was about an hour from setting. Finally, a dark green spot appeared far off to the right; it was the top of a tree, peeking over a rise in the prairie. Leaving the trail, we hurried toward it. It turned out to be the front of a group of bushes and small trees that surrounded some pools of water in a large hollow, so we set up camp on the higher ground nearby.

Shaw and I were sitting in the tent, when Delorier thrust his brown face and old felt hat into the opening, and dilating his eyes to their utmost extent, announced supper. There were the tin cups and the iron spoons, arranged in military order on the grass, and the coffee-pot predominant in the midst. The meal was soon dispatched; but Henry Chatillon still sat cross-legged, dallying with the remnant of his coffee, the beverage in universal use upon the prairie, and an especial favorite with him. He preferred it in its virgin flavor, unimpaired by sugar or cream; and on the present occasion it met his entire approval, being exceedingly strong, or, as he expressed it, “right black.”

Shaw and I were sitting in the tent when Delorier popped his brown face and old felt hat through the opening, and with his eyes wide open, announced that dinner was ready. The tin cups and iron spoons were lined up neatly on the grass, with the coffee pot taking center stage. The meal was finished quickly, but Henry Chatillon stayed seated cross-legged, lingering over the last of his coffee, the drink that was popular on the prairie and a particular favorite of his. He liked it in its pure form, without sugar or cream, and on this occasion, he was highly satisfied with it since it was really strong, or as he put it, “right black.”

It was a rich and gorgeous sunset—an American sunset; and the ruddy glow of the sky was reflected from some extensive pools of water among the shadowy copses in the meadow below.

It was a beautiful and vibrant sunset—an American sunset; and the warm glow in the sky was mirrored in the large pools of water scattered among the dark thickets in the meadow below.

“I must have a bath to-night,” said Shaw. “How is it, Delorier? Any chance for a swim down here?”

“I need to take a bath tonight,” said Shaw. “What about you, Delorier? Is there any chance we can go for a swim down here?”

“Ah! I cannot tell; just as you please, monsieur,” replied Delorier, shrugging his shoulders, perplexed by his ignorance of English, and extremely anxious to conform in all respects to the opinion and wishes of his bourgeois.

“Ah! I can't say; it's up to you, sir,” replied Delorier, shrugging his shoulders, confused by his lack of understanding of English, and very eager to meet all the opinions and wishes of his middle-class employer.

“Look at his moccasion,” said I. “It has evidently been lately immersed in a profound abyss of black mud.”

“Check out his shoe,” I said. “It clearly just got stuck in a deep puddle of black mud.”

“Come,” said Shaw; “at any rate we can see for ourselves.”

“Come on,” Shaw said; “at the very least, we can check it out ourselves.”

We set out together; and as we approached the bushes, which were at some distance, we found the ground becoming rather treacherous. We could only get along by stepping upon large clumps of tall rank grass, with fathomless gulfs between, like innumerable little quaking islands in an ocean of mud, where a false step would have involved our boots in a catastrophe like that which had befallen Delorier’s moccasins. The thing looked desperate; we separated, so as to search in different directions, Shaw going off to the right, while I kept straight forward. At last I came to the edge of the bushes: they were young waterwillows, covered with their caterpillar-like blossoms, but intervening between them and the last grass clump was a black and deep slough, over which, by a vigorous exertion, I contrived to jump. Then I shouldered my way through the willows, tramping them down by main force, till I came to a wide stream of water, three inches deep, languidly creeping along over a bottom of sleek mud. My arrival produced a great commotion. A huge green bull-frog uttered an indignant croak, and jumped off the bank with a loud splash: his webbed feet twinkled above the surface, as he jerked them energetically upward, and I could see him ensconcing himself in the unresisting slime at the bottom, whence several large air bubbles struggled lazily to the top. Some little spotted frogs instantly followed the patriarch’s example; and then three turtles, not larger than a dollar, tumbled themselves off a broad “lily pad,” where they had been reposing. At the same time a snake, gayly striped with black and yellow, glided out from the bank, and writhed across to the other side; and a small stagnant pool into which my foot had inadvertently pushed a stone was instantly alive with a congregation of black tadpoles.

We set out together, and as we got closer to the bushes in the distance, the ground started to get pretty tricky. We could only move forward by stepping on large patches of tall grass, with deep gaps between them, like numerous little quaking islands in a sea of mud, where one wrong step could ruin our boots, just like what happened to Delorier’s moccasins. It looked hopeless, so we separated to search in different directions—Shaw went to the right while I pushed straight ahead. Finally, I reached the edge of the bushes: they were young waterwillows, covered in their caterpillar-like blossoms, but between them and the last grass clump was a dark, deep swamp that I managed to jump over with a big effort. Then I forced my way through the willows, trampling them down until I got to a wide stream of water, three inches deep, slowly flowing over a bottom of smooth mud. My arrival caused a huge stir. A big green bullfrog let out a loud croak in protest and jumped off the bank with a big splash: his webbed feet flickered above the surface as he kicked them energetically, and I saw him sinking into the soft mud below, where several big air bubbles lazily floated to the top. Some little spotted frogs quickly followed the older frog's lead; then three turtles, about the size of a dollar, tumbled off a broad “lily pad” where they had been lounging. At the same time, a brightly striped snake, black and yellow, slithered out from the bank and wriggled its way to the other side; and a small stagnant pool, which my foot had accidentally disturbed by pushing a stone, suddenly filled with a swarm of black tadpoles.

“Any chance for a bath, where you are?” called out Shaw, from a distance.

“Is there any chance you have a bath there?” Shaw called out from a distance.

The answer was not encouraging. I retreated through the willows, and rejoining my companion, we proceeded to push our researches in company. Not far on the right, a rising ground, covered with trees and bushes, seemed to sink down abruptly to the water, and give hope of better success; so toward this we directed our steps. When we reached the place we found it no easy matter to get along between the hill and the water, impeded as we were by a growth of stiff, obstinate young birch-trees, laced together by grapevines. In the twilight, we now and then, to support ourselves, snatched at the touch-me-not stem of some ancient sweet-brier. Shaw, who was in advance, suddenly uttered a somewhat emphatic monosyllable; and looking up I saw him with one hand grasping a sapling, and one foot immersed in the water, from which he had forgotten to withdraw it, his whole attention being engaged in contemplating the movements of a water-snake, about five feet long, curiously checkered with black and green, who was deliberately swimming across the pool. There being no stick or stone at hand to pelt him with, we looked at him for a time in silent disgust; and then pushed forward. Our perseverence was at last rewarded; for several rods farther on, we emerged upon a little level grassy nook among the brushwood, and by an extraordinary dispensation of fortune, the weeds and floating sticks, which elsewhere covered the pool, seemed to have drawn apart, and left a few yards of clear water just in front of this favored spot. We sounded it with a stick; it was four feet deep; we lifted a specimen in our cupped hands; it seemed reasonably transparent, so we decided that the time for action was arrived. But our ablutions were suddenly interrupted by ten thousand punctures, like poisoned needles, and the humming of myriads of over-grown mosquitoes, rising in all directions from their native mud and slime and swarming to the feast. We were fain to beat a retreat with all possible speed.

The response was not promising. I backed away through the willows, and after reuniting with my companion, we continued our search together. Not far to the right, a rising ground covered with trees and bushes seemed to drop steeply into the water, giving us hope for better luck; so we made our way toward it. When we arrived, we found it tricky to navigate between the hill and the water, hindered by a tangle of stiff young birch trees interwoven with grapevines. In the twilight, we would occasionally grab onto the stem of an old sweet-briar to steady ourselves. Shaw, who was ahead, suddenly exclaimed a sharp monosyllable; looking up, I saw him holding onto a sapling with one hand while his foot dangled in the water, which he had forgotten to lift out, completely focused on watching a water snake, about five feet long and strikingly patterned in black and green, leisurely swimming across the pool. Without a stick or stone to throw at him, we observed the snake in silent annoyance before moving on. Our persistence finally paid off; just a bit further along, we stumbled upon a small, flat grassy area tucked away in the brush, and by an amazing stroke of luck, the weeds and floating debris that usually cluttered the pool seemed to have parted, revealing a few yards of clear water right in front of this fortunate spot. We checked it with a stick; it was four feet deep. We scooped up a sample in our cupped hands; it appeared clear enough, so we decided it was time to take action. But our plans were abruptly halted by thousands of sharp stings, like poisoned needles, and the buzzing of countless enormous mosquitoes rising up from the mud and slime, swarming toward us for a feast. We quickly retreated as fast as we could.

We made toward the tents, much refreshed by the bath which the heat of the weather, joined to our prejudices, had rendered very desirable.

We walked toward the tents, feeling really refreshed by the bath that the heat of the weather, along with our biases, had made very appealing.

“What’s the matter with the captain? look at him!” said Shaw. The captain stood alone on the prairie, swinging his hat violently around his head, and lifting first one foot and then the other, without moving from the spot. First he looked down to the ground with an air of supreme abhorrence; then he gazed upward with a perplexed and indignant countenance, as if trying to trace the flight of an unseen enemy. We called to know what was the matter; but he replied only by execrations directed against some unknown object. We approached, when our ears were saluted by a droning sound, as if twenty bee-hives had been overturned at once. The air above was full of large black insects, in a state of great commotion, and multitudes were flying about just above the tops of the grass blades.

“What’s wrong with the captain? Look at him!” said Shaw. The captain stood alone on the prairie, swinging his hat wildly around his head and lifting one foot and then the other without moving from the spot. First, he looked down at the ground with a look of total disgust; then he looked up with a confused and angry expression, as if he were trying to spot an invisible enemy. We called out to see what was wrong, but he only responded with curses aimed at some unknown object. We moved closer, and our ears were met with a buzzing sound, like twenty bee hives had been knocked over at once. The air above was filled with large black insects, buzzing around in a frenzy, and countless were flying just above the grass tops.

“Don’t be afraid,” called the captain, observing us recoil. “The brutes won’t sting.”

“Don’t be scared,” the captain shouted, seeing us pull back. “The beasts won’t sting.”

At this I knocked one down with my hat, and discovered him to be no other than a “dorbug”; and looking closer, we found the ground thickly perforated with their holes.

At this, I knocked one down with my hat and realized it was just a “dorbug”; when we looked closer, we saw the ground was filled with their holes.

We took a hasty leave of this flourishing colony, and walking up the rising ground to the tents, found Delorier’s fire still glowing brightly. We sat down around it, and Shaw began to expatiate on the admirable facilities for bathing that we had discovered, and recommended the captain by all means to go down there before breakfast in the morning. The captain was in the act of remarking that he couldn’t have believed it possible, when he suddenly interrupted himself, and clapped his hand to his cheek, exclaiming that “those infernal humbugs were at him again.” In fact, we began to hear sounds as if bullets were humming over our heads. In a moment something rapped me sharply on the forehead, then upon the neck, and immediately I felt an indefinite number of sharp wiry claws in active motion, as if their owner were bent on pushing his explorations farther. I seized him, and dropped him into the fire. Our party speedily broke up, and we adjourned to our respective tents, where, closing the opening fast, we hoped to be exempt from invasion. But all precaution was fruitless. The dorbugs hummed through the tent, and marched over our faces until day-light; when, opening our blankets, we found several dozen clinging there with the utmost tenacity. The first object that met our eyes in the morning was Delorier, who seemed to be apostrophizing his frying-pan, which he held by the handle at arm’s length. It appeared that he had left it at night by the fire; and the bottom was now covered with dorbugs, firmly imbedded. Multitudes beside, curiously parched and shriveled, lay scattered among the ashes.

We quickly left this thriving colony and walked up the hill to the tents, where we found Delorier’s fire still burning brightly. We gathered around it, and Shaw started talking about the great bathing spots we had found, insisting that the captain should definitely check them out in the morning before breakfast. Just as the captain was about to say he couldn’t believe it was possible, he suddenly interrupted himself and clapped his hand to his cheek, exclaiming that “those damn bugs were bothering him again.” We began to hear sounds like bullets whizzing over our heads. A moment later, something hit me sharply on the forehead, then on the neck, and I immediately felt a bunch of sharp, wiry claws moving around, as if the creature was trying to get further into my space. I grabbed it and tossed it into the fire. Our group quickly dispersed, and we went to our tents, where we sealed the openings tightly, hoping to avoid any more intrusions. But all our precautions were in vain. The bugs buzzed through the tent and crawled over our faces until dawn, when we unwrapped our blankets to find dozens clinging on with incredible stubbornness. The first thing we saw in the morning was Delorier, who seemed to be having a conversation with his frying pan, which he held at arm’s length by the handle. He had left it by the fire at night, and the bottom was now covered with bugs, firmly stuck. Many others, oddly shriveled and dried out, lay scattered among the ashes.

The horses and mules were turned loose to feed. We had just taken our seats at breakfast, or rather reclined in the classic mode, when an exclamation from Henry Chatillon, and a shout of alarm from the captain, gave warning of some casualty, and looking up, we saw the whole band of animals, twenty-three in number, filing off for the settlements, the incorrigible Pontiac at their head, jumping along with hobbled feet, at a gait much more rapid than graceful. Three or four of us ran to cut them off, dashing as best we might through the tall grass, which was glittering with myriads of dewdrops. After a race of a mile or more, Shaw caught a horse. Tying the trail-rope by way of bridle round the animal’s jaw, and leaping upon his back, he got in advance of the remaining fugitives, while we, soon bringing them together, drove them in a crowd up to the tents, where each man caught and saddled his own. Then we heard lamentations and curses; for half the horses had broke their hobbles, and many were seriously galled by attempting to run in fetters.

The horses and mules were let loose to graze. We had just settled in for breakfast, or rather, lounged in the classic style, when an outcry from Henry Chatillon and a shout of warning from the captain alerted us to some trouble. Looking up, we saw the entire group of animals—twenty-three in total—filing off toward the settlements, with the rebellious Pontiac leading the way, bounding along with hobbled legs in a way that was more fast than graceful. Three or four of us took off to intercept them, racing as best we could through the tall grass, which sparkled with countless dewdrops. After chasing them for about a mile, Shaw managed to catch a horse. He tied the trail-rope around the horse’s jaw as a bridle and jumped on its back, getting ahead of the remaining stragglers while we quickly rounded them up and drove them back in a group to the tents, where each man caught and saddled his own. Then we heard cries of distress and anger; half the horses had broken their hobbles, and many were seriously chafed from trying to run with fetters.

It was late that morning before we were on the march; and early in the afternoon we were compelled to encamp, for a thunder-gust came up and suddenly enveloped us in whirling sheets of rain. With much ado, we pitched our tents amid the tempest, and all night long the thunder bellowed and growled over our heads. In the morning, light peaceful showers succeeded the cataracts of rain, that had been drenching us through the canvas of our tents. About noon, when there were some treacherous indications of fair weather, we got in motion again.

It was late that morning before we started our march; and early in the afternoon we had to set up camp because a storm rolled in and suddenly surrounded us with sheets of heavy rain. With a lot of effort, we put up our tents amid the chaos, and all night long the thunder rumbled overhead. In the morning, gentle, peaceful showers replaced the torrential downpours that had soaked us through the fabric of our tents. Around noon, when there were some deceptive signs of clear weather, we got moving again.

Not a breath of air stirred over the free and open prairie; the clouds were like light piles of cotton; and where the blue sky was visible, it wore a hazy and languid aspect. The sun beat down upon us with a sultry penetrating heat almost insupportable, and as our party crept slowly along over the interminable level, the horses hung their heads as they waded fetlock deep through the mud, and the men slouched into the easiest position upon the saddle. At last, toward evening, the old familiar black heads of thunderclouds rose fast above the horizon, and the same deep muttering of distant thunder that had become the ordinary accompaniment of our afternoon’s journey began to roll hoarsely over the prairie. Only a few minutes elapsed before the whole sky was densely shrouded, and the prairie and some clusters of woods in front assumed a purple hue beneath the inky shadows. Suddenly from the densest fold of the cloud the flash leaped out, quivering again and again down to the edge of the prairie; and at the same instant came the sharp burst and the long rolling peal of the thunder. A cool wind, filled with the smell of rain, just then overtook us, leveling the tall grass by the side of the path.

Not a breath of air stirred over the wide open prairie; the clouds looked like fluffy piles of cotton, and where the blue sky peeked through, it had a hazy and sluggish feel. The sun beat down on us with a stifling heat that was almost unbearable, and as our group moved slowly across the endless flat land, the horses hung their heads as they trudged through mud up to their fetlocks, while the men slouched in their saddles to find some comfort. Finally, toward evening, the familiar dark heads of thunderclouds quickly rose above the horizon, and the deep rumble of distant thunder, which had become the usual background noise of our afternoon journey, started to roll hoarsely over the prairie. Just a few minutes passed before the entire sky was thickly covered, and the prairie along with some clusters of trees ahead took on a purple tint beneath the heavy shadows. Suddenly, from the thickest part of the cloud, a flash of lightning shot out, shimmering repeatedly down to the edge of the prairie; at the same moment came the sharp crack and the long rolling sound of thunder. A cool wind, carrying the scent of rain, swept over us, flattening the tall grass by the side of the path.

“Come on; we must ride for it!” shouted Shaw, rushing past at full speed, his led horse snorting at his side. The whole party broke into full gallop, and made for the trees in front. Passing these, we found beyond them a meadow which they half inclosed. We rode pell-mell upon the ground, leaped from horseback, tore off our saddles; and in a moment each man was kneeling at his horse’s feet. The hobbles were adjusted, and the animals turned loose; then, as the wagons came wheeling rapidly to the spot, we seized upon the tent-poles, and just as the storm broke, we were prepared to receive it. It came upon us almost with the darkness of night; the trees, which were close at hand, were completely shrouded by the roaring torrents of rain.

“Come on; we need to ride for it!” shouted Shaw, racing past at full speed, his horse snorting beside him. The whole group took off in a gallop toward the trees ahead. After passing through them, we found a meadow that was partly enclosed. We charged onto the ground, jumped off our horses, ripped off our saddles; and in no time, each person was kneeling at their horse's feet. The hobbles were adjusted, and the animals were set free; then, as the wagons quickly rolled up, we grabbed the tent poles, and just as the storm hit, we were ready for it. It came at us almost like the darkness of night; the trees, which were nearby, were completely obscured by the pounding rain.

We were sitting in the tent, when Delorier, with his broad felt hat hanging about his ears, and his shoulders glistening with rain, thrust in his head.

We were sitting in the tent when Delorier, with his wide felt hat pulled down around his ears and his shoulders shining with rain, stuck his head inside.

“Voulez-vous du souper, tout de suite? I can make a fire, sous la charette—I b’lieve so—I try.”

“Do you want dinner right now? I can make a fire under the cart—I think so—I’ll try.”

“Never mind supper, man; come in out of the rain.”

"Forget dinner, man; come inside out of the rain."

Delorier accordingly crouched in the entrance, for modesty would not permit him to intrude farther.

Delorier crouched at the entrance, as modesty wouldn't allow him to go any further.

Our tent was none of the best defense against such a cataract. The rain could not enter bodily, but it beat through the canvas in a fine drizzle, that wetted us just as effectively. We sat upon our saddles with faces of the utmost surliness, while the water dropped from the vizors of our caps, and trickled down our cheeks. My india-rubber cloak conducted twenty little rapid streamlets to the ground; and Shaw’s blanket-coat was saturated like a sponge. But what most concerned us was the sight of several puddles of water rapidly accumulating; one in particular, that was gathering around the tent-pole, threatened to overspread the whole area within the tent, holding forth but an indifferent promise of a comfortable night’s rest. Toward sunset, however, the storm ceased as suddenly as it began. A bright streak of clear red sky appeared above the western verge of the prairie, the horizontal rays of the sinking sun streamed through it and glittered in a thousand prismatic colors upon the dripping groves and the prostrate grass. The pools in the tent dwindled and sunk into the saturated soil.

Our tent wasn't the best protection against such a downpour. The rain didn't come in directly, but it soaked through the canvas in a fine drizzle that got us just as wet. We sat on our saddles with the grumpiest expressions, while water dripped from the brims of our caps and ran down our cheeks. My rubber cloak channeled twenty little streams to the ground, and Shaw's blanket-coat was soaked like a sponge. But what worried us most was seeing several puddles of water quickly forming; one in particular, gathering around the tent pole, looked like it would spread across the entire tent area, promising a pretty uncomfortable night. However, toward sunset, the storm stopped as suddenly as it had started. A bright streak of clear red sky appeared above the western edge of the prairie, and the last rays of the setting sun filtered through, sparkling in a thousand colors on the dripping trees and the flattened grass. The pools inside the tent shrank and soaked into the saturated ground.

But all our hopes were delusive. Scarcely had night set in, when the tumult broke forth anew. The thunder here is not like the tame thunder of the Atlantic coast. Bursting with a terrific crash directly above our heads, it roared over the boundless waste of prairie, seeming to roll around the whole circle of the firmament with a peculiar and awful reverberation. The lightning flashed all night, playing with its livid glare upon the neighboring trees, revealing the vast expanse of the plain, and then leaving us shut in as by a palpable wall of darkness.

But all our hopes were misleading. Hardly had night fallen when the uproar erupted again. The thunder here isn’t like the mild thunder of the Atlantic coast. With a tremendous crash directly above us, it rumbled over the endless stretch of prairie, seeming to roll all the way around the sky with a unique and terrifying echo. The lightning flashed all night, dancing with its ghastly light on the nearby trees, exposing the wide open plain, and then leaving us trapped as if by a thick wall of darkness.

It did not disturb us much. Now and then a peal awakened us, and made us conscious of the electric battle that was raging, and of the floods that dashed upon the stanch canvas over our heads. We lay upon india-rubber cloths, placed between our blankets and the soil. For a while they excluded the water to admiration; but when at length it accumulated and began to run over the edges, they served equally well to retain it, so that toward the end of the night we were unconsciously reposing in small pools of rain.

It didn't bother us too much. Every now and then, a thunderclap would wake us up, reminding us of the storm that was raging outside and the rain that was crashing against the sturdy canvas overhead. We lay on rubber sheets placed between our blankets and the ground. For a while, they did a great job keeping the water out; but eventually, as the water built up and spilled over the edges, they just as effectively kept the water in, so by the end of the night we were unknowingly lying in little puddles of rain.

On finally awaking in the morning the prospect was not a cheerful one. The rain no longer poured in torrents; but it pattered with a quiet pertinacity upon the strained and saturated canvas. We disengaged ourselves from our blankets, every fiber of which glistened with little beadlike drops of water, and looked out in vain hope of discovering some token of fair weather. The clouds, in lead-colored volumes, rested upon the dismal verge of the prairie, or hung sluggishly overhead, while the earth wore an aspect no more attractive than the heavens, exhibiting nothing but pools of water, grass beaten down, and mud well trampled by our mules and horses. Our companions’ tent, with an air of forlorn and passive misery, and their wagons in like manner, drenched and woe-begone, stood not far off. The captain was just returning from his morning’s inspection of the horses. He stalked through the mist and rain, with his plaid around his shoulders; his little pipe, dingy as an antiquarian relic, projecting from beneath his mustache, and his brother Jack at his heels.

When we finally woke up in the morning, the outlook wasn't bright. The rain had stopped pouring heavily, but it steadily dripped onto the strained and soaked canvas. We pulled ourselves out of our blankets, every fiber shimmering with tiny beads of water, and looked out with faint hope for any sign of better weather. The clouds, heavy and gray, loomed over the dreary edge of the prairie or hung sluggishly above us, while the ground looked just as unappealing as the sky, showing only puddles of water, flattened grass, and muddy ground well trampled by our mules and horses. Our companions’ tent, exuding a sense of hopeless and passive misery, along with their wagons, equally soaked and miserable, were not far away. The captain was just coming back from checking on the horses. He walked through the mist and rain with a plaid around his shoulders; his little pipe, as grimy as an old artifact, stuck out from under his mustache, and his brother Jack followed behind him.

“Good-morning, captain.”

“Good morning, captain.”

“Good-morning to your honors,” said the captain, affecting the Hibernian accent; but at that instant, as he stooped to enter the tent, he tripped upon the cords at the entrance, and pitched forward against the guns which were strapped around the pole in the center.

“Good morning to your honors,” said the captain, putting on an Irish accent; but at that moment, as he bent down to enter the tent, he tripped over the cords at the entrance and fell forward against the guns that were secured around the pole in the center.

“You are nice men, you are!” said he, after an ejaculation not necessary to be recorded, “to set a man-trap before your door every morning to catch your visitors.”

“You're really nice guys, you are!” he said, after an exclamation not worth mentioning, “to set a trap in front of your door every morning to catch your guests.”

Then he sat down upon Henry Chatillon’s saddle. We tossed a piece of buffalo robe to Jack, who was looking about in some embarrassment. He spread it on the ground, and took his seat, with a stolid countenance, at his brother’s side.

Then he sat down on Henry Chatillon’s saddle. We threw a buffalo robe to Jack, who was glancing around a bit awkwardly. He laid it on the ground and took a seat next to his brother, looking unbothered.

“Exhilarating weather, captain!”

“Awesome weather, captain!”

“Oh, delightful, delightful!” replied the captain. “I knew it would be so; so much for starting yesterday at noon! I knew how it would turn out; and I said so at the time.”

“Oh, wonderful, wonderful!” replied the captain. “I knew it would be like this; so much for starting yesterday at noon! I knew how it would end up; and I said that back then.”

“You said just the contrary to us. We were in no hurry, and only moved because you insisted on it.”

“You said the opposite to us. We weren't in any rush, and we only moved because you pushed us to.”

“Gentlemen,” said the captain, taking his pipe from his mouth with an air of extreme gravity, “it was no plan of mine. There is a man among us who is determined to have everything his own way. You may express your opinion; but don’t expect him to listen. You may be as reasonable as you like: oh, it all goes for nothing! That man is resolved to rule the roost and he’ll set his face against any plan that he didn’t think of himself.”

“Gentlemen,” said the captain, taking his pipe out of his mouth with an air of extreme seriousness, “this wasn’t my idea. There’s someone among us who is set on getting everything his way. You can share your thoughts, but don’t expect him to pay attention. You can be as reasonable as you want: it won’t matter! That guy is determined to call the shots and he’ll oppose any plan that he didn’t come up with himself.”

The captain puffed for a while at his pipe, as if meditating upon his grievances; then he began again:

The captain took a moment to smoke his pipe, as if reflecting on his troubles; then he started speaking again:

“For twenty years I have been in the British army; and in all that time I never had half so much dissension, and quarreling, and nonsense, as since I have been on this cursed prairie. He’s the most uncomfortable man I ever met.”

“For twenty years, I've been in the British army, and during all that time, I've never experienced so much disagreement, fighting, and nonsense as I have since coming to this cursed prairie. He's the most difficult person I've ever met.”

“Yes,” said Jack; “and don’t you know, Bill, how he drank up all the coffee last night, and put the rest by for himself till the morning!”

“Yes,” said Jack; “and don’t you know, Bill, how he drank all the coffee last night and saved the rest for himself until the morning!”

“He pretends to know everything,” resumed the captain; “nobody must give orders but he! It’s, oh! we must do this; and, oh! we must do that; and the tent must be pitched here, and the horses must be picketed there; for nobody knows as well as he does.”

“He acts like he knows everything,” the captain continued; “no one is allowed to give orders but him! It’s always, oh! we have to do this; and, oh! we have to do that; the tent has to be set up here, and the horses have to be tied there; because no one knows better than he does.”

We were a little surprised at this disclosure of domestic dissensions among our allies, for though we knew of their existence, we were not aware of their extent. The persecuted captain seeming wholly at a loss as to the course of conduct that he should pursue, we recommended him to adopt prompt and energetic measures; but all his military experience had failed to teach him the indispensable lesson to be “hard,” when the emergency requires it.

We were a bit surprised by this revelation of conflicts among our allies, because while we were aware of their existence, we didn’t realize how serious they were. The troubled captain seemed completely unsure of what to do, so we advised him to take quick and decisive action; however, all his military experience hadn’t taught him the essential lesson to be “tough” when the situation demands it.

“For twenty years,” he repeated, “I have been in the British army, and in that time I have been intimately acquainted with some two hundred officers, young and old, and I never yet quarreled with any man. Oh, ‘anything for a quiet life!’ that’s my maxim.”

“For twenty years,” he repeated, “I have been in the British army, and during that time, I have gotten to know about two hundred officers, young and old, and I have never quarreled with anyone. Oh, ‘anything for a quiet life!’ that’s my motto.”

We intimated that the prairie was hardly the place to enjoy a quiet life, but that, in the present circumstances, the best thing he could do toward securing his wished-for tranquillity, was immediately to put a period to the nuisance that disturbed it. But again the captain’s easy good-nature recoiled from the task. The somewhat vigorous measures necessary to gain the desired result were utterly repugnant to him; he preferred to pocket his grievances, still retaining the privilege of grumbling about them. “Oh, anything for a quiet life!” he said again, circling back to his favorite maxim.

We suggested that the prairie wasn’t really a place to enjoy a peaceful life, but under the current circumstances, the best thing he could do to find the calm he wanted was to deal with the annoyance that interrupted it right away. However, the captain’s easygoing nature held him back from taking action. The more assertive steps needed to achieve the desired outcome were completely unappealing to him; he preferred to endure his complaints while still having the option to complain about them. “Oh, anything for a quiet life!” he repeated, returning to his favorite saying.

But to glance at the previous history of our transatlantic confederates. The captain had sold his commission, and was living in bachelor ease and dignity in his paternal halls, near Dublin. He hunted, fished, rode steeple-chases, ran races, and talked of his former exploits. He was surrounded with the trophies of his rod and gun; the walls were plentifully garnished, he told us, with moose-horns and deer-horns, bear-skins, and fox-tails; for the captain’s double-barreled rifle had seen service in Canada and Jamaica; he had killed salmon in Nova Scotia, and trout, by his own account, in all the streams of the three kingdoms. But in an evil hour a seductive stranger came from London; no less a person than R., who, among other multitudinous wanderings, had once been upon the western prairies, and naturally enough was anxious to visit them again. The captain’s imagination was inflamed by the pictures of a hunter’s paradise that his guest held forth; he conceived an ambition to add to his other trophies the horns of a buffalo, and the claws of a grizzly bear; so he and R. struck a league to travel in company. Jack followed his brother, as a matter of course. Two weeks on board the Atlantic steamer brought them to Boston; in two weeks more of hard traveling they reached St. Louis, from which a ride of six days carried them to the frontier; and here we found them, in full tide of preparation for their journey.

But let’s take a look at the previous history of our transatlantic allies. The captain had sold his commission and was living comfortably and with dignity in his family home near Dublin. He hunted, fished, rode steeplechases, raced horses, and reminisced about his past adventures. He was surrounded by the trophies from his fishing and hunting; the walls were richly decorated, he told us, with moose and deer antlers, bear skins, and fox tails; for the captain’s double-barreled rifle had been used in Canada and Jamaica; he claimed to have caught salmon in Nova Scotia and trout in every stream across the three kingdoms. But then, at an unfortunate moment, a charming stranger arrived from London; none other than R., who, among his many travels, had once been on the western prairies and was naturally eager to visit them again. The captain’s imagination was sparked by the visions of a hunter’s paradise that his guest painted; he dreamed of adding buffalo horns and grizzly bear claws to his collection, so he and R. made a pact to travel together. Jack followed his brother, as expected. Two weeks on the Atlantic steamer brought them to Boston; after another two weeks of hard travel, they reached St. Louis, from where a six-day ride took them to the frontier; and here we found them, fully immersed in preparing for their journey.

We had been throughout on terms of intimacy with the captain, but R., the motive power of our companions’ branch of the expedition, was scarcely known to us. His voice, indeed, might be heard incessantly; but at camp he remained chiefly within the tent, and on the road he either rode by himself, or else remained in close conversation with his friend Wright, the muleteer. As the captain left the tent that morning, I observed R. standing by the fire, and having nothing else to do, I determined to ascertain, if possible, what manner of man he was. He had a book under his arm, but just at present he was engrossed in actively superintending the operations of Sorel, the hunter, who was cooking some corn-bread over the coals for breakfast. R. was a well-formed and rather good-looking man, some thirty years old; considerably younger than the captain. He wore a beard and mustache of the oakum complexion, and his attire was altogether more elegant than one ordinarily sees on the prairie. He wore his cap on one side of his head; his checked shirt, open in front, was in very neat order, considering the circumstances, and his blue pantaloons, of the John Bull cut, might once have figured in Bond Street.

We had been pretty close with the captain, but R., who was the driving force behind our companions’ part of the expedition, was hardly known to us. You could hear his voice all the time; however, at camp, he mostly stayed inside the tent, and on the road, he either rode alone or chatted closely with his friend Wright, the muleteer. As the captain exited the tent that morning, I noticed R. standing by the fire, and with nothing else to do, I decided to find out what kind of guy he was. He had a book tucked under his arm, but right then, he was focused on supervising Sorel, the hunter, who was cooking some corn-bread over the coals for breakfast. R. was a well-built and quite good-looking man, around thirty years old; definitely younger than the captain. He had an oakum-colored beard and mustache, and his clothes were much more stylish than what you typically see on the prairie. He wore his cap tilted to one side; his checked shirt, which was open at the front, was surprisingly neat considering the circumstances, and his blue trousers, in the John Bull style, might have once been seen on Bond Street.

“Turn over that cake, man! turn it over, quick! Don’t you see it burning?”

“Flip that cake over, man! Hurry up! Can’t you see it’s burning?”

“It ain’t half done,” growled Sorel, in the amiable tone of a whipped bull-dog.

“It’s not even halfway done,” growled Sorel, in the friendly tone of a defeated bulldog.

“It is. Turn it over, I tell you!”

“It is. Turn it over, I’m telling you!”

Sorel, a strong, sullen-looking Canadian, who from having spent his life among the wildest and most remote of the Indian tribes, had imbibed much of their dark, vindictive spirit, looked ferociously up, as if he longed to leap upon his bourgeois and throttle him; but he obeyed the order, coming from so experienced an artist.

Sorel, a tough-looking Canadian with a serious demeanor, who had spent his life among the wildest and most isolated Indian tribes, had absorbed much of their dark, vengeful attitude. He glared up fiercely, as if he wanted to jump on his middle-class employer and strangle him; but he followed the order, coming from such a skilled artist.

“It was a good idea of yours,” said I, seating myself on the tongue of a wagon, “to bring Indian meal with you.”

“It was a good idea of yours,” I said, sitting on the edge of a wagon, “to bring cornmeal with you.”

“Yes, yes” said R. “It’s good bread for the prairie—good bread for the prairie. I tell you that’s burning again.”

“Yes, yes,” said R. “It’s great bread for the prairie—great bread for the prairie. I’m telling you, that’s burning again.”

Here he stooped down, and unsheathing the silver-mounted hunting-knife in his belt, began to perform the part of cook himself; at the same time requesting me to hold for a moment the book under his arm, which interfered with the exercise of these important functions. I opened it; it was “Macaulay’s Lays”; and I made some remark, expressing my admiration of the work.

Here he bent down and pulled out the silver-handled hunting knife from his belt, starting to cook himself. At the same time, he asked me to hold the book under his arm for a moment since it was getting in the way of his cooking. I opened it; it was “Macaulay’s Lays,” and I commented, sharing my admiration for the work.

“Yes, yes; a pretty good thing. Macaulay can do better than that though. I know him very well. I have traveled with him. Where was it we first met—at Damascus? No, no; it was in Italy.”

“Yes, yes; that’s pretty good. But Macaulay can do better than that. I know him really well. I’ve traveled with him. Where did we first meet—was it in Damascus? No, no; it was in Italy.”

“So,” said I, “you have been over the same ground with your countryman, the author of ‘Eothen’? There has been some discussion in America as to who he is. I have heard Milne’s name mentioned.”

“So,” I said, “you’ve talked to your fellow countryman, the author of ‘Eothen’? There’s been some chatter in America about who he is. I’ve heard Milne’s name come up.”

“Milne’s? Oh, no, no, no; not at all. It was Kinglake; Kinglake’s the man. I know him very well; that is, I have seen him.”

“Milne’s? Oh, no, no, no; not at all. It was Kinglake; Kinglake’s the guy. I know him pretty well; well, at least I've seen him.”

Here Jack C., who stood by, interposed a remark (a thing not common with him), observing that he thought the weather would become fair before twelve o’clock.

Here Jack C., who was standing nearby, chimed in with a comment (which wasn’t typical for him), noting that he believed the weather would clear up before noon.

“It’s going to rain all day,” said R., “and clear up in the middle of the night.”

“It’s going to rain all day,” R. said, “and then it will clear up in the middle of the night.”

Just then the clouds began to dissipate in a very unequivocal manner; but Jack, not caring to defend his point against so authoritative a declaration, walked away whistling, and we resumed our conversation.

Just then, the clouds started to clear up in a very obvious way; but Jack, not wanting to argue with such a strong statement, walked away whistling, and we continued our conversation.

“Borrow, the author of ‘The Bible in Spain,’ I presume you know him too?”

“Borrow, the author of ‘The Bible in Spain,’ I assume you know him as well?”

“Oh, certainly; I know all those men. By the way, they told me that one of your American writers, Judge Story, had died lately. I edited some of his works in London; not without faults, though.”

“Oh, definitely; I know all those guys. By the way, they mentioned that one of your American writers, Judge Story, recently passed away. I edited some of his works in London; although they weren’t without their faults.”

Here followed an erudite commentary on certain points of law, in which he particularly animadverted on the errors into which he considered that the judge had been betrayed. At length, having touched successively on an infinite variety of topics, I found that I had the happiness of discovering a man equally competent to enlighten me upon them all, equally an authority on matters of science or literature, philosophy or fashion. The part I bore in the conversation was by no means a prominent one; it was only necessary to set him going, and when he had run long enough upon one topic, to divert him to another and lead him on to pour out his heaps of treasure in succession.

Here followed an insightful discussion on certain legal points, where he specifically pointed out the mistakes he believed the judge had made. Eventually, after touching on a wide range of topics, I realized I had the pleasure of speaking with a man who was just as knowledgeable about everything—from science and literature to philosophy and style. My role in the conversation wasn’t very prominent; I just needed to get him started, and once he had talked for a while on one subject, I would shift him to another and let him share his wealth of knowledge one topic after another.

“What has that fellow been saying to you?” said Shaw, as I returned to the tent. “I have heard nothing but his talking for the last half-hour.”

“What has that guy been saying to you?” Shaw asked as I walked back to the tent. “I’ve been listening to him talk for the last half hour.”

R. had none of the peculiar traits of the ordinary “British snob”; his absurdities were all his own, belonging to no particular nation or clime. He was possessed with an active devil that had driven him over land and sea, to no great purpose, as it seemed; for although he had the usual complement of eyes and ears, the avenues between these organs and his brain appeared remarkably narrow and untrodden. His energy was much more conspicuous than his wisdom; but his predominant characteristic was a magnanimous ambition to exercise on all occasions an awful rule and supremacy, and this propensity equally displayed itself, as the reader will have observed, whether the matter in question was the baking of a hoe-cake or a point of international law. When such diverse elements as he and the easy-tempered captain came in contact, no wonder some commotion ensued; R. rode roughshod, from morning till night, over his military ally.

R. didn’t have any of the typical traits of a “British snob”; his peculiarities were uniquely his own and not tied to any specific country or region. He had a restless energy that had pushed him across land and sea, seemingly without much purpose; even though he had the usual set of eyes and ears, the connections between these senses and his brain seemed quite narrow and underdeveloped. His energy was much more noticeable than his wisdom; however, his most prominent trait was a grand ambition to assert dominance and control in every situation, whether it was about baking a hoe-cake or discussing a point of international law. So, when he and the easy-going captain interacted, it was no surprise that some chaos followed; R. steamrolled over his military partner from morning till night.

At noon the sky was clear and we set out, trailing through mud and slime six inches deep. That night we were spared the customary infliction of the shower bath.

At noon, the sky was clear, and we set out, trudging through mud and slime six inches deep. That night, we avoided the usual hassle of a cold shower.

On the next afternoon we were moving slowly along, not far from a patch of woods which lay on the right. Jack C. rode a little in advance;

On the next afternoon, we were moving slowly along, not far from a patch of woods on the right. Jack C. rode a little ahead;

The livelong day he had not spoke;

The whole day he hadn't spoken;

when suddenly he faced about, pointed to the woods, and roared out to his brother:

when suddenly he turned around, pointed to the woods, and shouted to his brother:

“O Bill! here’s a cow!”

“O Bill! Here’s a cow!”

The captain instantly galloped forward, and he and Jack made a vain attempt to capture the prize; but the cow, with a well-grounded distrust of their intentions, took refuge among the trees. R. joined them, and they soon drove her out. We watched their evolutions as they galloped around here, trying in vain to noose her with their trail-ropes, which they had converted into lariettes for the occasion. At length they resorted to milder measures, and the cow was driven along with the party. Soon after the usual thunderstorm came up, the wind blowing with such fury that the streams of rain flew almost horizontally along the prairie, roaring like a cataract. The horses turned tail to the storm, and stood hanging their heads, bearing the infliction with an air of meekness and resignation; while we drew our heads between our shoulders, and crouched forward, so as to make our backs serve as a pent-house for the rest of our persons. Meanwhile the cow, taking advantage of the tumult, ran off, to the great discomfiture of the captain, who seemed to consider her as his own especial prize, since she had been discovered by Jack. In defiance of the storm, he pulled his cap tight over his brows, jerked a huge buffalo pistol from his holster, and set out at full speed after her. This was the last we saw of them for some time, the mist and rain making an impenetrable veil; but at length we heard the captain’s shout, and saw him looming through the tempest, the picture of a Hibernian cavalier, with his cocked pistol held aloft for safety’s sake, and a countenance of anxiety and excitement. The cow trotted before him, but exhibited evident signs of an intention to run off again, and the captain was roaring to us to head her. But the rain had got in behind our coat collars, and was traveling over our necks in numerous little streamlets, and being afraid to move our heads, for fear of admitting more, we sat stiff and immovable, looking at the captain askance, and laughing at his frantic movements. At last the cow made a sudden plunge and ran off; the captain grasped his pistol firmly, spurred his horse, and galloped after, with evident designs of mischief. In a moment we heard the faint report, deadened by the rain, and then the conqueror and his victim reappeared, the latter shot through the body, and quite helpless. Not long after the storm moderated and we advanced again. The cow walked painfully along under the charge of Jack, to whom the captain had committed her, while he himself rode forward in his old capacity of vedette. We were approaching a long line of trees, that followed a stream stretching across our path, far in front, when we beheld the vedette galloping toward us, apparently much excited, but with a broad grin on his face.

The captain quickly rode ahead, and he and Jack tried unsuccessfully to catch the cow; however, the cow, clearly suspicious of their motives, fled into the trees. R. joined them, and they eventually managed to drive her out. We watched as they chased her around, trying to lasso her with their trail ropes, which they had turned into makeshift lassos for this purpose. Eventually, they switched to gentler methods, and the cow was herded along with them. Soon after, a typical thunderstorm rolled in, with the wind blowing so fiercely that the rain whipped across the prairie like a waterfall. The horses turned away from the storm, lowering their heads and enduring the downpour with an air of quiet acceptance; meanwhile, we tucked our heads down and hunched forward to use our backs as a shield from the rain. In the chaos, the cow seized her chance to escape, much to the captain's frustration, as he considered her his personal catch since Jack had spotted her first. Undaunted by the storm, he pulled his cap low over his brow, yanked a large buffalo pistol from his holster, and sped off after her. This was the last we saw of them for a while, as the mist and rain created an impenetrable curtain. Eventually, we heard the captain's shout and saw him emerging through the storm, looking like a spirited Irish knight, with his cocked pistol raised for safety and an expression of worry and excitement. The cow was trotting ahead of him but clearly looked ready to bolt again, and the captain was shouting for us to block her path. But the rain had seeped under our coat collars, trickling down our necks in little streams, and afraid to move our heads for fear of letting in more water, we sat stiffly, stealing glances at the captain and chuckling at his frantic antics. Finally, the cow made a sudden dash and took off; the captain gripped his pistol tightly, urged his horse on, and galloped after her with clear intentions. Moments later, we heard a distant gunshot, muffled by the rain, and then both the captain and the cow reappeared, the cow shot through the body and utterly helpless. Soon after, the storm calmed down, and we moved forward again. The cow limped along under Jack's care, to whom the captain had entrusted her, while he rode ahead in his usual role as lookout. As we neared a long line of trees following a stream that crossed our path, we saw the lookout racing toward us, looking quite excited but with a broad grin on his face.

“Let that cow drop behind!” he shouted to us; “here’s her owners!” And in fact, as we approached the line of trees, a large white object, like a tent, was visible behind them. On approaching, however, we found, instead of the expected Mormon camp, nothing but the lonely prairie, and a large white rock standing by the path. The cow therefore resumed her place in our procession. She walked on until we encamped, when R. firmly approaching with his enormous English double-barreled rifle, calmly and deliberately took aim at her heart, and discharged into it first one bullet and then the other. She was then butchered on the most approved principles of woodcraft, and furnished a very welcome item to our somewhat limited bill of fare.

“Let that cow fall behind!” he shouted to us; “here are her owners!” And as we got closer to the line of trees, a large white object, like a tent, was visible behind them. However, when we approached, we discovered that instead of the expected Mormon camp, there was just the empty prairie and a large white rock standing by the path. The cow then rejoined our group. She continued walking until we set up camp, when R. confidently approached with his huge English double-barreled rifle, calmly took aim at her heart, and fired one bullet followed by another. She was then butchered using the most effective methods of woodcraft, providing a much-appreciated addition to our rather limited menu.

In a day or two more we reached the river called the “Big Blue.” By titles equally elegant, almost all the streams of this region are designated. We had struggled through ditches and little brooks all that morning; but on traversing the dense woods that lined the banks of the Blue, we found more formidable difficulties awaited us, for the stream, swollen by the rains, was wide, deep, and rapid.

In a day or two, we arrived at the river known as the "Big Blue." Most of the streams in this area have equally elegant names. We had fought our way through ditches and small brooks all morning, but as we made our way through the thick woods along the banks of the Blue, we discovered even greater challenges ahead because the river, swollen by the rains, was wide, deep, and fast-moving.

No sooner were we on the spot than R. had flung off his clothes, and was swimming across, or splashing through the shallows, with the end of a rope between his teeth. We all looked on in admiration, wondering what might be the design of this energetic preparation; but soon we heard him shouting: “Give that rope a turn round that stump! You, Sorel: do you hear? Look sharp now, Boisverd! Come over to this side, some of you, and help me!” The men to whom these orders were directed paid not the least attention to them, though they were poured out without pause or intermission. Henry Chatillon directed the work, and it proceeded quietly and rapidly. R.‘s sharp brattling voice might have been heard incessantly; and he was leaping about with the utmost activity, multiplying himself, after the manner of great commanders, as if his universal presence and supervision were of the last necessity. His commands were rather amusingly inconsistent; for when he saw that the men would not do as he told them, he wisely accommodated himself to circumstances, and with the utmost vehemence ordered them to do precisely that which they were at the time engaged upon, no doubt recollecting the story of Mahomet and the refractory mountain. Shaw smiled significantly; R. observed it, and, approaching with a countenance of lofty indignation, began to vapor a little, but was instantly reduced to silence.

As soon as we arrived, R. had thrown off his clothes and was swimming across or splashing through the shallow water, with the end of a rope in his mouth. We all looked on in admiration, curious about what this energetic preparation was for. But soon we heard him shouting, “Wrap that rope around that stump! You, Sorel: do you hear me? Hurry up now, Boisverd! Come over here and help me!” The men he was addressing didn’t pay any attention to him, even though he kept shouting without stopping. Henry Chatillon was directing the work, and it was moving along quietly and quickly. R.’s sharp, choppy voice could be heard nonstop; he was jumping around with the greatest energy, acting like a great commander, as if his constant presence and supervision were absolutely necessary. His orders were rather amusingly inconsistent; when he noticed the men weren’t following his instructions, he cleverly adapted to the situation and passionately ordered them to do exactly what they were already doing, probably recalling the story of Mahomet and the stubborn mountain. Shaw smiled knowingly; R. noticed it, and came over with a look of high indignation, starting to get worked up, but was quickly silenced.

The raft was at length complete. We piled our goods upon it, with the exception of our guns, which each man chose to retain in his own keeping. Sorel, Boisverd, Wright and Delorier took their stations at the four corners, to hold it together, and swim across with it; and in a moment more, all our earthly possessions were floating on the turbid waters of the Big Blue. We sat on the bank, anxiously watching the result, until we saw the raft safe landed in a little cove far down on the opposite bank. The empty wagons were easily passed across; and then each man mounting a horse, we rode through the stream, the stray animals following of their own accord.

The raft was finally finished. We loaded our things onto it, except for our guns, which each person chose to keep with them. Sorel, Boisverd, Wright, and Delorier took their places at the four corners to hold it together and swim across with it; in no time, all our worldly possessions were floating on the muddy waters of the Big Blue. We sat on the shore, anxiously watching until we saw the raft safely land in a small cove a ways down on the opposite side. The empty wagons were easily ferried across, and then each of us mounted a horse and rode through the stream, while the loose animals followed behind on their own.





CHAPTER VI

THE PLATTE AND THE DESERT

We were now arrived at the close of our solitary journeyings along the St. Joseph’s trail. On the evening of the 23d of May we encamped near its junction with the old legitimate trail of the Oregon emigrants. We had ridden long that afternoon, trying in vain to find wood and water, until at length we saw the sunset sky reflected from a pool encircled by bushes and a rock or two. The water lay in the bottom of a hollow, the smooth prairie gracefully rising in oceanlike swells on every side. We pitched our tents by it; not however before the keen eye of Henry Chatillon had discerned some unusual object upon the faintly-defined outline of the distant swell. But in the moist, hazy atmosphere of the evening, nothing could be clearly distinguished. As we lay around the fire after supper, a low and distant sound, strange enough amid the loneliness of the prairie, reached our ears—peals of laughter, and the faint voices of men and women. For eight days we had not encountered a human being, and this singular warning of their vicinity had an effect extremely wild and impressive.

We had now reached the end of our lonely travels along the St. Joseph’s trail. On the evening of May 23rd, we set up camp near where it joined the old, established trail of the Oregon emigrants. We had ridden for a long time that afternoon, unsuccessfully searching for wood and water, until we finally saw the sunset reflected in a pool surrounded by bushes and a few rocks. The water lay at the bottom of a dip, with the smooth prairie rising gracefully around us. We pitched our tents by it; however, before we did, Henry Chatillon’s sharp eye spotted something unusual on the distant horizon. But in the damp, hazy evening air, we couldn’t make out anything clearly. As we sat around the fire after dinner, a low and distant sound, odd in the solitude of the prairie, reached our ears—laughter and faint voices of men and women. We hadn’t seen another human being in eight days, and this strange indication of their presence felt both wild and profound.

About dark a sallow-faced fellow descended the hill on horseback, and splashing through the pool rode up to the tents. He was enveloped in a huge cloak, and his broad felt hat was weeping about his ears with the drizzling moisture of the evening. Another followed, a stout, square-built, intelligent-looking man, who announced himself as leader of an emigrant party encamped a mile in advance of us. About twenty wagons, he said, were with him; the rest of his party were on the other side of the Big Blue, waiting for a woman who was in the pains of child-birth, and quarreling meanwhile among themselves.

As it got darker, a pale-faced guy came down the hill on horseback, splashing through the puddle as he rode up to the tents. He was wrapped in a big cloak, and his wide felt hat was dripping with the evening's drizzle. Another person followed, a stout, strong-looking man who introduced himself as the leader of an emigrant group camped a mile ahead of us. He mentioned that about twenty wagons were with him, while the rest of his group was on the other side of the Big Blue, waiting for a woman who was in labor and arguing among themselves in the meantime.

These were the first emigrants that we had overtaken, although we had found abundant and melancholy traces of their progress throughout the whole course of the journey. Sometimes we passed the grave of one who had sickened and died on the way. The earth was usually torn up, and covered thickly with wolf-tracks. Some had escaped this violation. One morning a piece of plank, standing upright on the summit of a grassy hill, attracted our notice, and riding up to it we found the following words very roughly traced upon it, apparently by a red-hot piece of iron:

These were the first emigrants we encountered, even though we had seen plenty of sad signs of their journey all along the way. Sometimes we came across the grave of someone who had fallen ill and died during the trip. The ground was often disturbed and covered with wolf tracks. Some had avoided this fate. One morning, a piece of wood standing upright on top of a grassy hill caught our attention, and when we rode up to it, we found the following words roughly carved into it, seemingly by a heated piece of metal:

MARY ELLIS DIED MAY 7TH, 1845.

MARY ELLIS DIED MAY 7TH, 1845.

Aged two months.

Two months old.

Such tokens were of common occurrence, nothing could speak more for the hardihood, or rather infatuation, of the adventurers, or the sufferings that await them upon the journey.

Such tokens were quite common; nothing could better illustrate the boldness, or rather the recklessness, of the adventurers, or the hardships that awaited them on the journey.

We were late in breaking up our camp on the following morning, and scarcely had we ridden a mile when we saw, far in advance of us, drawn against the horizon, a line of objects stretching at regular intervals along the level edge of the prairie. An intervening swell soon hid them from sight, until, ascending it a quarter of an hour after, we saw close before us the emigrant caravan, with its heavy white wagons creeping on in their slow procession, and a large drove of cattle following behind. Half a dozen yellow-visaged Missourians, mounted on horseback, were cursing and shouting among them; their lank angular proportions enveloped in brown homespun, evidently cut and adjusted by the hands of a domestic female tailor. As we approached, they greeted us with the polished salutation: “How are ye, boys? Are ye for Oregon or California?”

We took our time packing up our camp the next morning, and barely had we ridden a mile when we spotted, far ahead of us, a line of objects stretching out against the horizon at regular intervals along the flat prairie edge. A rise in the ground soon hid them from view, but about fifteen minutes later, we crested the rise and saw the emigrant caravan right in front of us, with its large white wagons moving slowly in procession, followed by a herd of cattle. Half a dozen sunken-eyed Missourians, on horseback, were swearing and yelling among them; their tall, thin frames wrapped in brown homespun, clearly made by a local female tailor. As we got closer, they greeted us with a friendly, “How are you, boys? Are you heading to Oregon or California?”

As we pushed rapidly past the wagons, children’s faces were thrust out from the white coverings to look at us; while the care-worn, thin-featured matron, or the buxom girl, seated in front, suspended the knitting on which most of them were engaged to stare at us with wondering curiosity. By the side of each wagon stalked the proprietor, urging on his patient oxen, who shouldered heavily along, inch by inch, on their interminable journey. It was easy to see that fear and dissension prevailed among them; some of the men—but these, with one exception, were bachelors—looked wistfully upon us as we rode lightly and swiftly past, and then impatiently at their own lumbering wagons and heavy-gaited oxen. Others were unwilling to advance at all until the party they had left behind should have rejoined them. Many were murmuring against the leader they had chosen, and wished to depose him; and this discontent was fermented by some ambitious spirits, who had hopes of succeeding in his place. The women were divided between regrets for the homes they had left and apprehension of the deserts and the savages before them.

As we quickly passed the wagons, children’s faces peeked out from under the white covers to watch us, while the tired, thin-faced woman or the plump girl sitting at the front paused from their knitting to stare at us with curious looks. Next to each wagon, the owner walked beside their slow-moving oxen, who trudged along, inch by inch, on their endless journey. It was clear that fear and disagreement were rampant among them; some of the men—mostly single—looked longingly at us as we rode by effortlessly, then glanced impatiently at their own clunky wagons and slow-moving oxen. Others were reluctant to move forward at all until the group they had left behind rejoined them. Many were grumbling about the leader they had chosen and wanted to replace him; this unrest was fueled by some ambitious individuals who hoped to take his place. The women were caught between missing their old homes and fearing the wilderness and dangers ahead.

We soon left them far behind, and fondly hoped that we had taken a final leave; but unluckily our companions’ wagon stuck so long in a deep muddy ditch that, before it was extricated, the van of the emigrant caravan appeared again, descending a ridge close at hand. Wagon after wagon plunged through the mud; and as it was nearly noon, and the place promised shade and water, we saw with much gratification that they were resolved to encamp. Soon the wagons were wheeled into a circle; the cattle were grazing over the meadow, and the men with sour, sullen faces, were looking about for wood and water. They seemed to meet with but indifferent success. As we left the ground, I saw a tall slouching fellow with the nasal accent of “down east,” contemplating the contents of his tin cup, which he had just filled with water.

We soon left them behind and hoped we had said our final goodbyes; but unfortunately, our companions’ wagon got stuck in a deep muddy ditch for so long that, before it was freed, the front of the emigrant caravan appeared again, coming down a nearby ridge. Wagon after wagon splashed through the mud; and since it was almost noon, and the area seemed to offer shade and water, we were pleased to see they decided to set up camp. Soon, the wagons were arranged in a circle; the cattle were grazing in the meadow, and the men, with grim faces, were searching for firewood and water. They didn’t seem to have much luck. As we left the area, I noticed a tall, slouching guy with a nasal accent from the East, staring at the contents of his tin cup, which he had just filled with water.

“Look here, you,” he said; “it’s chock full of animals!”

“Look here,” he said, “it’s packed with animals!”

The cup, as he held it out, exhibited in fact an extraordinary variety and profusion of animal and vegetable life.

The cup, as he held it out, showed an incredible variety and abundance of animal and plant life.

Riding up the little hill and looking back on the meadow, we could easily see that all was not right in the camp of the emigrants. The men were crowded together, and an angry discussion seemed to be going forward. R. was missing from his wonted place in the line, and the captain told us that he had remained behind to get his horse shod by a blacksmith who was attached to the emigrant party. Something whispered in our ears that mischief was on foot; we kept on, however, and coming soon to a stream of tolerable water, we stopped to rest and dine. Still the absentee lingered behind. At last, at the distance of a mile, he and his horse suddenly appeared, sharply defined against the sky on the summit of a hill; and close behind, a huge white object rose slowly into view.

Riding up the small hill and looking back at the meadow, we could easily see that something was off in the emigrants' camp. The men were huddled together, and a heated discussion seemed to be happening. R. was missing from his usual spot in the line, and the captain informed us that he had stayed behind to get his horse shod by a blacksmith who was part of the emigrant group. A feeling of unease whispered in our ears that something was up; we kept going, though, and soon reached a stream with decent water, where we stopped to rest and have lunch. Still, R. was nowhere to be seen. Finally, after about a mile, he and his horse suddenly appeared, sharply outlined against the sky at the top of a hill; and just behind them, a large white object slowly came into view.

“What is that blockhead bringing with him now?”

“What is that idiot bringing with him now?”

A moment dispelled the mystery. Slowly and solemnly one behind the other, four long trains of oxen and four emigrant wagons rolled over the crest of the declivity and gravely descended, while R. rode in state in the van. It seems that, during the process of shoeing the horse, the smothered dissensions among the emigrants suddenly broke into open rupture. Some insisted on pushing forward, some on remaining where they were, and some on going back. Kearsley, their captain, threw up his command in disgust. “And now, boys,” said he, “if any of you are for going ahead, just you come along with me.”

A moment cleared up the mystery. Slowly and seriously, one after another, four long lines of oxen and four immigrant wagons rolled over the top of the slope and descended deliberately, while R. rode regally in front. It seems that, during the shoeing of the horse, the suppressed disagreements among the emigrants suddenly erupted into an open conflict. Some wanted to move forward, some wanted to stay where they were, and some wanted to turn back. Kearsley, their leader, quit in frustration. “And now, guys,” he said, “if any of you want to go ahead, just come with me.”

Four wagons, with ten men, one woman, and one small child, made up the force of the “go-ahead” faction, and R., with his usual proclivity toward mischief, invited them to join our party. Fear of the Indians—for I can conceive of no other motive—must have induced him to court so burdensome an alliance. As may well be conceived, these repeated instances of high-handed dealing sufficiently exasperated us. In this case, indeed, the men who joined us were all that could be desired; rude indeed in manner, but frank, manly, and intelligent. To tell them we could not travel with them was of course out of the question. I merely reminded Kearsley that if his oxen could not keep up with our mules he must expect to be left behind, as we could not consent to be further delayed on the journey; but he immediately replied, that his oxen “SHOULD keep up; and if they couldn’t, why he allowed that he’d find out how to make ‘em!” Having availed myself of what satisfaction could be derived from giving R. to understand my opinion of his conduct, I returned to our side of the camp.

Four wagons, with ten men, one woman, and one small child, made up the group of the “go-ahead” faction, and R., with his usual tendency for trouble, invited them to join our party. Fear of the Indians—for I can’t think of any other reason—must have led him to seek such a burdensome alliance. As you can imagine, these repeated acts of overstepping really frustrated us. In this case, the men who joined us were exactly what we could have hoped for; rough in manner, but straightforward, brave, and smart. It was out of the question to tell them we couldn’t travel with them. I just reminded Kearsley that if his oxen couldn’t keep up with our mules, he should expect to be left behind, as we couldn’t agree to be delayed further on our journey. But he quickly replied that his oxen “SHOULD keep up; and if they couldn’t, he’d find a way to make them!” After expressing my thoughts about R.'s behavior, I went back to our side of the camp.

On the next day, as it chanced, our English companions broke the axle-tree of their wagon, and down came the whole cumbrous machine lumbering into the bed of a brook! Here was a day’s work cut out for us. Meanwhile, our emigrant associates kept on their way, and so vigorously did they urge forward their powerful oxen that, with the broken axle-tree and other calamities, it was full a week before we overtook them; when at length we discovered them, one afternoon, crawling quietly along the sandy brink of the Platte. But meanwhile various incidents occurred to ourselves.

The next day, coincidentally, our English friends broke the axle of their wagon, and the entire heavy machine tumbled into the creek! This meant a full day’s work for us. Meanwhile, our fellow travelers continued on their journey, and they pushed their strong oxen forward so determinedly that, despite the broken axle and other issues, it took us a whole week to catch up with them. Finally, one afternoon, we found them slowly making their way along the sandy edge of the Platte River. In the meantime, we experienced several incidents ourselves.

It was probable that at this stage of our journey the Pawnees would attempt to rob us. We began therefore to stand guard in turn, dividing the night into three watches, and appointing two men for each. Delorier and I held guard together. We did not march with military precision to and fro before the tents; our discipline was by no means so stringent and rigid. We wrapped ourselves in our blankets, and sat down by the fire; and Delorier, combining his culinary functions with his duties as sentinel, employed himself in boiling the head of an antelope for our morning’s repast. Yet we were models of vigilance in comparison with some of the party; for the ordinary practice of the guard was to establish himself in the most comfortable posture he could; lay his rifle on the ground, and enveloping his nose in the blanket, meditate on his mistress, or whatever subject best pleased him. This is all well enough when among Indians who do not habitually proceed further in their hostility than robbing travelers of their horses and mules, though, indeed, a Pawnee’s forebearance is not always to be trusted; but in certain regions farther to the west, the guard must beware how he exposes his person to the light of the fire, lest perchance some keen-eyed skulking marksman should let fly a bullet or an arrow from amid the darkness.

At this point in our journey, it was likely that the Pawnees would try to rob us. So we decided to take turns guarding, dividing the night into three shifts with two men assigned to each. Delorier and I guarded together. We didn't march back and forth with military precision in front of the tents; our discipline wasn’t that strict. We wrapped ourselves in our blankets and sat by the fire, and Delorier, multitasking as both cook and guard, was busy boiling an antelope head for breakfast. However, we were much more vigilant compared to some others in the group, as the usual practice was for the guard to find the most comfortable position possible, lay his rifle on the ground, and cover his nose with his blanket while daydreaming about his girlfriend or whatever else he found enjoyable. This might be fine when dealing with Indians who typically only steal travelers' horses and mules, although a Pawnee's restraint can’t always be counted on; but in certain areas further west, the guard must be careful about exposing himself to the firelight, as a sharp-eyed sniper could shoot at him from the darkness.

Among various tales that circulated around our camp fire was a rather curious one, told by Boisverd, and not inappropriate here. Boisverd was trapping with several companions on the skirts of the Blackfoot country. The man on guard, well knowing that it behooved him to put forth his utmost precaution, kept aloof from the firelight, and sat watching intently on all sides. At length he was aware of a dark, crouching figure, stealing noiselessly into the circle of the light. He hastily cocked his rifle, but the sharp click of the lock caught the ear of Blackfoot, whose senses were all on the alert. Raising his arrow, already fitted to the string, he shot in the direction of the sound. So sure was his aim that he drove it through the throat of the unfortunate guard, and then, with a loud yell, bounded from the camp.

Among the various stories shared around our campfire was a particularly interesting one told by Boisverd, which fits right in here. Boisverd was trapping with several friends near the edge of Blackfoot territory. The guard, fully aware that he needed to be extra cautious, stayed away from the firelight and watched carefully all around. Eventually, he noticed a dark, crouching figure silently creeping into the light. He quickly cocked his rifle, but the sharp click of the lock caught the attention of a Blackfoot, whose senses were on high alert. Raising his already-ready arrow, he shot in the direction of the sound. His aim was so accurate that he struck the unfortunate guard in the throat, and then, with a loud yell, he jumped out of the camp.

As I looked at the partner of my watch, puffing and blowing over his fire, it occurred to me that he might not prove the most efficient auxiliary in time of trouble.

As I watched my friend, huffing and puffing over his fire, I realized he might not be the best helper in times of trouble.

“Delorier,” said I, “would you run away if the Pawnees should fire at us?”

“Delorier,” I said, “would you run away if the Pawnees shot at us?”

“Ah! oui, oui, monsieur!” he replied very decisively.

“Ah! yes, yes, sir!” he replied very decisively.

I did not doubt the fact, but was a little surprised at the frankness of the confession.

I didn't doubt it, but I was a bit surprised by the honesty of the confession.

At this instant a most whimsical variety of voices—barks, howls, yelps, and whines—all mingled as it were together, sounded from the prairie, not far off, as if a whole conclave of wolves of every age and sex were assembled there. Delorier looked up from his work with a laugh, and began to imitate this curious medley of sounds with a most ludicrous accuracy. At this they were repeated with redoubled emphasis, the musician being apparently indignant at the successful efforts of a rival. They all proceeded from the throat of one little wolf, not larger than a spaniel, seated by himself at some distance. He was of the species called the prairie wolf; a grim-visaged, but harmless little brute, whose worst propensity is creeping among horses and gnawing the ropes of raw hide by which they are picketed around the camp. But other beasts roam the prairies, far more formidable in aspect and in character. These are the large white and gray wolves, whose deep howl we heard at intervals from far and near.

At that moment, a hilarious mix of voices—barks, howls, yelps, and whines—blended together, coming from the nearby prairie, as if a whole group of wolves of all ages and genders were gathered there. Delorier looked up from his work with a laugh and started to mimic this strange mix of sounds with amazing accuracy. In response, the noises were repeated even more loudly, with the little wolf seeming to get annoyed at the successful imitation. All the sounds came from one small wolf, not much bigger than a spaniel, sitting alone a little way off. He was a prairie wolf; a grim-looking but harmless little creature, whose worst habit is creeping among horses and chewing on the rawhide ropes that tie them around the camp. But there are other animals on the prairies that are much more intimidating in appearance and nature. These include the large white and gray wolves, whose deep howls we heard echoing from a distance.

At last I fell into a doze, and, awakening from it, found Delorier fast asleep. Scandalized by this breach of discipline, I was about to stimulate his vigilance by stirring him with the stock of my rifle; but compassion prevailing, I determined to let him sleep awhile, and then to arouse him, and administer a suitable reproof for such a forgetfulness of duty. Now and then I walked the rounds among the silent horses, to see that all was right. The night was chill, damp, and dark, the dank grass bending under the icy dewdrops. At the distance of a rod or two the tents were invisible, and nothing could be seen but the obscure figures of the horses, deeply breathing, and restlessly starting as they slept, or still slowly champing the grass. Far off, beyond the black outline of the prairie, there was a ruddy light, gradually increasing, like the glow of a conflagration; until at length the broad disk of the moon, blood-red, and vastly magnified by the vapors, rose slowly upon the darkness, flecked by one or two little clouds, and as the light poured over the gloomy plain, a fierce and stern howl, close at hand, seemed to greet it as an unwelcome intruder. There was something impressive and awful in the place and the hour; for I and the beasts were all that had consciousness for many a league around.

Finally, I dozed off, and when I woke up, I found Delorier sound asleep. Shocked by this lapse in discipline, I considered waking him up by nudging him with my rifle, but out of compassion, I decided to let him sleep for a bit longer before waking him up to give him a proper reprimand for forgetting his duty. Every now and then, I walked around the silent horses to make sure everything was okay. The night was chilly, damp, and dark, with the wet grass bending under the icy dew. A few yards away, the tents were invisible, and all I could see were the shadowy figures of the horses, breathing deeply, starting awake restlessly in their sleep, or still slowly chewing on the grass. Far off, beyond the dark outline of the prairie, a red light was slowly growing brighter, resembling the glow of a fire; eventually, the large, blood-red moon, greatly magnified by the mist, rose slowly into the darkness, touched by a couple of small clouds. As the light spread across the gloomy landscape, a fierce and harsh howl nearby seemed to greet it as an unwelcome visitor. There was something striking and eerie about the place and the time; it was just me and the animals, the only conscious beings for miles around.

Some days elapsed, and brought us near the Platte. Two men on horseback approached us one morning, and we watched them with the curiosity and interest that, upon the solitude of the plains, such an encounter always excites. They were evidently whites, from their mode of riding, though, contrary to the usage of that region, neither of them carried a rifle.

Some days went by, and we got closer to the Platte. One morning, two men on horseback came up to us, and we watched them with the curiosity and interest that such an encounter always stirs in the solitude of the plains. They were clearly white, based on how they rode, but unlike what is typical for that area, neither of them had a rifle.

“Fools!” remarked Henry Chatillon, “to ride that way on the prairie; Pawnee find them—then they catch it!”

“Fools!” said Henry Chatillon, “riding like that on the prairie; the Pawnee will find them—then they’re in trouble!”

Pawnee HAD found them, and they had come very near “catching it”; indeed, nothing saved them from trouble but the approach of our party. Shaw and I knew one of them; a man named Turner, whom we had seen at Westport. He and his companion belonged to an emigrant party encamped a few miles in advance, and had returned to look for some stray oxen, leaving their rifles, with characteristic rashness or ignorance behind them. Their neglect had nearly cost them dear; for just before we came up, half a dozen Indians approached, and seeing them apparently defenseless, one of the rascals seized the bridle of Turner’s fine horse, and ordered him to dismount. Turner was wholly unarmed; but the other jerked a little revolving pistol out of his pocket, at which the Pawnee recoiled; and just then some of our men appearing in the distance, the whole party whipped their rugged little horses, and made off. In no way daunted, Turner foolishly persisted in going forward.

Pawnee had found them, and they had come very close to "catching it"; in fact, nothing saved them from trouble except the arrival of our group. Shaw and I recognized one of them, a guy named Turner, whom we had seen at Westport. He and his buddy were part of an emigrant group camped a few miles ahead and had come back to search for some stray oxen, carelessly leaving their rifles behind. Their carelessness almost got them into serious trouble; just before we arrived, half a dozen Indians approached, and seeing them seemingly unarmed, one of the scoundrels grabbed the bridle of Turner’s nice horse and ordered him to get off. Turner had no weapons on him, but his companion pulled out a small revolver from his pocket, causing the Pawnee to back off; just then, some of our men appeared in the distance, and the whole group spurred their rough little horses and took off. Undaunted, Turner foolishly insisted on moving forward.

Long after leaving him, and late this afternoon, in the midst of a gloomy and barren prairie, we came suddenly upon the great Pawnee trail, leading from their villages on the Platte to their war and hunting grounds to the southward. Here every summer pass the motley concourse; thousands of savages, men, women, and children, horses and mules, laden with their weapons and implements, and an innumerable multitude of unruly wolfish dogs, who have not acquired the civilized accomplishment of barking, but howl like their wild cousins of the prairie.

Long after leaving him, and late this afternoon, in the middle of a gloomy and empty prairie, we suddenly came across the great Pawnee trail, which leads from their villages on the Platte to their war and hunting grounds to the south. Every summer, thousands of people—men, women, and children—along with horses and mules carrying their weapons and gear, pass by this vibrant gathering. There's also a countless number of wild, wolf-like dogs that haven't learned to bark like domesticated dogs but howl like their wild relatives on the prairie.

The permanent winter villages of the Pawnees stand on the lower Platte, but throughout the summer the greater part of the inhabitants are wandering over the plains, a treacherous cowardly banditti, who by a thousand acts of pillage and murder have deserved summary chastisement at the hands of government. Last year a Dakota warrior performed a signal exploit at one of these villages. He approached it alone in the middle of a dark night, and clambering up the outside of one of the lodges which are in the form of a half-sphere, he looked in at the round hole made at the top for the escape of smoke. The dusky light from the smoldering embers showed him the forms of the sleeping inmates; and dropping lightly through the opening, he unsheathed his knife, and stirring the fire coolly selected his victims. One by one he stabbed and scalped them, when a child suddenly awoke and screamed. He rushed from the lodge, yelled a Sioux war-cry, shouted his name in triumph and defiance, and in a moment had darted out upon the dark prairie, leaving the whole village behind him in a tumult, with the howling and baying of dogs, the screams of women and the yells of the enraged warriors.

The permanent winter villages of the Pawnees are located on the lower Platte, but during the summer, most of the people roam the plains as a treacherous, cowardly gang who have earned swift punishment from the government through countless acts of looting and murder. Last year, a Dakota warrior carried out a remarkable feat at one of these villages. He approached it alone on a dark night, climbed up the outside of one of the dome-shaped lodges, and looked through the round opening at the top meant for smoke to escape. The dim light from the smoldering coals revealed the figures of the sleeping residents, and as he dropped down through the opening, he drew his knife and calmly chose his targets. One by one, he stabbed and scalped them when suddenly a child woke up and screamed. He rushed out of the lodge, yelled a Sioux war-cry, declared his name in triumph and defiance, and quickly disappeared into the dark prairie, leaving the entire village behind in chaos, with dogs howling, women screaming, and enraged warriors shouting.

Our friend Kearsley, as we learned on rejoining him, signalized himself by a less bloody achievement. He and his men were good woodsmen, and well skilled in the use of the rifle, but found themselves wholly out of their element on the prairie. None of them had ever seen a buffalo and they had very vague conceptions of his nature and appearance. On the day after they reached the Platte, looking toward a distant swell, they beheld a multitude of little black specks in motion upon its surface.

Our friend Kearsley, as we found out when we rejoined him, distinguished himself with a less violent accomplishment. He and his men were skilled woodsmen and proficient with rifles, but they felt completely out of place on the prairie. None of them had ever seen a buffalo, and they had only fuzzy ideas about what it looked like and its behavior. The day after they arrived at the Platte, they looked toward a distant rise and saw a swarm of small black dots moving across its surface.

“Take your rifles, boys,” said Kearslcy, “and we’ll have fresh meat for supper.” This inducement was quite sufficient. The ten men left their wagons and set out in hot haste, some on horseback and some on foot, in pursuit of the supposed buffalo. Meanwhile a high grassy ridge shut the game from view; but mounting it after half an hour’s running and riding, they found themselves suddenly confronted by about thirty mounted Pawnees! The amazement and consternation were mutual. Having nothing but their bows and arrows, the Indians thought their hour was come, and the fate that they were no doubt conscious of richly deserving about to overtake them. So they began, one and all, to shout forth the most cordial salutations of friendship, running up with extreme earnestness to shake hands with the Missourians, who were as much rejoiced as they were to escape the expected conflict.

“Grab your rifles, guys,” said Kearslcy, “and we’ll have fresh meat for dinner.” That was enough motivation. The ten men left their wagons and hurried out, some on horseback and some on foot, chasing after the supposed buffalo. Meanwhile, a high grassy ridge blocked their view of the game, but after half an hour of running and riding, they found themselves face to face with about thirty mounted Pawnees! Both sides were equally stunned. With nothing but their bows and arrows, the Indians thought their time had come and that the fate they likely felt they deserved was about to catch up with them. So, they all started shouting warm greetings of friendship and rushed up eagerly to shake hands with the Missourians, who were just as relieved to avoid the expected fight.

A low undulating line of sand-hills bounded the horizon before us. That day we rode ten consecutive hours, and it was dusk before we entered the hollows and gorges of these gloomy little hills. At length we gained the summit, and the long expected valley of the Platte lay before us. We all drew rein, and, gathering in a knot on the crest of the hill, sat joyfully looking down upon the prospect. It was right welcome; strange too, and striking to the imagination, and yet it had not one picturesque or beautiful feature; nor had it any of the features of grandeur, other than its vast extent, its solitude, and its wilderness. For league after league a plain as level as a frozen lake was outspread beneath us; here and there the Platte, divided into a dozen threadlike sluices, was traversing it, and an occasional clump of wood, rising in the midst like a shadowy island, relieved the monotony of the waste. No living thing was moving throughout the vast landscape, except the lizards that darted over the sand and through the rank grass and prickly-pear just at our feet. And yet stern and wild associations gave a singular interest to the view; for here each man lives by the strength of his arm and the valor of his heart. Here society is reduced to its original elements, the whole fabric of art and conventionality is struck rudely to pieces, and men find themselves suddenly brought back to the wants and resources of their original natures.

A low, rolling line of sand hills defined the horizon in front of us. That day, we rode for ten straight hours, and it was twilight by the time we entered the dips and ravines of these gloomy little hills. Finally, we reached the top, and the long-awaited valley of the Platte lay before us. We all reined in, gathering in a group on the hilltop, sitting happily as we looked down at the view. It was very welcome; strange too, and striking to the imagination, yet it didn’t have a single picturesque or beautiful feature. It lacked any grandeur except for its vastness, solitude, and wilderness. For mile after mile, a plain as flat as a frozen lake stretched out beneath us; here and there, the Platte divided into a dozen thin streams, and an occasional cluster of trees rose in the middle like a shadowy island, breaking the monotony of the barren land. No living creature was in sight across the vast landscape, except for the lizards darting over the sand and through the thick grass and prickly pear right at our feet. And yet, the harsh and wild associations provided a unique interest to the view; here, each person survives by the strength of their own effort and the courage in their hearts. Here, society is stripped down to its core elements, the entire structure of art and convention is roughly shattered, and people find themselves suddenly returned to the needs and resources of their original natures.

We had passed the more toilsome and monotonous part of the journey; but four hundred miles still intervened between us and Fort Laramie; and to reach that point cost us the travel of three additional weeks. During the whole of this time we were passing up the center of a long narrow sandy plain, reaching like an outstretched belt nearly to the Rocky Mountains. Two lines of sand-hills, broken often into the wildest and most fantastic forms, flanked the valley at the distance of a mile or two on the right and left; while beyond them lay a barren, trackless waste—The Great American Desert—extending for hundreds of miles to the Arkansas on the one side, and the Missouri on the other. Before us and behind us, the level monotony of the plain was unbroken as far as the eye could reach. Sometimes it glared in the sun, an expanse of hot, bare sand; sometimes it was veiled by long coarse grass. Huge skulls and whitening bones of buffalo were scattered everywhere; the ground was tracked by myriads of them, and often covered with the circular indentations where the bulls had wallowed in the hot weather. From every gorge and ravine, opening from the hills, descended deep, well-worn paths, where the buffalo issue twice a day in regular procession down to drink in the Platte. The river itself runs through the midst, a thin sheet of rapid, turbid water, half a mile wide, and scarce two feet deep. Its low banks for the most part without a bush or a tree, are of loose sand, with which the stream is so charged that it grates on the teeth in drinking. The naked landscape is, of itself, dreary and monotonous enough, and yet the wild beasts and wild men that frequent the valley of the Platte make it a scene of interest and excitement to the traveler. Of those who have journeyed there, scarce one, perhaps, fails to look back with fond regret to his horse and his rifle.

We had gotten past the most challenging and boring part of the journey; however, we still had four hundred miles to go to reach Fort Laramie, which took us an additional three weeks of travel. During this entire time, we moved through a long, narrow sandy plain that stretched out like a belt almost to the Rocky Mountains. Two lines of sand hills, often shaped into wild and fantastical forms, flanked the valley about a mile or two on either side; beyond them lay a barren, empty stretch known as The Great American Desert, extending for hundreds of miles to the Arkansas River on one side and the Missouri River on the other. In front of us and behind us, the flat monotony of the plain stretched endlessly as far as the eye could see. Sometimes it shimmered under the sun, an expanse of hot, bare sand; at other times, it was covered by long, coarse grass. Large skulls and bleached bones of buffalo were scattered everywhere; the ground showed signs of countless buffalo tracks and was often marked by circular depressions where the bulls had rolled in the heat. From every gorge and ravine that opened from the hills, deep, well-worn paths led down where the buffalo came to drink in the Platte twice a day in an orderly procession. The river itself ran through the middle, a thin ribbon of fast, muddy water, half a mile wide and barely two feet deep. Its low banks, mostly devoid of bushes or trees, were made of loose sand, causing the water to be so gritty that it felt coarse when drinking. The bare landscape was dreary and monotonous on its own, yet the wild animals and wild people that frequented the valley of the Platte made it an intriguing and exciting place for travelers. Of those who have passed through, hardly anyone fails to look back with a sense of nostalgia for their horse and rifle.

Early in the morning after we reached the Platte, a long procession of squalid savages approached our camp. Each was on foot, leading his horse by a rope of bull-hide. His attire consisted merely of a scanty cincture and an old buffalo robe, tattered and begrimed by use, which hung over his shoulders. His head was close shaven, except a ridge of hair reaching over the crown from the center of the forehead, very much like the long bristles on the back of a hyena, and he carried his bow and arrows in his hand, while his meager little horse was laden with dried buffalo meat, the produce of his hunting. Such were the first specimens that we met—and very indifferent ones they were—of the genuine savages of the prairie.

Early in the morning after we got to the Platte, a long line of dirty natives approached our camp. Each one was on foot, leading his horse by a bull-hide rope. He was wearing very little, just a thin belt and an old buffalo robe that was worn out and dirty, draping over his shoulders. His head was closely shaved, except for a strip of hair running over the top from the center of his forehead, resembling the long bristles on the back of a hyena. He held his bow and arrows in his hand, while his skinny little horse was loaded with dried buffalo meat from his hunting. These were the first examples we encountered—and they were quite unimpressive—of the true natives of the prairie.

They were the Pawnees whom Kearsley had encountered the day before, and belonged to a large hunting party known to be ranging the prairie in the vicinity. They strode rapidly past, within a furlong of our tents, not pausing or looking toward us, after the manner of Indians when meditating mischief or conscious of ill-desert. I went out and met them; and had an amicable conference with the chief, presenting him with half a pound of tobacco, at which unmerited bounty he expressed much gratification. These fellows, or some of their companions had committed a dastardly outrage upon an emigrant party in advance of us. Two men, out on horseback at a distance, were seized by them, but lashing their horses, they broke loose and fled. At this the Pawnees raised the yell and shot at them, transfixing the hindermost through the back with several arrows, while his companion galloped away and brought in the news to his party. The panic-stricken emigrants remained for several days in camp, not daring even to send out in quest of the dead body.

They were the Pawnees that Kearsley had encountered the day before, and they were part of a large hunting group known to be roaming the prairie nearby. They walked quickly past, within a distance of our tents, not stopping or looking at us, as is typical for Indians when planning something mischievous or feeling guilty. I went out to meet them and had a friendly discussion with the chief, giving him half a pound of tobacco, which he appreciated a lot. These guys, or some of their friends, had committed a cowardly attack on an emigrant group ahead of us. Two men, who were on horseback at a distance, were captured by them, but by spurring their horses, they broke free and escaped. At this, the Pawnees shouted and shot at them, hitting the last one in the back with several arrows, while his friend raced back to inform his group. The terrified emigrants stayed in camp for several days, too scared to even send anyone to look for the dead body.

The reader will recollect Turner, the man whose narrow escape was mentioned not long since. We heard that the men, whom the entreaties of his wife induced to go in search of him, found him leisurely driving along his recovered oxen, and whistling in utter contempt of the Pawnee nation. His party was encamped within two miles of us; but we passed them that morning, while the men were driving in the oxen, and the women packing their domestic utensils and their numerous offspring in the spacious patriarchal wagons. As we looked back we saw their caravan dragging its slow length along the plain; wearily toiling on its way, to found new empires in the West.

The reader will remember Turner, the guy who just barely got away, as mentioned earlier. We heard that the men, whom his wife's pleading convinced to go look for him, found him casually driving his recovered oxen and whistling as if he had no care for the Pawnee nation. His group was camped just two miles away from us, but we passed them that morning while the men were driving in the oxen and the women were packing their household items and their many kids into the big family wagons. As we looked back, we saw their caravan slowly making its way across the plain, laboring on its journey to establish new lives in the West.

Our New England climate is mild and equable compared with that of the Platte. This very morning, for instance, was close and sultry, the sun rising with a faint oppressive heat; when suddenly darkness gathered in the west, and a furious blast of sleet and hail drove full in our faces, icy cold, and urged with such demoniac vehemence that it felt like a storm of needles. It was curious to see the horses; they faced about in extreme displeasure, holding their tails like whipped dogs, and shivering as the angry gusts, howling louder than a concert of wolves, swept over us. Wright’s long train of mules came sweeping round before the storm like a flight of brown snowbirds driven by a winter tempest. Thus we all remained stationary for some minutes, crouching close to our horses’ necks, much too surly to speak, though once the captain looked up from between the collars of his coat, his face blood-red, and the muscles of his mouth contracted by the cold into a most ludicrous grin of agony. He grumbled something that sounded like a curse, directed as we believed, against the unhappy hour when he had first thought of leaving home. The thing was too good to last long; and the instant the puffs of wind subsided we erected our tents, and remained in camp for the rest of a gloomy and lowering day. The emigrants also encamped near at hand. We, being first on the ground, had appropriated all the wood within reach; so that our fire alone blazed cheerfully. Around it soon gathered a group of uncouth figures, shivering in the drizzling rain. Conspicuous among them were two or three of the half-savage men who spend their reckless lives in trapping among the Rocky Mountains, or in trading for the Fur Company in the Indian villages. They were all of Canadian extraction; their hard, weather-beaten faces and bushy mustaches looked out from beneath the hoods of their white capotes with a bad and brutish expression, as if their owner might be the willing agent of any villainy. And such in fact is the character of many of these men.

Our New England weather is mild and balanced compared to that of the Platte. This very morning, for example, was humid and muggy, with the sun rising and bringing a slight oppressive heat; then suddenly, darkness gathered in the west, and a fierce blast of sleet and hail hit us directly in the face, icy cold, and driven with such furious force that it felt like a storm of needles. It was interesting to watch the horses; they turned around in extreme annoyance, holding their tails like scolded dogs, shivering as the angry gusts howled louder than a pack of wolves. Wright’s long line of mules came sweeping around in front of the storm like a flock of brown snowbirds driven by a winter storm. So we all stayed put for a few minutes, huddled close to our horses' necks, way too sullen to speak, although at one point the captain looked up from beneath his coat's collar, his face bright red, and the muscles of his mouth twisted painfully into a ridiculous grin. He muttered something that sounded like a curse, which we believed was directed at the unfortunate moment he first decided to leave home. This situation couldn’t last long; as soon as the gusts of wind calmed down, we set up our tents and stayed in camp for the rest of a gloomy, overcast day. The other emigrants also set up camp nearby. Since we got there first, we had taken all the firewood within reach, so our fire was the only one blazing cheerfully. Around it soon gathered a group of awkward figures, shivering in the drizzling rain. Notable among them were two or three rough men who lead reckless lives trapping in the Rocky Mountains or trading for the Fur Company in the Indian villages. They were all of Canadian descent; their rugged, weathered faces and bushy mustaches peered out from under the hoods of their white capotes with a rough and brutish expression, as if their owners might be willing accomplices in any wrongdoing. And, in fact, that’s the reality for many of these men.

On the day following we overtook Kearsley’s wagons, and thenceforward, for a week or two, we were fellow-travelers. One good effect, at least, resulted from the alliance; it materially diminished the serious fatigue of standing guard; for the party being now more numerous, there were longer intervals between each man’s turns of duty.

The next day, we caught up with Kearsley's wagons, and from then on, for about a week or two, we were traveling together. One positive outcome of this partnership was that it significantly reduced the intense fatigue of standing guard; with more people in the group, there were longer breaks between each person's shifts.





CHAPTER VII

THE BUFFALO

Four days on the Platte, and yet no buffalo! Last year’s signs of them were provokingly abundant; and wood being extremely scarce, we found an admirable substitute in bois de vache, which burns exactly like peat, producing no unpleasant effects. The wagons one morning had left the camp; Shaw and I were already on horseback, but Henry Chatillon still sat cross-legged by the dead embers of the fire, playing pensively with the lock of his rifle, while his sturdy Wyandotte pony stood quietly behind him, looking over his head. At last he got up, patted the neck of the pony (whom, from an exaggerated appreciation of his merits, he had christened “Five Hundred Dollar”), and then mounted with a melancholy air.

Four days on the Platte, and still no buffalo! Last year's signs of them were frustratingly plentiful; and since wood was really scarce, we found a great substitute in bois de vache, which burns just like peat, with no unpleasant effects. One morning, the wagons had left the camp; Shaw and I were already on horseback, but Henry Chatillon was still sitting cross-legged by the cold embers of the fire, absently playing with the lock of his rifle, while his sturdy Wyandotte pony stood quietly behind him, looking over his head. Finally, he got up, patted the pony's neck (whom, in a show of exaggerated appreciation for his worth, he had named “Five Hundred Dollar”), and then mounted with a sad expression.

“What is it, Henry?”

"What's up, Henry?"

“Ah, I feel lonesome; I never been here before; but I see away yonder over the buttes, and down there on the prairie, black—all black with buffalo!”

“Ah, I feel so lonely; I’ve never been here before; but I see over there by the hills, and down on the plain, it’s black—all black with buffalo!”

In the afternoon he and I left the party in search of an antelope; until at the distance of a mile or two on the right, the tall white wagons and the little black specks of horsemen were just visible, so slowly advancing that they seemed motionless; and far on the left rose the broken line of scorched, desolate sand-hills. The vast plain waved with tall rank grass that swept our horses’ bellies; it swayed to and fro in billows with the light breeze, and far and near antelope and wolves were moving through it, the hairy backs of the latter alternately appearing and disappearing as they bounded awkwardly along; while the antelope, with the simple curiosity peculiar to them, would often approach as closely, their little horns and white throats just visible above the grass tops, as they gazed eagerly at us with their round black eyes.

In the afternoon, he and I left the party to look for an antelope. A mile or two to our right, we could just make out the tall white wagons and the small black figures of horsemen, moving so slowly they looked like they weren't moving at all. To our left, the jagged line of scorched, barren sand hills rose up. The vast plain was covered with tall, thick grass that brushed against our horses' bellies, swaying back and forth in waves with the gentle breeze. All around us, antelope and wolves were moving through it, the furry backs of the wolves popping in and out of sight as they stumbled along. The antelope, with their natural curiosity, would often come quite close, their little horns and white throats just visible above the grass as they eagerly watched us with their round black eyes.

I dismounted, and amused myself with firing at the wolves. Henry attentively scrutinized the surrounding landscape; at length he gave a shout, and called on me to mount again, pointing in the direction of the sand-hills. A mile and a half from us, two minute black specks slowly traversed the face of one of the bare glaring declivities, and disappeared behind the summit. “Let us go!” cried Henry, belaboring the sides of Five Hundred Dollar; and I following in his wake, we galloped rapidly through the rank grass toward the base of the hills.

I got off my horse and entertained myself by shooting at the wolves. Henry carefully examined the surrounding landscape; finally, he shouted and called for me to get back on, pointing toward the sand hills. About a mile and a half away, two tiny black dots slowly moved across one of the bright, bare slopes and disappeared over the top. “Let’s go!” shouted Henry, hitting the sides of Five Hundred Dollar, and I followed closely behind as we raced through the tall grass toward the base of the hills.

From one of their openings descended a deep ravine, widening as it issued on the prairie. We entered it, and galloping up, in a moment were surrounded by the bleak sand-hills. Half of their steep sides were bare; the rest were scantily clothed with clumps of grass, and various uncouth plants, conspicuous among which appeared the reptile-like prickly-pear. They were gashed with numberless ravines; and as the sky had suddenly darkened, and a cold gusty wind arisen, the strange shrubs and the dreary hills looked doubly wild and desolate. But Henry’s face was all eagerness. He tore off a little hair from the piece of buffalo robe under his saddle, and threw it up, to show the course of the wind. It blew directly before us. The game were therefore to windward, and it was necessary to make our best speed to get around them.

From one of their openings, a deep ravine dropped down and widened as it led into the prairie. We entered it, and after a moment of galloping, we found ourselves surrounded by the stark sand hills. Half of their steep sides were bare; the other half were sparsely dotted with patches of grass and various odd plants, including the reptile-like prickly pear that stood out. They were cut by countless ravines, and as the sky suddenly turned dark and a chilly, gusty wind picked up, the strange shrubs and gloomy hills appeared even more wild and desolate. But Henry’s face was full of excitement. He ripped off a small piece of hair from the buffalo robe under his saddle and tossed it in the air to indicate the direction of the wind. It was blowing directly in front of us. This meant the game was upwind, so we needed to move quickly to get around them.

We scrambled from this ravine, and galloping away through the hollows, soon found another, winding like a snake among the hills, and so deep that it completely concealed us. We rode up the bottom of it, glancing through the shrubbery at its edge, till Henry abruptly jerked his rein, and slid out of his saddle. Full a quarter of a mile distant, on the outline of the farthest hill, a long procession of buffalo were walking, in Indian file, with the utmost gravity and deliberation; then more appeared, clambering from a hollow not far off, and ascending, one behind the other, the grassy slope of another hill; then a shaggy head and a pair of short broken horns appeared issuing out of a ravine close at hand, and with a slow, stately step, one by one, the enormous brutes came into view, taking their way across the valley, wholly unconscious of an enemy. In a moment Henry was worming his way, lying flat on the ground, through grass and prickly-pears, toward his unsuspecting victims. He had with him both my rifle and his own. He was soon out of sight, and still the buffalo kept issuing into the valley. For a long time all was silent. I sat holding his horse, and wondering what he was about, when suddenly, in rapid succession, came the sharp reports of the two rifles, and the whole line of buffalo, quickening their pace into a clumsy trot, gradually disappeared over the ridge of the hill. Henry rose to his feet, and stood looking after them.

We scrambled out of the ravine and galloped away through the hollows, soon finding another one that wound like a snake among the hills and was so deep it completely hid us. We rode up the bottom of it, glancing through the bushes at the edge, until Henry suddenly jerked on his reins and slid out of his saddle. A quarter of a mile away, on the horizon of the farthest hill, a long line of buffalo was walking in single file, moving with the utmost seriousness and purpose. Then more appeared, climbing up from a nearby hollow, one after another, up the grassy slope of another hill. Next, a shaggy head and a pair of broken horns emerged from a ravine close by, and slowly, one by one, the massive animals came into view, crossing the valley, completely unaware of any danger. In a moment, Henry was crawling his way, lying flat on the ground, through the grass and prickly pears, heading towards his unsuspecting targets. He had both my rifle and his with him. He soon vanished from sight, and still, the buffalo kept appearing in the valley. For a long time, everything was quiet. I sat there holding his horse, wondering what he was up to, when suddenly, the sharp sounds of two rifle shots came in quick succession, and the entire line of buffalo quickened their pace into a clumsy trot and gradually disappeared over the hilltop. Henry got to his feet and stood watching them.

“You have missed them,” said I.

"You missed them," I said.

“Yes,” said Henry; “let us go.” He descended into the ravine, loaded the rifles, and mounted his horse.

“Yes,” said Henry; “let’s go.” He climbed down into the ravine, loaded the rifles, and got on his horse.

We rode up the hill after the buffalo. The herd was out of sight when we reached the top, but lying on the grass not far off, was one quite lifeless, and another violently struggling in the death agony.

We rode up the hill after the buffalo. The herd was out of sight when we reached the top, but lying on the grass not far away was one completely lifeless, and another was violently struggling in its death throes.

“You see I miss him!” remarked Henry. He had fired from a distance of more than a hundred and fifty yards, and both balls had passed through the lungs—the true mark in shooting buffalo.

“You see I miss him!” Henry said. He had shot from over a hundred and fifty yards away, and both bullets had gone through the lungs—the real indicator in hunting buffalo.

The darkness increased, and a driving storm came on. Tying our horses to the horns of the victims, Henry began the bloody work of dissection, slashing away with the science of a connoisseur, while I vainly endeavored to imitate him. Old Hendrick recoiled with horror and indignation when I endeavored to tie the meat to the strings of raw hide, always carried for this purpose, dangling at the back of the saddle. After some difficulty we overcame his scruples; and heavily burdened with the more eligible portions of the buffalo, we set out on our return. Scarcely had we emerged from the labyrinth of gorges and ravines, and issued upon the open prairie, when the pricking sleet came driving, gust upon gust, directly in our faces. It was strangely dark, though wanting still an hour of sunset. The freezing storm soon penetrated to the skin, but the uneasy trot of our heavy-gaited horses kept us warm enough, as we forced them unwillingly in the teeth of the sleet and rain, by the powerful suasion of our Indian whips. The prairie in this place was hard and level. A flourishing colony of prairie dogs had burrowed into it in every direction, and the little mounds of fresh earth around their holes were about as numerous as the hills in a cornfield; but not a yelp was to be heard; not the nose of a single citizen was visible; all had retired to the depths of their burrows, and we envied them their dry and comfortable habitations. An hour’s hard riding showed us our tent dimly looming through the storm, one side puffed out by the force of the wind, and the other collapsed in proportion, while the disconsolate horses stood shivering close around, and the wind kept up a dismal whistling in the boughs of three old half-dead trees above. Shaw, like a patriarch, sat on his saddle in the entrance, with a pipe in his mouth, and his arms folded, contemplating, with cool satisfaction, the piles of meat that we flung on the ground before him. A dark and dreary night succeeded; but the sun rose with heat so sultry and languid that the captain excused himself on that account from waylaying an old buffalo bull, who with stupid gravity was walking over the prairie to drink at the river. So much for the climate of the Platte!

The darkness grew deeper, and a fierce storm rolled in. Tying our horses to the horns of the animals we hunted, Henry started the gruesome work of dissection, expertly cutting away while I struggled to keep up with him. Old Hendrick recoiled in horror and anger when I tried to tie the meat to the strings of rawhide we always carried for this task, hanging at the back of the saddle. After some effort, we managed to ease his hesitation; burdened with the best parts of the buffalo, we set off on our way back. Hardly had we come out of the maze of gorges and ravines and onto the open prairie when the biting sleet began to

But it was not the weather alone that had produced this sudden abatement of the sportsmanlike zeal which the captain had always professed. He had been out on the afternoon before, together with several members of his party; but their hunting was attended with no other result than the loss of one of their best horses, severely injured by Sorel, in vainly chasing a wounded bull. The captain, whose ideas of hard riding were all derived from transatlantic sources, expressed the utmost amazement at the feats of Sorel, who went leaping ravines, and dashing at full speed up and down the sides of precipitous hills, lashing his horse with the recklessness of a Rocky Mountain rider. Unfortunately for the poor animal he was the property of R., against whom Sorel entertained an unbounded aversion. The captain himself, it seemed, had also attempted to “run” a buffalo, but though a good and practiced horseman, he had soon given over the attempt, being astonished and utterly disgusted at the nature of the ground he was required to ride over.

But it wasn’t just the weather that had caused this sudden drop in the sportsmanlike enthusiasm that the captain had always claimed to have. He had gone out the afternoon before with several members of his group, but their hunting only resulted in the loss of one of their best horses, which was severely injured by Sorel while trying to chase down a wounded bull. The captain, whose ideas about hard riding came from his experiences across the ocean, was completely astonished by Sorel's feats, as he leaped over ravines and raced up and down steep hills, whipping his horse with the reckless energy of a Rocky Mountain rider. Unfortunately for the poor animal, it belonged to R., whom Sorel had a deep aversion to. The captain himself had also tried to “run” after a buffalo, but despite being a skilled and experienced horseman, he quickly gave up, feeling shocked and completely frustrated by the rough terrain he had to navigate.

Nothing unusual occurred on that day; but on the following morning Henry Chatillon, looking over the oceanlike expanse, saw near the foot of the distant hills something that looked like a band of buffalo. He was not sure, he said, but at all events, if they were buffalo, there was a fine chance for a race. Shaw and I at once determined to try the speed of our horses.

Nothing out of the ordinary happened that day; but the next morning, Henry Chatillon, gazing at the vast ocean-like landscape, spotted something that looked like a herd of buffalo near the base of the distant hills. He wasn't sure, he said, but either way, if they were buffalo, there was a great opportunity for a race. Shaw and I immediately decided to test the speed of our horses.

“Come, captain; we’ll see which can ride hardest, a Yankee or an Irishman.”

“Come on, captain; let’s see who can ride the hardest, a Yankee or an Irishman.”

But the captain maintained a grave and austere countenance. He mounted his led horse, however, though very slowly; and we set out at a trot. The game appeared about three miles distant. As we proceeded the captain made various remarks of doubt and indecision; and at length declared he would have nothing to do with such a breakneck business; protesting that he had ridden plenty of steeple-chases in his day, but he never knew what riding was till he found himself behind a band of buffalo day before yesterday. “I am convinced,” said the captain, “that, ‘running’ is out of the question.* Take my advice now and don’t attempt it. It’s dangerous, and of no use at all.”

But the captain kept a serious and stern expression. He climbed onto his horse, though very slowly, and we set off at a trot. The game seemed to be about three miles away. As we moved forward, the captain made various comments filled with doubt and uncertainty; eventually, he declared he wanted nothing to do with such a risky venture, insisting he had done plenty of steeplechases in his time, but he never knew what real riding was until he found himself behind a herd of buffalo two days ago. “I am convinced,” said the captain, “that ‘running’ is out of the question. Take my advice and don’t try it. It’s dangerous and completely pointless.”

     *The method of hunting called “running” consists in
     attacking the buffalo on horseback and shooting him with
     bullets or arrows when at full-speed.  In “approaching,” the
     hunter conceals himself and crawls on the ground toward the
     game, or lies in wait to kill them.
     *The hunting technique known as “running” involves charging at the buffalo on horseback and shooting it with bullets or arrows while moving at full speed. In “approaching,” the hunter hides and crawls on the ground toward the animals or waits in ambush to kill them.

“Then why did you come out with us? What do you mean to do?”

“Then why did you hang out with us? What are you planning to do?”

“I shall ‘approach,’” replied the captain.

“I'll approach,” replied the captain.

“You don’t mean to ‘approach’ with your pistols, do you? We have all of us left our rifles in the wagons.”

“You're not planning to 'approach' with your guns, are you? We all left our rifles in the wagons.”

The captain seemed staggered at the suggestion. In his characteristic indecision, at setting out, pistols, rifles, “running” and “approaching” were mingled in an inextricable medley in his brain. He trotted on in silence between us for a while; but at length he dropped behind and slowly walked his horse back to rejoin the party. Shaw and I kept on; when lo! as we advanced, the band of buffalo were transformed into certain clumps of tall bushes, dotting the prairie for a considerable distance. At this ludicrous termination of our chase, we followed the example of our late ally, and turned back toward the party. We were skirting the brink of a deep ravine, when we saw Henry and the broad-chested pony coming toward us at a gallop.

The captain seemed taken aback by the suggestion. In his usual indecisiveness, thoughts of pistols, rifles, "running," and "approaching" were all jumbled together in his mind. He rode on in silence between us for a while, but eventually, he fell behind and slowly brought his horse back to rejoin the group. Shaw and I continued on; then, as we moved forward, the herd of buffalo transformed into clusters of tall bushes scattered across the prairie for quite a distance. At this ridiculous end to our chase, we followed the example of our former companion and headed back toward the group. We were walking along the edge of a deep ravine when we spotted Henry and the sturdy pony galloping toward us.

“Here’s old Papin and Frederic, down from Fort Laramie!” shouted Henry, long before he came up. We had for some days expected this encounter. Papin was the bourgeois of Fort Laramie. He had come down the river with the buffalo robes and the beaver, the produce of the last winter’s trading. I had among our baggage a letter which I wished to commit to their hands; so requesting Henry to detain the boats if he could until my return, I set out after the wagons. They were about four miles in advance. In half an hour I overtook them, got the letter, trotted back upon the trail, and looking carefully, as I rode, saw a patch of broken, storm-blasted trees, and moving near them some little black specks like men and horses. Arriving at the place, I found a strange assembly. The boats, eleven in number, deep-laden with the skins, hugged close to the shore, to escape being borne down by the swift current. The rowers, swarthy ignoble Mexicans, turned their brutish faces upward to look, as I reached the bank. Papin sat in the middle of one of the boats upon the canvas covering that protected the robes. He was a stout, robust fellow, with a little gray eye, that had a peculiarly sly twinkle. “Frederic” also stretched his tall rawboned proportions close by the bourgeois, and “mountain-men” completed the group; some lounging in the boats, some strolling on shore; some attired in gayly painted buffalo robes, like Indian dandies; some with hair saturated with red paint, and beplastered with glue to their temples; and one bedaubed with vermilion upon his forehead and each cheek. They were a mongrel race; yet the French blood seemed to predominate; in a few, indeed, might be seen the black snaky eye of the Indian half-breed, and one and all, they seemed to aim at assimilating themselves to their savage associates.

“Here’s old Papin and Frederic, down from Fort Laramie!” shouted Henry, long before he caught up with them. We had been expecting this encounter for several days. Papin was the boss of Fort Laramie. He had come down the river with buffalo robes and beaver pelts, the result of last winter’s trading. I had a letter among our luggage that I wanted to give to them, so I asked Henry to hold the boats if he could until I got back, and set off after the wagons. They were about four miles ahead. Half an hour later, I caught up with them, got the letter, and trotted back along the trail. As I rode, I carefully scanned the area and saw a patch of broken, storm-damaged trees and some little black dots that looked like men and horses moving nearby. When I arrived, I found a strange gathering. The eleven boats, heavily loaded with skins, were pulled close to the shore to avoid being swept away by the swift current. The rowers, dark-skinned and rough-looking Mexicans, lifted their brutish faces to look at me as I reached the bank. Papin sat in the middle of one of the boats on the canvas covering that protected the robes. He was a stocky, strong guy, with a little gray eye that had a particularly sly twinkle. “Frederic” also stretched his tall, lanky frame nearby the boss, and “mountain men” completed the group; some lounged in the boats, some strolled on the shore; some were dressed in brightly painted buffalo robes like Indian show-offs; some had hair soaked in red paint, glued to their temples; and one was smeared with vermilion on his forehead and both cheeks. They were a mixed group; yet the French blood seemed to dominate; in a few, you could see the dark, slinky eyes of the Indian half-breeds, and all of them seemed to try to fit in with their savage counterparts.

I shook hands with the bourgeois, and delivered the letter; then the boats swung round into the stream and floated away. They had reason for haste, for already the voyage from Fort Laramie had occupied a full month, and the river was growing daily more shallow. Fifty times a day the boats had been aground, indeed; those who navigate the Platte invariably spend half their time upon sand-bars. Two of these boats, the property of private traders, afterward separating from the rest, got hopelessly involved in the shallows, not very far from the Pawnee villages, and were soon surrounded by a swarm of the inhabitants. They carried off everything that they considered valuable, including most of the robes; and amused themselves by tying up the men left on guard and soundly whipping them with sticks.

I shook hands with the middle-class folks and handed over the letter; then the boats turned into the current and floated away. They had every reason to hurry, as the trip from Fort Laramie had already taken a full month, and the river was getting shallower by the day. The boats had gotten stuck on sandbars at least fifty times a day; those who navigate the Platte usually spend half their time on them. Two of these boats, owned by private traders, later got separated from the others and got hopelessly stuck in the shallow water not far from the Pawnee villages, quickly surrounded by a crowd of locals. They took everything they thought was valuable, including most of the furs, and entertained themselves by tying up the men left on guard and giving them a good beating with sticks.

We encamped that night upon the bank of the river. Among the emigrants there was an overgrown boy, some eighteen years old, with a head as round and about as large as a pumpkin, and fever-and-ague fits had dyed his face of a corresponding color. He wore an old white hat, tied under his chin with a handkerchief; his body was short and stout, but his legs of disproportioned and appalling length. I observed him at sunset, breasting the hill with gigantic strides, and standing against the sky on the summit, like a colossal pair of tongs. In a moment after we heard him screaming frantically behind the ridge, and nothing doubting that he was in the clutches of Indians or grizzly bears, some of the party caught up their rifles and ran to the rescue. His outcries, however, proved but an ebullition of joyous excitement; he had chased two little wolf pups to their burrow, and he was on his knees, grubbing away like a dog at the mouth of the hole, to get at them.

We set up camp that night on the riverbank. Among the travelers was a tall boy, about eighteen years old, with a head as round and large as a pumpkin, and his face was marked by fever and chills. He wore an old white hat tied under his chin with a handkerchief; his body was short and stocky, but his legs were disproportionately and alarmingly long. I saw him at sunset, climbing the hill with huge strides, and standing against the sky at the top, looking like a giant pair of tongs. Moments later, we heard him screaming frantically behind the ridge, and assuming he was being attacked by Indians or a grizzly bear, some of the group grabbed their rifles and ran to help. However, his cries turned out to be just an expression of pure excitement; he had chased two little wolf pups to their den and was on his knees digging like a dog at the entrance to reach them.

Before morning he caused more serious disquiet in the camp. It was his turn to hold the middle guard; but no sooner was he called up, than he coolly arranged a pair of saddle-bags under a wagon, laid his head upon them, closed his eyes, opened his mouth and fell asleep. The guard on our side of the camp, thinking it no part of his duty to look after the cattle of the emigrants, contented himself with watching our own horses and mules; the wolves, he said, were unusually noisy; but still no mischief was anticipated until the sun rose, and not a hoof or horn was in sight! The cattle were gone! While Tom was quietly slumbering, the wolves had driven them away.

Before morning, he caused a lot of trouble in the camp. It was his turn to take the middle guard, but as soon as he was called up, he casually arranged a pair of saddle-bags under a wagon, laid his head on them, closed his eyes, opened his mouth, and fell asleep. The guard on our side of the camp thought it wasn’t his job to look after the emigrants' cattle and only kept an eye on our own horses and mules. He mentioned that the wolves were unusually loud, but no one expected any trouble until sunrise, and there wasn't a hoof or horn in sight! The cattle were gone! While Tom was sleeping soundly, the wolves had driven them away.

Then we reaped the fruits of R.‘s precious plan of traveling in company with emigrants. To leave them in their distress was not to be thought of, and we felt bound to wait until the cattle could be searched for, and, if possible, recovered. But the reader may be curious to know what punishment awaited the faithless Tom. By the wholesome law of the prairie, he who falls asleep on guard is condemned to walk all day leading his horse by the bridle, and we found much fault with our companions for not enforcing such a sentence on the offender. Nevertheless had he been of our party, I have no doubt he would in like manner have escaped scot-free. But the emigrants went farther than mere forebearance; they decreed that since Tom couldn’t stand guard without falling asleep, he shouldn’t stand guard at all, and henceforward his slumbers were unbroken. Establishing such a premium on drowsiness could have no very beneficial effect upon the vigilance of our sentinels; for it is far from agreeable, after riding from sunrise to sunset, to feel your slumbers interrupted by the butt of a rifle nudging your side, and a sleepy voice growling in your ear that you must get up, to shiver and freeze for three weary hours at midnight.

Then we enjoyed the benefits of R.'s valuable plan to travel with the emigrants. Leaving them in their time of need was not an option, and we felt obligated to stay until the cattle could be located and, if possible, retrieved. However, the reader might be curious about what punishment awaited the untrustworthy Tom. According to the fair law of the prairie, anyone who falls asleep while on guard is condemned to spend the whole day leading their horse by the bridle, and we criticized our companions for not imposing such a penalty on the offender. Still, if he had been part of our group, I have no doubt he would have also gotten away without consequence. But the emigrants went beyond just being lenient; they decided that since Tom couldn’t stay awake on guard, he shouldn’t be on guard at all, and from then on, he enjoyed uninterrupted sleep. Creating such a reward for drowsiness couldn't have a very positive effect on the alertness of our lookouts, because it’s far from pleasant after riding from dawn to dusk to have your sleep disturbed by the butt of a rifle poking your side, and a sleepy voice grumbling in your ear that you have to get up and shiver for three freezing hours in the middle of the night.

“Buffalo! buffalo!” It was but a grim old bull, roaming the prairie by himself in misanthropic seclusion; but there might be more behind the hills. Dreading the monotony and languor of the camp, Shaw and I saddled our horses, buckled our holsters in their places, and set out with Henry Chatillon in search of the game. Henry, not intending to take part in the chase, but merely conducting us, carried his rifle with him, while we left ours behind as incumbrances. We rode for some five or six miles, and saw no living thing but wolves, snakes, and prairie dogs.

“Buffalo! buffalo!” It was just a grumpy old bull, wandering the prairie alone in his lonely misery; but there might be more bison hidden behind the hills. Worried about the boredom and laziness of the camp, Shaw and I saddled our horses, secured our holsters, and set off with Henry Chatillon to look for some game. Henry, who wasn’t planning to join the chase but just guiding us, brought his rifle while we left ours behind as extra baggage. We rode for about five or six miles and saw no living creatures except for wolves, snakes, and prairie dogs.

“This won’t do at all,” said Shaw.

“This isn’t going to work at all,” said Shaw.

“What won’t do?”

"What won't work?"

“There’s no wood about here to make a litter for the wounded man; I have an idea that one of us will need something of the sort before the day is over.”

“There’s no wood around here to make a stretcher for the wounded man; I think one of us will need something like that before the day is over.”

There was some foundation for such an apprehension, for the ground was none of the best for a race, and grew worse continually as we proceeded; indeed it soon became desperately bad, consisting of abrupt hills and deep hollows, cut by frequent ravines not easy to pass. At length, a mile in advance, we saw a band of bulls. Some were scattered grazing over a green declivity, while the rest were crowded more densely together in the wide hollow below. Making a circuit to keep out of sight, we rode toward them until we ascended a hill within a furlong of them, beyond which nothing intervened that could possibly screen us from their view. We dismounted behind the ridge just out of sight, drew our saddle-girths, examined our pistols, and mounting again rode over the hill, and descended at a canter toward them, bending close to our horses’ necks. Instantly they took the alarm; those on the hill descended; those below gathered into a mass, and the whole got in motion, shouldering each other along at a clumsy gallop. We followed, spurring our horses to full speed; and as the herd rushed, crowding and trampling in terror through an opening in the hills, we were close at their heels, half suffocated by the clouds of dust. But as we drew near, their alarm and speed increased; our horses showed signs of the utmost fear, bounding violently aside as we approached, and refusing to enter among the herd. The buffalo now broke into several small bodies, scampering over the hills in different directions, and I lost sight of Shaw; neither of us knew where the other had gone. Old Pontiac ran like a frantic elephant up hill and down hill, his ponderous hoofs striking the prairie like sledge-hammers. He showed a curious mixture of eagerness and terror, straining to overtake the panic-stricken herd, but constantly recoiling in dismay as we drew near. The fugitives, indeed, offered no very attractive spectacle, with their enormous size and weight, their shaggy manes and the tattered remnants of their last winter’s hair covering their backs in irregular shreds and patches, and flying off in the wind as they ran. At length I urged my horse close behind a bull, and after trying in vain, by blows and spurring, to bring him alongside, I shot a bullet into the buffalo from this disadvantageous position. At the report, Pontiac swerved so much that I was again thrown a little behind the game. The bullet, entering too much in the rear, failed to disable the bull, for a buffalo requires to be shot at particular points, or he will certainly escape. The herd ran up a hill, and I followed in pursuit. As Pontiac rushed headlong down on the other side, I saw Shaw and Henry descending the hollow on the right, at a leisurely gallop; and in front, the buffalo were just disappearing behind the crest of the next hill, their short tails erect, and their hoofs twinkling through a cloud of dust.

There was some reason to feel anxious because the ground was pretty rough for a chase and only got worse as we went on; in fact, it quickly became really bad, with steep hills and deep dips, crisscrossed by frequent ravines that were tough to navigate. Eventually, about a mile ahead, we spotted a group of bulls. Some were scattered, grazing on a green slope, while the others were packed together in the wide dip below. We made a detour to stay out of sight and rode toward them until we climbed a hill close enough that nothing could hide us from view. We dismounted behind the ridge, out of sight, tightened our saddle girths, checked our pistols, and got back on our horses to ride over the hill, descending at a canter toward them, leaning low over our horses’ necks. Right away, they noticed us; those on the hill rushed down, and those below clustered together, all moving in a clumsy gallop. We chased after them, pushing our horses to full speed. As the herd panicked and stampeded through a gap in the hills, we were right behind them, nearly choking on the clouds of dust. But as we got closer, their fear and speed intensified; our horses showed signs of extreme fright, rearing back as we approached and refusing to charge into the group. The buffalo split into smaller groups, darting over the hills in different directions, and I lost sight of Shaw; neither of us knew where the other had gone. Old Pontiac dashed like a wild elephant up and down the hills, his heavy hooves pounding the prairie like hammers. He showed a strange mix of eagerness and fear, trying to catch up with the fleeing herd but constantly shying away as we got close. The buffalo weren’t exactly a pretty sight, with their massive size and weight, shaggy manes, and the ragged remnants of last winter’s fur hanging off their backs in uneven strips and patches, blowing away in the wind as they ran. Finally, I urged my horse close behind a bull, and after trying unsuccessfully to get alongside him by kicking and hitting, I shot a bullet into the buffalo from that awkward position. At the bang, Pontiac swerved so much that I fell back a bit behind the game. The bullet entered too far back and didn’t take the bull down, as a buffalo needs to be shot in specific spots or it will definitely get away. The herd ran up a hill, and I followed in hot pursuit. As Pontiac charged headlong down the other side, I saw Shaw and Henry moving down the dip to the right at a relaxed gallop, and ahead, the buffalo were just disappearing over the crest of the next hill, their short tails up, and their hooves sparkling through the dust cloud.

At that moment, I heard Shaw and Henry shouting to me; but the muscles of a stronger arm than mine could not have checked at once the furious course of Pontiac, whose mouth was as insensible as leather. Added to this, I rode him that morning with a common snaffle, having the day before, for the benefit of my other horse, unbuckled from my bridle the curb which I ordinarily used. A stronger and hardier brute never trod the prairie; but the novel sight of the buffalo filled him with terror, and when at full speed he was almost incontrollable. Gaining the top of the ridge, I saw nothing of the buffalo; they had all vanished amid the intricacies of the hills and hollows. Reloading my pistols, in the best way I could, I galloped on until I saw them again scuttling along at the base of the hill, their panic somewhat abated. Down went old Pontiac among them, scattering them to the right and left, and then we had another long chase. About a dozen bulls were before us, scouring over the hills, rushing down the declivities with tremendous weight and impetuosity, and then laboring with a weary gallop upward. Still Pontiac, in spite of spurring and beating, would not close with them. One bull at length fell a little behind the rest, and by dint of much effort I urged my horse within six or eight yards of his side. His back was darkened with sweat; he was panting heavily, while his tongue lolled out a foot from his jaws. Gradually I came up abreast of him, urging Pontiac with leg and rein nearer to his side, then suddenly he did what buffalo in such circumstances will always do; he slackened his gallop, and turning toward us, with an aspect of mingled rage and distress, lowered his huge shaggy head for a charge. Pontiac with a snort, leaped aside in terror, nearly throwing me to the ground, as I was wholly unprepared for such an evolution. I raised my pistol in a passion to strike him on the head, but thinking better of it fired the bullet after the bull, who had resumed his flight, then drew rein and determined to rejoin my companions. It was high time. The breath blew hard from Pontiac’s nostrils, and the sweat rolled in big drops down his sides; I myself felt as if drenched in warm water. Pledging myself (and I redeemed the pledge) to take my revenge at a future opportunity, I looked round for some indications to show me where I was, and what course I ought to pursue; I might as well have looked for landmarks in the midst of the ocean. How many miles I had run or in what direction, I had no idea; and around me the prairie was rolling in steep swells and pitches, without a single distinctive feature to guide me. I had a little compass hung at my neck; and ignorant that the Platte at this point diverged considerably from its easterly course, I thought that by keeping to the northward I should certainly reach it. So I turned and rode about two hours in that direction. The prairie changed as I advanced, softening away into easier undulations, but nothing like the Platte appeared, nor any sign of a human being; the same wild endless expanse lay around me still; and to all appearance I was as far from my object as ever. I began now to consider myself in danger of being lost; and therefore, reining in my horse, summoned the scanty share of woodcraft that I possessed (if that term he applicable upon the prairie) to extricate me. Looking round, it occurred to me that the buffalo might prove my best guides. I soon found one of the paths made by them in their passage to the river; it ran nearly at right angles to my course; but turning my horse’s head in the direction it indicated, his freer gait and erected ears assured me that I was right.

At that moment, I heard Shaw and Henry yelling at me; but even a stronger person than I couldn’t have stopped Pontiac’s furious run, his mouth as unyielding as leather. On top of that, I was riding him with a basic snaffle since I had removed the curb bit from my bridle the day before for my other horse. No sturdier beast ever roamed the prairie; however, the sight of the buffalo terrified him, making him nearly uncontrollable at full speed. When I reached the top of the ridge, I saw no sign of the buffalo; they had all disappeared among the hills and valleys. I reloaded my pistols as best as I could, then galloped on until I spotted them again, scurrying along at the base of the hill, their panic somewhat lessened. Down charged old Pontiac among them, scattering them in both directions, and then we were off on another long chase. About a dozen bulls were ahead, racing over the hills, barreling down the slopes with immense weight and speed, then struggling to gallop upward. Still, despite my spurring and hitting, Pontiac wouldn't close in on them. Eventually, one bull fell slightly behind the others, and with a lot of effort, I got my horse within six or eight yards of its side. Its back was dark with sweat; it was panting hard, with its tongue hanging out a foot from its mouth. Gradually, I caught up to it, pushing Pontiac with my legs and reins closer to its side, then suddenly, the bull did what buffalo do in such situations; it slowed down and turned toward us, its huge shaggy head lowered, ready to charge with a mix of rage and fear. Pontiac snorted and jumped aside in terror, almost throwing me off, completely unprepared for such a move. I raised my pistol in frustration to hit him on the head, but then thought better of it and shot at the bull, which had started running again. I pulled back on the reins, deciding to rejoin my companions. It was about time. Pontiac was breathing hard, sweat dripping down his sides, and I felt drenched in warm water. I promised myself (and I kept that promise) to get my revenge another time, and I looked around for some signs to indicate where I was and which way I should go; I might as well have searched for landmarks in the middle of the ocean. I had no idea how many miles I had run or in what direction, and the prairie around me rolled in steep bumps and dips, lacking any unique features to guide me. I had a small compass hanging around my neck; unaware that the Platte River veered away from its eastern course at this point, I thought if I kept heading north, I would definitely reach it. So I turned and rode in that direction for about two hours. The prairie changed as I moved forward, becoming easier to navigate, but I didn’t see the Platte or any sign of other people; the same wild, endless landscape surrounded me, and it seemed like I was as far from my goal as ever. I began to feel like I was in danger of getting lost, so I pulled back on my horse and called upon the little bit of woodcraft I possessed (if that term even applied on the prairie) to help me out. Looking around, I realized that the buffalo might be my best guides. I soon spotted one of their paths leading to the river; it ran almost at a right angle to my direction, but turning my horse toward it, his more relaxed gait and perked-up ears confirmed that I was going the right way.

But in the meantime my ride had been by no means a solitary one. The whole face of the country was dotted far and wide with countless hundreds of buffalo. They trooped along in files and columns, bulls cows, and calves, on the green faces of the declivities in front. They scrambled away over the hills to the right and left; and far off, the pale blue swells in the extreme distance were dotted with innumerable specks. Sometimes I surprised shaggy old bulls grazing alone, or sleeping behind the ridges I ascended. They would leap up at my approach, stare stupidly at me through their tangled manes, and then gallop heavily away. The antelope were very numerous; and as they are always bold when in the neighborhood of buffalo, they would approach quite near to look at me, gazing intently with their great round eyes, then suddenly leap aside, and stretch lightly away over the prairie, as swiftly as a racehorse. Squalid, ruffianlike wolves sneaked through the hollows and sandy ravines. Several times I passed through villages of prairie dogs, who sat, each at the mouth of his burrow, holding his paws before him in a supplicating attitude, and yelping away most vehemently, energetically whisking his little tail with every squeaking cry he uttered. Prairie dogs are not fastidious in their choice of companions; various long, checkered snakes were sunning themselves in the midst of the village, and demure little gray owls, with a large white ring around each eye, were perched side by side with the rightful inhabitants. The prairie teemed with life. Again and again I looked toward the crowded hillsides, and was sure I saw horsemen; and riding near, with a mixture of hope and dread, for Indians were abroad, I found them transformed into a group of buffalo. There was nothing in human shape amid all this vast congregation of brute forms.

But in the meantime, my ride was far from lonely. The entire landscape was scattered with countless buffalo. They moved in lines and groups—bulls, cows, and calves—across the green slopes ahead. They dashed over the hills to the right and left, and in the far distance, the pale blue hills were marked with countless little dots. Sometimes I would unexpectedly find shaggy old bulls grazing alone or resting behind the ridges I climbed. They would jump up at my approach, stare blankly at me through their messy manes, and then run off heavily. The antelope were abundant, and since they’re always bold when buffalo are around, they would come quite close to check me out, gazing intensely with their big round eyes before suddenly leaping aside and gliding over the prairie as swiftly as a racehorse. Scruffy, rough-looking wolves slinked through the dips and sandy ravines. Several times, I passed through prairie dog towns, where they sat at the entrance of their burrows with their paws held out in a pleading manner, yelping loudly, energetically wagging their little tails with every squeaky sound they made. Prairie dogs aren’t picky about their companions; various long, striped snakes basked in the sun right in the middle of the village, and quiet little gray owls, with big white rings around their eyes, perched alongside the rightful residents. The prairie was alive with activity. Again and again, I glanced toward the crowded hillsides, convinced I saw horseback riders, but as I rode closer, filled with a mix of hope and fear—because Indians were out—I discovered they were just a group of buffalo. There was nothing human among this vast gathering of animal forms.

When I turned down the buffalo path, the prairie seemed changed; only a wolf or two glided past at intervals, like conscious felons, never looking to the right or left. Being now free from anxiety, I was at leisure to observe minutely the objects around me; and here, for the first time, I noticed insects wholly different from any of the varieties found farther to the eastward. Gaudy butterflies fluttered about my horse’s head; strangely formed beetles, glittering with metallic luster, were crawling upon plants that I had never seen before; multitudes of lizards, too, were darting like lightning over the sand.

When I took the buffalo path, the prairie felt different; only a couple of wolves glided by occasionally, like aware criminals, never glancing to the right or left. Now free from worry, I had time to closely observe the objects around me; and for the first time, I noticed insects completely different from those found further east. Colorful butterflies flitted around my horse’s head; oddly shaped beetles, shining with metallic brilliance, crawled on plants I hadn’t seen before; and countless lizards zipped like lightning across the sand.

I had run to a great distance from the river. It cost me a long ride on the buffalo path before I saw from the ridge of a sand-hill the pale surface of the Platte glistening in the midst of its desert valleys, and the faint outline of the hills beyond waving along the sky. From where I stood, not a tree nor a bush nor a living thing was visible throughout the whole extent of the sun-scorched landscape. In half an hour I came upon the trail, not far from the river; and seeing that the party had not yet passed, I turned eastward to meet them, old Pontiac’s long swinging trot again assuring me that I was right in doing so. Having been slightly ill on leaving camp in the morning six or seven hours of rough riding had fatigued me extremely. I soon stopped, therefore; flung my saddle on the ground, and with my head resting on it, and my horse’s trail-rope tied loosely to my arm, lay waiting the arrival of the party, speculating meanwhile on the extent of the injuries Pontiac had received. At length the white wagon coverings rose from the verge of the plain. By a singular coincidence, almost at the same moment two horsemen appeared coming down from the hills. They were Shaw and Henry, who had searched for me a while in the morning, but well knowing the futility of the attempt in such a broken country, had placed themselves on the top of the highest hill they could find, and picketing their horses near them, as a signal to me, had laid down and fallen asleep. The stray cattle had been recovered, as the emigrants told us, about noon. Before sunset, we pushed forward eight miles farther.

I had run a long way from the river. It took me quite a ride along the buffalo path before I finally saw from the top of a sand hill the pale surface of the Platte shining in the middle of its desert valleys, along with the faint outline of the hills in the distance against the sky. From where I stood, there wasn’t a tree, bush, or any living thing in sight across the entire sun-baked landscape. In about half an hour, I found the trail, not far from the river; noticing that the group hadn’t passed yet, I headed east to meet them, with Pontiac’s smooth trot reassuring me that I was making the right choice. Having felt a bit sick after leaving camp in the morning, six or seven hours of rough riding had completely worn me out. So, I stopped, threw my saddle on the ground, and lay down with my head resting on it, keeping my horse’s lead rope loosely tied to my arm while I waited for the group to arrive, all the while wondering about the injuries Pontiac might have suffered. Eventually, I saw the white wagon covers rising from the edge of the plain. Interestingly, almost at the same moment, two horsemen appeared coming down from the hills. They were Shaw and Henry, who had looked for me earlier in the morning, but understanding how pointless it was to search in such rugged terrain, they had climbed to the top of the highest hill they could find, tied their horses nearby as a signal for me, and then laid down to take a nap. The lost cattle had been found, as the emigrants told us, around noon. Before sunset, we moved on another eight miles.

JUNE 7, 1846.—Four men are missing; R., Sorel and two emigrants. They set out this morning after buffalo, and have not yet made their appearance; whether killed or lost, we cannot tell.

JUNE 7, 1846.—Four men are missing: R., Sorel, and two emigrants. They left this morning to hunt buffalo and haven't come back yet; we can't tell if they're dead or just lost.

I find the above in my notebook, and well remember the council held on the occasion. Our fire was the scene of it; or the palpable superiority of Henry Chatillon’s experience and skill made him the resort of the whole camp upon every question of difficulty. He was molding bullets at the fire, when the captain drew near, with a perturbed and care-worn expression of countenance, faithfully reflected on the heavy features of Jack, who followed close behind. Then emigrants came straggling from their wagons toward the common center; various suggestions were made to account for the absence of the four men, and one or two of the emigrants declared that when out after the cattle they had seen Indians dogging them, and crawling like wolves along the ridges of the hills. At this time the captain slowly shook his head with double gravity, and solemnly remarked:

I find the notes in my notebook and clearly remember the meeting that took place. Our fire was the gathering spot; Henry Chatillon’s experience and skill made him the go-to person for everyone in the camp when faced with challenges. He was making bullets by the fire when the captain approached, with a troubled and worn-out look on his face, which was clearly mirrored on Jack's heavy features right behind him. Then, some emigrants began to gather from their wagons toward the center. Various theories were offered to explain the absence of the four men, and a couple of the emigrants said that while out searching for cattle, they had seen Indians tracking them, moving stealthily like wolves along the hills. At that moment, the captain slowly shook his head with extra seriousness and said:

“It’s a serious thing to be traveling through this cursed wilderness”; an opinion in which Jack immediately expressed a thorough coincidence. Henry would not commit himself by declaring any positive opinion.

“It’s a serious thing to be traveling through this cursed wilderness,” Jack immediately agreed. Henry wouldn’t fully commit by stating any definite opinion.

“Maybe he only follow the buffalo too far; maybe Indian kill him; maybe he got lost; I cannot tell!”

“Maybe he just followed the buffalo too far; maybe an Indian killed him; maybe he got lost; I can’t say!”

With this the auditors were obliged to rest content; the emigrants, not in the least alarmed, though curious to know what had become of their comrades, walked back to their wagons and the captain betook himself pensively to his tent. Shaw and I followed his example.

With this, the auditors had to be satisfied; the emigrants, not at all worried but curious about what happened to their friends, walked back to their wagons, and the captain went thoughtfully to his tent. Shaw and I did the same.

“It will be a bad thing for our plans,” said he as we entered, “if these fellows don’t get back safe. The captain is as helpless on the prairie as a child. We shall have to take him and his brother in tow; they will hang on us like lead.”

“It’s going to mess up our plans,” he said as we walked in, “if these guys don’t come back safely. The captain is as lost out here on the prairie as a child. We’ll have to drag him and his brother along; they’re going to weigh us down like a ton of bricks.”

“The prairie is a strange place,” said I. “A month ago I should have thought it rather a startling affair to have an acquaintance ride out in the morning and lose his scalp before night, but here it seems the most natural thing in the world; not that I believe that R. has lost his yet.”

“The prairie is a weird place,” I said. “A month ago, I would have found it shocking if a friend rode out in the morning and lost his scalp by night, but here it feels completely normal; not that I think R. has lost his yet.”

If a man is constitutionally liable to nervous apprehensions, a tour on the distant prairies would prove the best prescription; for though when in the neighborhood of the Rocky Mountains he may at times find himself placed in circumstances of some danger, I believe that few ever breathe that reckless atmosphere without becoming almost indifferent to any evil chance that may befall themselves or their friends.

If a guy is naturally prone to nervous worries, a trip to the faraway prairies would be the best remedy; because although he might occasionally find himself in dangerous situations near the Rocky Mountains, I think that very few people experience that wild atmosphere without becoming almost indifferent to any bad luck that could happen to themselves or their friends.

Shaw had a propensity for luxurious indulgence. He spread his blanket with the utmost accuracy on the ground, picked up the sticks and stones that he thought might interfere with his comfort, adjusted his saddle to serve as a pillow, and composed himself for his night’s rest. I had the first guard that evening; so, taking my rifle, I went out of the tent. It was perfectly dark. A brisk wind blew down from the hills, and the sparks from the fire were streaming over the prairie. One of the emigrants, named Morton, was my companion; and laying our rifles on the grass, we sat down together by the fire. Morton was a Kentuckian, an athletic fellow, with a fine intelligent face, and in his manners and conversation he showed the essential characteristics of a gentleman. Our conversation turned on the pioneers of his gallant native State. The three hours of our watch dragged away at last, and we went to call up the relief.

Shaw loved to pamper himself. He laid out his blanket perfectly on the ground, cleared away any sticks and stones that could disrupt his comfort, adjusted his saddle to use as a pillow, and settled in for the night. I had the first shift that evening, so I grabbed my rifle and stepped out of the tent. It was completely dark. A cool wind blew down from the hills, and the sparks from the fire danced up into the night sky. One of the emigrants, named Morton, joined me; we laid our rifles on the grass and sat together by the fire. Morton was from Kentucky, an athletic guy with a sharp, intelligent face, and his demeanor and conversation reflected the qualities of a true gentleman. Our talk turned to the pioneers from his brave home state. Finally, after our three-hour watch passed, we went to wake up the next shift.

R.‘s guard succeeded mine. He was absent; but the captain, anxious lest the camp should be left defenseless, had volunteered to stand in his place; so I went to wake him up. There was no occasion for it, for the captain had been awake since nightfall. A fire was blazing outside of the tent, and by the light which struck through the canvas, I saw him and Jack lying on their backs, with their eyes wide open. The captain responded instantly to my call; he jumped up, seized the double-barreled rifle, and came out of the tent with an air of solemn determination, as if about to devote himself to the safety of the party. I went and lay down, not doubting that for the next three hours our slumbers would be guarded with sufficient vigilance.

R.’s guard took over my shift. He was gone, but the captain, worried that the camp would be left unprotected, had offered to cover for him, so I went to wake him up. It turned out I didn’t need to, since the captain had been awake since sunset. A fire was crackling outside the tent, and by the light coming through the canvas, I could see him and Jack lying on their backs with their eyes wide open. The captain immediately responded to my call; he jumped up, grabbed the double-barreled rifle, and stepped out of the tent looking serious, as if he was ready to ensure the group’s safety. I lay down, confident that our rest would be watched over with enough vigilance for the next three hours.





CHAPTER VIII

TAKING FRENCH LEAVE

On the 8th of June, at eleven o’clock, we reached the South Fork of the Platte, at the usual fording place. For league upon league the desert uniformity of the prospect was almost unbroken; the hills were dotted with little tufts of shriveled grass, but betwixt these the white sand was glaring in the sun; and the channel of the river, almost on a level with the plain, was but one great sand-bed, about half a mile wide. It was covered with water, but so scantily that the bottom was scarcely hidden; for, wide as it is, the average depth of the Platte does not at this point exceed a foot and a half. Stopping near its bank, we gathered bois de vache, and made a meal of buffalo meat. Far off, on the other side, was a green meadow, where we could see the white tents and wagons of an emigrant camp; and just opposite to us we could discern a group of men and animals at the water’s edge. Four or five horsemen soon entered the river, and in ten minutes had waded across and clambered up the loose sand-bank. They were ill-looking fellows, thin and swarthy, with care-worn, anxious faces and lips rigidly compressed. They had good cause for anxiety; it was three days since they first encamped here, and on the night of their arrival they had lost 123 of their best cattle, driven off by the wolves, through the neglect of the man on guard. This discouraging and alarming calamity was not the first that had overtaken them. Since leaving the settlements, they had met with nothing but misfortune. Some of their party had died; one man had been killed by the Pawnees; and about a week before, they had been plundered by the Dakotas of all their best horses, the wretched animals on which our visitors were mounted being the only ones that were left. They had encamped, they told us, near sunset, by the side of the Platte, and their oxen were scattered over the meadow, while the band of horses were feeding a little farther off. Suddenly the ridges of the hills were alive with a swarm of mounted Indians, at least six hundred in number, who, with a tremendous yell, came pouring down toward the camp, rushing up within a few rods, to the great terror of the emigrants; but suddenly wheeling, they swept around the band of horses, and in five minutes had disappeared with their prey through the openings of the hills.

On June 8th, at eleven o'clock, we arrived at the South Fork of the Platte, at the usual crossing point. For mile after mile, the flat landscape was nearly unchanging; the hills were dotted with small clumps of dried grass, but between them, the white sand shone brightly under the sun. The river’s channel, almost level with the surrounding land, was just one big expanse of sand, about half a mile wide. It had some water, but it was so shallow that the bottom was barely concealed; despite its width, the average depth of the Platte here is only about a foot and a half. Stopping near the bank, we collected some firewood and had a meal of buffalo meat. Far off on the other side, we saw a green meadow with white tents and wagons from an emigrant camp; just across from us, we noticed a group of men and animals at the water's edge. A few horsemen soon rode into the river, and in about ten minutes, they waded across and climbed up the loose sandbank. They looked rough—thin, sun-tanned, with worried, anxious faces and tightly pressed lips. They had good reason to be worried; they had camped here for three days, and on the night they arrived, they lost 123 of their best cattle to wolves due to the guard’s negligence. This discouraging and alarming disaster wasn’t the first to hit them. Since leaving the settlements, all they had faced were misfortunes. Some members of their group had died; one man was killed by the Pawnees; and about a week earlier, they were robbed by the Dakotas of all their best horses, leaving only the miserable animals that our visitors were riding. They told us they had set up camp by the Platte near sunset, with their oxen scattered in the meadow while their horses were grazing a bit farther away. Suddenly, the hills came alive with a swarm of at least six hundred mounted Indians, who came charging toward the camp with a terrifying yell, rushing close to the emigrants’ location; but then they quickly turned, swept around the band of horses, and within five minutes, they vanished into the hills with their stolen prize.

As these emigrants were telling their story, we saw four other men approaching. They proved to be R. and his companions, who had encountered no mischance of any kind, but had only wandered too far in pursuit of the game. They said they had seen no Indians, but only “millions of buffalo”; and both R. and Sorel had meat dangling behind their saddles.

As these emigrants were sharing their story, we noticed four other men coming our way. It turned out to be R. and his friends, who hadn’t faced any trouble but had just ventured too far while hunting. They mentioned they hadn’t seen any Indians, only “millions of buffalo”; and both R. and Sorel had meat hanging from their saddles.

The emigrants re-crossed the river, and we prepared to follow. First the heavy ox-wagons plunged down the bank, and dragged slowly over the sand-beds; sometimes the hoofs of the oxen were scarcely wetted by the thin sheet of water; and the next moment the river would be boiling against their sides, and eddying fiercely around the wheels. Inch by inch they receded from the shore, dwindling every moment, until at length they seemed to be floating far in the very middle of the river. A more critical experiment awaited us; for our little mule-cart was but ill-fitted for the passage of so swift a stream. We watched it with anxiety till it seemed to be a little motionless white speck in the midst of the waters; and it WAS motionless, for it had stuck fast in a quicksand. The little mules were losing their footing, the wheels were sinking deeper and deeper, and the water began to rise through the bottom and drench the goods within. All of us who had remained on the hither bank galloped to the rescue; the men jumped into the water, adding their strength to that of the mules, until by much effort the cart was extricated, and conveyed in safety across.

The emigrants crossed the river again, and we got ready to follow. First, the heavy ox-wagons went down the bank and slowly pulled over the sandy bottoms; sometimes the oxen's hooves barely touched the thin layer of water, and the next moment the river was crashing against their sides, swirling fiercely around the wheels. Inch by inch, they moved away from the shore, diminishing every moment, until they finally appeared to be floating in the very middle of the river. A more challenging trial awaited us; our little mule-cart was poorly suited for crossing such a fast current. We watched it anxiously until it seemed like a small, motionless white dot in the water; and it was indeed motionless, as it had become stuck in quicksand. The little mules were losing their footing, the wheels were sinking deeper and deeper, and water started rising through the bottom, soaking the goods inside. All of us who had stayed on this side of the bank rushed to help; the men jumped into the water, adding their strength to the mules until, with a lot of effort, the cart was freed and safely brought across.

As we gained the other bank, a rough group of men surrounded us. They were not robust, nor large of frame, yet they had an aspect of hardy endurance. Finding at home no scope for their fiery energies, they had betaken themselves to the prairie; and in them seemed to be revived, with redoubled force, that fierce spirit which impelled their ancestors, scarce more lawless than themselves, from the German forests, to inundate Europe and break to pieces the Roman empire. A fortnight afterward this unfortunate party passed Fort Laramie, while we were there. Not one of their missing oxen had been recovered, though they had remained encamped a week in search of them; and they had been compelled to abandon a great part of their baggage and provisions, and yoke cows and heifers to their wagons to carry them forward upon their journey, the most toilsome and hazardous part of which lay still before them.

As we reached the other side, a rough group of men surrounded us. They weren't strong or big, but they had an air of tough endurance. Finding no outlet for their restless energy back home, they had come to the prairie; in them seemed to be rekindled, with even greater intensity, that fierce spirit which drove their ancestors, not much less wild than they were, from the German forests to flood Europe and dismantle the Roman empire. Two weeks later, this unfortunate group passed Fort Laramie while we were there. None of their missing oxen had been found, even though they had camped for a week searching for them; they were forced to leave behind a large part of their baggage and supplies, and they had to yoke cows and heifers to their wagons to keep moving on their journey, the hardest and most dangerous part of which still lay ahead of them.

It is worth noticing that on the Platte one may sometimes see the shattered wrecks of ancient claw-footed tables, well waxed and rubbed, or massive bureaus of carved oak. These, many of them no doubt the relics of ancestral prosperity in the colonial time, must have encountered strange vicissitudes. Imported, perhaps, originally from England; then, with the declining fortunes of their owners, borne across the Alleghenies to the remote wilderness of Ohio or Kentucky; then to Illinois or Missouri; and now at last fondly stowed away in the family wagon for the interminable journey to Oregon. But the stern privations of the way are little anticipated. The cherished relic is soon flung out to scorch and crack upon the hot prairie.

It’s notable that along the Platte, you can sometimes spot the broken remains of old claw-foot tables, well-polished and cared for, or heavy oak dressers. Many of these pieces are likely relics of their owners’ past wealth during colonial times and have gone through quite the journey. Originally imported from England, they were later transported across the Alleghenies as their owners' fortunes faded, making their way to the remote wilderness of Ohio or Kentucky, then to Illinois or Missouri, and now finally packed away in the family wagon for the long trek to Oregon. However, the harsh realities of the journey are often not foreseen. The beloved antique is soon tossed out to bake and crack in the hot prairie sun.

We resumed our journey; but we had gone scarcely a mile, when R. called out from the rear:

We continued our journey; but we had barely gone a mile when R. called out from the back:

“We’ll camp here.”

"Let's camp here."

“Why do you want to camp? Look at the sun. It is not three o’clock yet.”

“Why do you want to camp? Look at the sun. It’s not three o’clock yet.”

“We’ll camp here!”

“Let’s camp here!”

This was the only reply vouchsafed. Delorier was in advance with his cart. Seeing the mule-wagon wheeling from the track, he began to turn his own team in the same direction.

This was the only response given. Delorier was ahead with his cart. Seeing the mule-wagon veering off the path, he started to turn his own team in the same direction.

“Go on, Delorier,” and the little cart advanced again. As we rode on, we soon heard the wagon of our confederates creaking and jolting on behind us, and the driver, Wright, discharging a furious volley of oaths against his mules; no doubt venting upon them the wrath which he dared not direct against a more appropriate object.

“Go on, Delorier,” and the little cart moved forward again. As we continued, we quickly heard the wagon of our companions creaking and bouncing behind us, and the driver, Wright, unleashing a stream of curses at his mules; no doubt releasing his frustration on them instead of a more suitable target.

Something of this sort had frequently occurred. Our English friend was by no means partial to us, and we thought we discovered in his conduct a deliberate intention to thwart and annoy us, especially by retarding the movements of the party, which he knew that we, being Yankees, were anxious to quicken. Therefore, he would insist on encamping at all unseasonable hours, saying that fifteen miles was a sufficient day’s journey. Finding our wishes systematically disregarded, we took the direction of affairs into our own hands. Keeping always in advance, to the inexpressible indignation of R., we encamped at what time and place we thought proper, not much caring whether the rest chose to follow or not. They always did so, however, pitching their tents near ours, with sullen and wrathful countenances.

This kind of thing happened often. Our English friend wasn’t really on our side, and we thought he was deliberately trying to frustrate and irritate us, especially by slowing down the group's pace, which he knew we, being Americans, wanted to speed up. So, he would insist on setting up camp at inconvenient times, claiming that fifteen miles was enough for a day's journey. Since our preferences were consistently ignored, we decided to take control of the situation. Always moving ahead, much to R.'s utter frustration, we set up camp whenever and wherever we wanted, not really caring if the others chose to follow us or not. They always did, though, pitching their tents near ours with gloomy and angry expressions.

Traveling together on these agreeable terms did not suit our tastes; for some time we had meditated a separation. The connection with this party had cost us various delays and inconveniences; and the glaring want of courtesy and good sense displayed by their virtual leader did not dispose us to bear these annoyances with much patience. We resolved to leave camp early in the morning, and push forward as rapidly as possible for Fort Laramie, which we hoped to reach, by hard traveling, in four or five days. The captain soon trotted up between us, and we explained our intentions.

Traveling together under these agreeable terms wasn't to our liking; for a while, we had been thinking about parting ways. Being associated with this group caused us various delays and inconveniences, and the obvious lack of courtesy and common sense shown by their unofficial leader didn’t make us want to tolerate these frustrations very patiently. We decided to leave camp early in the morning and move as quickly as possible towards Fort Laramie, which we hoped to reach within four or five days with some hard traveling. The captain soon rode up between us, and we explained our plans.

“A very extraordinary proceeding, upon my word!” he remarked. Then he began to enlarge upon the enormity of the design. The most prominent impression in his mind evidently was that we were acting a base and treacherous part in deserting his party, in what he considered a very dangerous stage of the journey. To palliate the atrocity of our conduct, we ventured to suggest that we were only four in number while his party still included sixteen men; and as, moreover, we were to go forward and they were to follow, at least a full proportion of the perils he apprehended would fall upon us. But the austerity of the captain’s features would not relax. “A very extraordinary proceeding, gentlemen!” and repeating this, he rode off to confer with his principal.

“A very unusual move, I must say!” he commented. Then he started to elaborate on the seriousness of the situation. The main impression on his mind was clearly that we were being cowardly and disloyal by leaving his group at what he thought was a very precarious moment in the journey. To soften the blow of our actions, we pointed out that we were only four compared to his sixteen men; plus, we were heading forward while they would be following, so a fair share of the dangers he feared would still be on us. But the captain's stern expression didn't change. “A very unusual move, gentlemen!” he repeated, then rode off to talk with his superior.

By good luck, we found a meadow of fresh grass, and a large pool of rain-water in the midst of it. We encamped here at sunset. Plenty of buffalo skulls were lying around, bleaching in the sun; and sprinkled thickly among the grass was a great variety of strange flowers. I had nothing else to do, and so gathering a handful, I sat down on a buffalo skull to study them. Although the offspring of a wilderness, their texture was frail and delicate, and their colors extremely rich; pure white, dark blue, and a transparent crimson. One traveling in this country seldom has leisure to think of anything but the stern features of the scenery and its accompaniments, or the practical details of each day’s journey. Like them, he and his thoughts grow hard and rough. But now these flowers suddenly awakened a train of associations as alien to the rude scene around me as they were themselves; and for the moment my thoughts went back to New England. A throng of fair and well-remembered faces rose, vividly as life, before me. “There are good things,” thought I, “in the savage life, but what can it offer to replace those powerful and ennobling influences that can reach unimpaired over more than three thousand miles of mountains, forests and deserts?”

By chance, we came across a meadow filled with fresh grass and a big puddle of rainwater right in the middle of it. We set up camp there at sunset. Lots of buffalo skulls were scattered around, bleaching in the sun, and among the grass were many different types of strange flowers. With nothing else to do, I picked a handful and sat on a buffalo skull to examine them. Even though they were from the wilderness, their texture was fragile and delicate, and their colors were incredibly vibrant—pure white, deep blue, and a clear crimson. When traveling in this area, you rarely have the time to think about anything beyond the harsh landscape and the practical aspects of each day's journey. Like the scenery, he and his thoughts became tough and rugged. But now, these flowers suddenly brought to mind memories that were as foreign to the rough environment around me as they were to the flowers themselves, and for a moment, my thoughts drifted back to New England. A crowd of familiar and cherished faces appeared before me, as vivid as if they were right in front of me. “There are good things in the wild life,” I thought, “but what can it offer that can replace those powerful and uplifting influences that can reach unharmed over more than three thousand miles of mountains, forests, and deserts?”

Before sunrise on the next morning our tent was down; we harnessed our best horses to the cart and left the camp. But first we shook hands with our friends the emigrants, who sincerely wished us a safe journey, though some others of the party might easily have been consoled had we encountered an Indian war party on the way. The captain and his brother were standing on the top of a hill, wrapped in their plaids, like spirits of the mist, keeping an anxious eye on the band of horses below. We waved adieu to them as we rode off the ground. The captain replied with a salutation of the utmost dignity, which Jack tried to imitate; but being little practiced in the gestures of polite society, his effort was not a very successful one.

Before sunrise the next morning, we packed up our tent, hitched our best horses to the cart, and left the camp. But first, we shook hands with our friends, the emigrants, who genuinely wished us a safe journey, even though some others in the group might have found it amusing if we ran into an Indian war party along the way. The captain and his brother were standing on top of a hill, wrapped in their blankets, like misty spirits, keeping a worried eye on the herd of horses below. We waved goodbye to them as we rode off. The captain responded with a very dignified salute, which Jack tried to copy, but since he wasn't very experienced in the gestures of polite society, his attempt didn’t go very well.

In five minutes we had gained the foot of the hills, but here we came to a stop. Old Hendrick was in the shafts, and being the very incarnation of perverse and brutish obstinacy, he utterly refused to move. Delorier lashed and swore till he was tired, but Hendrick stood like a rock, grumbling to himself and looking askance at his enemy, until he saw a favorable opportunity to take his revenge, when he struck out under the shaft with such cool malignity of intention that Delorier only escaped the blow by a sudden skip into the air, such as no one but a Frenchman could achieve. Shaw and he then joined forces, and lashed on both sides at once. The brute stood still for a while till he could bear it no longer, when all at once he began to kick and plunge till he threatened the utter demolition of the cart and harness. We glanced back at the camp, which was in full sight. Our companions, inspired by emulation, were leveling their tents and driving in their cattle and horses.

In five minutes, we had reached the base of the hills, but here we came to a stop. Old Hendrick was in the shafts, and being the very embodiment of stubbornness and brute force, he flatly refused to budge. Delorier lashed out and swore until he was drained, but Hendrick stood firm, grumbling to himself and shooting glances at his opponent, waiting for a chance to get back at him. When he saw an opening, he swung out from under the shaft with such intentional malice that Delorier only avoided the hit by leaping into the air in a way that only a Frenchman could manage. Shaw then teamed up with him, and they both lashed at Hendrick from either side. The beast stood still for a moment until he could take it no longer, and suddenly he started kicking and bucking, threatening to completely destroy the cart and harness. We looked back at the camp, which was clearly visible. Our companions, inspired by competition, were putting up their tents and rounding up their cattle and horses.

“Take the horse out,” said I.

“Take the horse out,” I said.

I took the saddle from Pontiac and put it upon Hendrick; the former was harnessed to the cart in an instant. “Avance donc!” cried Delorier. Pontiac strode up the hill, twitching the little cart after him as if it were a feather’s weight; and though, as we gained the top, we saw the wagons of our deserted comrades just getting into motion, we had little fear that they could overtake us. Leaving the trail, we struck directly across the country, and took the shortest cut to reach the main stream of the Platte. A deep ravine suddenly intercepted us. We skirted its sides until we found them less abrupt, and then plunged through the best way we could. Passing behind the sandy ravines called “Ash Hollow,” we stopped for a short nooning at the side of a pool of rain-water; but soon resumed our journey, and some hours before sunset were descending the ravines and gorges opening downward upon the Platte to the west of Ash Hollow. Our horses waded to the fetlock in sand; the sun scorched like fire, and the air swarmed with sand-flies and mosquitoes.

I took the saddle from Pontiac and put it on Hendrick; the former was hitched to the cart in no time. “Let’s go!” shouted Delorier. Pontiac headed up the hill, dragging the little cart behind him as if it weighed nothing; and even though, when we reached the top, we saw the wagons of our abandoned friends just starting to move, we weren’t worried they could catch up to us. We left the trail and headed straight across the land to take the quickest route to the main stream of the Platte. A deep ravine suddenly blocked our path. We went along its edges until we found them less steep, then pushed our way through as best as we could. After passing behind the sandy ravines known as “Ash Hollow,” we took a short lunch break by a rainwater pool; but we soon got back on the road, and a few hours before sunset, we were descending the ravines and gorges leading down to the Platte, west of Ash Hollow. Our horses waded through sand up to their ankles; the sun was blazing down, and the air was full of sand-flies and mosquitoes.

At last we gained the Platte. Following it for about five miles, we saw, just as the sun was sinking, a great meadow, dotted with hundreds of cattle, and beyond them an emigrant encampment. A party of about a dozen came out to meet us, looking upon us at first with cold and suspicious faces. Seeing four men, different in appearance and equipment from themselves, emerging from the hills, they had taken us for the van of the much-dreaded Mormons, whom they were very apprehensive of encountering. We made known our true character, and then they greeted us cordially. They expressed much surprise that so small a party should venture to traverse that region, though in fact such attempts are not unfrequently made by trappers and Indian traders. We rode with them to their camp. The wagons, some fifty in number, with here and there a tent intervening, were arranged as usual in a circle; in the area within the best horses were picketed, and the whole circumference was glowing with the dusky light of the fires, displaying the forms of the women and children who were crowded around them. This patriarchal scene was curious and striking enough; but we made our escape from the place with all possible dispatch, being tormented by the intrusive curiosity of the men who crowded around us. Yankee curiosity was nothing to theirs. They demanded our names, where we came from, where we were going, and what was our business. The last query was particularly embarrassing; since traveling in that country, or indeed anywhere, from any other motive than gain, was an idea of which they took no cognizance. Yet they were fine-looking fellows, with an air of frankness, generosity, and even courtesy, having come from one of the least barbarous of the frontier counties.

At last we reached the Platte. After following it for about five miles, we saw, just as the sun was setting, a huge meadow filled with hundreds of cattle, and beyond that an emigrant camp. A group of about a dozen people came out to meet us, initially looking at us with cold and wary expressions. Seeing four men who looked different in both appearance and gear from themselves coming down from the hills, they had mistaken us for the leading group of the much-feared Mormons, whom they were very anxious to avoid. We explained who we were, and then they welcomed us warmly. They expressed surprise that such a small group would dare to cross that area, although in reality, such attempts are often made by trappers and Indian traders. We rode with them to their camp. The wagons, around fifty in total, with a few tents scattered in between, were arranged in the usual circle; in the area inside, the best horses were tied up, and the whole perimeter was illuminated by the soft glow of the fires, revealing the figures of women and children gathered around them. This family-oriented scene was quite interesting and striking; however, we quickly made our way out of the place due to the relentless curiosity of the men who surrounded us. Their curiosity was far greater than the typical Yankee curiosity. They asked for our names, where we were from, where we were headed, and what our purpose was. The last question was particularly awkward, as the idea of traveling through that area, or anywhere else, for reasons other than profit was something they couldn't comprehend. Still, they were good-looking guys, exuding an air of honesty, generosity, and even politeness, having come from one of the more civilized frontier counties.

We passed about a mile beyond them, and encamped. Being too few in number to stand guard without excessive fatigue, we extinguished our fire, lest it should attract the notice of wandering Indians; and picketing our horses close around us, slept undisturbed till morning. For three days we traveled without interruption, and on the evening of the third encamped by the well-known spring on Scott’s Bluff.

We went about a mile past them and set up camp. Since there were too few of us to keep watch without getting overly tired, we put out our fire to avoid drawing attention from wandering Indians. We secured our horses close to us and slept soundly until morning. We traveled without any issues for three days, and on the evening of the third day, we camped by the familiar spring at Scott’s Bluff.

Henry Chatillon and I rode out in the morning, and descending the western side of the Bluff, were crossing the plain beyond. Something that seemed to me a file of buffalo came into view, descending the hills several miles before us. But Henry reined in his horse, and keenly peering across the prairie with a better and more practiced eye, soon discovered its real nature. “Indians!” he said. “Old Smoke’s lodges, I b’lieve. Come! let us go! Wah! get up, now, Five Hundred Dollar!” And laying on the lash with good will, he galloped forward, and I rode by his side. Not long after, a black speck became visible on the prairie, full two miles off. It grew larger and larger; it assumed the form of a man and horse; and soon we could discern a naked Indian, careering at full gallop toward us. When within a furlong he wheeled his horse in a wide circle, and made him describe various mystic figures upon the prairie; and Henry immediately compelled Five Hundred Dollar to execute similar evolutions. “It IS Old Smoke’s village,” said he, interpreting these signals; “didn’t I say so?”

Henry Chatillon and I rode out in the morning, and after going down the western side of the Bluff, we crossed the plain beyond. Something that looked like a line of buffalo appeared in the distance, coming down the hills several miles ahead of us. But Henry pulled back on his horse and, with a sharper eye, soon figured out what it really was. “Indians!” he said. “I think it's Old Smoke’s camp. Come on! Let’s go! Wah! Get up, now, Five Hundred Dollar!” He spurred his horse eagerly, and I rode alongside him. A little while later, a dark spot appeared on the prairie, about two miles away. It got bigger and bigger; it turned into a man and a horse, and soon we saw a naked Indian racing toward us. When he got close, he turned his horse in a wide circle, making it trace various intricate patterns on the prairie; Henry immediately urged Five Hundred Dollar to do the same. “It IS Old Smoke’s village,” he said, interpreting the signals; “didn’t I tell you?”

As the Indian approached we stopped to wait for him, when suddenly he vanished, sinking, as it were, into the earth. He had come upon one of the deep ravines that everywhere intersect these prairies. In an instant the rough head of his horse stretched upward from the edge and the rider and steed came scrambling out, and bounded up to us; a sudden jerk of the rein brought the wild panting horse to a full stop. Then followed the needful formality of shaking hands. I forget our visitor’s name. He was a young fellow, of no note in his nation; yet in his person and equipments he was a good specimen of a Dakota warrior in his ordinary traveling dress. Like most of his people, he was nearly six feet high; lithely and gracefully, yet strongly proportioned; and with a skin singularly clear and delicate. He wore no paint; his head was bare; and his long hair was gathered in a clump behind, to the top of which was attached transversely, both by way of ornament and of talisman, the mystic whistle, made of the wingbone of the war eagle, and endowed with various magic virtues. From the back of his head descended a line of glittering brass plates, tapering from the size of a doubloon to that of a half-dime, a cumbrous ornament, in high vogue among the Dakotas, and for which they pay the traders a most extravagant price; his chest and arms were naked, the buffalo robe, worn over them when at rest, had fallen about his waist, and was confined there by a belt. This, with the gay moccasins on his feet, completed his attire. For arms he carried a quiver of dogskin at his back, and a rude but powerful bow in his hand. His horse had no bridle; a cord of hair, lashed around his jaw, served in place of one. The saddle was of most singular construction; it was made of wood covered with raw hide, and both pommel and cantle rose perpendicularly full eighteen inches, so that the warrior was wedged firmly in his seat, whence nothing could dislodge him but the bursting of the girths.

As the Indian came closer, we stopped to wait for him, when suddenly he disappeared, sinking into the ground as if swallowed by it. He had encountered one of the deep ravines that crisscross these prairies. In an instant, the rugged head of his horse appeared from the edge, and both the rider and his steed scrambled out and bounded toward us; a quick pull on the reins brought the wild, panting horse to a complete stop. Then there was the necessary formality of shaking hands. I forget our visitor’s name. He was a young guy, not particularly noteworthy in his tribe; yet in his appearance and gear, he was a good representation of a Dakota warrior in his typical travel outfit. Like most of his people, he stood nearly six feet tall, lithe and graceful, yet strongly built, with a remarkably clear and smooth complexion. He wore no paint; his head was bare, and his long hair was gathered in a ponytail at the back, to which was attached, both as decoration and amulet, a mystical whistle made from the wingbone of a war eagle, believed to have various magical powers. From the back of his head hung a line of shiny brass plates that tapered from the size of a doubloon to that of a half-dime, a bulky ornament that was quite popular among the Dakotas, for which they pay traders an exorbitant price. His chest and arms were bare, the buffalo robe he wore over them when resting had slipped down to his waist and was secured there by a belt. This, along with the colorful moccasins on his feet, completed his outfit. For weapons, he had a dogskin quiver on his back, and he held a crude but powerful bow in his hand. His horse had no bridle; a hair cord tied around its jaw served in place of one. The saddle was uniquely constructed; it was made of wood covered with rawhide, and both the front and back parts rose straight upward a full eighteen inches, so that the warrior was firmly wedged in his seat, from which nothing could dislodge him except if the girths burst.

Advancing with our new companion, we found more of his people seated in a circle on the top of a hill; while a rude procession came straggling down the neighboring hollow, men, women, and children, with horses dragging the lodge-poles behind them. All that morning, as we moved forward, tall savages were stalking silently about us. At noon we reached Horse Creek; and as we waded through the shallow water, we saw a wild and striking scene. The main body of the Indians had arrived before us. On the farther bank stood a large and strong man, nearly naked, holding a white horse by a long cord, and eyeing us as we approached. This was the chief, whom Henry called “Old Smoke.” Just behind him his youngest and favorite squaw sat astride of a fine mule; it was covered with caparisons of whitened skins, garnished with blue and white beads, and fringed with little ornaments of metal that tinkled with every movement of the animal. The girl had a light clear complexion, enlivened by a spot of vermilion on each cheek; she smiled, not to say grinned, upon us, showing two gleaming rows of white teeth. In her hand, she carried the tall lance of her unchivalrous lord, fluttering with feathers; his round white shield hung at the side of her mule; and his pipe was slung at her back. Her dress was a tunic of deerskin, made beautifully white by means of a species of clay found on the prairie, and ornamented with beads, arrayed in figures more gay than tasteful, and with long fringes at all the seams. Not far from the chief stood a group of stately figures, their white buffalo robes thrown over their shoulders, gazing coldly upon us; and in the rear, for several acres, the ground was covered with a temporary encampment; men, women, and children swarmed like bees; hundreds of dogs, of all sizes and colors, ran restlessly about; and, close at hand, the wide shallow stream was alive with boys, girls, and young squaws, splashing, screaming, and laughing in the water. At the same time a long train of emigrant wagons were crossing the creek, and dragging on in their slow, heavy procession, passed the encampment of the people whom they and their descendants, in the space of a century, are to sweep from the face of the earth.

Moving forward with our new companion, we encountered more of his people sitting in a circle at the top of a hill, while a messy procession trudged down the nearby hollow, consisting of men, women, and children, with horses pulling lodge poles behind them. Throughout that morning, as we advanced, tall warriors quietly stalked around us. By noon, we arrived at Horse Creek; and as we waded through the shallow water, we witnessed a wild and striking scene. The main group of Indians had gotten there before us. On the other bank stood a large, strong man, almost naked, holding a white horse by a long rope and watching us as we approached. This was the chief, whom Henry called “Old Smoke.” Just behind him, his youngest and favorite wife sat on a fine mule; it was adorned with whitened leather, decorated with blue and white beads, and trimmed with little metal ornaments that jingled with every move of the animal. The girl had a light complexion, brightened by a dash of red on each cheek; she smiled, or rather grinned, at us, revealing two shiny rows of white teeth. In her hand, she held the tall spear of her unchivalrous husband, decorated with feathers; his round white shield hung at her mule's side, and his pipe was slung across her back. Her dress was a deerskin tunic, made beautifully white with a type of clay found on the prairie, decorated with beads in more colorful patterns than tasteful ones, and with long fringes at all the seams. Not far from the chief stood a group of dignified figures, their white buffalo robes draped over their shoulders, gazing at us with indifference; and behind them, for several acres, the ground was filled with a temporary camp; men, women, and children swarmed like bees; hundreds of dogs of all sizes and colors ran around restlessly; and nearby, the wide shallow stream was lively with boys, girls, and young women splashing, screaming, and laughing in the water. At the same time, a long line of emigrant wagons was crossing the creek, slowly dragging along in their heavy procession, passing by the encampment of the people whom they and their descendants, within a century, would drive from the face of the earth.

The encampment itself was merely a temporary one during the heat of the day. None of the lodges were erected; but their heavy leather coverings, and the long poles used to support them, were scattered everywhere around, among weapons, domestic utensils, and the rude harness of mules and horses. The squaws of each lazy warrior had made him a shelter from the sun, by stretching a few buffalo robes, or the corner of a lodge-covering upon poles; and here he sat in the shade, with a favorite young squaw, perhaps, at his side, glittering with all imaginable trinkets. Before him stood the insignia of his rank as a warrior, his white shield of bull-hide, his medicine bag, his bow and quiver, his lance and his pipe, raised aloft on a tripod of three poles. Except the dogs, the most active and noisy tenants of the camp were the old women, ugly as Macbeth’s witches, with their hair streaming loose in the wind, and nothing but the tattered fragment of an old buffalo robe to hide their shriveled wiry limbs. The day of their favoritism passed two generations ago; now the heaviest labors of the camp devolved upon them; they were to harness the horses, pitch the lodges, dress the buffalo robes, and bring in meat for the hunters. With the cracked voices of these hags, the clamor of dogs, the shouting and laughing of children and girls, and the listless tranquillity of the warriors, the whole scene had an effect too lively and picturesque ever to be forgotten.

The campsite was just a temporary setup during the hottest part of the day. None of the tents were up; instead, their heavy leather covers and the long poles for support were scattered all around, mixed in with weapons, cooking tools, and the rough gear for mules and horses. The wives of each laid-back warrior had created a sunshade for him by draping a few buffalo skins or part of a tent cover over some poles; and there he sat in the shade, maybe with a young favorite wife beside him, adorned with all sorts of shiny jewelry. In front of him stood the symbols of his status as a warrior: his bull-hide white shield, his medicine pouch, his bow and quiver, his spear, and his pipe, all displayed on a tripod made of three poles. Aside from the dogs, the most busy and loud members of the camp were the old women, as unattractive as witches, with their hair blowing in the wind and barely covered by tattered pieces of old buffalo robes that barely hid their thin, aged bodies. Their days of being favored were long gone, two generations ago; now, the toughest chores of the camp fell on them. They had to harness the horses, set up the tents, clean the buffalo skins, and bring in meat for the hunters. With the harsh voices of these old women, the barking of dogs, and the laughter and shouting of children and girls, combined with the relaxed demeanor of the warriors, the whole scene was so vivid and colorful that it would never be forgotten.

We stopped not far from the Indian camp, and having invited some of the chiefs and warriors to dinner, placed before them a sumptuous repast of biscuit and coffee. Squatted in a half circle on the ground, they soon disposed of it. As we rode forward on the afternoon journey, several of our late guests accompanied us. Among the rest was a huge bloated savage of more than three hundred pounds’ weight, christened La Cochon, in consideration of his preposterous dimensions and certain corresponding traits of his character. “The Hog” bestrode a little white pony, scarce able to bear up under the enormous burden, though, by way of keeping up the necessary stimulus, the rider kept both feet in constant motion, playing alternately against his ribs. The old man was not a chief; he never had ambition enough to become one; he was not a warrior nor a hunter, for he was too fat and lazy: but he was the richest man in the whole village. Riches among the Dakotas consist in horses, and of these The Hog had accumulated more than thirty. He had already ten times as many as he wanted, yet still his appetite for horses was insatiable. Trotting up to me he shook me by the hand, and gave me to understand that he was a very devoted friend; and then he began a series of most earnest signs and gesticulations, his oily countenance radiant with smiles, and his little eyes peeping out with a cunning twinkle from between the masses of flesh that almost obscured them. Knowing nothing at that time of the sign language of the Indians, I could only guess at his meaning. So I called on Henry to explain it.

We stopped not far from the Indian camp and invited some of the chiefs and warriors to dinner, serving them a lavish meal of biscuits and coffee. Sitting in a half circle on the ground, they quickly finished it. As we continued on our afternoon journey, several of our recent guests rode along with us. Among them was a huge, bloated man weighing over three hundred pounds, nicknamed La Cochon because of his ridiculous size and some traits of his personality. “The Hog” was on a little white pony that struggled to carry his enormous weight, but to keep the pony moving, he constantly stirred his feet against its sides. The old man wasn’t a chief; he had never had the ambition to be one; he wasn’t a warrior or a hunter because he was too fat and lazy. However, he was the richest man in the whole village. In Dakota culture, wealth is measured in horses, and The Hog had gathered more than thirty. He already had ten times as many horses as he needed, yet his desire for more was never satisfied. Trotting up to me, he shook my hand and made it clear that he was a loyal friend. Then he began a series of enthusiastic gestures and signs, his slick face beaming with smiles, and his small eyes peeking out with a sly glimmer from the folds of flesh that nearly covered them. Since I knew nothing about the Indian sign language at that time, I could only guess what he meant. So I called for Henry to explain it.

The Hog, it seems, was anxious to conclude a matrimonial bargain. He said he had a very pretty daughter in his lodge, whom he would give me, if I would give him my horse. These flattering overtures I chose to reject; at which The Hog, still laughing with undiminished good humor, gathered his robe about his shoulders, and rode away.

The Hog seemed eager to make a marriage deal. He mentioned that he had a lovely daughter in his lodge whom he would give me if I gave him my horse. I decided to turn down these flattering offers; The Hog, still laughing with the same good humor, wrapped his robe around his shoulders and rode off.

Where we encamped that night, an arm of the Platte ran between high bluffs; it was turbid and swift as heretofore, but trees were growing on its crumbling banks, and there was a nook of grass between the water and the hill. Just before entering this place, we saw the emigrants encamping at two or three miles’ distance on the right; while the whole Indian rabble were pouring down the neighboring hill in hope of the same sort of entertainment which they had experienced from us. In the savage landscape before our camp, nothing but the rushing of the Platte broke the silence. Through the ragged boughs of the trees, dilapidated and half dead, we saw the sun setting in crimson behind the peaks of the Black Hills; the restless bosom of the river was suffused with red; our white tent was tinged with it, and the sterile bluffs, up to the rocks that crowned them, partook of the same fiery hue. It soon passed away; no light remained, but that from our fire, blazing high among the dusky trees and bushes. We lay around it wrapped in our blankets, smoking and conversing until a late hour, and then withdrew to our tent.

Where we set up camp that night, a branch of the Platte flowed between steep bluffs; it was still murky and fast-moving, but trees were growing on its crumbling banks, and there was a patch of grass between the water and the hill. Just before arriving there, we noticed the travelers camping a few miles away to our right; meanwhile, a group of local Indians was coming down the nearby hill, hoping for the same kind of entertainment they had gotten from us. In the rugged landscape before our campsite, the only sound breaking the silence was the rushing water of the Platte. Through the jagged branches of the trees, which were damaged and half-dead, we watched the sun set in brilliant red behind the peaks of the Black Hills; the restless surface of the river reflected the red light; our white tent was tinged with it, and the barren bluffs, up to the rocks on top, shared the same fiery glow. This soon faded; no light remained except for that from our fire, blazing brightly among the dark trees and bushes. We sat around it wrapped in our blankets, smoking and talking until late, and then we headed into our tent.

We crossed a sun-scorched plain on the next morning; the line of old cotton-wood trees that fringed the bank of the Platte forming its extreme verge. Nestled apparently close beneath them, we could discern in the distance something like a building. As we came nearer, it assumed form and dimensions, and proved to be a rough structure of logs. It was a little trading fort, belonging to two private traders; and originally intended, like all the forts of the country, to form a hollow square, with rooms for lodging and storage opening upon the area within. Only two sides of it had been completed; the place was now as ill-fitted for the purposes of defense as any of those little log-houses, which upon our constantly shifting frontier have been so often successfully maintained against overwhelming odds of Indians. Two lodges were pitched close to the fort; the sun beat scorching upon the logs; no living thing was stirring except one old squaw, who thrust her round head from the opening of the nearest lodge, and three or four stout young pups, who were peeping with looks of eager inquiry from under the covering. In a moment a door opened, and a little, swarthy black-eyed Frenchman came out. His dress was rather singular; his black curling hair was parted in the middle of his head, and fell below his shoulders; he wore a tight frock of smoked deerskin, very gayly ornamented with figures worked in dyed porcupine quills. His moccasins and leggings were also gaudily adorned in the same manner; and the latter had in addition a line of long fringes, reaching down the seams. The small frame of Richard, for by this name Henry made him known to us, was in the highest degree athletic and vigorous. There was no superfluity, and indeed there seldom is among the active white men of this country, but every limb was compact and hard; every sinew had its full tone and elasticity, and the whole man wore an air of mingled hardihood and buoyancy.

We crossed a sun-baked plain the next morning, the line of old cottonwood trees edging the bank of the Platte mark its farthest point. Nestled closely beneath them, we could make out something like a building in the distance. As we got closer, it took shape and size and turned out to be a rough log structure. It was a small trading fort owned by two private traders, originally meant, like all the forts in the area, to form a hollow square with rooms for lodging and storage opening into the central area. Only two sides had been built; the place was as poorly suited for defense as any of those small log cabins, which on our constantly shifting frontier have often managed to withstand overwhelming odds of Indians. Two lodges were set up near the fort; the sun beat down relentlessly on the logs; nothing was moving except for one old woman who poked her head out from the nearest lodge, and three or four sturdy young pups who peered out with curious looks from under the cover. Suddenly, a door opened, and a small, dark-eyed Frenchman stepped out. His outfit was quite unique; his black curly hair was parted in the middle and fell past his shoulders; he wore a fitted coat made of smoked deerskin, brightly decorated with designs stitched in dyed porcupine quills. His moccasins and leggings were also brightly embellished in the same way, with the leggings featuring a row of long fringes down the seams. Richard, as Henry introduced him to us, had a small but remarkably athletic and energetic frame. There was nothing excessive, which is usually the case with the active white men in this country, but every limb was toned and strong; every muscle had its full strength and flexibility, and he radiated a mix of toughness and energy.

Richard committed our horses to a Navahoe slave, a mean looking fellow taken prisoner on the Mexican frontier; and, relieving us of our rifles with ready politeness, led the way into the principal apartment of his establishment. This was a room ten feet square. The walls and floor were of black mud, and the roof of rough timber; there was a huge fireplace made of four flat rocks, picked up on the prairie. An Indian bow and otter-skin quiver, several gaudy articles of Rocky Mountain finery, an Indian medicine bag, and a pipe and tobacco pouch, garnished the walls, and rifles rested in a corner. There was no furniture except a sort of rough settle covered with buffalo robes, upon which lolled a tall half-breed, with his hair glued in masses upon each temple, and saturated with vermilion. Two or three more “mountain men” sat cross-legged on the floor. Their attire was not unlike that of Richard himself; but the most striking figure of the group was a naked Indian boy of sixteen, with a handsome face, and light, active proportions, who sat in an easy posture in the corner near the door. Not one of his limbs moved the breadth of a hair; his eye was fixed immovably, not on any person present, but, as it appeared, on the projecting corner of the fireplace opposite to him.

Richard entrusted our horses to a Navajo slave, a tough-looking guy captured on the Mexican frontier; and, politely taking our rifles, led us into the main room of his place. This was a room about ten feet square. The walls and floor were made of black mud, and the roof was rough timber; there was a large fireplace constructed from four flat rocks found on the prairie. An Indian bow and an otter-skin quiver, along with several flashy Rocky Mountain items, an Indian medicine bag, and a pipe with a tobacco pouch decorated the walls, and rifles leaned in a corner. There was no furniture except for a rough bench covered with buffalo robes, where a tall half-breed lounged, his hair matted with vermilion on both sides. Two or three other “mountain men” sat cross-legged on the floor. Their clothing was similar to Richard’s; but the most eye-catching person in the group was a naked Indian boy of sixteen, with a good-looking face and a lean, agile build, who sat comfortably in the corner near the door. Not a single part of him moved; his gaze was fixed intently, not on anyone present, but seemingly on the protruding corner of the fireplace across from him.

On these prairies the custom of smoking with friends is seldom omitted, whether among Indians or whites. The pipe, therefore, was taken from the wall, and its great red bowl crammed with the tobacco and shongsasha, mixed in suitable proportions. Then it passed round the circle, each man inhaling a few whiffs and handing it to his neighbor. Having spent half an hour here, we took our leave; first inviting our new friends to drink a cup of coffee with us at our camp, a mile farther up the river. By this time, as the reader may conceive, we had grown rather shabby; our clothes had burst into rags and tatters; and what was worse, we had very little means of renovation. Fort Laramie was but seven miles before us. Being totally averse to appearing in such plight among any society that could boast an approximation to the civilized, we soon stopped by the river to make our toilet in the best way we could. We hung up small looking-glasses against the trees and shaved, an operation neglected for six weeks; we performed our ablutions in the Platte, though the utility of such a proceeding was questionable, the water looking exactly like a cup of chocolate, and the banks consisting of the softest and richest yellow mud, so that we were obliged, as a preliminary, to build a cause-way of stout branches and twigs. Having also put on radiant moccasins, procured from a squaw of Richard’s establishment, and made what other improvements our narrow circumstances allowed, we took our seats on the grass with a feeling of greatly increased respectability, to wait the arrival of our guests. They came; the banquet was concluded, and the pipe smoked. Bidding them adieu, we turned our horses’ heads toward the fort.

On these plains, the tradition of smoking with friends is rarely skipped, whether among Native Americans or white settlers. The pipe was taken off the wall, and its large red bowl filled with tobacco and shongsasha, mixed in the right amounts. Then it was passed around the circle, with each person taking a few puffs before handing it to the next. After spending about half an hour there, we said our goodbyes, first inviting our new friends to join us for a cup of coffee at our camp a mile further up the river. By this time, as you can imagine, we looked quite disheveled; our clothes were torn and ragged, and worse yet, we had very little means to refresh our appearance. Fort Laramie was just seven miles ahead of us. Since we were completely unwilling to show up in such a state among anyone who could be considered somewhat civilized, we soon stopped by the river to tidy ourselves up as best as we could. We hung small mirrors on the trees and shaved, a task we had neglected for six weeks; we washed up in the Platte, even though the usefulness of that was questionable, as the water looked just like a cup of chocolate, and the banks were made of the softest, richest yellow mud. So first, we had to build a makeshift path out of sturdy branches and twigs. After putting on shiny moccasins we got from a woman at Richard’s camp and making whatever other improvements our limited situation allowed, we sat down on the grass, feeling much more respectable, while we waited for our guests. They arrived, the meal was finished, and the pipe was smoked. After saying our goodbyes, we turned our horses toward the fort.

An hour elapsed. The barren hills closed across our front, and we could see no farther; until having surmounted them, a rapid stream appeared at the foot of the descent, running into the Platte; beyond was a green meadow, dotted with bushes, and in the midst of these, at the point where the two rivers joined, were the low clay walls of a fort. This was not Fort Laramie, but another post of less recent date, which having sunk before its successful competitor was now deserted and ruinous. A moment after the hills, seeming to draw apart as we advanced, disclosed Fort Laramie itself, its high bastions and perpendicular walls of clay crowning an eminence on the left beyond the stream, while behind stretched a line of arid and desolate ridges, and behind these again, towering aloft seven thousand feet, arose the grim Black Hills.

An hour went by. The bare hills blocked our view ahead, and we couldn’t see beyond them; but once we climbed over, a fast-moving river appeared at the bottom of the slope, flowing into the Platte. Beyond that was a green meadow sprinkled with bushes, and nestled among them at the point where the two rivers met were the low clay walls of a fort. This wasn’t Fort Laramie, but another post that was older, which had fallen into disrepair and was now abandoned. Moments later, as we moved forward, the hills seemed to part, revealing Fort Laramie itself, with its tall bastions and vertical clay walls perched on a rise to the left of the river. Behind it stretched a line of dry, desolate ridges, and even further back, towering seven thousand feet high, loomed the imposing Black Hills.

We tried to ford Laramie Creek at a point nearly opposite the fort, but the stream, swollen with the rains in the mountains, was too rapid. We passed up along its bank to find a better crossing place. Men gathered on the wall to look at us. “There’s Bordeaux!” called Henry, his face brightening as he recognized his acquaintance; “him there with the spyglass; and there’s old Vaskiss, and Tucker, and May; and, by George! there’s Cimoneau!” This Cimoneau was Henry’s fast friend, and the only man in the country who could rival him in hunting.

We tried to cross Laramie Creek at a spot almost directly across from the fort, but the water, swollen from the mountain rains, was too swift. We walked along the bank to find a better place to cross. Men gathered on the wall to watch us. “There’s Bordeaux!” Henry shouted, his face lighting up when he recognized his friend; “that guy with the spyglass; and there’s old Vaskiss, and Tucker, and May; and, wow! there’s Cimoneau!” Cimoneau was Henry’s close friend and the only person in the area who could match him in hunting.

We soon found a ford. Henry led the way, the pony approaching the bank with a countenance of cool indifference, bracing his feet and sliding into the stream with the most unmoved composure.

We quickly found a shallow crossing. Henry took the lead, and the pony walked up to the bank with a look of cool indifference, bracing its feet and sliding into the stream with the utmost calmness.

     At the first plunge the horse sunk low,
     And the water broke o’er the saddle-bow
     At the first jump, the horse went down deep,  
     And the water splashed over the saddle.

We followed; the water boiled against our saddles, but our horses bore us easily through. The unfortunate little mules came near going down with the current, cart and all; and we watched them with some solicitude scrambling over the loose round stones at the bottom, and bracing stoutly against the stream. All landed safely at last; we crossed a little plain, descended a hollow, and riding up a steep bank found ourselves before the gateway of Fort Laramie, under the impending blockhouse erected above it to defend the entrance.

We followed; the water surged against our saddles, but our horses carried us through easily. The poor little mules nearly got swept away with the current, cart and all; we watched them with concern as they struggled over the loose round stones at the bottom, bracing themselves against the stream. Eventually, everyone made it safely across. We crossed a small plain, went down into a low area, and as we rode up a steep bank, we found ourselves in front of the gateway of Fort Laramie, beneath the looming blockhouse built above it to protect the entrance.





CHAPTER IX

SCENES AT FORT LARAMIE

Looking back, after the expiration of a year, upon Fort Laramie and its inmates, they seem less like a reality than like some fanciful picture of the olden time; so different was the scene from any which this tamer side of the world can present. Tall Indians, enveloped in their white buffalo robes, were striding across the area or reclining at full length on the low roofs of the buildings which inclosed it. Numerous squaws, gayly bedizened, sat grouped in front of the apartments they occupied; their mongrel offspring, restless and vociferous, rambled in every direction through the fort; and the trappers, traders, and ENGAGES of the establishment were busy at their labor or their amusements.

Looking back after a year at Fort Laramie and its inhabitants, it feels less like a real place and more like a scene from a story of the past; the vibe was so different from anything that the calmer side of the world can offer. Tall Native Americans, wrapped in their white buffalo robes, strode across the area or lounged on the low roofs of the buildings surrounding it. Many brightly dressed women sat clustered in front of the spaces they lived in; their mixed-race children, energetic and loud, wandered around the fort in every direction; and the trappers, traders, and workers of the establishment were busy with their tasks or their leisure activities.

We were met at the gate, but by no means cordially welcomed. Indeed, we seemed objects of some distrust and suspicion until Henry Chatillon explained that we were not traders, and we, in confirmation, handed to the bourgeois a letter of introduction from his principals. He took it, turned it upside down, and tried hard to read it; but his literary attainments not being adequate to the task, he applied for relief to the clerk, a sleek, smiling Frenchman, named Montalon. The letter read, Bordeaux (the bourgeois) seemed gradually to awaken to a sense of what was expected of him. Though not deficient in hospitable intentions, he was wholly unaccustomed to act as master of ceremonies. Discarding all formalities of reception, he did not honor us with a single word, but walked swiftly across the area, while we followed in some admiration to a railing and a flight of steps opposite the entrance. He signed to us that we had better fasten our horses to the railing; then he walked up the steps, tramped along a rude balcony, and kicking open a door displayed a large room, rather more elaborately finished than a barn. For furniture it had a rough bedstead, but no bed; two chairs, a chest of drawers, a tin pail to hold water, and a board to cut tobacco upon. A brass crucifix hung on the wall, and close at hand a recent scalp, with hair full a yard long, was suspended from a nail. I shall again have occasion to mention this dismal trophy, its history being connected with that of our subsequent proceedings.

We were greeted at the gate, but it wasn’t a warm welcome. In fact, we seemed to raise some distrust and suspicion until Henry Chatillon clarified that we weren’t traders. To confirm this, we handed the bourgeois a letter of introduction from his superiors. He took it, turned it upside down, and struggled to read it; since his reading skills weren't up to the task, he asked for help from the clerk, a slick, smiling Frenchman named Montalon. The letter read, and Bordeaux (the bourgeois) gradually began to understand what was expected of him. Although he had good intentions, he was completely unaccustomed to being the host. Skipping all formalities, he didn’t say a word to us but quickly walked across the area, with us following in curiosity to a railing and a staircase opposite the entrance. He signaled for us to tie our horses to the railing, then walked up the steps, trudged along a rough balcony, and kicked open a door to reveal a large room, which was a bit nicer than a barn. The furniture consisted of a rough bed frame with no mattress, two chairs, a chest of drawers, a tin pail for water, and a board for cutting tobacco. A brass crucifix hung on the wall, and nearby, a recently taken scalp with hair about a yard long was hanging from a nail. I will have to mention this grim trophy again, as its story is related to our upcoming events.

This apartment, the best in Fort Laramie, was that usually occupied by the legitimate bourgeois, Papin; in whose absence the command devolved upon Bordeaux. The latter, a stout, bluff little fellow, much inflated by a sense of his new authority, began to roar for buffalo robes. These being brought and spread upon the floor formed our beds; much better ones than we had of late been accustomed to. Our arrangements made, we stepped out to the balcony to take a more leisurely survey of the long looked-for haven at which we had arrived at last. Beneath us was the square area surrounded by little rooms, or rather cells, which opened upon it. These were devoted to various purposes, but served chiefly for the accommodation of the men employed at the fort, or of the equally numerous squaws, whom they were allowed to maintain in it. Opposite to us rose the blockhouse above the gateway; it was adorned with a figure which even now haunts my memory; a horse at full speed, daubed upon the boards with red paint, and exhibiting a degree of skill which might rival that displayed by the Indians in executing similar designs upon their robes and lodges. A busy scene was enacting in the area. The wagons of Vaskiss, an old trader, were about to set out for a remote post in the mountains, and the Canadians were going through their preparations with all possible bustle, while here and there an Indian stood looking on with imperturbable gravity.

This apartment, the best in Fort Laramie, was usually occupied by the well-to-do Papin; in his absence, the responsibility fell on Bordeaux. The latter, a stocky, blustery little guy who was quite puffed up with his new authority, started demanding buffalo robes. Once those were brought in and spread out on the floor, they made our beds; way better than what we had been used to lately. With our setup done, we stepped out onto the balcony to take a more leisurely look at the long-awaited haven we had finally reached. Below us was an open square surrounded by small rooms, or more like cells, that opened onto it. These spaces were used for various purposes but mainly served to accommodate the men working at the fort and the many squaws they were allowed to keep here. Opposite us loomed the blockhouse above the gate, decorated with an image that still sticks in my mind: a horse at full gallop, painted in red on the boards, showing a level of skill that could compete with what the Indians displayed in their designs on robes and lodges. A lively scene was unfolding in the area. The wagons of Vaskiss, an old trader, were about to leave for a far-off post in the mountains, and the Canadians were bustling about with their preparations, while various Indians stood by, watching with an expressionless seriousness.

Fort Laramie is one of the posts established by the American Fur Company, who well-nigh monopolize the Indian trade of this whole region. Here their officials rule with an absolute sway; the arm of the United States has little force; for when we were there, the extreme outposts of her troops were about seven hundred miles to the eastward. The little fort is built of bricks dried in the sun, and externally is of an oblong form, with bastions of clay, in the form of ordinary blockhouses, at two of the corners. The walls are about fifteen feet high, and surmounted by a slender palisade. The roofs of the apartments within, which are built close against the walls, serve the purpose of a banquette. Within, the fort is divided by a partition; on one side is the square area surrounded by the storerooms, offices, and apartments of the inmates; on the other is the corral, a narrow place, encompassed by the high clay walls, where at night, or in presence of dangerous Indians, the horses and mules of the fort are crowded for safe-keeping. The main entrance has two gates, with an arched passage intervening. A little square window, quite high above the ground, opens laterally from an adjoining chamber into this passage; so that when the inner gate is closed and barred, a person without may still hold communication with those within through this narrow aperture. This obviates the necessity of admitting suspicious Indians, for purposes of trading, into the body of the fort; for when danger is apprehended, the inner gate is shut fast, and all traffic is carried on by means of the little window. This precaution, though highly necessary at some of the company’s posts, is now seldom resorted to at Fort Laramie; where, though men are frequently killed in its neighborhood, no apprehensions are now entertained of any general designs of hostility from the Indians.

Fort Laramie is one of the posts established by the American Fur Company, which pretty much controls the Indian trade in this entire region. Their officials have complete authority here; the reach of the United States is minimal because when we were there, the closest military outposts were about seven hundred miles to the east. The small fort is made of sun-dried bricks and has an elongated shape, with clay bastions shaped like standard blockhouses at two corners. The walls stand about fifteen feet high and are topped with a thin palisade. The roofs of the rooms inside, which are built right against the walls, act as a walkway. Inside, the fort is divided by a partition; one side has a square area surrounded by storerooms, offices, and living quarters, while the other side features a narrow corral, enclosed by tall clay walls, where at night or when dangerous Indians are nearby, the horses and mules of the fort are kept safe. The main entrance has two gates with an arched passage between them. There’s a small square window, quite high off the ground, that opens laterally from an adjoining room into this passage, allowing someone outside to communicate with those inside even when the inner gate is closed and locked. This setup avoids the need to let suspicious Indians into the fort for trading purposes; when there’s a threat, the inner gate is securely shut, and all transactions happen through the small window. This precaution, while very necessary at some of the company’s posts, is rarely used at Fort Laramie now; although men are often killed nearby, there’s currently no fear of any large-scale hostility from the Indians.

We did not long enjoy our new quarters undisturbed. The door was silently pushed open, and two eyeballs and a visage as black as night looked in upon us; then a red arm and shoulder intruded themselves, and a tall Indian, gliding in, shook us by the hand, grunted his salutation, and sat down on the floor. Others followed, with faces of the natural hue; and letting fall their heavy robes from their shoulders, they took their seats, quite at ease, in a semicircle before us. The pipe was now to be lighted and passed round from one to another; and this was the only entertainment that at present they expected from us. These visitors were fathers, brothers, or other relatives of the squaws in the fort, where they were permitted to remain, loitering about in perfect idleness. All those who smoked with us were men of standing and repute. Two or three others dropped in also; young fellows who neither by their years nor their exploits were entitled to rank with the old men and warriors, and who, abashed in the presence of their superiors, stood aloof, never withdrawing their eyes from us. Their cheeks were adorned with vermilion, their ears with pendants of shell, and their necks with beads. Never yet having signalized themselves as hunters, or performed the honorable exploit of killing a man, they were held in slight esteem, and were diffident and bashful in proportion. Certain formidable inconveniences attended this influx of visitors. They were bent on inspecting everything in the room; our equipments and our dress alike underwent their scrutiny; for though the contrary has been carelessly asserted, few beings have more curiosity than Indians in regard to subjects within their ordinary range of thought. As to other matters, indeed, they seemed utterly indifferent. They will not trouble themselves to inquire into what they cannot comprehend, but are quite contented to place their hands over their mouths in token of wonder, and exclaim that it is “great medicine.” With this comprehensive solution, an Indian never is at a loss. He never launches forth into speculation and conjecture; his reason moves in its beaten track. His soul is dormant; and no exertions of the missionaries, Jesuit or Puritan, of the Old World or of the New, have as yet availed to rouse it.

We didn’t enjoy our new place for long without interruption. The door was quietly opened, and two eyes and a face as dark as night peeked in at us; then a red arm and shoulder came in, and a tall Indian smoothly entered, shook our hands, grunted a greeting, and sat down on the floor. Others followed, with faces in their natural color; after dropping their heavy robes from their shoulders, they relaxed in a semicircle in front of us. It was time to light the pipe and pass it around—this was the only entertainment they expected from us at the moment. These visitors were fathers, brothers, or other relatives of the women in the fort, where they were allowed to hang around doing nothing. All the men smoking with us had good standing and reputation. A few younger guys also joined; they weren’t old enough or experienced enough to be on the same level as the older men and warriors, so they stood back, eyes glued to us, feeling shy. Their cheeks were painted with red, their ears had shell ornaments, and their necks were adorned with beads. Because they hadn’t yet shown themselves as hunters or accomplished the honorable act of killing a man, they were regarded with little respect and were correspondingly timid. There were some quite serious downsides to this influx of visitors. They were eager to inspect everything in the room; our gear and our clothing were both closely examined; despite what has been casually said, few people are more curious than Indians when it comes to things within their usual understanding. On the other hand, they seemed completely indifferent to anything else. They wouldn’t bother to inquire about things they couldn’t grasp but were perfectly happy to cover their mouths in astonishment and call it “great medicine.” With this all-encompassing explanation, an Indian never feels confused. He doesn’t venture into speculation or guesswork; his reasoning stays within familiar boundaries. His spirit is dormant, and no efforts by missionaries, whether Jesuit or Puritan, from either the Old or the New World, have yet managed to awaken it.

As we were looking, at sunset, from the wall, upon the wild and desolate plains that surround the fort, we observed a cluster of strange objects like scaffolds rising in the distance against the red western sky. They bore aloft some singular looking burdens; and at their foot glimmered something white like bones. This was the place of sepulture of some Dakota chiefs, whose remains their people are fond of placing in the vicinity of the fort, in the hope that they may thus be protected from violation at the hands of their enemies. Yet it has happened more than once, and quite recently, that war parties of the Crow Indians, ranging through the country, have thrown the bodies from the scaffolds, and broken them to pieces amid the yells of the Dakotas, who remained pent up in the fort, too few to defend the honored relics from insult. The white objects upon the ground were buffalo skulls, arranged in the mystic circle commonly seen at Indian places of sepulture upon the prairie.

As we were watching the sunset from the wall, looking out over the wild and desolate plains surrounding the fort, we noticed a group of strange structures that resembled scaffolds rising in the distance against the red western sky. They held peculiar-looking items at the top, and at their base, something white glimmered, resembling bones. This was the burial site of some Dakota chiefs, whose remains their people prefer to place near the fort, hoping to protect them from being disturbed by enemies. However, it has happened more than once, and quite recently, that war parties of Crow Indians, traveling through the area, have thrown the bodies from the scaffolds and smashed them to pieces amid the shouts of the Dakotas, who were trapped inside the fort, too few to defend the honored remains from desecration. The white objects on the ground were buffalo skulls, arranged in the mystical circle commonly seen at burial sites on the prairie.

We soon discovered, in the twilight, a band of fifty or sixty horses approaching the fort. These were the animals belonging to the establishment; who having been sent out to feed, under the care of armed guards, in the meadows below, were now being driven into the corral for the night. A little gate opened into this inclosure; by the side of it stood one of the guards, an old Canadian, with gray bushy eyebrows, and a dragoon pistol stuck into his belt; while his comrade, mounted on horseback, his rifle laid across the saddle in front of him, and his long hair blowing before his swarthy face, rode at the rear of the disorderly troop, urging them up the ascent. In a moment the narrow corral was thronged with the half-wild horses, kicking, biting, and crowding restlessly together.

We soon noticed, in the fading light, a group of fifty or sixty horses coming toward the fort. These were the animals from the establishment, which had been sent out to graze under the supervision of armed guards in the meadows below, and were now being driven into the corral for the night. A small gate opened into this enclosure; beside it stood one of the guards, an older Canadian with gray bushy eyebrows and a dragoon pistol in his belt. His partner, mounted on horseback with his rifle laid across the saddle in front of him and his long hair blowing in the wind, rode at the back of the chaotic herd, urging them up the slope. In an instant, the narrow corral was packed with the half-wild horses, kicking, biting, and jostling against each other restlessly.

The discordant jingling of a bell, rung by a Canadian in the area, summoned us to supper. This sumptuous repast was served on a rough table in one of the lower apartments of the fort, and consisted of cakes of bread and dried buffalo meat—an excellent thing for strengthening the teeth. At this meal were seated the bourgeois and superior dignitaries of the establishment, among whom Henry Chatillon was worthily included. No sooner was it finished, than the table was spread a second time (the luxury of bread being now, however, omitted), for the benefit of certain hunters and trappers of an inferior standing; while the ordinary Canadian ENGAGES were regaled on dried meat in one of their lodging rooms. By way of illustrating the domestic economy of Fort Laramie, it may not be amiss to introduce in this place a story current among the men when we were there.

The annoying ringing of a bell, rung by a Canadian nearby, called us to dinner. This lavish meal was served on a rough table in one of the lower rooms of the fort and included bread and dried buffalo meat—great for strengthening the teeth. Sitting at this meal were the merchants and high-ranking officials of the place, among whom Henry Chatillon was included. As soon as it was over, the table was set again (though the luxury of bread was now left out) for some hunters and trappers of a lower status, while the regular Canadian workers enjoyed dried meat in one of their lodging rooms. To illustrate the daily life at Fort Laramie, it might be helpful to share a story that the men told while we were there.

There was an old man named Pierre, whose duty it was to bring the meat from the storeroom for the men. Old Pierre, in the kindness of his heart, used to select the fattest and the best pieces for his companions. This did not long escape the keen-eyed bourgeois, who was greatly disturbed at such improvidence, and cast about for some means to stop it. At last he hit on a plan that exactly suited him. At the side of the meat-room, and separated from it by a clay partition, was another compartment, used for the storage of furs. It had no other communication with the fort, except through a square hole in the partition; and of course it was perfectly dark. One evening the bourgeois, watching for a moment when no one observed him, dodged into the meat-room, clambered through the hole, and ensconced himself among the furs and buffalo robes. Soon after, old Pierre came in with his lantern; and, muttering to himself, began to pull over the bales of meat, and select the best pieces, as usual. But suddenly a hollow and sepulchral voice proceeded from the inner apartment: “Pierre! Pierre! Let that fat meat alone! Take nothing but lean!” Pierre dropped his lantern, and bolted out into the fort, screaming, in an agony of terror, that the devil was in the storeroom; but tripping on the threshold, he pitched over upon the gravel, and lay senseless, stunned by the fall. The Canadians ran out to the rescue. Some lifted the unlucky Pierre; and others, making an extempore crucifix out of two sticks, were proceeding to attack the devil in his stronghold, when the bourgeois, with a crest-fallen countenance, appeared at the door. To add to the bourgeois’ mortification, he was obliged to explain the whole stratagem to Pierre, in order to bring the latter to his senses.

There was an old man named Pierre, whose job was to bring the meat from the storeroom for the men. Old Pierre, being kind-hearted, usually picked the fattest and best pieces for his friends. This didn't go unnoticed by the watchful bourgeois, who was quite disturbed by such wastefulness and looked for a way to stop it. Eventually, he came up with a plan that suited him perfectly. Next to the meat room, separated by a clay wall, was another area used for storing furs. It had no other access to the fort, except through a square hole in the wall, and it was completely dark. One evening, while waiting for a moment when no one was watching, the bourgeois slipped into the meat room, climbed through the hole, and hid among the furs and buffalo robes. Soon after, old Pierre entered with his lantern and, mumbling to himself, started picking through the bales of meat, selecting the best pieces as usual. But suddenly, a deep, eerie voice came from the inner compartment: “Pierre! Pierre! Leave that fat meat alone! Take only the lean!” Pierre dropped his lantern and rushed out of the fort, screaming in terror that the devil was in the storeroom; however, he tripped at the threshold, fell onto the gravel, and lay unconscious from the impact. The Canadians rushed to help. Some picked up the unfortunate Pierre while others, quickly assembling a makeshift crucifix from two sticks, got ready to confront the devil in his lair, when the bourgeois appeared at the door, looking defeated. To add to his embarrassment, he had to explain the entire scheme to Pierre to bring him back to his senses.

We were sitting, on the following morning, in the passage-way between the gates, conversing with the traders Vaskiss and May. These two men, together with our sleek friend, the clerk Montalon, were, I believe, the only persons then in the fort who could read and write. May was telling a curious story about the traveler Catlin, when an ugly, diminutive Indian, wretchedly mounted, came up at a gallop, and rode past us into the fort. On being questioned, he said that Smoke’s village was close at hand. Accordingly only a few minutes elapsed before the hills beyond the river were covered with a disorderly swarm of savages, on horseback and on foot. May finished his story; and by that time the whole array had descended to Laramie Creek, and commenced crossing it in a mass. I walked down to the bank. The stream is wide, and was then between three and four feet deep, with a very swift current. For several rods the water was alive with dogs, horses, and Indians. The long poles used in erecting the lodges are carried by the horses, being fastened by the heavier end, two or three on each side, to a rude sort of pack saddle, while the other end drags on the ground. About a foot behind the horse, a kind of large basket or pannier is suspended between the poles, and firmly lashed in its place on the back of the horse are piled various articles of luggage; the basket also is well filled with domestic utensils, or, quite as often, with a litter of puppies, a brood of small children, or a superannuated old man. Numbers of these curious vehicles, called, in the bastard language of the country travaux were now splashing together through the stream. Among them swam countless dogs, often burdened with miniature travaux; and dashing forward on horseback through the throng came the superbly formed warriors, the slender figure of some lynx-eyed boy, clinging fast behind them. The women sat perched on the pack saddles, adding not a little to the load of the already overburdened horses. The confusion was prodigious. The dogs yelled and howled in chorus; the puppies in the travaux set up a dismal whine as the water invaded their comfortable retreat; the little black-eyed children, from one year of age upward, clung fast with both hands to the edge of their basket, and looked over in alarm at the water rushing so near them, sputtering and making wry mouths as it splashed against their faces. Some of the dogs, encumbered by their loads, were carried down by the current, yelping piteously; and the old squaws would rush into the water, seize their favorites by the neck, and drag them out. As each horse gained the bank, he scrambled up as he could. Stray horses and colts came among the rest, often breaking away at full speed through the crowd, followed by the old hags, screaming after their fashion on all occasions of excitement. Buxom young squaws, blooming in all the charms of vermilion, stood here and there on the bank, holding aloft their master’s lance, as a signal to collect the scattered portions of his household. In a few moments the crowd melted away; each family, with its horses and equipage, filing off to the plain at the rear of the fort; and here, in the space of half an hour, arose sixty or seventy of their tapering lodges. Their horses were feeding by hundreds over the surrounding prairie, and their dogs were roaming everywhere. The fort was full of men, and the children were whooping and yelling incessantly under the walls.

We were sitting the next morning in the passageway between the gates, chatting with the traders Vaskiss and May. These two, along with our smooth-talking friend, the clerk Montalon, were, I think, the only people in the fort who could read and write. May was sharing a fascinating story about the traveler Catlin when an ugly, short Indian, poorly mounted, came galloping past us into the fort. When asked, he said that Smoke’s village was nearby. Just a few minutes later, the hills beyond the river were filled with a chaotic crowd of natives, both on horseback and on foot. May wrapped up his story, and by then, the entire group had moved down to Laramie Creek and started to cross it all together. I walked down to the bank. The stream was wide and between three and four feet deep with a fast current. For several yards, the water was teeming with dogs, horses, and Indians. The long poles used for setting up the lodges were carried by the horses, tied with the heavier end, two or three on each side, to a rough kind of pack saddle, while the other end dragged on the ground. About a foot behind the horse, a large basket or pannier hung between the poles, and piled securely on the horse’s back were various pieces of luggage; the basket was often packed with household items or, just as frequently, with a litter of puppies, a bunch of small kids, or an elderly man. A number of these strange vehicles, called travaux in the local slang, were splashing through the stream. Among them swam countless dogs, often burdened with small travaux; and riding through the chaos were the impressively built warriors, with a slender, lynx-eyed boy clinging tightly behind them. The women perched on the pack saddles added even more weight to the already loaded horses. The scene was chaotic. The dogs barked and howled together; the puppies in the travaux whined in distress as the water invaded their cozy spot; and the little black-eyed children, from about a year old and up, clung tightly to the edge of their basket, looking alarmed at the rushing water so close to them, making scrunched faces as it splashed against them. Some dogs, weighed down by their packs, were swept away by the current, yelping pitifully, while the old women rushed into the water to grab their favorites by the neck and pull them to safety. As each horse reached the bank, it scrambled up as best it could. Stray horses and colts dashed through the rest, often breaking away at top speed through the crowd, chased by the old women, who shouted in their loud, excited way. Young women, vibrant and adorned with bright vermilion, stood here and there on the bank, holding up their master’s lance as a signal to gather the scattered parts of his family. Moments later, the crowd dispersed; each family, along with their horses and gear, moved off to the plain behind the fort; and within half an hour, sixty or seventy of their tall lodges appeared. Their horses grazed by the hundreds across the surrounding prairie, and their dogs wandered freely everywhere. The fort was filled with men, and the children were constantly whooping and yelling under the walls.

These newcomers were scarcely arrived, when Bordeaux was running across the fort, shouting to his squaw to bring him his spyglass. The obedient Marie, the very model of a squaw, produced the instrument, and Bordeaux hurried with it up to the wall. Pointing it to the eastward, he exclaimed, with an oath, that the families were coming. But a few moments elapsed before the heavy caravan of the emigrant wagons could be seen, steadily advancing from the hills. They gained the river, and without turning or pausing plunged in; they passed through, and slowly ascending the opposing bank, kept directly on their way past the fort and the Indian village, until, gaining a spot a quarter of a mile distant, they wheeled into a circle. For some time our tranquillity was undisturbed. The emigrants were preparing their encampment; but no sooner was this accomplished than Fort Laramie was fairly taken by storm. A crowd of broad-brimmed hats, thin visages, and staring eyes appeared suddenly at the gate. Tall awkward men, in brown homespun; women with cadaverous faces and long lank figures came thronging in together, and, as if inspired by the very demon of curiosity, ransacked every nook and corner of the fort. Dismayed at this invasion, we withdrew in all speed to our chamber, vainly hoping that it might prove an inviolable sanctuary. The emigrants prosecuted their investigations with untiring vigor. They penetrated the rooms or rather dens, inhabited by the astonished squaws. They explored the apartments of the men, and even that of Marie and the bourgeois. At last a numerous deputation appeared at our door, but were immediately expelled. Being totally devoid of any sense of delicacy or propriety, they seemed resolved to search every mystery to the bottom.

These newcomers had barely arrived when Bordeaux dashed across the fort, yelling for his wife to bring him his spyglass. The dutiful Marie, the ideal model of a wife, produced the instrument, and Bordeaux rushed to the wall with it. Pointing east, he swore that the families were coming. Just moments later, the large caravan of emigrant wagons became visible, steadily moving down from the hills. They reached the river, plunged in without hesitation, and as they crossed, they slowly climbed the opposite bank, continuing their journey past the fort and the Indian village, until they reached a spot a quarter of a mile away, where they formed a circle. For a while, we were undisturbed. The emigrants were setting up their camp; but as soon as they finished, Fort Laramie was overwhelmed. A crowd of wide-brimmed hats, gaunt faces, and wide-eyed gazes suddenly appeared at the gate. Tall, awkward men in brown homespun, women with haggard faces and skinny figures poured in, and, driven by an insatiable curiosity, they rummaged through every nook and cranny of the fort. Alarmed by this invasion, we hurried to our room, hoping it would be a safe refuge. The emigrants continued their exploration with relentless energy. They invaded the rooms, or rather the dens, occupied by the surprised women. They investigated the men’s quarters and even those of Marie and the bourgeois. Eventually, a large group appeared at our door but was quickly sent away. Completely lacking any sense of decorum or propriety, they seemed determined to uncover every secret.

Having at length satisfied their curiosity, they next proceeded to business. The men occupied themselves in procuring supplies for their onward journey; either buying them with money or giving in exchange superfluous articles of their own.

Finally satisfying their curiosity, they moved on to business. The men focused on getting supplies for their journey ahead, either buying them with money or trading extra items they had.

The emigrants felt a violent prejudice against the French Indians, as they called the trappers and traders. They thought, and with some justice, that these men bore them no good will. Many of them were firmly persuaded that the French were instigating the Indians to attack and cut them off. On visiting the encampment we were at once struck with the extraordinary perplexity and indecision that prevailed among the emigrants. They seemed like men totally out of their elements; bewildered and amazed, like a troop of school-boys lost in the woods. It was impossible to be long among them without being conscious of the high and bold spirit with which most of them were animated. But the FOREST is the home of the backwoodsman. On the remote prairie he is totally at a loss. He differs much from the genuine “mountain man,” the wild prairie hunter, as a Canadian voyageur, paddling his canoe on the rapids of the Ottawa, differs from an American sailor among the storms of Cape Horn. Still my companion and I were somewhat at a loss to account for this perturbed state of mind. It could not be cowardice; these men were of the same stock with the volunteers of Monterey and Buena Vista. Yet, for the most part, they were the rudest and most ignorant of the frontier population; they knew absolutely nothing of the country and its inhabitants; they had already experienced much misfortune, and apprehended more; they had seen nothing of mankind, and had never put their own resources to the test.

The emigrants had a strong prejudice against the French Indians, as they referred to the trappers and traders. They believed, and with some reason, that these men had no goodwill towards them. Many were convinced that the French were encouraging the Indians to attack them. When we visited the encampment, we were immediately struck by the confusion and uncertainty that surrounded the emigrants. They seemed completely out of their element; bewildered and amazed, like a group of schoolboys lost in the woods. It was hard to be with them for long without noticing the bold and spirited attitude that most of them displayed. But the FOREST is the home of the backwoodsman. On the open prairie, he was completely flustered. He was very different from a true “mountain man,” the wild prairie hunter, just as a Canadian voyageur, navigating his canoe on the rapids of the Ottawa, differs from an American sailor facing the storms of Cape Horn. Still, my companion and I found it difficult to understand this disturbed state of mind. It couldn't be cowardice; these men were from the same background as the volunteers of Monterey and Buena Vista. Yet, for the most part, they were the roughest and most uneducated of the frontier population; they knew nothing about the land and its people; they had already faced a lot of misfortune and feared more; they had seen little of humanity and had never truly tested their own capabilities.

A full proportion of suspicion fell upon us. Being strangers we were looked upon as enemies. Having occasion for a supply of lead and a few other necessary articles, we used to go over to the emigrant camps to obtain them. After some hesitation, some dubious glances, and fumbling of the hands in the pockets, the terms would be agreed upon, the price tendered, and the emigrant would go off to bring the article in question. After waiting until our patience gave out, we would go in search of him, and find him seated on the tongue of his wagon.

A heavy cloud of suspicion hung over us. As strangers, we were seen as enemies. We needed to get some lead and a few other essentials, so we’d head over to the emigrant camps to get them. After a bit of back-and-forth, a few unsure looks, and some awkward pocket fumbling, we’d agree on the terms, the price would be offered, and the emigrant would head off to fetch what we needed. After waiting until our patience ran out, we’d go looking for him, only to find him sitting on the tongue of his wagon.

“Well, stranger,” he would observe, as he saw us approach, “I reckon I won’t trade!”

“Well, stranger,” he would say as he saw us coming, “I guess I won’t trade!”

Some friend of his followed him from the scene of the bargain and suggested in his ear, that clearly we meant to cheat him, and he had better have nothing to do with us.

Some friend of his trailed behind him after the deal and whispered that we obviously intended to scam him, and he should stay away from us.

This timorous mood of the emigrants was doubly unfortunate, as it exposed them to real danger. Assume, in the presence of Indians a bold bearing, self-confident yet vigilant, and you will find them tolerably safe neighbors. But your safety depends on the respect and fear you are able to inspire. If you betray timidity or indecision, you convert them from that moment into insidious and dangerous enemies. The Dakotas saw clearly enough the perturbation of the emigrants and instantly availed themselves of it. They became extremely insolent and exacting in their demands. It has become an established custom with them to go to the camp of every party, as it arrives in succession at the fort, and demand a feast. Smoke’s village had come with the express design, having made several days’ journey with no other object than that of enjoying a cup of coffee and two or three biscuits. So the “feast” was demanded, and the emigrants dared not refuse it.

This fearful mood of the emigrants was doubly unfortunate, as it put them in real danger. If you act boldly and confidently in front of Indians, while staying alert, you’ll find them to be fairly safe neighbors. But your safety hinges on the respect and fear you can create. If you show any signs of fear or hesitation, you turn them into subtle and dangerous enemies. The Dakotas quickly noticed the anxiety of the emigrants and took advantage of it. They became very arrogant and demanding. It has become a custom for them to visit the camp of every group as they arrive at the fort and request a feast. Smoke’s village had come specifically for this purpose, having traveled for several days just to enjoy a cup of coffee and a couple of biscuits. So, the “feast” was demanded, and the emigrants felt they had no choice but to comply.

One evening, about sunset, the village was deserted. We met old men, warriors, squaws, and children in gay attire, trooping off to the encampment, with faces of anticipation; and, arriving here, they seated themselves in a semicircle. Smoke occupied the center, with his warriors on either hand; the young men and boys next succeeded, and the squaws and children formed the horns of the crescent. The biscuit and coffee were most promptly dispatched, the emigrants staring open-mouthed at their savage guests. With each new emigrant party that arrived at Fort Laramie this scene was renewed; and every day the Indians grew more rapacious and presumptuous. One evening they broke to pieces, out of mere wantonness, the cups from which they had been feasted; and this so exasperated the emigrants that many of them seized their rifles and could scarcely be restrained from firing on the insolent mob of Indians. Before we left the country this dangerous spirit on the part of the Dakota had mounted to a yet higher pitch. They began openly to threaten the emigrants with destruction, and actually fired upon one or two parties of whites. A military force and military law are urgently called for in that perilous region; and unless troops are speedily stationed at Fort Laramie, or elsewhere in the neighborhood, both the emigrants and other travelers will be exposed to most imminent risks.

One evening, just around sunset, the village was empty. We encountered old men, warriors, women, and children dressed in bright clothing, heading to the camp with eager expressions. When they arrived, they formed a semicircle. In the center was Smoke, with his warriors on either side; the young men and boys were next, and the women and children filled in the outer edges of the crescent. The biscuits and coffee were quickly consumed, while the emigrants stared wide-eyed at their Native American guests. With each new group of emigrants arriving at Fort Laramie, this scene replayed, and every day the Indians became more greedy and bold. One evening, they carelessly broke the cups they had used to eat, which infuriated the emigrants so much that many grabbed their rifles and could hardly be held back from shooting at the disrespectful crowd of Indians. Before we left the area, the aggressive attitude from the Dakota escalated even further. They began to openly threaten the emigrants with violence and even shot at a couple of groups of white travelers. There is an urgent need for military presence and enforcement in that dangerous area; if troops are not quickly stationed at Fort Laramie or somewhere nearby, both the emigrants and other travelers will face serious danger.

The Ogallalla, the Brules, and other western bands of the Dakota, are thorough savages, unchanged by any contact with civilization. Not one of them can speak a European tongue, or has ever visited an American settlement. Until within a year or two, when the emigrants began to pass through their country on the way to Oregon, they had seen no whites except the handful employed about the Fur Company’s posts. They esteemed them a wise people, inferior only to themselves, living in leather lodges, like their own, and subsisting on buffalo. But when the swarm of MENEASKA, with their oxen and wagons, began to invade them, their astonishment was unbounded. They could scarcely believe that the earth contained such a multitude of white men. Their wonder is now giving way to indignation; and the result, unless vigilantly guarded against, may be lamentable in the extreme.

The Ogallala, the Brules, and other western groups of the Dakota are completely uncivilized, remaining untouched by any interaction with modern society. None of them can speak a European language or have ever been to an American settlement. Until just a year or two ago, when emigrants started traveling through their land on their way to Oregon, they had only seen a few white people who worked at the Fur Company’s posts. They considered these individuals wise, but still inferior to themselves, living in leather tents like their own and relying on buffalo for food. However, when the wave of MENEASKA, with their oxen and wagons, began to invade their territory, their shock was overwhelming. They could hardly believe that so many white people existed. Their amazement is now turning into anger, and if this situation isn’t carefully managed, the consequences could be extremely tragic.

But to glance at the interior of a lodge. Shaw and I used often to visit them. Indeed, we spent most of our evenings in the Indian village; Shaw’s assumption of the medical character giving us a fair pretext. As a sample of the rest I will describe one of these visits. The sun had just set, and the horses were driven into the corral. The Prairie Cock, a noted beau, came in at the gate with a bevy of young girls, with whom he began to dance in the area, leading them round and round in a circle, while he jerked up from his chest a succession of monotonous sounds, to which they kept time in a rueful chant. Outside the gate boys and young men were idly frolicking; and close by, looking grimly upon them, stood a warrior in his robe, with his face painted jet-black, in token that he had lately taken a Pawnee scalp. Passing these, the tall dark lodges rose between us and the red western sky. We repaired at once to the lodge of Old Smoke himself. It was by no means better than the others; indeed, it was rather shabby; for in this democratic community, the chief never assumes superior state. Smoke sat cross-legged on a buffalo robe, and his grunt of salutation as we entered was unusually cordial, out of respect no doubt to Shaw’s medical character. Seated around the lodge were several squaws, and an abundance of children. The complaint of Shaw’s patients was, for the most part, a severe inflammation of the eyes, occasioned by exposure to the sun, a species of disorder which he treated with some success. He had brought with him a homeopathic medicine chest, and was, I presume, the first who introduced that harmless system of treatment among the Ogallalla. No sooner had a robe been spread at the head of the lodge for our accommodation, and we had seated ourselves upon it, than a patient made her appearance; the chief’s daughter herself, who, to do her justice, was the best-looking girl in the village. Being on excellent terms with the physician, she placed herself readily under his hands, and submitted with a good grace to his applications, laughing in his face during the whole process, for a squaw hardly knows how to smile. This case dispatched, another of a different kind succeeded. A hideous, emaciated old woman sat in the darkest corner of the lodge rocking to and fro with pain and hiding her eyes from the light by pressing the palms of both hands against her face. At Smoke’s command, she came forward, very unwillingly, and exhibited a pair of eyes that had nearly disappeared from excess of inflammation. No sooner had the doctor fastened his grips upon her than she set up a dismal moaning, and writhed so in his grasp that he lost all patience, but being resolved to carry his point, he succeeded at last in applying his favorite remedies.

But to take a look at the inside of a lodge. Shaw and I would often visit them. In fact, we spent most of our evenings in the Indian village; Shaw’s role as a medical practitioner gave us a good reason to be there. To illustrate, I’ll describe one of these visits. The sun had just set, and the horses were driven into the corral. The Prairie Cock, a well-known charmer, entered through the gate with a group of young girls, and started dancing in the open space, leading them around in circles while he let out a series of monotonous sounds, and they kept pace with a mournful chant. Outside the gate, boys and young men were playfully hanging out; nearby, a warrior stood grimly watching them, dressed in his robe and with his face painted jet-black, signaling that he had recently taken a Pawnee scalp. As we passed by, the tall dark lodges rose up against the red western sky. We immediately went to the lodge of Old Smoke himself. It wasn’t any better than the others; in fact, it was a bit worn down; in this democratic community, the chief doesn’t act superior. Smoke sat cross-legged on a buffalo robe, and his grunt of greeting as we entered was unusually warm, likely out of respect for Shaw’s medical role. Seated around the lodge were several women and plenty of children. Most of Shaw’s patients complained of severe eye inflammation due to sun exposure, a kind of issue he managed to treat with some success. He had brought a homeopathic medicine kit and, I believe, was the first to introduce that gentle treatment method among the Ogallalla. No sooner had a robe been spread at the head of the lodge for us to sit on than a patient appeared; the chief’s daughter herself, who, to be fair, was the best-looking girl in the village. Being on friendly terms with the doctor, she easily placed herself in his care and laughed throughout the whole process, as a woman generally doesn’t know how to smile. After that case, another one of a different sort came next. A frail, ugly old woman sat in the darkest corner of the lodge, rocking back and forth in pain and shielding her eyes from the light by pressing her palms against her face. At Smoke’s request, she reluctantly stepped forward and showed a pair of eyes that had nearly vanished from severe inflammation. As soon as the doctor laid his hands on her, she began to moan dismally and squirmed so much in his grip that he lost all patience. However, determined to succeed, he eventually managed to apply his favorite treatments.

“It is strange,” he said, when the operation was finished, “that I forgot to bring any Spanish flies with me; we must have something here to answer for a counter-irritant!”

“It’s odd,” he said, when the operation was over, “that I forgot to bring any Spanish flies with me; we have to find something here to serve as a counter-irritant!”

So, in the absence of better, he seized upon a red-hot brand from the fire, and clapped it against the temple of the old squaw, who set up an unearthly howl, at which the rest of the family broke out into a laugh.

So, lacking a better option, he grabbed a red-hot poker from the fire and pressed it against the old woman's temple, which made her scream in a way that was almost supernatural, causing the rest of the family to burst into laughter.

During these medical operations Smoke’s eldest squaw entered the lodge, with a sort of stone mallet in her hand. I had observed some time before a litter of well-grown black puppies, comfortably nestled among some buffalo robes at one side; but this newcomer speedily disturbed their enjoyment; for seizing one of them by the hind paw, she dragged him out, and carrying him to the entrance of the lodge, hammered him on the head till she killed him. Being quite conscious to what this preparation tended, I looked through a hole in the back of the lodge to see the next steps of the process. The squaw, holding the puppy by the legs, was swinging him to and fro through the blaze of a fire, until the hair was singed off. This done, she unsheathed her knife and cut him into small pieces, which she dropped into a kettle to boil. In a few moments a large wooden dish was set before us, filled with this delicate preparation. We felt conscious of the honor. A dog-feast is the greatest compliment a Dakota can offer to his guest; and knowing that to refuse eating would be an affront, we attacked the little dog and devoured him before the eyes of his unconscious parent. Smoke in the meantime was preparing his great pipe. It was lighted when we had finished our repast, and we passed it from one to another till the bowl was empty. This done, we took our leave without further ceremony, knocked at the gate of the fort, and after making ourselves known were admitted.

During these medical operations, Smoke’s eldest wife entered the lodge, holding a stone mallet. I had noticed earlier a litter of healthy black puppies, snuggled up on some buffalo robes in one corner; but this newcomer quickly disrupted their peace. She grabbed one by the hind paw, dragged him out, and took him to the entrance of the lodge, where she pounded his head until he was dead. Realizing what was about to happen, I peered through a hole in the back of the lodge to watch the next steps. The woman, holding the puppy by its legs, swung it back and forth through the flames of a fire until its fur was singed off. Once that was done, she pulled out her knife and chopped him into small pieces, which she dropped into a kettle to boil. A few moments later, a large wooden dish was placed in front of us, filled with this special dish. We felt honored. A dog feast is the highest compliment a Dakota can give to a guest; knowing that refusing to eat would be an insult, we dug into the little dog and consumed him right in front of his unaware parent. Meanwhile, Smoke was preparing his big pipe. It was lit as we finished our meal, and we passed it around until the bowl was empty. After that, we took our leave without any more ceremony, knocked on the gate of the fort, and after identifying ourselves, were let in.

One morning, about a week after reaching Fort Laramie, we were holding our customary Indian levee, when a bustle in the area below announced a new arrival; and looking down from our balcony, I saw a familiar red beard and mustache in the gateway. They belonged to the captain, who with his party had just crossed the stream. We met him on the stairs as he came up, and congratulated him on the safe arrival of himself and his devoted companions. But he remembered our treachery, and was grave and dignified accordingly; a tendency which increased as he observed on our part a disposition to laugh at him. After remaining an hour or two at the fort he rode away with his friends, and we have heard nothing of him since. As for R., he kept carefully aloof. It was but too evident that we had the unhappiness to have forfeited the kind regards of our London fellow-traveler.

One morning, about a week after arriving at Fort Laramie, we were holding our usual Indian gathering when a commotion below signaled a new arrival; leaning over our balcony, I spotted a familiar red beard and mustache in the entrance. It was the captain, who had just crossed the stream with his group. We ran into him on the stairs as he came up, and we congratulated him on his safe arrival along with his loyal friends. However, he remembered our betrayal and was serious and reserved as a result; this serious demeanor grew as he noticed us trying to hold back laughter at his expense. After spending an hour or two at the fort, he left with his companions, and we haven’t heard from him since. As for R., he kept his distance. It was clear that we had unfortunately lost the goodwill of our fellow traveler from London.





CHAPTER X

THE WAR PARTIES

The summer of 1846 was a season of much warlike excitement among all the western bands of the Dakota. In 1845 they encountered great reverses. Many war parties had been sent out; some of them had been totally cut off, and others had returned broken and disheartened, so that the whole nation was in mourning. Among the rest, ten warriors had gone to the Snake country, led by the son of a prominent Ogallalla chief, called The Whirlwind. In passing over Laramie Plains they encountered a superior number of their enemies, were surrounded, and killed to a man. Having performed this exploit the Snakes became alarmed, dreading the resentment of the Dakota, and they hastened therefore to signify their wish for peace by sending the scalp of the slain partisan, together with a small parcel of tobacco attached, to his tribesmen and relations. They had employed old Vaskiss, the trader, as their messenger, and the scalp was the same that hung in our room at the fort. But The Whirlwind proved inexorable. Though his character hardly corresponds with his name, he is nevertheless an Indian, and hates the Snakes with his whole soul. Long before the scalp arrived he had made his preparations for revenge. He sent messengers with presents and tobacco to all the Dakota within three hundred miles, proposing a grand combination to chastise the Snakes, and naming a place and time of rendezvous. The plan was readily adopted and at this moment many villages, probably embracing in the whole five or six thousand souls, were slowly creeping over the prairies and tending towards the common center at La Bonte’s Camp, on the Platte. Here their war-like rites were to be celebrated with more than ordinary solemnity, and a thousand warriors, as it was said, were to set out for the enemy country. The characteristic result of this preparation will appear in the sequel.

The summer of 1846 was a time of intense conflict among all the western groups of the Dakota. In 1845, they faced significant defeats. Many war parties had been sent out; some were completely wiped out, while others returned broken and discouraged, leaving the entire nation in mourning. Among them, ten warriors had gone to the Snake country, led by The Whirlwind, the son of a well-known Ogallalla chief. While crossing Laramie Plains, they faced a larger force of enemies, were surrounded, and killed to a man. After this incident, the Snakes grew fearful of Dakota retaliation and quickly tried to express their desire for peace by sending the scalp of the fallen warrior along with a small bundle of tobacco to his tribesmen and family. They had chosen old Vaskiss, the trader, to deliver the message, and the scalp was the same one that hung in our room at the fort. However, The Whirlwind was relentless. Although his personality doesn’t quite match his name, he is still a fierce Indian who despises the Snakes deeply. Long before the scalp arrived, he had already begun making plans for revenge. He sent messengers with gifts and tobacco to all the Dakota within three hundred miles, proposing a massive alliance to punish the Snakes and setting a time and place for them to meet. The plan was quickly accepted, and at that moment, many villages, likely totaling five or six thousand people, were slowly making their way across the prairies toward the gathering point at La Bonte’s Camp on the Platte. There, they would hold their war ceremonies with extra seriousness, and it was said that a thousand warriors would set out for enemy territory. The outcome of this preparation will become clear later.

I was greatly rejoiced to hear of it. I had come into the country almost exclusively with a view of observing the Indian character. Having from childhood felt a curiosity on this subject, and having failed completely to gratify it by reading, I resolved to have recourse to observation. I wished to satisfy myself with regard to the position of the Indians among the races of men; the vices and the virtues that have sprung from their innate character and from their modes of life, their government, their superstitions, and their domestic situation. To accomplish my purpose it was necessary to live in the midst of them, and become, as it were, one of them. I proposed to join a village and make myself an inmate of one of their lodges; and henceforward this narrative, so far as I am concerned, will be chiefly a record of the progress of this design apparently so easy of accomplishment, and the unexpected impediments that opposed it.

I was really pleased to hear about it. I had come to the country mainly to observe the Indian character. Since childhood, I had a curiosity about this, and after failing to satisfy it through reading, I decided to rely on observation instead. I wanted to understand the position of the Indians among different races, as well as the vices and virtues that come from their innate traits and lifestyles, their government, superstitions, and domestic situations. To achieve this, I needed to live among them and basically become one of them. I planned to join a village and live in one of their lodges; from this point on, this narrative, as far as I’m concerned, will mainly record the progress of this seemingly simple plan and the unexpected obstacles that got in the way.

We resolved on no account to miss the rendezvous at La Bonte’s Camp. Our plan was to leave Delorier at the fort, in charge of our equipage and the better part of our horses, while we took with us nothing but our weapons and the worst animals we had. In all probability jealousies and quarrels would arise among so many hordes of fierce impulsive savages, congregated together under no common head, and many of them strangers, from remote prairies and mountains. We were bound in common prudence to be cautious how we excited any feeling of cupidity. This was our plan, but unhappily we were not destined to visit La Bonte’s Camp in this manner; for one morning a young Indian came to the fort and brought us evil tidings. The newcomer was a dandy of the first water. His ugly face was painted with vermilion; on his head fluttered the tail of a prairie cock (a large species of pheasant, not found, as I have heard, eastward of the Rocky Mountains); in his ears were hung pendants of shell, and a flaming red blanket was wrapped around him. He carried a dragoon sword in his hand, solely for display, since the knife, the arrow, and the rifle are the arbiters of every prairie fight; but no one in this country goes abroad unarmed, the dandy carried a bow and arrows in an otter-skin quiver at his back. In this guise, and bestriding his yellow horse with an air of extreme dignity, The Horse, for that was his name, rode in at the gate, turning neither to the right nor the left, but casting glances askance at the groups of squaws who, with their mongrel progeny, were sitting in the sun before their doors. The evil tidings brought by The Horse were of the following import: The squaw of Henry Chatillon, a woman with whom he had been connected for years by the strongest ties which in that country exist between the sexes, was dangerously ill. She and her children were in the village of The Whirlwind, at the distance of a few days’ journey. Henry was anxious to see the woman before she died, and provide for the safety and support of his children, of whom he was extremely fond. To have refused him this would have been gross inhumanity. We abandoned our plan of joining Smoke’s village, and of proceeding with it to the rendezvous, and determined to meet The Whirlwind, and go in his company.

We were determined not to miss the meeting at La Bonte’s Camp. Our plan was to leave Delorier at the fort, looking after our gear and most of our horses, while we took only our weapons and the least valuable animals we had. There was a good chance that jealousy and fights would break out among so many fierce, impulsive tribes gathered together without any leader, and many of them strangers from far-off prairies and mountains. We needed to be careful not to stir up any greed. This was our plan, but unfortunately, we weren’t meant to visit La Bonte’s Camp this way; one morning a young Indian showed up at the fort with bad news. The newcomer was quite a dandy. His ugly face was painted with bright red; a prairie cock's tail (a big kind of pheasant not found, as I’ve heard, east of the Rocky Mountains) was hanging from his head; he wore shell earrings, and a flashy red blanket was wrapped around him. He carried a dragoon sword just for show since knives, arrows, and rifles are what really matter in prairie fights, but no one in this area goes out unarmed; the dandy had a bow and arrows in an otter-skin quiver on his back. With this look, he rode in on his yellow horse with an air of great dignity, keeping his head straight without looking side to side, but glancing sideways at the groups of women with their mixed children sitting in the sun outside their doors. The bad news brought by The Horse was as follows: Henry Chatillon’s wife, a woman he had been strongly connected to for years, was seriously ill. She and their children were in the village of The Whirlwind, a few days’ journey away. Henry wanted to see her before she passed and ensure the safety and care of his children, who he loved dearly. To have turned him down would have been inhumane. So, we changed our plan of joining Smoke’s village and decided to meet The Whirlwind and go with him.

I had been slightly ill for several weeks, but on the third night after reaching Fort Laramie a violent pain awoke me, and I found myself attacked by the same disorder that occasioned such heavy losses to the army on the Rio Grande. In a day and a half I was reduced to extreme weakness, so that I could not walk without pain and effort. Having within that time taken six grains of opium, without the least beneficial effect, and having no medical adviser, nor any choice of diet, I resolved to throw myself upon Providence for recovery, using, without regard to the disorder, any portion of strength that might remain to me. So on the 20th of June we set out from Fort Laramie to meet The Whirlwind’s village. Though aided by the high-bowed “mountain saddle,” I could scarcely keep my seat on horseback. Before we left the fort we hired another man, a long-haired Canadian, with a face like an owl’s, contrasting oddly enough with Delorier’s mercurial countenance. This was not the only re-enforcement to our party. A vagrant Indian trader, named Reynal, joined us, together with his squaw Margot, and her two nephews, our dandy friend, The Horse, and his younger brother, The Hail Storm. Thus accompanied, we betook ourselves to the prairie, leaving the beaten trail, and passing over the desolate hills that flank the bottoms of Laramie Creek. In all, Indians and whites, we counted eight men and one woman.

I had been feeling unwell for a few weeks, but on the third night after arriving at Fort Laramie, a sudden pain woke me up, and I realized I was suffering from the same illness that had caused significant losses for the army on the Rio Grande. Within a day and a half, I became extremely weak, to the point where I couldn’t walk without pain and effort. After taking six grains of opium during that time with no positive effect, and having no doctor to consult or options for food, I decided to rely on Providence for recovery, using whatever strength I had left, regardless of my condition. So, on June 20th, we set out from Fort Laramie to meet The Whirlwind’s village. Even with the help of the high-backed “mountain saddle,” I could barely stay in the saddle. Before we left the fort, we hired another man, a long-haired Canadian with a face like an owl’s, which was a striking contrast to Delorier’s more animated expression. This wasn’t the only addition to our group. A wandering Indian trader named Reynal joined us, along with his wife Margot and her two nephews, our stylish friend, The Horse, and his younger brother, The Hail Storm. With this crew, we headed out onto the prairie, leaving the well-traveled path to cross the barren hills that rise alongside Laramie Creek. In total, counting both Indians and whites, we were eight men and one woman.

Reynal, the trader, the image of sleek and selfish complacency, carried The Horse’s dragoon sword in his hand, delighting apparently in this useless parade; for, from spending half his life among Indians, he had caught not only their habits but their ideas. Margot, a female animal of more than two hundred pounds’ weight, was couched in the basket of a travail, such as I have before described; besides her ponderous bulk, various domestic utensils were attached to the vehicle, and she was leading by a trail-rope a packhorse, who carried the covering of Reynal’s lodge. Delorier walked briskly by the side of the cart, and Raymond came behind, swearing at the spare horses, which it was his business to drive. The restless young Indians, their quivers at their backs, and their bows in their hand, galloped over the hills, often starting a wolf or an antelope from the thick growth of wild-sage bushes. Shaw and I were in keeping with the rest of the rude cavalcade, having in the absence of other clothing adopted the buckskin attire of the trappers. Henry Chatillon rode in advance of the whole. Thus we passed hill after hill and hollow after hollow, a country arid, broken and so parched by the sun that none of the plants familiar to our more favored soil would flourish upon it, though there were multitudes of strange medicinal herbs, more especially the absanth, which covered every declivity, and cacti were hanging like reptiles at the edges of every ravine. At length we ascended a high hill, our horses treading upon pebbles of flint, agate, and rough jasper, until, gaining the top, we looked down on the wild bottoms of Laramie Creek, which far below us wound like a writhing snake from side to side of the narrow interval, amid a growth of shattered cotton-wood and ash trees. Lines of tall cliffs, white as chalk, shut in this green strip of woods and meadow land, into which we descended and encamped for the night. In the morning we passed a wide grassy plain by the river; there was a grove in front, and beneath its shadows the ruins of an old trading fort of logs. The grove bloomed with myriads of wild roses, with their sweet perfume fraught with recollections of home. As we emerged from the trees, a rattlesnake, as large as a man’s arm, and more than four feet long, lay coiled on a rock, fiercely rattling and hissing at us; a gray hare, double the size of those in New England, leaped up from the tall ferns; curlew were screaming over our heads, and a whole host of little prairie dogs sat yelping at us at the mouths of their burrows on the dry plain beyond. Suddenly an antelope leaped up from the wild-sage bushes, gazed eagerly at us, and then, erecting his white tail, stretched away like a greyhound. The two Indian boys found a white wolf, as large as a calf in a hollow, and giving a sharp yell, they galloped after him; but the wolf leaped into the stream and swam across. Then came the crack of a rifle, the bullet whistling harmlessly over his head, as he scrambled up the steep declivity, rattling down stones and earth into the water below. Advancing a little, we beheld on the farther bank of the stream, a spectacle not common even in that region; for, emerging from among the trees, a herd of some two hundred elk came out upon the meadow, their antlers clattering as they walked forward in dense throng. Seeing us, they broke into a run, rushing across the opening and disappearing among the trees and scattered groves. On our left was a barren prairie, stretching to the horizon; on our right, a deep gulf, with Laramie Creek at the bottom. We found ourselves at length at the edge of a steep descent; a narrow valley, with long rank grass and scattered trees stretching before us for a mile or more along the course of the stream. Reaching the farther end, we stopped and encamped. An old huge cotton-wood tree spread its branches horizontally over our tent. Laramie Creek, circling before our camp, half inclosed us; it swept along the bottom of a line of tall white cliffs that looked down on us from the farther bank. There were dense copses on our right; the cliffs, too, were half hidden by shrubbery, though behind us a few cotton-wood trees, dotting the green prairie, alone impeded the view, and friend or enemy could be discerned in that direction at a mile’s distance. Here we resolved to remain and await the arrival of The Whirlwind, who would certainly pass this way in his progress toward La Bonte’s Camp. To go in search of him was not expedient, both on account of the broken and impracticable nature of the country and the uncertainty of his position and movements; besides, our horses were almost worn out, and I was in no condition to travel. We had good grass, good water, tolerable fish from the stream, and plenty of smaller game, such as antelope and deer, though no buffalo. There was one little drawback to our satisfaction—a certain extensive tract of bushes and dried grass, just behind us, which it was by no means advisable to enter, since it sheltered a numerous brood of rattlesnakes. Henry Chatillon again dispatched The Horse to the village, with a message to his squaw that she and her relatives should leave the rest and push on as rapidly as possible to our camp.

Reynal, the trader, the embodiment of sleek and selfish indifference, held The Horse’s dragoon sword in his hand, seemingly enjoying this pointless display; having spent half his life among the Indians, he had absorbed not only their habits but also their mindset. Margot, a large woman weighing over two hundred pounds, was settled in the basket of a cart, like I described before; in addition to her hefty size, various household items were attached to the vehicle, and she was leading a packhorse with Reynal’s lodge covering. Delorier walked briskly beside the cart, and Raymond followed behind, cursing the spare horses he was responsible for driving. The restless young Indians, with their quivers on their backs and bows in their hands, galloped over the hills, often startling a wolf or an antelope from the dense wild-sage bushes. Shaw and I blended in with the rest of the rough group, having adopted the buckskin clothing of the trappers since we had no other attire. Henry Chatillon rode ahead of everyone. We passed hill after hill and hollow after hollow in an arid landscape so broken and sun-scorched that none of the plants familiar to our more fortunate land could thrive, though an abundance of strange medicinal herbs dotted the ground, particularly absinth, which covered every slope, with cacti hanging like reptiles at the edges of every ravine. Eventually, we climbed a high hill, our horses stepping on flint, agate, and rough jasper pebbles, until we reached the top and looked down at the wild bottoms of Laramie Creek, which curled below us like a twisting snake through the narrow valley, among shattered cottonwood and ash trees. Tall cliffs as white as chalk surrounded this green strip of woods and meadows, where we descended and set up camp for the night. In the morning, we passed a wide grassy plain by the river; a grove was in front, and under its shade were the ruins of an old log trading fort. The grove bloomed with countless wild roses, their sweet scent reminding us of home. As we emerged from the trees, a rattlesnake as thick as a man’s arm and over four feet long lay coiled on a rock, fiercely rattling and hissing at us; a large gray hare, twice the size of those in New England, jumped up from the tall ferns; curlews screamed overhead, and a chorus of little prairie dogs yipped at us from their burrows on the dry plain beyond. Suddenly, an antelope sprang up from the wild-sage bushes, stared at us for a moment, and then, raising its white tail, took off like a greyhound. The two Indian boys spotted a white wolf as big as a calf in a hollow, and with a sharp yell, they chased after it; however, the wolf leaped into the stream and swam across. Then came the sound of a rifle shot, the bullet whistling harmlessly over its head as it hastily scrambled up the steep slope, sending stones and dirt tumbling into the water below. Moving a bit further, we saw something uncommon in that region; emerging from the trees was a herd of about two hundred elk walking together in a noisy mass, their antlers clattering. When they noticed us, they bolted, racing across the clearing and disappearing into the trees and scattered groves. To our left was a barren prairie stretching to the horizon; to our right was a deep gorge, with Laramie Creek at the bottom. We eventually found ourselves at the edge of a steep drop, facing a narrow valley with tall grass and scattered trees stretching before us for over a mile along the stream's path. Once we reached the other end, we stopped and set up camp. An enormous old cottonwood tree extended its branches over our tent. Laramie Creek flowed in front of our camp, partially enclosing us as it wound along the base of a line of tall white cliffs looking down at us from the opposite bank. Dense thickets lined our right; the cliffs were also partly concealed by bushes. Behind us, a few cottonwood trees dotted the green prairie, providing a clear view that allowed us to spot either friend or foe from a mile away. Here, we decided to stay and wait for The Whirlwind, who would undoubtedly pass this way on his way to La Bonte’s Camp. It wouldn’t be wise to go looking for him due to the rugged and hard-to-navigate terrain and the uncertainty about his location and movements; besides, our horses were almost exhausted, and I was in no condition to travel. We had good grass, fresh water, decent fish from the stream, and plenty of smaller game like antelope and deer, though no buffalo. One small hitch to our contentment was a large patch of bushes and dried grass right behind us, which we definitely shouldn’t enter, as it was home to many rattlesnakes. Henry Chatillon again sent The Horse back to the village with a message to his wife, asking her and her family to leave the others and hurry to our camp as quickly as possible.

Our daily routine soon became as regular as that of a well-ordered household. The weather-beaten old tree was in the center; our rifles generally rested against its vast trunk, and our saddles were flung on the ground around it; its distorted roots were so twisted as to form one or two convenient arm-chairs, where we could sit in the shade and read or smoke; but meal-times became, on the whole, the most interesting hours of the day, and a bountiful provision was made for them. An antelope or a deer usually swung from a stout bough, and haunches were suspended against the trunk. That camp is daguerreotyped on my memory; the old tree, the white tent, with Shaw sleeping in the shadow of it, and Reynal’s miserable lodge close by the bank of the stream. It was a wretched oven-shaped structure, made of begrimed and tattered buffalo hides stretched over a frame of poles; one side was open, and at the side of the opening hung the powder horn and bullet pouch of the owner, together with his long red pipe, and a rich quiver of otterskin, with a bow and arrows; for Reynal, an Indian in most things but color, chose to hunt buffalo with these primitive weapons. In the darkness of this cavern-like habitation, might be discerned Madame Margot, her overgrown bulk stowed away among her domestic implements, furs, robes, blankets, and painted cases of PAR’ FLECHE, in which dried meat is kept. Here she sat from sunrise to sunset, a bloated impersonation of gluttony and laziness, while her affectionate proprietor was smoking, or begging petty gifts from us, or telling lies concerning his own achievements, or perchance engaged in the more profitable occupation of cooking some preparation of prairie delicacies. Reynal was an adept at this work; he and Delorier have joined forces and are hard at work together over the fire, while Raymond spreads, by way of tablecloth, a buffalo hide, carefully whitened with pipeclay, on the grass before the tent. Here, with ostentatious display, he arranges the teacups and plates; and then, creeping on all fours like a dog, he thrusts his head in at the opening of the tent. For a moment we see his round owlish eyes rolling wildly, as if the idea he came to communicate had suddenly escaped him; then collecting his scattered thoughts, as if by an effort, he informs us that supper is ready, and instantly withdraws.

Our daily routine soon became as regular as that of a well-organized household. The weathered old tree was in the center; our rifles usually leaned against its wide trunk, and our saddles were tossed on the ground around it. Its gnarled roots were twisted into a couple of comfy armchairs, where we could sit in the shade to read or smoke. Meal times turned out to be the most interesting hours of the day, and we made sure to have plenty of food for them. An antelope or a deer usually hung from a sturdy branch, and haunches were draped against the trunk. That campsite is etched in my memory—the old tree, the white tent with Shaw sleeping in its shade, and Reynal’s shabby lodge near the bank of the stream. It was a miserable, oven-shaped structure made of dirty, tattered buffalo hides stretched over a frame of poles; one side was open, and next to the opening hung the owner’s powder horn and bullet pouch, along with his long red pipe and a richly decorated quiver made of otterskin, complete with a bow and arrows; Reynal, an Indian in everything but color, preferred to hunt buffalo with these traditional weapons. In the dimness of this cave-like dwelling, you could spot Madame Margot, her hefty figure crammed among her household items, furs, robes, blankets, and painted cases of PAR’ FLECHE for storing dried meat. She would sit there from sunrise to sunset, a bloated symbol of gluttony and laziness, while her doting owner smoked, begged for small gifts from us, bragged about his own achievements, or perhaps engaged in the more useful task of cooking up some prairie delicacies. Reynal was skilled at this; he and Delorier teamed up and worked diligently over the fire, while Raymond spread a buffalo hide, artfully whitened with pipe clay, on the grass in front of the tent as a tablecloth. Here, with a flourish, he arranged the teacups and plates; then, crawling on all fours like a dog, he poked his head into the tent. For a moment, we saw his round, owlish eyes rolling around as if the message he came to deliver had slipped his mind; then, gathering his thoughts like a challenge, he told us that supper was ready and quickly retreated.

When sunset came, and at that hour the wild and desolate scene would assume a new aspect, the horses were driven in. They had been grazing all day in the neighboring meadow, but now they were picketed close about the camp. As the prairie darkened we sat and conversed around the fire, until becoming drowsy we spread our saddles on the ground, wrapped our blankets around us and lay down. We never placed a guard, having by this time become too indolent; but Henry Chatillon folded his loaded rifle in the same blanket with himself, observing that he always took it to bed with him when he camped in that place. Henry was too bold a man to use such a precaution without good cause. We had a hint now and then that our situation was none of the safest; several Crow war parties were known to be in the vicinity, and one of them, that passed here some time before, had peeled the bark from a neighboring tree, and engraved upon the white wood certain hieroglyphics, to signify that they had invaded the territories of their enemies, the Dakota, and set them at defiance. One morning a thick mist covered the whole country. Shaw and Henry went out to ride, and soon came back with a startling piece of intelligence; they had found within rifle-shot of our camp the recent trail of about thirty horsemen. They could not be whites, and they could not be Dakota, since we knew no such parties to be in the neighborhood; therefore they must be Crows. Thanks to that friendly mist, we had escaped a hard battle; they would inevitably have attacked us and our Indian companions had they seen our camp. Whatever doubts we might have entertained, were quite removed a day or two after, by two or three Dakota, who came to us with an account of having hidden in a ravine on that very morning, from whence they saw and counted the Crows; they said that they followed them, carefully keeping out of sight, as they passed up Chugwater; that here the Crows discovered five dead bodies of Dakota, placed according to the national custom in trees, and flinging them to the ground, they held their guns against them and blew them to atoms.

When sunset arrived, the wild and desolate scene took on a different look, and the horses were brought in. They had been grazing all day in the nearby meadow, but now they were tied up close to the camp. As the prairie grew dark, we sat around the fire talking, until we got sleepy and laid our saddles on the ground, wrapped ourselves in blankets, and went to sleep. We didn’t set a guard because we had become too lazy by then; but Henry Chatillon wrapped his loaded rifle in his blanket with him, stating that he always took it to bed with him when camping here. Henry was too brave to take such precautions without a good reason. We occasionally picked up hints that our situation wasn’t the safest; several Crow war parties were known to be nearby, and one that had passed by earlier had stripped the bark from a nearby tree and carved some symbols into the white wood to show that they had invaded the territory of their enemies, the Dakota, and mocked them. One morning, a thick mist covered the entire area. Shaw and Henry went out for a ride, and soon returned with some alarming news; they had found the recent trail of about thirty horsemen within rifle range of our camp. They couldn’t be white, and they couldn’t be Dakota since we knew there were no such groups around; therefore, they had to be Crows. Thanks to that friendly mist, we had avoided a tough battle; they would surely have attacked us and our Indian companions if they had seen our camp. Any doubts we had were cleared up a day or two later when two or three Dakota visited us and reported that they had hidden in a ravine that morning, from where they saw and counted the Crows; they said they followed them, staying hidden, as they moved up Chugwater; there, the Crows found five dead Dakota bodies, placed in trees according to their customs, and they threw them to the ground, holding their guns against them and blowing them to pieces.

If our camp were not altogether safe, still it was comfortable enough; at least it was so to Shaw, for I was tormented with illness and vexed by the delay in the accomplishment of my designs. When a respite in my disorder gave me some returning strength, I rode out well-armed upon the prairie, or bathed with Shaw in the stream, or waged a petty warfare with the inhabitants of a neighborhood prairie-dog village. Around our fire at night we employed ourselves in inveighing against the fickleness and inconstancy of Indians, and execrating The Whirlwind and all his village. At last the thing grew insufferable.

If our camp wasn't completely safe, it was still comfortable enough; at least it was for Shaw, since I was suffering from illness and frustrated by the delays in achieving my plans. When a break in my condition allowed me to regain some strength, I rode out well-armed on the prairie, or swam with Shaw in the stream, or engaged in some light-hearted battles with the residents of a nearby prairie-dog village. Around our fire at night, we occupied ourselves by complaining about the unpredictable nature of the Indians and cursing The Whirlwind and his entire village. Eventually, it all became unbearable.

“To-morrow morning,” said I, “I will start for the fort, and see if I can hear any news there.” Late that evening, when the fire had sunk low, and all the camp were asleep, a loud cry sounded from the darkness. Henry started up, recognized the voice, replied to it, and our dandy friend, The Horse, rode in among us, just returned from his mission to the village. He coolly picketed his mare, without saying a word, sat down by the fire and began to eat, but his imperturbable philosophy was too much for our patience. Where was the village? about fifty miles south of us; it was moving slowly and would not arrive in less than a week; and where was Henry’s squaw? coming as fast as she could with Mahto-Tatonka, and the rest of her brothers, but she would never reach us, for she was dying, and asking every moment for Henry. Henry’s manly face became clouded and downcast; he said that if we were willing he would go in the morning to find her, at which Shaw offered to accompany him.

"Tomorrow morning," I said, "I'll head to the fort and see if I can get any news there." Late that evening, as the fire burned low and everyone in the camp was asleep, a loud cry pierced the darkness. Henry jumped up, recognized the voice, responded, and our flashy friend, The Horse, rode in among us, just back from his trip to the village. He casually tied up his mare without saying a word, sat down by the fire, and started eating, but his calm demeanor tested our patience. Where was the village? About fifty miles south of us; it was moving slowly and wouldn’t arrive for at least a week. And where was Henry’s wife? She was coming as fast as she could with Mahto-Tatonka and the rest of her brothers, but she would never make it to us; she was dying and asking for Henry every moment. Henry's strong face grew serious and troubled; he said that if we were willing, he would go in the morning to find her, and Shaw offered to go with him.

We saddled our horses at sunrise. Reynal protested vehemently against being left alone, with nobody but the two Canadians and the young Indians, when enemies were in the neighborhood. Disregarding his complaints, we left him, and coming to the mouth of Chugwater, separated, Shaw and Henry turning to the right, up the bank of the stream, while I made for the fort.

We saddled our horses at sunrise. Reynal strongly objected to being left alone, with only the two Canadians and the young Indians around, especially with enemies nearby. Ignoring his complaints, we left him behind. When we reached the mouth of Chugwater, we split up; Shaw and Henry went right, up the bank of the stream, while I headed toward the fort.

Taking leave for a while of my friend and the unfortunate squaw, I will relate by way of episode what I saw and did at Fort Laramie. It was not more than eighteen miles distant, and I reached it in three hours; a shriveled little figure, wrapped from head to foot in a dingy white Canadian capote, stood in the gateway, holding by a cord of bull’s hide a shaggy wild horse, which he had lately caught. His sharp prominent features, and his little keen snakelike eyes, looked out from beneath the shadowy hood of the capote, which was drawn over his head exactly like the cowl of a Capuchin friar. His face was extremely thin and like an old piece of leather, and his mouth spread from ear to ear. Extending his long wiry hand, he welcomed me with something more cordial than the ordinary cold salute of an Indian, for we were excellent friends. He had made an exchange of horses to our mutual advantage; and Paul, thinking himself well-treated, had declared everywhere that the white man had a good heart. He was a Dakota from the Missouri, a reputed son of the half-breed interpreter, Pierre Dorion, so often mentioned in Irving’s “Astoria.” He said that he was going to Richard’s trading house to sell his horse to some emigrants who were encamped there, and asked me to go with him. We forded the stream together, Paul dragging his wild charge behind him. As we passed over the sandy plains beyond, he grew quite communicative. Paul was a cosmopolitan in his way; he had been to the settlements of the whites, and visited in peace and war most of the tribes within the range of a thousand miles. He spoke a jargon of French and another of English, yet nevertheless he was a thorough Indian; and as he told of the bloody deeds of his own people against their enemies, his little eye would glitter with a fierce luster. He told how the Dakota exterminated a village of the Hohays on the Upper Missouri, slaughtering men, women, and children; and how an overwhelming force of them cut off sixteen of the brave Delawares, who fought like wolves to the last, amid the throng of their enemies. He told me also another story, which I did not believe until I had it confirmed from so many independent sources that no room was left for doubt. I am tempted to introduce it here.

Taking a break from my friend and the unfortunate woman, I want to share what I saw and did at Fort Laramie. It was only about eighteen miles away, and I got there in three hours; a small, wiry figure, wrapped from head to toe in a faded white Canadian coat, stood in the gateway, holding a shaggy wild horse he'd recently caught by a bullhide cord. His sharp, prominent features and small, keen, snake-like eyes peeked out from under the hood of the coat, which was pulled over his head just like a Capuchin monk's cowl. His face was extremely thin, like an old piece of leather, and his mouth stretched from ear to ear. Reaching out his long, wiry hand, he welcomed me with something warmer than the typical cold greeting from an Indian, because we were great friends. He had made a horse trade that benefitted us both; and Paul, feeling well-treated, had declared everywhere that the white man had a good heart. He was a Dakota from Missouri, believed to be the son of the half-breed interpreter, Pierre Dorion, often mentioned in Irving’s “Astoria.” He said he was heading to Richard’s trading post to sell his horse to some emigrants camped there and asked if I could join him. We crossed the stream together, with Paul pulling his wild charge behind him. As we walked over the sandy plains ahead, he became quite chatty. Paul was somewhat of a cosmopolitan; he had visited white settlements and had interacted with various tribes across a thousand-mile range, in both peace and war. He mixed French and English while speaking, yet he was still very much an Indian; as he recounted the bloody actions of his people against their enemies, his small eye sparkled with a fierce brightness. He described how the Dakota wiped out a village of the Hohays on the Upper Missouri, slaughtering men, women, and children; and how an overwhelming number of them trapped sixteen brave Delawares, who fought like wolves until the end, surrounded by their enemies. He also shared another story, which I initially doubted until I confirmed it through so many independent sources that there was no room left for doubt. I'm tempted to share it here.

Six years ago a fellow named Jim Beckwith, a mongrel of French, American, and negro blood, was trading for the Fur Company, in a very large village of the Crows. Jim Beckwith was last summer at St. Louis. He is a ruffian of the first stamp; bloody and treacherous, without honor or honesty; such at least is the character he bears upon the prairie. Yet in his case all the standard rules of character fail, for though he will stab a man in his sleep, he will also perform most desperate acts of daring; such, for instance, as the following: While he was in the Crow village, a Blackfoot war party, between thirty and forty in number came stealing through the country, killing stragglers and carrying off horses. The Crow warriors got upon their trail and pressed them so closely that they could not escape, at which the Blackfeet, throwing up a semicircular breastwork of logs at the foot of a precipice, coolly awaited their approach. The logs and sticks, piled four or five high, protected them in front. The Crows might have swept over the breastwork and exterminated their enemies; but though out-numbering them tenfold, they did not dream of storming the little fortification. Such a proceeding would be altogether repugnant to their notions of warfare. Whooping and yelling, and jumping from side to side like devils incarnate, they showered bullets and arrows upon the logs; not a Blackfoot was hurt, but several Crows, in spite of their leaping and dodging, were shot down. In this childish manner the fight went on for an hour or two. Now and then a Crow warrior in an ecstasy of valor and vainglory would scream forth his war song, boasting himself the bravest and greatest of mankind, and grasping his hatchet, would rush up and strike it upon the breastwork, and then as he retreated to his companions, fall dead under a shower of arrows; yet no combined attack seemed to be dreamed of. The Blackfeet remained secure in their intrenchment. At last Jim Beckwith lost patience.

Six years ago, a guy named Jim Beckwith, a mix of French, American, and Black heritage, was trading for the Fur Company in a large Crow village. Jim Beckwith was in St. Louis last summer. He’s a real tough guy; ruthless and deceptive, without any honor or honesty—at least that's the reputation he carries on the prairie. However, he doesn't fit the usual mold, because even though he would stab someone in their sleep, he can also pull off some incredibly brave acts. For example, while he was in the Crow village, a Blackfoot war party of around thirty to forty members came sneaking through the area, killing stragglers and stealing horses. The Crow warriors picked up their trail and followed them so closely that the Blackfeet couldn't get away, leading them to construct a semicircular barrier of logs at the base of a cliff to calmly wait for the Crows. The logs and sticks piled four or five high protected them from the front. The Crows could have charged over the barrier and wiped out their enemies, but even though they outnumbered them ten to one, they didn't think to attack the small fortification. That kind of strategy went against their ideas of warfare. Yelling and whooping, jumping from side to side like frenzied spirits, they rained bullets and arrows on the logs; not a single Blackfoot was injured, but several Crows were shot down despite their dodging and leaping. The fight dragged on in this ridiculous way for an hour or two. Occasionally, a Crow warrior, filled with false bravado, would shout his war song, claiming to be the bravest and greatest of all men, then run up to strike his hatchet against the barrier, only to be killed by a hail of arrows while retreating to his companions. Yet, no coordinated attack ever seemed to be considered. The Blackfeet remained safe behind their makeshift defenses. Finally, Jim Beckwith lost his patience.

“You are all fools and old women,” he said to the Crows; “come with me, if any of you are brave enough, and I will show you how to fight.”

“You're all fools and old women,” he said to the Crows; “come with me, if any of you are brave enough, and I'll show you how to fight.”

He threw off his trapper’s frock of buckskin and stripped himself naked like the Indians themselves. He left his rifle on the ground, and taking in his hand a small light hatchet, he ran over the prairie to the right, concealed by a hollow from the eyes of the Blackfeet. Then climbing up the rocks, he gained the top of the precipice behind them. Forty or fifty young Crow warriors followed him. By the cries and whoops that rose from below he knew that the Blackfeet were just beneath him; and running forward, he leaped down the rock into the midst of them. As he fell he caught one by the long loose hair and dragging him down tomahawked him; then grasping another by the belt at his waist, he struck him also a stunning blow, and gaining his feet, shouted the Crow war-cry. He swung his hatchet so fiercely around him that the astonished Blackfeet bore back and gave him room. He might, had he chosen, have leaped over the breastwork and escaped; but this was not necessary, for with devilish yells the Crow warriors came dropping in quick succession over the rock among their enemies. The main body of the Crows, too, answered the cry from the front and rushed up simultaneously. The convulsive struggle within the breastwork was frightful; for an instant the Blackfeet fought and yelled like pent-up tigers; but the butchery was soon complete, and the mangled bodies lay piled up together under the precipice. Not a Blackfoot made his escape.

He took off his buckskin trapper’s jacket and stripped down completely like the Indians. He left his rifle on the ground, and grabbing a small light hatchet, he dashed across the prairie to the right, hidden by a hollow from the Blackfeet's view. Climbing up the rocks, he reached the top of the cliff behind them. Forty or fifty young Crow warriors followed him. From the shouts and whoops coming from below, he realized that the Blackfeet were right beneath him, and charging forward, he jumped down onto them. As he landed, he grabbed one by the long loose hair and, dragging him down, killed him with his tomahawk; then seizing another by the belt, he struck him a hard blow as well. Getting to his feet, he shouted the Crow war cry. He swung his hatchet around so fiercely that the surprised Blackfeet stepped back, giving him space. He could have jumped over the breastwork and escaped if he wanted to, but it wasn’t necessary, as the Crow warriors were dropping down in quick succession from the rocks into the midst of their enemies. The main group of Crows also responded to the call from the front and charged up at the same time. The chaotic struggle inside the breastwork was terrifying; for a moment, the Blackfeet fought and screamed like cornered tigers, but the slaughter was soon over, and the bloodied bodies lay heaped together under the cliff. Not a single Blackfoot escaped.

As Paul finished his story we came in sight of Richard’s Fort. It stood in the middle of the plain; a disorderly crowd of men around it, and an emigrant camp a little in front.

As Paul wrapped up his story, we saw Richard’s Fort in the distance. It was situated in the center of the plain, surrounded by a chaotic group of men, with an emigrant camp a bit ahead.

“Now, Paul,” said I, “where are your Winnicongew lodges?”

“Now, Paul,” I said, “where are your Winnicongew lodges?”

“Not come yet,” said Paul, “maybe come to-morrow.”

“Not here yet,” said Paul, “maybe tomorrow.”

Two large villages of a band of Dakota had come three hundred miles from the Missouri, to join in the war, and they were expected to reach Richard’s that morning. There was as yet no sign of their approach; so pushing through a noisy, drunken crowd, I entered an apartment of logs and mud, the largest in the fort; it was full of men of various races and complexions, all more or less drunk. A company of California emigrants, it seemed, had made the discovery at this late day that they had encumbered themselves with too many supplies for their journey. A part, therefore, they had thrown away or sold at great loss to the traders, but had determined to get rid of their copious stock of Missouri whisky, by drinking it on the spot. Here were maudlin squaws stretched on piles of buffalo robes; squalid Mexicans, armed with bows and arrows; Indians sedately drunk; long-haired Canadians and trappers, and American backwoodsmen in brown homespun, the well-beloved pistol and bowie knife displayed openly at their sides. In the middle of the room a tall, lank man, with a dingy broadcloth coat, was haranguing the company in the style of the stump orator. With one hand he sawed the air, and with the other clutched firmly a brown jug of whisky, which he applied every moment to his lips, forgetting that he had drained the contents long ago. Richard formally introduced me to this personage, who was no less a man than Colonel R., once the leader of the party. Instantly the colonel seizing me, in the absence of buttons by the leather fringes of my frock, began to define his position. His men, he said, had mutinied and deposed him; but still he exercised over them the influence of a superior mind; in all but the name he was yet their chief. As the colonel spoke, I looked round on the wild assemblage, and could not help thinking that he was but ill qualified to conduct such men across the desert to California. Conspicuous among the rest stood three tail young men, grandsons of Daniel Boone. They had clearly inherited the adventurous character of that prince of pioneers; but I saw no signs of the quiet and tranquil spirit that so remarkably distinguished him.

Two large villages of a Dakota band had traveled three hundred miles from the Missouri to join the war, and they were expected to arrive at Richard's that morning. There was still no sign of their arrival, so I pushed through a noisy, drunken crowd and entered the largest log and mud apartment in the fort; it was filled with men of different races and complexions, all mostly drunk. It seemed that a group of California emigrants had just realized they had overloaded themselves with too many supplies for their journey. So, they decided to throw some away or sell them at a significant loss to the traders, but they were determined to get rid of their excess Missouri whisky by drinking it all on the spot. There were weepy women lying on piles of buffalo robes, dirty Mexicans armed with bows and arrows, Indians quietly drunk, long-haired Canadians and trappers, and American backwoodsmen in brown homespun, with their beloved pistols and bowie knives openly displayed at their sides. In the middle of the room, a tall, skinny man in a dingy broadcloth coat was addressing the crowd like a stump speaker. With one hand, he was gesticulating wildly, while with the other, he held a brown jug of whisky that he kept lifting to his lips, forgetting he had already emptied it long ago. Richard formally introduced me to this figure, who turned out to be Colonel R., the former leader of the party. Immediately, the colonel grabbed me; since my leather-fringed frock had no buttons, he started to explain his situation. He said his men had mutinied and deposed him, but he still held the influence of a superior mind over them; in all but name, he was still their chief. As the colonel spoke, I looked around at the wild gathering and couldn’t help but think he wasn't well-suited to lead such men across the desert to California. Among the crowd stood three tall young men, grandsons of Daniel Boone. They clearly inherited the adventurous spirit of that legendary pioneer, but I saw no signs of the calm and composed nature that so famously defined him.

Fearful was the fate that months after overtook some of the members of that party. General Kearny, on his late return from California, brought in the account how they were interrupted by the deep snows among the mountains, and maddened by cold and hunger fed upon each other’s flesh.

Fearful was the fate that months after overtook some of the members of that party. General Kearny, on his recent return from California, brought in the account of how they were interrupted by the heavy snow in the mountains, and driven mad by cold and hunger, resorted to cannibalism.

I got tired of the confusion. “Come, Paul,” said I, “we will be off.” Paul sat in the sun, under the wall of the fort. He jumped up, mounted, and we rode toward Fort Laramie. When we reached it, a man came out of the gate with a pack at his back and a rifle on his shoulder; others were gathering about him, shaking him by the hand, as if taking leave. I thought it a strange thing that a man should set out alone and on foot for the prairie. I soon got an explanation. Perrault—this, if I recollect right was the Canadian’s name—had quarreled with the bourgeois, and the fort was too hot to hold him. Bordeaux, inflated with his transient authority, had abused him, and received a blow in return. The men then sprang at each other, and grappled in the middle of the fort. Bordeaux was down in an instant, at the mercy of the incensed Canadian; had not an old Indian, the brother of his squaw, seized hold of his antagonist, he would have fared ill. Perrault broke loose from the old Indian, and both the white men ran to their rooms for their guns; but when Bordeaux, looking from his door, saw the Canadian, gun in hand, standing in the area and calling on him to come out and fight, his heart failed him; he chose to remain where he was. In vain the old Indian, scandalized by his brother-in-law’s cowardice, called upon him to go upon the prairie and fight it out in the white man’s manner; and Bordeaux’s own squaw, equally incensed, screamed to her lord and master that he was a dog and an old woman. It all availed nothing. Bordeaux’s prudence got the better of his valor, and he would not stir. Perrault stood showering approbrious epithets at the recent bourgeois. Growing tired of this, he made up a pack of dried meat, and slinging it at his back, set out alone for Fort Pierre on the Missouri, a distance of three hundred miles, over a desert country full of hostile Indians.

I got tired of the confusion. “Come on, Paul,” I said, “let’s go.” Paul was sitting in the sun, leaning against the fort wall. He jumped up, got on his horse, and we rode toward Fort Laramie. When we got there, a man came out of the gate with a pack on his back and a rifle slung over his shoulder; others were gathering around him, shaking his hand as if to say goodbye. I thought it was odd that a man would head out alone and on foot to the prairie. I soon found out why. Perrault—if I remember correctly, that was the Canadian’s name—had a fight with the bourgeois, and the fort was too dangerous for him. Bordeaux, puffed up with his temporary power, had insulted him and got punched in return. The men then charged at each other and grappled in the middle of the fort. Bordeaux was down in an instant, at the mercy of the angry Canadian; if an old Indian, the brother of his wife, hadn’t grabbed Perrault, he would have been in trouble. Perrault broke free from the old Indian, and both of them ran to their rooms for their guns; but when Bordeaux peeked out his door and saw the Canadian, gun in hand, standing in the courtyard and calling him out to fight, he lost his nerve; he decided to stay put. The old Indian, shocked by his brother-in-law’s cowardice, urged him to go to the prairie and settle things like a man; even Bordeaux’s wife, just as furious, yelled at him that he was a coward and an old woman. None of it made a difference. Bordeaux’s caution won out over his bravery, and he wouldn’t budge. Perrault kept hurling insults at the former bourgeois. Getting tired of that, he packed some dried meat, slung it on his back, and set out alone for Fort Pierre on the Missouri, a three-hundred-mile trip across a desert full of hostile Indians.

I remained in the fort that night. In the morning, as I was coming out from breakfast, conversing with a trader named McCluskey, I saw a strange Indian leaning against the side of the gate. He was a tall, strong man, with heavy features.

I stayed in the fort that night. In the morning, as I was exiting from breakfast and chatting with a trader named McCluskey, I spotted a strange Indian leaning against the side of the gate. He was a tall, strong man with pronounced features.

“Who is he?” I asked. “That’s The Whirlwind,” said McCluskey. “He is the fellow that made all this stir about the war. It’s always the way with the Sioux; they never stop cutting each other’s throats; it’s all they are fit for; instead of sitting in their lodges, and getting robes to trade with us in the winter. If this war goes on, we’ll make a poor trade of it next season, I reckon.”

“Who is he?” I asked. “That’s The Whirlwind,” McCluskey said. “He’s the one who caused all this fuss about the war. It’s always like this with the Sioux; they can’t stop fighting among themselves; it’s all they’re good for; instead of just staying in their lodges and preparing furs to trade with us in the winter. If this war continues, I think we’ll have a rough time trading next season.”

And this was the opinion of all the traders, who were vehemently opposed to the war, from the serious injury that it must occasion to their interests. The Whirlwind left his village the day before to make a visit to the fort. His warlike ardor had abated not a little since he first conceived the design of avenging his son’s death. The long and complicated preparations for the expedition were too much for his fickle, inconstant disposition. That morning Bordeaux fastened upon him, made him presents and told him that if he went to war he would destroy his horses and kill no buffalo to trade with the white men; in short, that he was a fool to think of such a thing, and had better make up his mind to sit quietly in his lodge and smoke his pipe, like a wise man. The Whirlwind’s purpose was evidently shaken; he had become tired, like a child, of his favorite plan. Bordeaux exultingly predicted that he would not go to war. My philanthropy at that time was no match for my curiosity, and I was vexed at the possibility that after all I might lose the rare opportunity of seeing the formidable ceremonies of war. The Whirlwind, however, had merely thrown the firebrand; the conflagration was become general. All the western bands of the Dakota were bent on war; and as I heard from McCluskey, six large villages already gathered on a little stream, forty miles distant, were daily calling to the Great Spirit to aid them in their enterprise. McCluskey had just left and represented them as on their way to La Bonte’s Camp, which they would reach in a week, UNLESS THEY SHOULD LEARN THAT THERE WERE NO BUFFALO THERE. I did not like this condition, for buffalo this season were rare in the neighborhood. There were also the two Minnicongew villages that I mentioned before; but about noon, an Indian came from Richard’s Fort with the news that they were quarreling, breaking up, and dispersing. So much for the whisky of the emigrants! Finding themselves unable to drink the whole, they had sold the residue to these Indians, and it needed no prophet to foretell the results; a spark dropped into a powder magazine would not have produced a quicker effect. Instantly the old jealousies and rivalries and smothered feuds that exist in an Indian village broke out into furious quarrels. They forgot the warlike enterprise that had already brought them three hundred miles. They seemed like ungoverned children inflamed with the fiercest passions of men. Several of them were stabbed in the drunken tumult; and in the morning they scattered and moved back toward the Missouri in small parties. I feared that, after all, the long-projected meeting and the ceremonies that were to attend it might never take place, and I should lose so admirable an opportunity of seeing the Indian under his most fearful and characteristic aspect; however, in foregoing this, I should avoid a very fair probability of being plundered and stripped, and, it might be, stabbed or shot into the bargain. Consoling myself with this reflection, I prepared to carry the news, such as it was, to the camp.

And this was the view of all the traders, who strongly opposed the war because of the serious damage it would cause their interests. The Whirlwind left his village the day before to visit the fort. His eagerness for war had diminished quite a bit since he first came up with the idea of avenging his son's death. The long and complicated preparations for the expedition were too much for his unpredictable nature. That morning, Bordeaux approached him, gave him gifts, and told him that if he went to war, he would lose his horses and wouldn’t be able to hunt buffalo to trade with the white men; in short, he was foolish to think about such a thing and should just sit quietly in his lodge and smoke his pipe like a wise man. The Whirlwind’s resolve was clearly shaken; he had grown tired, like a child, of his favorite plan. Bordeaux confidently predicted that he wouldn’t go to war. At that time, my concern for others was no match for my curiosity, and I was annoyed at the possibility of missing the rare chance to see the intense ceremonies of war. However, the Whirlwind had merely sparked the fire; the situation had escalated. All the western Dakota bands were ready for war; and from what I heard from McCluskey, six large villages already gathered by a small stream forty miles away were every day calling to the Great Spirit for help with their mission. McCluskey had just left and said they were on their way to La Bonte’s Camp, which they would reach in a week, UNLESS THEY FOUND OUT THERE WERE NO BUFFALO THERE. I didn’t like that condition since buffalo were scarce in the area this season. There were also the two Minnicongew villages I mentioned earlier; but around noon, an Indian came from Richard’s Fort with news that they were arguing, breaking apart, and dispersing. This was the consequence of the whisky from the emigrants! Unable to drink it all, they had sold what was left to these Indians, and it took no seer to predict the outcomes; a spark in a powder magazine wouldn’t have caused a faster reaction. Instantly, the old jealousies, rivalries, and hidden feuds in the Indian village erupted into fierce arguments. They forgot the war effort that had already taken them three hundred miles. They seemed like uncontrolled children consumed by the strongest emotions of adults. Several were stabbed in the drunken chaos; and by morning, they had scattered and moved back toward the Missouri in small groups. I feared that, ultimately, the long-planned meeting and the ceremonies that were to accompany it might never happen, and I would miss an incredible opportunity to see the Indian in his most intense and characteristic form; however, by skipping this, I would avoid a good chance of being robbed and stripped, and possibly stabbed or shot as well. Comforting myself with this thought, I got ready to take the news, as it was, back to the camp.

I caught my horse, and to my vexation found he had lost a shoe and broken his tender white hoof against the rocks. Horses are shod at Fort Laramie at the moderate rate of three dollars a foot; so I tied Hendrick to a beam in the corral, and summoned Roubidou, the blacksmith. Roubidou, with the hoof between his knees, was at work with hammer and file, and I was inspecting the process, when a strange voice addressed me.

I caught my horse, and to my annoyance found he had lost a shoe and hurt his tender white hoof against the rocks. Horses are shod at Fort Laramie for a reasonable price of three dollars a foot, so I tied Hendrick to a beam in the corral and called for Roubidou, the blacksmith. Roubidou, with the hoof between his knees, was busy working with a hammer and file, and I was watching the process when a strange voice spoke to me.

“Two more gone under! Well, there is more of us left yet. Here’s Jean Gars and me off to the mountains to-morrow. Our turn will come next, I suppose. It’s a hard life, anyhow!”

“Two more gone! Well, there are still some of us left. Here’s Jean Gars and me heading to the mountains tomorrow. I guess it's our turn next. It’s a tough life, anyway!”

I looked up and saw a little man, not much more than five feet high, but of very square and strong proportions. In appearance he was particularly dingy; for his old buckskin frock was black and polished with time and grease, and his belt, knife, pouch, and powder-horn appeared to have seen the roughest service. The first joint of each foot was entirely gone, having been frozen off several winters before, and his moccasins were curtailed in proportion. His whole appearance and equipment bespoke the “free trapper.” He had a round ruddy face, animated with a spirit of carelessness and gayety not at all in accordance with the words he had just spoken.

I looked up and saw a short man, barely five feet tall, but very stocky and strong. He looked particularly grimy; his old buckskin coat was dark and shiny from age and grease, and his belt, knife, pouch, and powder horn looked like they had been through a lot. The first joint of each toe was completely missing, frozen off in winters past, and his moccasins were cut short to match. His entire look and gear indicated he was a "free trapper." He had a round, rosy face, lively with a carefree and cheerful spirit that didn’t quite match the words he had just spoken.

“Two more gone,” said I; “what do you mean by that?”

“Two more gone,” I said; “what do you mean by that?”

“Oh,” said he, “the Arapahoes have just killed two of us in the mountains. Old Bull-Tail has come to tell us. They stabbed one behind his back, and shot the other with his own rifle. That’s the way we live here! I mean to give up trapping after this year. My squaw says she wants a pacing horse and some red ribbons; I’ll make enough beaver to get them for her, and then I’m done! I’ll go below and live on a farm.”

“Oh,” he said, “the Arapahoes just killed two of us in the mountains. Old Bull-Tail came to tell us. They stabbed one in the back and shot the other with his own rifle. That’s how we live here! I’m planning to give up trapping after this year. My wife says she wants a riding horse and some red ribbons; I’ll catch enough beaver to get those for her, and then I’m done! I’ll head down and live on a farm.”

“Your bones will dry on the prairie, Rouleau!” said another trapper, who was standing by; a strong, brutal-looking fellow, with a face as surly as a bull-dog’s.

“Your bones will dry out on the prairie, Rouleau!” said another trapper, who was standing nearby; a tough, brutal-looking guy, with a face as grumpy as a bulldog’s.

Rouleau only laughed, and began to hum a tune and shuffle a dance on his stumps of feet.

Rouleau just laughed and started to hum a tune while shuffling a dance on his stumps of feet.

“You’ll see us, before long, passing up our way,” said the other man. “Well,” said I, “stop and take a cup of coffee with us”; and as it was quite late in the afternoon, I prepared to leave the fort at once.

“You’ll see us, soon enough, passing by,” said the other man. “Well,” I said, “stop and have a cup of coffee with us”; and since it was pretty late in the afternoon, I got ready to leave the fort right away.

As I rode out, a train of emigrant wagons was passing across the stream. “Whar are ye goin’ stranger?” Thus I was saluted by two or three voices at once.

As I was riding out, a line of emigrant wagons was crossing the stream. “Where are you going, stranger?” I was greeted by two or three voices at once.

“About eighteen miles up the creek.”

“About eighteen miles up the creek.”

“It’s mighty late to be going that far! Make haste, ye’d better, and keep a bright lookout for Indians!”

“It’s really late to be heading that far! You better hurry up and keep a sharp eye out for Indians!”

I thought the advice too good to be neglected. Fording the stream, I passed at a round trot over the plains beyond. But “the more haste, the worse speed.” I proved the truth in the proverb by the time I reached the hills three miles from the fort. The trail was faintly marked, and riding forward with more rapidity than caution, I lost sight of it. I kept on in a direct line, guided by Laramie Creek, which I could see at intervals darkly glistening in the evening sun, at the bottom of the woody gulf on my right. Half an hour before sunset I came upon its banks. There was something exciting in the wild solitude of the place. An antelope sprang suddenly from the sagebushes before me. As he leaped gracefully not thirty yards before my horse, I fired, and instantly he spun round and fell. Quite sure of him, I walked my horse toward him, leisurely reloading my rifle, when to my surprise he sprang up and trotted rapidly away on three legs into the dark recesses of the hills, whither I had no time to follow. Ten minutes after, I was passing along the bottom of a deep valley, and chancing to look behind me, I saw in the dim light that something was following. Supposing it to be wolf, I slid from my seat and sat down behind my horse to shoot it; but as it came up, I saw by its motions that it was another antelope. It approached within a hundred yards, arched its graceful neck, and gazed intently. I leveled at the white spot on its chest, and was about to fire when it started off, ran first to one side and then to the other, like a vessel tacking against a wind, and at last stretched away at full speed. Then it stopped again, looked curiously behind it, and trotted up as before; but not so boldly, for it soon paused and stood gazing at me. I fired; it leaped upward and fell upon its tracks. Measuring the distance, I found it 204 paces. When I stood by his side, the antelope turned his expiring eye upward. It was like a beautiful woman’s, dark and rich. “Fortunate that I am in a hurry,” thought I; “I might be troubled with remorse, if I had time for it.”

I thought the advice was too good to ignore. Crossing the stream, I trotted over the plains ahead. But “the more haste, the worse speed.” I experienced the truth of that saying by the time I reached the hills three miles from the fort. The trail was faintly marked, and riding quicker than I should have, I lost sight of it. I continued in a straight line, guided by Laramie Creek, which I could see glistening darkly in the evening sun at the bottom of the wooded area to my right. Half an hour before sunset, I reached its banks. There was something thrilling about the wild solitude of the place. An antelope suddenly jumped out from the sagebushes in front of me. As it gracefully leaped not thirty yards in front of my horse, I fired, and it immediately spun around and fell. Confident of my shot, I walked my horse toward it, leisurely reloading my rifle, when to my surprise, it jumped up and quickly dashed away on three legs into the dark hills, where I had no time to follow. Ten minutes later, I was going along the bottom of a deep valley, and when I looked back, I noticed something was following me. Thinking it was a wolf, I slid off my horse and crouched behind it to shoot, but as it got closer, I realized it was another antelope. It came within a hundred yards, arched its elegant neck, and stared intently. I aimed at the white spot on its chest and was about to shoot when it took off, first running to one side and then the other like a boat tacking against the wind, and finally sprinted away at full speed. Then it stopped, looked back curiously, and approached again, but this time not so boldly; it soon halted and stared at me. I fired; it jumped and fell where it stood. Measuring the distance, I found it to be 204 paces. When I stood by its side, the antelope looked up at me with its fading eyes. They were like a beautiful woman's—dark and rich. “Lucky for me that I’m in a rush,” I thought; “I might feel guilty if I had time to dwell on it.”

Cutting the animal up, not in the most skilled manner, I hung the meat at the back of my saddle, and rode on again. The hills (I could not remember one of them) closed around me. “It is too late,” thought I, “to go forward. I will stay here to-night, and look for the path in the morning.” As a last effort, however, I ascended a high hill, from which, to my great satisfaction, I could see Laramie Creek stretching before me, twisting from side to side amid ragged patches of timber; and far off, close beneath the shadows of the trees, the ruins of the old trading fort were visible. I reached them at twilight. It was far from pleasant, in that uncertain light, to be pushing through the dense trees and shrubbery of the grove beyond. I listened anxiously for the footfall of man or beast. Nothing was stirring but one harmless brown bird, chirping among the branches. I was glad when I gained the open prairie once more, where I could see if anything approached. When I came to the mouth of Chugwater, it was totally dark. Slackening the reins, I let my horse take his own course. He trotted on with unerring instinct, and by nine o’clock was scrambling down the steep ascent into the meadows where we were encamped. While I was looking in vain for the light of the fire, Hendrick, with keener perceptions, gave a loud neigh, which was immediately answered in a shrill note from the distance. In a moment I was hailed from the darkness by the voice of Reynal, who had come out, rifle in hand, to see who was approaching.

I cut up the animal, not the most skillfully, and hung the meat on the back of my saddle before riding on. The hills, which I couldn't remember any of, closed in around me. “It’s too late,” I thought, “to go any further. I'll stay here tonight and look for the path in the morning.” As a last effort, I climbed a high hill, and to my great relief, I could see Laramie Creek stretching out before me, winding through uneven patches of trees; in the distance, close to the shadows of the trees, were the ruins of the old trading fort. I reached them at twilight. It wasn't exactly pleasant, moving through the thick trees and underbrush of the grove in that uncertain light. I listened nervously for the sounds of a person or an animal. The only thing moving was a harmless brown bird chirping among the branches. I was relieved when I finally emerged onto the open prairie, where I could see if anything was coming. When I arrived at the mouth of Chugwater, it was completely dark. I loosened the reins and let my horse find his way. He trotted confidently, and by nine o’clock, he was carefully making his way down the steep hill into the meadows where we were camped. While I was looking around for the firelight, Hendrick, with sharper instincts, let out a loud neigh, which was quickly answered by a shrill call from a distance. In a moment, I heard Reynal’s voice from the darkness, as he came out with his rifle to see who was coming.

He, with his squaw, the two Canadians and the Indian boys, were the sole inmates of the camp, Shaw and Henry Chatillon being still absent. At noon of the following day they came back, their horses looking none the better for the journey. Henry seemed dejected. The woman was dead, and his children must henceforward be exposed, without a protector, to the hardships and vicissitudes of Indian life. Even in the midst of his grief he had not forgotten his attachment to his bourgeois, for he had procured among his Indian relatives two beautifully ornamented buffalo robes, which he spread on the ground as a present to us.

He, along with his wife, the two Canadians, and the Indian boys, were the only ones at the camp, with Shaw and Henry Chatillon still away. By noon the next day, they returned, their horses looking worse for wear from the journey. Henry appeared downcast. The woman had died, leaving his children unprotected and facing the challenges of Indian life. Even in his sorrow, he hadn’t forgotten his loyalty to his friends, as he had brought back two beautifully decorated buffalo robes from his Indian relatives, which he laid out on the ground as a gift for us.

Shaw lighted his pipe, and told me in a few words the history of his journey. When I went to the fort they left me, as I mentioned, at the mouth of Chugwater. They followed the course of the little stream all day, traversing a desolate and barren country. Several times they came upon the fresh traces of a large war party—the same, no doubt, from whom we had so narrowly escaped an attack. At an hour before sunset, without encountering a human being by the way, they came upon the lodges of the squaw and her brothers, who, in compliance with Henry’s message, had left the Indian village in order to join us at our camp. The lodges were already pitched, five in number, by the side of the stream. The woman lay in one of them, reduced to a mere skeleton. For some time she had been unable to move or speak. Indeed, nothing had kept her alive but the hope of seeing Henry, to whom she was strongly and faithfully attached. No sooner did he enter the lodge than she revived, and conversed with him the greater part of the night. Early in the morning she was lifted into a travail, and the whole party set out toward our camp. There were but five warriors; the rest were women and children. The whole were in great alarm at the proximity of the Crow war party, who would certainly have destroyed them without mercy had they met. They had advanced only a mile or two, when they discerned a horseman, far off, on the edge of the horizon. They all stopped, gathering together in the greatest anxiety, from which they did not recover until long after the horseman disappeared; then they set out again. Henry was riding with Shaw a few rods in advance of the Indians, when Mahto-Tatonka, a younger brother of the woman, hastily called after them. Turning back, they found all the Indians crowded around the travail in which the woman was lying. They reached her just in time to hear the death-rattle in her throat. In a moment she lay dead in the basket of the vehicle. A complete stillness succeeded; then the Indians raised in concert their cries of lamentation over the corpse, and among them Shaw clearly distinguished those strange sounds resembling the word “Halleluyah,” which together with some other accidental coincidences has given rise to the absurd theory that the Indians are descended from the ten lost tribes of Israel.

Shaw lit his pipe and briefly shared the story of his journey with me. When I went to the fort, they left me, as I mentioned, at the mouth of Chugwater. They followed the little stream all day through a desolate and barren area. Several times, they came across fresh signs of a large war party—the same one we barely escaped from. An hour before sunset, without encountering anyone, they found the lodges of the woman and her brothers, who had left the Indian village to join us at our camp, as per Henry’s message. Five lodges were already set up by the stream. The woman lay in one of them, looking like a mere skeleton. She had been unable to move or speak for some time. The only thing that kept her alive was the hope of seeing Henry, to whom she was deeply and faithfully attached. As soon as he entered the lodge, she revived and talked with him for most of the night. Early in the morning, she was lifted into a wagon, and the whole group set out toward our camp. There were only five warriors; the rest were women and children. They were all very anxious about the nearby Crow war party, which would have certainly destroyed them without mercy if they had encountered them. They had only traveled a mile or two when they spotted a horseman far off on the horizon. They all stopped, gathering together in great anxiety, from which they didn’t recover until long after the horseman disappeared; then they continued on. Henry was riding with Shaw a little ahead of the Indians when Mahto-Tatonka, the woman’s younger brother, called out to them. Turning back, they found all the Indians crowded around the wagon where the woman was lying. They reached her just in time to hear the death rattle in her throat. In a moment, she lay dead in the wagon. A complete silence followed, then the Indians raised their voices in lamentation over her body, and among them, Shaw clearly heard strange sounds that resembled the word “Halleluyah,” which, along with some other coincidences, has led to the ridiculous theory that the Indians are descendants of the ten lost tribes of Israel.

The Indian usage required that Henry, as well as the other relatives of the woman, should make valuable presents, to be placed by the side of the body at its last resting place. Leaving the Indians, he and Shaw set out for the camp and reached it, as we have seen, by hard pushing, at about noon. Having obtained the necessary articles, they immediately returned. It was very late and quite dark when they again reached the lodges. They were all placed in a deep hollow among the dreary hills. Four of them were just visible through the gloom, but the fifth and largest was illuminated by the ruddy blaze of a fire within, glowing through the half-transparent covering of raw hides. There was a perfect stillness as they approached. The lodges seemed without a tenant. Not a living thing was stirring—there was something awful in the scene. They rode up to the entrance of the lodge, and there was no sound but the tramp of their horses. A squaw came out and took charge of the animals, without speaking a word. Entering, they found the lodge crowded with Indians; a fire was burning in the midst, and the mourners encircled it in a triple row. Room was made for the newcomers at the head of the lodge, a robe spread for them to sit upon, and a pipe lighted and handed to them in perfect silence. Thus they passed the greater part of the night. At times the fire would subside into a heap of embers, until the dark figures seated around it were scarcely visible; then a squaw would drop upon it a piece of buffalo-fat, and a bright flame, instantly springing up, would reveal of a sudden the crowd of wild faces, motionless as bronze. The silence continued unbroken. It was a relief to Shaw when daylight returned and he could escape from this house of mourning. He and Henry prepared to return homeward; first, however, they placed the presents they had brought near the body of the squaw, which, most gaudily attired, remained in a sitting posture in one of the lodges. A fine horse was picketed not far off, destined to be killed that morning for the service of her spirit, for the woman was lame, and could not travel on foot over the dismal prairies to the villages of the dead. Food, too, was provided, and household implements, for her use upon this last journey.

The Indian custom required that Henry, along with the other relatives of the woman, give valuable gifts to be placed beside her body at her final resting place. After leaving the Indians, he and Shaw set off for the camp and, as we’ve noted, made it there by pushing hard around noon. Once they gathered the necessary items, they quickly returned. It was very late and completely dark by the time they reached the lodges again. They were all situated in a deep hollow among the bleak hills. Four of the lodges were barely visible in the darkness, but the fifth and largest one was brightened by the warm glow of a fire inside, shining through the semi-transparent coverings of raw hides. As they approached, there was an eerie stillness. The lodges appeared empty, with not a single living thing moving—there was something unsettling about the scene. They rode up to the entrance of the lodge, and the only sound was the clopping of their horses' hooves. A woman came out and took care of the animals without saying a word. Once inside, they found the lodge packed with Indians; a fire burned in the middle, and the mourners surrounded it in three rows. They were offered space at the front of the lodge, given a robe to sit on, and a pipe was lit and handed to them in complete silence. They spent most of the night this way. Sometimes the fire would die down to just a pile of embers, making the dark figures around it barely visible. Then a woman would toss a piece of buffalo fat onto the fire, causing a bright flame to suddenly reveal the crowd of still wild faces, frozen like statues. The silence remained unbroken. Shaw felt relieved when daylight came and he could escape from this house of mourning. He and Henry got ready to head home, but first, they placed the gifts they had brought near the body of the woman, who, dressed in her finest, sat upright in one of the lodges. A fine horse was tied up nearby, set to be killed that morning for the benefit of her spirit since the woman was lame and couldn’t walk across the dreary prairies to the villages of the dead. Food and household items were also prepared for her use on this final journey.

Henry left her to the care of her relatives, and came immediately with Shaw to the camp. It was some time before he entirely recovered from his dejection.

Henry left her in the care of her relatives and quickly went to the camp with Shaw. It took him a while to fully recover from his sadness.





CHAPTER XI

SCENES AT THE CAMP

Reynal heard guns fired one day, at the distance of a mile or two from the camp. He grew nervous instantly. Visions of Crow war parties began to haunt his imagination; and when we returned (for we were all absent), he renewed his complaints about being left alone with the Canadians and the squaw. The day after, the cause of the alarm appeared. Four trappers, one called Moran, another Saraphin, and the others nicknamed “Rouleau” and “Jean Gras,” came to our camp and joined us. They it was who fired the guns and disturbed the dreams of our confederate Reynal. They soon encamped by our side. Their rifles, dingy and battered with hard service, rested with ours against the old tree; their strong rude saddles, their buffalo robes, their traps, and the few rough and simple articles of their traveling equipment, were piled near our tent. Their mountain horses were turned to graze in the meadow among our own; and the men themselves, no less rough and hardy, used to lie half the day in the shade of our tree lolling on the grass, lazily smoking, and telling stories of their adventures; and I defy the annals of chivalry to furnish the record of a life more wild and perilous than that of a Rocky Mountain trapper.

Reynal heard gunshots one day, about a mile or two away from the camp. He got nervous right away. Images of Crow war parties started to plague his mind; and when we got back (since we were all out), he went on again about how he didn't like being alone with the Canadians and the woman. The next day, the reason for the noise showed up. Four trappers, one named Moran, another Saraphin, and the others nicknamed “Rouleau” and “Jean Gras,” came to our camp and joined us. They were the ones who fired the guns and disturbed our friend Reynal's dreams. They quickly set up camp next to us. Their rifles, worn and scuffed from hard use, leaned against the old tree alongside ours; their strong, rough saddles, buffalo robes, traps, and a few simple pieces of their traveling gear were stacked near our tent. Their mountain horses grazed in the meadow with ours; and the men themselves, just as rugged and tough, would often lie around for half the day in the shade of our tree, lounging on the grass, lazily smoking, and sharing stories of their adventures; and I challenge any tale of chivalry to match the wild and dangerous life of a Rocky Mountain trapper.

With this efficient re-enforcement the agitation of Reynal’s nerves subsided. He began to conceive a sort of attachment to our old camping ground; yet it was time to change our quarters, since remaining too long on one spot must lead to certain unpleasant results not to be borne with unless in a case of dire necessity. The grass no longer presented a smooth surface of turf; it was trampled into mud and clay. So we removed to another old tree, larger yet, that grew by the river side at a furlong’s distance. Its trunk was full six feet in diameter; on one side it was marked by a party of Indians with various inexplicable hieroglyphics, commemorating some warlike enterprise, and aloft among the branches were the remains of a scaffolding, where dead bodies had once been deposited, after the Indian manner.

With this effective reinforcement, Reynal’s nervous agitation faded. He started to develop a certain fondness for our old campsite; however, it was time to move since staying in one place too long could lead to some unpleasant consequences that we could only tolerate in dire situations. The grass was no longer a smooth turf; it had been trampled into mud and clay. So we relocated to another old tree, even larger, that grew by the river about a furlong away. Its trunk was around six feet in diameter; on one side, it was marked by a group of Indians with various mysterious symbols, commemorating some military venture, and up among the branches were remnants of a scaffolding, where bodies had once been placed according to Indian traditions.

“There comes Bull-Bear,” said Henry Chatillon, as we sat on the grass at dinner. Looking up, we saw several horsemen coming over the neighboring hill, and in a moment four stately young men rode up and dismounted. One of them was Bull-Bear, or Mahto-Tatonka, a compound name which he inherited from his father, the most powerful chief in the Ogallalla band. One of his brothers and two other young men accompanied him. We shook hands with the visitors, and when we had finished our meal—for this is the orthodox manner of entertaining Indians, even the best of them—we handed to each a tin cup of coffee and a biscuit, at which they ejaculated from the bottom of their throats, “How! how!” a monosyllable by which an Indian contrives to express half the emotions that he is susceptible of. Then we lighted the pipe, and passed it to them as they squatted on the ground.

“There comes Bull-Bear,” Henry Chatillon said as we sat on the grass having dinner. Looking up, we saw several horsemen coming over the nearby hill, and soon four impressive young men rode up and got off their horses. One of them was Bull-Bear, or Mahto-Tatonka, a name he got from his father, the most powerful chief in the Ogallalla band. His brother and two other young men were with him. We shook hands with our visitors, and after we finished our meal—this is the traditional way of entertaining Indians, even the best of them—we offered each of them a tin cup of coffee and a biscuit. They responded with a hearty "How! how!" a single word that expresses many of the feelings they might have. Then we lit the pipe and passed it to them as they sat down on the ground.

“Where is the village?”

“Where's the village?”

“There,” said Mahto-Tatonka, pointing southward; “it will come in two days.”

“There,” said Mahto-Tatonka, pointing south; “it will arrive in two days.”

“Will they go to the war?”

"Are they going to fight?"

“Yes.”

"Yep."

No man is a philanthropist on the prairie. We welcomed this news most cordially, and congratulated ourselves that Bordeaux’s interested efforts to divert The Whirlwind from his congenial vocation of bloodshed had failed of success, and that no additional obstacles would interpose between us and our plan of repairing to the rendezvous at La Bonte’s Camp.

No man is a philanthropist on the prairie. We welcomed this news warmly and congratulated ourselves that Bordeaux's earnest attempts to steer The Whirlwind away from his natural inclination for violence had not succeeded, and that no further obstacles would stand in the way of our plan to head to the meeting point at La Bonte's Camp.

For that and several succeeding days, Mahto-Tatonka and his friends remained our guests. They devoured the relics of our meals; they filled the pipe for us and also helped us to smoke it. Sometimes they stretched themselves side by side in the shade, indulging in raillery and practical jokes ill becoming the dignity of brave and aspiring warriors, such as two of them in reality were.

For that and several days after, Mahto-Tatonka and his friends stayed with us. They eagerly ate the leftovers from our meals; they filled the pipe for us and helped us smoke it. Sometimes they lounged together in the shade, joking around and pulling practical jokes that didn't suit the dignity of brave and ambitious warriors, as two of them truly were.

Two days dragged away, and on the morning of the third we hoped confidently to see the Indian village. It did not come; so we rode out to look for it. In place of the eight hundred Indians we expected, we met one solitary savage riding toward us over the prairie, who told us that the Indians had changed their plans, and would not come within three days; still he persisted that they were going to the war. Taking along with us this messenger of evil tidings, we retraced our footsteps to the camp, amusing ourselves by the way with execrating Indian inconstancy. When we came in sight of our little white tent under the big tree, we saw that it no longer stood alone. A huge old lodge was erected close by its side, discolored by rain and storms, rotted with age, with the uncouth figures of horses and men, and outstretched hands that were painted upon it, well-nigh obliterated. The long poles which supported this squalid habitation thrust themselves rakishly out from its pointed top, and over its entrance were suspended a “medicine-pipe” and various other implements of the magic art. While we were yet at a distance, we observed a greatly increased population of various colors and dimensions, swarming around our quiet encampment. Moran, the trapper, having been absent for a day or two, had returned, it seemed, bringing all his family with him. He had taken to himself a wife for whom he had paid the established price of one horse. This looks cheap at first sight, but in truth the purchase of a squaw is a transaction which no man should enter into without mature deliberation, since it involves not only the payment of the first price, but the formidable burden of feeding and supporting a rapacious horde of the bride’s relatives, who hold themselves entitled to feed upon the indiscreet white man. They gather round like leeches, and drain him of all he has.

Two days dragged on, and on the morning of the third, we confidently hoped to see the Indian village. It didn’t arrive, so we set out to look for it. Instead of the eight hundred Indians we expected, we encountered a lone warrior riding toward us across the prairie. He informed us that the Indians had changed their plans and wouldn’t show up for another three days; still, he insisted they were heading to war. Taking this messenger of bad news with us, we retraced our steps back to camp, passing the time by cursing Indian fickleness. As we got closer to our little white tent beneath the big tree, we noticed it no longer stood alone. A large, old lodge had been set up right next to it, weathered by rain and storms, rotting with age, its once distinct figures of horses and people, and outstretched hands painted on it nearly faded away. The long poles supporting this shabby structure jutted out at odd angles from its pointed roof, and above its entrance hung a “medicine-pipe” and various other magical items. Even from a distance, we noticed a significantly larger crowd of various colors and sizes buzzing around our quiet camp. Moran, the trapper, who had been gone for a day or two, had returned, apparently bringing his entire family with him. He had taken a wife for whom he paid the set price of one horse. At first glance, this seems cheap, but in reality, acquiring a wife is a decision no man should take lightly, as it involves not just the initial payment but also the heavy responsibility of feeding and supporting a greedy group of the bride’s relatives, who believe they have the right to take advantage of the naïve white man. They swarm around like leeches, draining him of everything he has.

Moran, like Reynal, had not allied himself to an aristocratic circle. His relatives occupied but a contemptible position in Ogallalla society; for among those wild democrats of the prairie, as among us, there are virtual distinctions of rank and place; though this great advantage they have over us, that wealth has no part in determining such distinctions. Moran’s partner was not the most beautiful of her sex, and he had the exceedingly bad taste to array her in an old calico gown bought from an emigrant woman, instead of the neat and graceful tunic of whitened deerskin worn ordinarily by the squaws. The moving spirit of the establishment, in more senses than one, was a hideous old hag of eighty. Human imagination never conceived hobgoblin or witch more ugly than she. You could count all her ribs through the wrinkles of the leathery skin that covered them. Her withered face more resembled an old skull than the countenance of a living being, even to the hollow, darkened sockets, at the bottom of which glittered her little black eyes. Her arms had dwindled away into nothing but whipcord and wire. Her hair, half black, half gray, hung in total neglect nearly to the ground, and her sole garment consisted of the remnant of a discarded buffalo robe tied round her waist with a string of hide. Yet the old squaw’s meager anatomy was wonderfully strong. She pitched the lodge, packed the horses, and did the hardest labor of the camp. From morning till night she bustled about the lodge, screaming like a screech-owl when anything displeased her. Then there was her brother, a “medicine-man,” or magician, equally gaunt and sinewy with herself. His mouth spread from ear to ear, and his appetite, as we had full occasion to learn, was ravenous in proportion. The other inmates of the lodge were a young bride and bridegroom; the latter one of those idle, good-for nothing fellows who infest an Indian village as well as more civilized communities. He was fit neither for hunting nor for war; and one might infer as much from the stolid unmeaning expression of his face. The happy pair had just entered upon the honeymoon. They would stretch a buffalo robe upon poles, so as to protect them from the fierce rays of the sun, and spreading beneath this rough canopy a luxuriant couch of furs, would sit affectionately side by side for half the day, though I could not discover that much conversation passed between them. Probably they had nothing to say; for an Indian’s supply of topics for conversation is far from being copious. There were half a dozen children, too, playing and whooping about the camp, shooting birds with little bows and arrows, or making miniature lodges of sticks, as children of a different complexion build houses of blocks.

Moran, like Reynal, hadn’t connected himself with an aristocratic group. His relatives held a lowly status in Ogallalla society; among those prairie democrats, as among us, there are clear distinctions of rank and place, though they have one big advantage over us: wealth doesn’t influence those distinctions. Moran’s partner wasn’t the most attractive woman, and he had the bad taste to dress her in an old calico gown bought from an immigrant woman instead of the neat and elegant deerskin tunic usually worn by the women. The driving force of the camp, in more ways than one, was a hideous old woman of eighty. Human imagination has never dreamed up a goblin or witch more ugly than she was. You could see all her ribs through the wrinkles of her leathery skin. Her withered face looked more like an old skull than the face of a living person, complete with hollow, darkened eye sockets that housed her small black eyes. Her arms had shriveled away to nothing but thin cords and wire. Her hair, partly black and partly gray, fell in tangled strands nearly to the ground, and her only piece of clothing was a piece of a discarded buffalo robe tied around her waist with a hide string. Yet, the old lady’s frail body was surprisingly strong. She set up the lodge, loaded the horses, and did the toughest work of the camp. From morning until night, she rushed around the lodge, screaming like a screech owl whenever something irritated her. Then there was her brother, a “medicine man,” or magician, just as skinny and wiry as she was. His mouth stretched from ear to ear, and his appetite, as we had ample opportunity to witness, was immense. The other residents of the lodge included a young bride and groom; the latter was one of those lazy, good-for-nothing guys who hang around in Indian villages just like in more civilized communities. He was useless for hunting or fighting, and one could tell that just by looking at the blank, expressionless look on his face. The happy couple had just started their honeymoon. They would stretch a buffalo robe over poles to shield themselves from the hot sun, and laying a cozy bed of furs beneath this makeshift shelter, they would sit close together for half the day, even though I couldn’t tell that they had much to talk about. Probably they didn’t have much to say; an Indian’s topics for conversation aren’t very plentiful. There were also a handful of children playing and shouting around the camp, shooting birds with little bows and arrows, or building tiny lodges from sticks, just like children of other backgrounds build houses from blocks.

A day passed, and Indians began rapidly to come in. Parties of two or three or more would ride up and silently seat themselves on the grass. The fourth day came at last, when about noon horsemen suddenly appeared into view on the summit of the neighboring ridge. They descended, and behind them followed a wild procession, hurrying in haste and disorder down the hill and over the plain below; horses, mules, and dogs, heavily burdened travaux, mounted warriors, squaws walking amid the throng, and a host of children. For a full half-hour they continued to pour down; and keeping directly to the bend of the stream, within a furlong of us, they soon assembled there, a dark and confused throng, until, as if by magic, 150 tall lodges sprung up. On a sudden the lonely plain was transformed into the site of a miniature city. Countless horses were soon grazing over the meadows around us, and the whole prairie was animated by restless figures careening on horseback, or sedately stalking in their long white robes. The Whirlwind was come at last! One question yet remained to be answered: “Will he go to the war, in order that we, with so respectable an escort, may pass over to the somewhat perilous rendezvous at La Bonte’s Camp?”

A day went by, and Indians started to arrive quickly. Small groups of two, three, or more would ride in and quietly sit on the grass. Finally, the fourth day arrived, and around noon, horsemen suddenly appeared at the top of the nearby ridge. They came down the slope, followed by a chaotic procession rushing down the hill and across the plain below; horses, mules, and dogs with heavy loads, mounted warriors, women walking among the crowd, and a swarm of children. For a solid half-hour, they kept coming down, heading directly to the bend of the stream, just a short distance from us, and soon gathered there, a dark and confused crowd, until, as if by magic, 150 tall lodges appeared. Suddenly, the isolated plain was transformed into a small city. Countless horses were soon grazing on the meadows around us, and the entire prairie was lively with people riding horses or strolling in their long white robes. The Whirlwind had finally arrived! One last question remained: “Will he go to war, so that we, with such an impressive escort, can safely reach the somewhat dangerous meeting point at La Bonte’s Camp?”

Still this remained in doubt. Characteristic indecision perplexed their councils. Indians cannot act in large bodies. Though their object be of the highest importance, they cannot combine to attain it by a series of connected efforts. King Philip, Pontiac, and Tecumseh all felt this to their cost. The Ogallalla once had a war chief who could control them; but he was dead, and now they were left to the sway of their own unsteady impulses.

Still, this remained uncertain. Their typical indecision confused their discussions. Native Americans can't act in large groups. Even if their goal is extremely important, they struggle to come together and achieve it through coordinated efforts. King Philip, Pontiac, and Tecumseh all experienced this firsthand. The Ogallalla once had a war chief who could lead them, but he was gone, and now they were left to be guided by their own unpredictable instincts.

This Indian village and its inhabitants will hold a prominent place in the rest of the narrative, and perhaps it may not be amiss to glance for an instant at the savage people of which they form a part. The Dakota (I prefer this national designation to the unmeaning French name, Sioux) range over a vast territory, from the river St. Peter’s to the Rocky Mountains themselves. They are divided into several independent bands, united under no central government, and acknowledge no common head. The same language, usages, and superstitions form the sole bond between them. They do not unite even in their wars. The bands of the east fight the Ojibwas on the Upper Lakes; those of the west make incessant war upon the Snake Indians in the Rocky Mountains. As the whole people is divided into bands, so each band is divided into villages. Each village has a chief, who is honored and obeyed only so far as his personal qualities may command respect and fear. Sometimes he is a mere nominal chief; sometimes his authority is little short of absolute, and his fame and influence reach even beyond his own village; so that the whole band to which he belongs is ready to acknowledge him as their head. This was, a few years since, the case with the Ogallalla. Courage, address, and enterprise may raise any warrior to the highest honor, especially if he be the son of a former chief, or a member of a numerous family, to support him and avenge his quarrels; but when he has reached the dignity of chief, and the old men and warriors, by a peculiar ceremony, have formally installed him, let it not be imagined that he assumes any of the outward semblances of rank and honor. He knows too well on how frail a tenure he holds his station. He must conciliate his uncertain subjects. Many a man in the village lives better, owns more squaws and more horses, and goes better clad than he. Like the Teutonic chiefs of old, he ingratiates himself with his young men by making them presents, thereby often impoverishing himself. Does he fail in gaining their favor, they will set his authority at naught, and may desert him at any moment; for the usages of his people have provided no sanctions by which he may enforce his authority. Very seldom does it happen, at least among these western bands, that a chief attains to much power, unless he is the head of a numerous family. Frequently the village is principally made up of his relatives and descendants, and the wandering community assumes much of the patriarchal character. A people so loosely united, torn, too, with ranking feuds and jealousies, can have little power or efficiency.

This Indian village and its people will play a significant role in the rest of the story, and it’s worth taking a moment to look at the wild group they’re part of. The Dakota (I prefer this name over the meaningless French term, Sioux) cover a huge area, from the St. Peter’s River all the way to the Rocky Mountains. They’re split into several independent bands, with no central government or common leader. Their only connection is shared language, customs, and beliefs. They don’t even come together in battle. The eastern bands fight the Ojibwas around the Upper Lakes, while the western ones constantly battle the Snake Indians in the Rockies. Each band is made up of various villages, each led by a chief. This chief is respected and obeyed only as far as his personal qualities can earn that respect and fear. Sometimes he’s just a figurehead; other times his authority is nearly absolute, and his reputation extends beyond his village, leading the entire band to look up to him as their leader. A few years ago, this was the case with the Ogallalla. A warrior can rise to the highest honor through bravery, skill, and ambition, especially if he’s the son of a former chief or comes from a big family who supports him and seeks vengeance for him; but once he becomes chief, and the elders and warriors have formally recognized him through a special ceremony, he doesn’t take on outward signs of rank and honor. He knows how precarious his position is. He must win over his unpredictable subjects. Many villagers live better, have more wives and horses, and dress more impressively than he does. Like the old Teutonic chiefs, he tries to win favor with young men by giving them gifts, often leaving himself financially strained. If he fails to earn their loyalty, they can disregard his authority and might abandon him at any time; there are no rules in their culture that let him enforce his power. It’s rare for a chief among these western bands to gain much influence unless he leads a large family. Often, the village is made up mostly of his relatives and descendants, giving the wandering community a patriarchal feel. A group so loosely organized, also torn by rivalries and jealousies, can hardly wield much power or effectiveness.

The western Dakota have no fixed habitations. Hunting and fighting, they wander incessantly through summer and winter. Some are following the herds of buffalo over the waste of prairie; others are traversing the Black Hills, thronging on horseback and on foot through the dark gulfs and somber gorges beneath the vast splintering precipices, and emerging at last upon the “Parks,” those beautiful but most perilous hunting grounds. The buffalo supplies them with almost all the necessaries of life; with habitations, food, clothing, and fuel; with strings for their bows, with thread, cordage, and trail-ropes for their horses, with coverings for their saddles, with vessels to hold water, with boats to cross streams, with glue, and with the means of purchasing all that they desire from the traders. When the buffalo are extinct, they too must dwindle away.

The western Dakota don't have permanent homes. Constantly hunting and fighting, they roam throughout summer and winter. Some follow the buffalo herds across the endless prairie; others are exploring the Black Hills, traveling on horseback and on foot through the dark valleys and gloomy gorges beneath the towering cliffs, finally emerging onto the “Parks,” those beautiful but extremely dangerous hunting grounds. The buffalo provide them with nearly everything they need for life: shelter, food, clothing, and fuel; strings for their bows, thread, ropes, and leads for their horses; coverings for their saddles; containers for water; boats to cross rivers; glue; and everything they want to buy from traders. When the buffalo disappear, they will too.

War is the breath of their nostrils. Against most of the neighboring tribes they cherish a deadly, rancorous hatred, transmitted from father to son, and inflamed by constant aggression and retaliation. Many times a year, in every village, the Great Spirit is called upon, fasts are made, the war parade is celebrated, and the warriors go out by handfuls at a time against the enemy. This fierce and evil spirit awakens their most eager aspirations, and calls forth their greatest energies. It is chiefly this that saves them from lethargy and utter abasement. Without its powerful stimulus they would be like the unwarlike tribes beyond the mountains, who are scattered among the caves and rocks like beasts, living on roots and reptiles. These latter have little of humanity except the form; but the proud and ambitious Dakota warrior can sometimes boast of heroic virtues. It is very seldom that distinction and influence are attained among them by any other course than that of arms. Their superstition, however, sometimes gives great power, to those among them who pretend to the character of magicians. Their wild hearts, too, can feel the power of oratory, and yield deference to the masters of it.

War is like the air they breathe. They hold a fierce, bitter hatred towards most of the neighboring tribes, passed down from generation to generation and fueled by ongoing aggression and retaliation. Several times a year, in every village, they invoke the Great Spirit, go on fasts, celebrate the war parade, and send out groups of warriors to confront the enemy. This intense and destructive spirit ignites their strongest desires and brings out their greatest strengths. It's largely what keeps them from becoming lazy and completely degraded. Without this powerful drive, they would be like the peaceful tribes beyond the mountains, scattered in caves and rocks like animals, surviving on roots and reptiles. These tribes show little humanity aside from their appearance, while the proud and ambitious Dakota warrior can sometimes claim heroic qualities. It's very rare for someone to gain distinction and influence among them through anything other than warfare. However, their superstitions can sometimes grant significant power to those who act like magicians. Their passionate hearts are also moved by the power of speech and show respect to those who master it.

But to return. Look into our tent, or enter, if you can bear the stifling smoke and the close atmosphere. There, wedged close together, you will see a circle of stout warriors, passing the pipe around, joking, telling stories, and making themselves merry, after their fashion. We were also infested by little copper-colored naked boys and snake-eyed girls. They would come up to us, muttering certain words, which being interpreted conveyed the concise invitation, “Come and eat.” Then we would rise, cursing the pertinacity of Dakota hospitality, which allowed scarcely an hour of rest between sun and sun, and to which we were bound to do honor, unless we would offend our entertainers. This necessity was particularly burdensome to me, as I was scarcely able to walk, from the effects of illness, and was of course poorly qualified to dispose of twenty meals a day. Of these sumptuous banquets I gave a specimen in a former chapter, where the tragical fate of the little dog was chronicled. So bounteous an entertainment looks like an outgushing of good will; but doubtless one-half at least of our kind hosts, had they met us alone and unarmed on the prairie, would have robbed us of our horses, and perchance have bestowed an arrow upon us beside. Trust not an Indian. Let your rifle be ever in your hand. Wear next your heart the old chivalric motto SEMPER PARATUS.

But to get back to the point. Look inside our tent, or come in if you can handle the thick smoke and cramped space. There, packed closely together, you’ll notice a group of tough warriors passing around the pipe, joking, sharing stories, and enjoying themselves in their own way. We were also surrounded by small, copper-skinned boys and snake-eyed girls. They would approach us, mumbling certain words that, when translated, conveyed a simple invitation: “Come and eat.” Then we would get up, grumbling about the persistence of Dakota hospitality, which allowed for barely an hour of rest between meals, and which we had to honor, or risk offending our hosts. This requirement was especially burdensome for me since I could hardly walk due to my illness and was not in any shape to tackle twenty meals a day. I gave an example of these lavish feasts in a previous chapter, where I chronicled the tragic fate of the little dog. Such generous hospitality might seem like a display of goodwill; however, I’m sure that at least half of our friendly hosts, had they encountered us alone and unarmed on the prairie, would have stolen our horses and perhaps even shot us with an arrow. Don’t trust an Indian. Keep your rifle in your hand. Wear the old chivalric motto SEMPER PARATUS close to your heart.

One morning we were summoned to the lodge of an old man, in good truth the Nestor of his tribe. We found him half sitting, half reclining on a pile of buffalo robes; his long hair, jet-black even now, though he had seen some eighty winters, hung on either side of his thin features. Those most conversant with Indians in their homes will scarcely believe me when I affirm that there was dignity in his countenance and mien. His gaunt but symmetrical frame, did not more clearly exhibit the wreck of bygone strength, than did his dark, wasted features, still prominent and commanding, bear the stamp of mental energies. I recalled, as I saw him, the eloquent metaphor of the Iroquois sachem: “I am an aged hemlock; the winds of a hundred winters have whistled through my branches, and I am dead at the top!” Opposite the patriarch was his nephew, the young aspirant Mahto-Tatonka; and besides these, there were one or two women in the lodge.

One morning, we were called to the lodge of an old man, truly the elder statesman of his tribe. We found him half sitting, half reclining on a stack of buffalo robes; his long hair, still jet-black despite having lived through about eighty winters, hung on either side of his thin face. Those who are most familiar with Native Americans in their own homes would hardly believe me when I say there was a sense of dignity in his expression and demeanor. His thin but well-proportioned body revealed the remnants of past strength, just as his dark, weathered features, still striking and commanding, showed signs of mental vigor. As I observed him, I recalled the powerful metaphor of the Iroquois leader: “I am an old hemlock; the winds of a hundred winters have whistled through my branches, and I am dead at the top!” Across from the elder sat his nephew, the young hopeful Mahto-Tatonka, and along with them were a couple of women in the lodge.

The old man’s story is peculiar, and singularly illustrative of a superstitious custom that prevails in full force among many of the Indian tribes. He was one of a powerful family, renowned for their warlike exploits. When a very young man, he submitted to the singular rite to which most of the tribe subject themselves before entering upon life. He painted his face black; then seeking out a cavern in a sequestered part of the Black Hills, he lay for several days, fasting and praying to the Great Spirit. In the dreams and visions produced by his weakened and excited state, he fancied like all Indians, that he saw supernatural revelations. Again and again the form of an antelope appeared before him. The antelope is the graceful peace spirit of the Ogallalla; but seldom is it that such a gentle visitor presents itself during the initiatory fasts of their young men. The terrible grizzly bear, the divinity of war, usually appears to fire them with martial ardor and thirst for renown. At length the antelope spoke. He told the young dreamer that he was not to follow the path of war; that a life of peace and tranquillity was marked out for him; that henceforward he was to guide the people by his counsels and protect them from the evils of their own feuds and dissensions. Others were to gain renown by fighting the enemy; but greatness of a different kind was in store for him.

The old man’s story is unique and clearly shows a superstitious tradition that is still strong among many Indian tribes. He came from a powerful family, famous for their military achievements. As a young man, he underwent a specific rite that most of the tribe participates in before starting their lives. He painted his face black and then found a cave in a remote part of the Black Hills, where he spent several days fasting and praying to the Great Spirit. In the dreams and visions brought on by his weakened and heightened state, he believed, like all Indians, that he saw supernatural revelations. Again and again, the form of an antelope appeared to him. The antelope is the graceful spirit of peace for the Ogallala; however, it’s rare for such a gentle spirit to show up during the initiatory fasts of their young men. Usually, the fearsome grizzly bear, the deity of war, appears to inspire them with fighting spirit and a desire for glory. Eventually, the antelope spoke to him. It told the young dreamer that he was not meant to pursue a path of war, that a life of peace and calm was intended for him, and that from then on, he would guide the people with his wisdom and protect them from the troubles of their own conflicts and disagreements. Others would earn glory by battling enemies, but a different kind of greatness was in store for him.

The visions beheld during the period of this fast usually determine the whole course of the dreamer’s life, for an Indian is bound by iron superstitions. From that time, Le Borgne, which was the only name by which we knew him, abandoned all thoughts of war and devoted himself to the labors of peace. He told his vision to the people. They honored his commission and respected him in his novel capacity.

The visions seen during this fasting period typically shape the entire life path of the dreamer, as a Native American is often bound by strong beliefs. From that moment, Le Borgne, which was the only name we knew him by, gave up all thoughts of war and focused on peaceful pursuits. He shared his vision with the community. They respected his role and honored his mission.

A far different man was his brother, Mahto-Tatonka, who had transmitted his names, his features, and many of his characteristic qualities to his son. He was the father of Henry Chatillon’s squaw, a circumstance which proved of some advantage to us, as securing for us the friendship of a family perhaps the most distinguished and powerful in the whole Ogallalla band. Mahto-Tatonka, in his rude way, was a hero. No chief could vie with him in warlike renown, or in power over his people. He had a fearless spirit, and a most impetuous and inflexible resolution. His will was law. He was politic and sagacious, and with true Indian craft he always befriended the whites, well knowing that he might thus reap great advantages for himself and his adherents. When he had resolved on any course of conduct, he would pay to the warriors the empty compliment of calling them together to deliberate upon it, and when their debates were over, he would quietly state his own opinion, which no one ever disputed. The consequences of thwarting his imperious will were too formidable to be encountered. Woe to those who incurred his displeasure! He would strike them or stab them on the spot; and this act, which, if attempted by any other chief, would instantly have cost him his life, the awe inspired by his name enabled him to repeat again and again with impunity. In a community where, from immemorial time, no man has acknowledged any law but his own will, Mahto-Tatonka, by the force of his dauntless resolution, raised himself to power little short of despotic. His haughty career came at last to an end. He had a host of enemies only waiting for their opportunity of revenge, and our old friend Smoke, in particular, together with all his kinsmen, hated him most cordially. Smoke sat one day in his lodge in the midst of his own village, when Mahto-Tatonka entered it alone, and approaching the dwelling of his enemy, called on him in a loud voice to come out, if he were a man, and fight. Smoke would not move. At this, Mahto-Tatonka proclaimed him a coward and an old woman, and striding close to the entrance of the lodge, stabbed the chief’s best horse, which was picketed there. Smoke was daunted, and even this insult failed to call him forth. Mahto-Tatonka moved haughtily away; all made way for him, but his hour of reckoning was near.

A very different man was his brother, Mahto-Tatonka, who passed on his names, his looks, and many of his traits to his son. He was the father of Henry Chatillon’s wife, which worked to our advantage by gaining us the friendship of a family that was probably the most notable and powerful in the entire Ogallalla band. Mahto-Tatonka, in his rough manner, was a hero. No chief could compete with him in military fame or in controlling his people. He had a fearless spirit and a strong, unwavering determination. His will was law. He was smart and shrewd, and with true Indian cunning, he always supported the whites, knowing that he could gain significant benefits for himself and his followers this way. When he decided on a course of action, he would pay the warriors the empty compliment of calling them together to discuss it, and after their discussions, he would calmly share his own opinion, which no one ever challenged. The consequences of opposing his strong will were too dire to face. Those who angered him were doomed! He would strike or stab them on the spot; and this act, which would have cost any other chief his life, was something he could do repeatedly without facing repercussions, thanks to the fear his name inspired. In a society where, for as long as anyone could remember, no man has obeyed any law except his own will, Mahto-Tatonka, through his fearless determination, rose to a level of power that was nearly tyrannical. His proud reign eventually came to an end. He had many enemies just waiting for a chance to take revenge, and our old friend Smoke, in particular, along with all his relatives, hated him passionately. One day, Smoke was sitting in his lodge in his own village when Mahto-Tatonka came in alone and, approaching his enemy's lodge, loudly called for him to come out and fight if he was a man. Smoke didn’t budge. In response, Mahto-Tatonka called him a coward and an old woman, and boldly stepped to the entrance of the lodge, stabbing the chief’s prized horse that was tied up there. Smoke was intimidated, and even this insult didn’t bring him out. Mahto-Tatonka walked away arrogantly; everyone made way for him, but his moment of reckoning was close.

One hot day, five or six years ago, numerous lodges of Smoke’s kinsmen were gathered around some of the Fur Company’s men, who were trading in various articles with them, whisky among the rest. Mahto-Tatonka was also there with a few of his people. As he lay in his own lodge, a fray arose between his adherents and the kinsmen of his enemy. The war-whoop was raised, bullets and arrows began to fly, and the camp was in confusion. The chief sprang up, and rushing in a fury from the lodge shouted to the combatants on both sides to cease. Instantly—for the attack was preconcerted—came the reports of two or three guns, and the twanging of a dozen bows, and the savage hero, mortally wounded, pitched forward headlong to the ground. Rouleau was present, and told me the particulars. The tumult became general, and was not quelled until several had fallen on both sides. When we were in the country the feud between the two families was still rankling, and not likely soon to cease.

One hot day, five or six years ago, a bunch of Smoke’s relatives were hanging out with some Fur Company guys who were trading various items with them, including whisky. Mahto-Tatonka was also there with a few of his people. While he was lying in his lodge, a fight broke out between his supporters and the relatives of his enemy. The war cries started, bullets and arrows flew, and chaos erupted in the camp. The chief jumped up and rushed out of his lodge, yelling for both sides to stop. Suddenly—since the attack was planned—gunshots rang out and a dozen bows twanged, and the fierce hero fell forward to the ground, mortally wounded. Rouleau was there and told me the details. The chaos spread everywhere and didn’t die down until several people from both sides had fallen. When we were in the area, the feud between the two families was still simmering and didn’t seem likely to end anytime soon.

Thus died Mahto-Tatonka, but he left behind him a goodly army of descendants, to perpetuate his renown and avenge his fate. Besides daughters he had thirty sons, a number which need not stagger the credulity of those who are best acquainted with Indian usages and practices. We saw many of them, all marked by the same dark complexion and the same peculiar cast of features. Of these our visitor, young Mahto-Tatonka, was the eldest, and some reported him as likely to succeed to his father’s honors. Though he appeared not more than twenty-one years old, he had oftener struck the enemy, and stolen more horses and more squaws than any young man in the village. We of the civilized world are not apt to attach much credit to the latter species of exploits; but horse-stealing is well known as an avenue to distinction on the prairies, and the other kind of depredation is esteemed equally meritorious. Not that the act can confer fame from its own intrinsic merits. Any one can steal a squaw, and if he chooses afterward to make an adequate present to her rightful proprietor, the easy husband for the most part rests content, his vengeance falls asleep, and all danger from that quarter is averted. Yet this is esteemed but a pitiful and mean-spirited transaction. The danger is averted, but the glory of the achievement also is lost. Mahto-Tatonka proceeded after a more gallant and dashing fashion. Out of several dozen squaws whom he had stolen, he could boast that he had never paid for one, but snapping his fingers in the face of the injured husband, had defied the extremity of his indignation, and no one yet had dared to lay the finger of violence upon him. He was following close in the footsteps of his father. The young men and the young squaws, each in their way, admired him. The one would always follow him to war, and he was esteemed to have unrivaled charm in the eyes of the other. Perhaps his impunity may excite some wonder. An arrow shot from a ravine, a stab given in the dark, require no great valor, and are especially suited to the Indian genius; but Mahto-Tatonka had a strong protection. It was not alone his courage and audacious will that enabled him to career so dashingly among his compeers. His enemies did not forget that he was one of thirty warlike brethren, all growing up to manhood. Should they wreak their anger upon him, many keen eyes would be ever upon them, many fierce hearts would thirst for their blood. The avenger would dog their footsteps everywhere. To kill Mahto-Tatonka would be no better than an act of suicide.

Thus died Mahto-Tatonka, but he left behind a strong group of descendants to carry on his legacy and seek revenge for his fate. In addition to daughters, he had thirty sons, a number that shouldn't surprise those familiar with Indian customs and practices. We saw many of them, all sharing the same dark complexion and distinctive features. Among them, our visitor, young Mahto-Tatonka, was the eldest, and some claimed he was likely to inherit his father's honors. Although he looked no older than twenty-one, he had fought the enemy more often and stolen more horses and women than any other young man in the village. People from the civilized world might not consider such acts impressive, but horse-stealing is well known as a path to respect on the prairies, and taking women is regarded as equally honorable. Not that the act itself ensures fame; anyone can steal a woman, and if he later gives a good gift to her rightful husband, the usually content spouse lets it go, and the danger from that direction fades away. However, this is seen as a petty and cowardly act. The danger may be averted, but the glory of the achievement is also lost. Mahto-Tatonka followed a bolder and more daring approach. Out of several dozen women he had taken, he could boast that he had never paid for any of them, defiantly snapping his fingers at the injured husbands and daring them to act against him, with no one yet willing to retaliate. He was closely following in his father's footsteps. The young men and women, each in their own way, admired him. The young men would follow him into battle, and he was seen as incredibly charming by the young women. His seeming immunity might raise some eyebrows. An arrow shot from a ravine or a stab in the dark demands little bravery and is especially suited to the Indian spirit; but Mahto-Tatonka had strong protection. It wasn't just his courage and boldness that allowed him to move so freely among his peers. His enemies knew he was one of thirty fierce brothers, all maturing into manhood. If they took their anger out on him, many keen eyes would be watching, and many fierce hearts would thirst for their blood. The avengers would follow them everywhere. Killing Mahto-Tatonka would be no better than a death wish.

Though he found such favor in the eyes of the fair, he was no dandy. As among us those of highest worth and breeding are most simple in manner and attire, so our aspiring young friend was indifferent to the gaudy trappings and ornaments of his companions. He was content to rest his chances of success upon his own warlike merits. He never arrayed himself in gaudy blanket and glittering necklaces, but left his statue-like form, limbed like an Apollo of bronze, to win its way to favor. His voice was singularly deep and strong. It sounded from his chest like the deep notes of an organ. Yet after all, he was but an Indian. See him as he lies there in the sun before our tent, kicking his heels in the air and cracking jokes with his brother. Does he look like a hero? See him now in the hour of his glory, when at sunset the whole village empties itself to behold him, for to-morrow their favorite young partisan goes out against the enemy. His superb headdress is adorned with a crest of the war eagle’s feathers, rising in a waving ridge above his brow, and sweeping far behind him. His round white shield hangs at his breast, with feathers radiating from the center like a star. His quiver is at his back; his tall lance in his hand, the iron point flashing against the declining sun, while the long scalp-locks of his enemies flutter from the shaft. Thus, gorgeous as a champion in his panoply, he rides round and round within the great circle of lodges, balancing with a graceful buoyancy to the free movements of his war horse, while with a sedate brow he sings his song to the Great Spirit. Young rival warriors look askance at him; vermilion-cheeked girls gaze in admiration, boys whoop and scream in a thrill of delight, and old women yell forth his name and proclaim his praises from lodge to lodge.

Though he found favor in the eyes of the beautiful, he was no show-off. Just like those among us who are truly worthy and well-bred tend to be the most unpretentious in their behavior and clothing, our ambitious young friend was indifferent to the flashy trappings and decorations of his peers. He relied on his own martial skills for success. He never dressed in bright blankets and shiny necklaces but let his statue-like figure, shaped like a bronze Apollo, earn him respect. His voice was remarkably deep and strong, resonating from his chest like the low notes of an organ. Yet in the end, he was just an Indian. Picture him lying in the sun outside our tent, kicking his heels in the air and joking with his brother. Does he look like a hero? Now picture him in his moment of glory, as the entire village gathers at sunset to see him, for tomorrow their favorite young warrior will face the enemy. His stunning headdress is decorated with a crest of war eagle feathers, rising in a wavy ridge above his forehead and sweeping back. His round white shield rests against his chest, with feathers fanning out from the center like a star. His quiver is strapped to his back; a tall lance is in his hand, the iron tip glinting in the fading sunlight, while the long scalp-locks of his enemies flutter from the shaft. Dressed like a champion in his battle gear, he circles around within the large circle of lodges, moving gracefully on his war horse while serenely singing to the Great Spirit. Young rival warriors eye him warily; girls with red-painted cheeks watch in admiration, boys cheer and shout in excitement, and older women call out his name, singing his praises from lodge to lodge.

Mahto-Tatonka, to come back to him, was the best of all our Indian friends. Hour after hour and day after day, when swarms of savages of every age, sex, and degree beset our camp, he would lie in our tent, his lynx eye ever open to guard our property from pillage.

Mahto-Tatonka, getting back to him, was the best of all our Native American friends. Hour after hour and day after day, when hordes of savages of every age, gender, and background surrounded our camp, he would lie in our tent, his sharp eyes always open to protect our belongings from theft.

The Whirlwind invited us one day to his lodge. The feast was finished, and the pipe began to circulate. It was a remarkably large and fine one, and I expressed my admiration of its form and dimensions.

The Whirlwind invited us one day to his lodge. The feast was over, and the pipe started to go around. It was a really large and beautifully crafted one, and I shared my appreciation for its shape and size.

“If the Meneaska likes the pipe,” asked The Whirlwind, “why does he not keep it?”

“If the Meneaska likes the pipe,” asked The Whirlwind, “why doesn’t he keep it?”

Such a pipe among the Ogallalla is valued at the price of a horse. A princely gift, thinks the reader, and worthy of a chieftain and a warrior. The Whirlwind’s generosity rose to no such pitch. He gave me the pipe, confidently expecting that I in return should make him a present of equal or superior value. This is the implied condition of every gift among the Indians as among the Orientals, and should it not be complied with the present is usually reclaimed by the giver. So I arranged upon a gaudy calico handkerchief, an assortment of vermilion, tobacco, knives, and gunpowder, and summoning the chief to camp, assured him of my friendship and begged his acceptance of a slight token of it. Ejaculating HOW! HOW! he folded up the offerings and withdrew to his lodge.

A pipe like this among the Ogallalla is worth the price of a horse. A generous gift, the reader might think, and suitable for a chieftain and a warrior. The Whirlwind’s generosity didn’t reach that level. He gave me the pipe, expecting that I would give him a gift of equal or greater value in return. This is the unspoken rule of gifting among the Indians, just like among the Orientals, and if this expectation isn’t met, the giver usually wants their gift back. So, I laid out a colorful calico handkerchief with some vermilion, tobacco, knives, and gunpowder, and called the chief to my camp. I expressed my friendship and asked him to accept this small token of it. Exclaiming HOW! HOW! he packed up the gifts and returned to his lodge.

Several days passed and we and the Indians remained encamped side by side. They could not decide whether or not to go to war. Toward evening, scores of them would surround our tent, a picturesque group. Late one afternoon a party of them mounted on horseback came suddenly in sight from behind some clumps of bushes that lined the bank of the stream, leading with them a mule, on whose back was a wretched negro, only sustained in his seat by the high pommel and cantle of the Indian saddle. His cheeks were withered and shrunken in the hollow of his jaws; his eyes were unnaturally dilated, and his lips seemed shriveled and drawn back from his teeth like those of a corpse. When they brought him up before our tent, and lifted him from the saddle, he could not walk or stand, but he crawled a short distance, and with a look of utter misery sat down on the grass. All the children and women came pouring out of the lodges round us, and with screams and cries made a close circle about him, while he sat supporting himself with his hands, and looking from side to side with a vacant stare. The wretch was starving to death! For thirty-three days he had wandered alone on the prairie, without weapon of any kind; without shoes, moccasins, or any other clothing than an old jacket and pantaloons; without intelligence and skill to guide his course, or any knowledge of the productions of the prairie. All this time he had subsisted on crickets and lizards, wild onions, and three eggs which he found in the nest of a prairie dove. He had not seen a human being. Utterly bewildered in the boundless, hopeless desert that stretched around him, offering to his inexperienced eye no mark by which to direct his course, he had walked on in despair till he could walk no longer, and then crawled on his knees until the bone was laid bare. He chose the night for his traveling, lying down by day to sleep in the glaring sun, always dreaming, as he said, of the broth and corn cake he used to eat under his old master’s shed in Missouri. Every man in the camp, both white and red, was astonished at his wonderful escape not only from starvation but from the grizzly bears which abound in that neighborhood, and the wolves which howled around him every night.

Several days went by, and we and the Native Americans stayed camped next to each other. They couldn't decide whether to go to war or not. In the evenings, many of them would gather around our tent, creating a vivid scene. One late afternoon, a group of them on horseback suddenly appeared from behind some bushes by the stream, leading a mule with a miserable Black man on its back, barely holding on thanks to the high pommel and cantle of the Indian saddle. His cheeks were gaunt and sunken, his eyes unnaturally wide, and his lips were drawn back from his teeth like a corpse. When they brought him in front of our tent and lifted him off the saddle, he couldn't walk or stand; he crawled a short distance and, looking utterly miserable, sat down on the grass. All the children and women rushed out of the surrounding lodges, screaming and crying as they formed a circle around him. He sat there propping himself up with his hands, glancing around with a vacant stare. The poor man was starving to death! For thirty-three days, he'd wandered alone on the prairie without any weapons, shoes, or clothing beyond an old jacket and pants; he lacked the knowledge and skills to find his way or recognize what was around him. During this time, he lived on crickets, lizards, wild onions, and three eggs he found in a prairie dove's nest. He hadn't seen another person. Completely lost in the endless, bleak desert stretching all around him, with no landmarks to guide him, he kept walking in despair until he couldn't anymore, then crawled on his knees until his bones were exposed. He traveled by night, sleeping during the day in the scorching sun, always dreaming of the broth and corn cake he used to eat under his old master's shed in Missouri. Every person in the camp, both white and Native American, was amazed at his incredible survival, not just from starvation but also from the grizzly bears that roamed the area and the wolves that howled around him every night.

Reynal recognized him the moment the Indians brought him in. He had run away from his master about a year before and joined the party of M. Richard, who was then leaving the frontier for the mountains. He had lived with Richard ever since, until in the end of May he with Reynal and several other men went out in search of some stray horses, when he got separated from the rest in a storm, and had never been heard of up to this time. Knowing his inexperience and helplessness, no one dreamed that he could still be living. The Indians had found him lying exhausted on the ground.

Reynal recognized him the moment the Indians brought him in. He had run away from his master about a year earlier and joined M. Richard, who was then leaving the frontier for the mountains. He had been with Richard ever since, until at the end of May, he went out with Reynal and several other men to look for some stray horses. During a storm, he got separated from the others and hadn’t been heard from since. Knowing his inexperience and helplessness, no one thought he could still be alive. The Indians had found him lying exhausted on the ground.

As he sat there with the Indians gazing silently on him, his haggard face and glazed eye were disgusting to look upon. Delorier made him a bowl of gruel, but he suffered it to remain untasted before him. At length he languidly raised the spoon to his lips; again he did so, and again; and then his appetite seemed suddenly inflamed into madness, for he seized the bowl, swallowed all its contents in a few seconds, and eagerly demanded meat. This we refused, telling him to wait until morning, but he begged so eagerly that we gave him a small piece, which he devoured, tearing it like a dog. He said he must have more. We told him that his life was in danger if he ate so immoderately at first. He assented, and said he knew he was a fool to do so, but he must have meat. This we absolutely refused, to the great indignation of the senseless squaws, who, when we were not watching him, would slyly bring dried meat and POMMES BLANCHES, and place them on the ground by his side. Still this was not enough for him. When it grew dark he contrived to creep away between the legs of the horses and crawl over to the Indian village, about a furlong down the stream. Here he fed to his heart’s content, and was brought back again in the morning, when Jean Gras, the trapper, put him on horseback and carried him to the fort. He managed to survive the effects of his insane greediness, and though slightly deranged when we left this part of the country, he was otherwise in tolerable health, and expressed his firm conviction that nothing could ever kill him.

As he sat there with the Native Americans silently watching him, his worn face and glassy eyes were hard to look at. Delorier made him a bowl of gruel, but he let it sit untouched in front of him. Finally, he slowly raised the spoon to his lips; he did this again and again, and then suddenly his hunger seemed to explode, as he grabbed the bowl and gulped down all of its contents in a matter of seconds, eagerly asking for meat. We refused him, telling him to wait until morning, but he begged so urgently that we gave him a small piece, which he devoured, tearing it apart like a dog. He said he needed more. We warned him that he was putting his life at risk if he ate so much so quickly. He agreed and said he knew he was being foolish, but he really needed meat. We firmly said no, which greatly angered the clueless women, who, when we weren’t looking, would sneak over dried meat and POMMES BLANCHES, and set them on the ground beside him. Still, that wasn’t enough for him. When it got dark, he managed to slip away between the horses' legs and crawl over to the Indian village, about a furlong down the stream. There, he ate to his heart’s content and was brought back the next morning, when Jean Gras, the trapper, put him on a horse and took him to the fort. He somehow survived the effects of his reckless overeating, and although he was a bit out of sorts when we left this part of the country, he was otherwise in decent health and confidently claimed that nothing could ever kill him.

When the sun was yet an hour high, it was a gay scene in the village. The warriors stalked sedately among the lodges, or along the margin of the streams, or walked out to visit the bands of horses that were feeding over the prairie. Half the village population deserted the close and heated lodges and betook themselves to the water; and here you might see boys and girls and young squaws splashing, swimming, and diving beneath the afternoon sun, with merry laughter and screaming. But when the sun was just resting above the broken peaks, and the purple mountains threw their prolonged shadows for miles over the prairie; when our grim old tree, lighted by the horizontal rays, assumed an aspect of peaceful repose, such as one loves after scenes of tumult and excitement; and when the whole landscape of swelling plains and scattered groves was softened into a tranquil beauty, then our encampment presented a striking spectacle. Could Salvator Rosa have transferred it to his canvas, it would have added new renown to his pencil. Savage figures surrounded our tent, with quivers at their backs, and guns, lances, or tomahawks in their hands. Some sat on horseback, motionless as equestrian statues, their arms crossed on their breasts, their eyes fixed in a steady unwavering gaze upon us. Some stood erect, wrapped from head to foot in their long white robes of buffalo hide. Some sat together on the grass, holding their shaggy horses by a rope, with their broad dark busts exposed to view as they suffered their robes to fall from their shoulders. Others again stood carelessly among the throng, with nothing to conceal the matchless symmetry of their forms; and I do not exaggerate when I say that only on the prairie and in the Vatican have I seen such faultless models of the human figure. See that warrior standing by the tree, towering six feet and a half in stature. Your eyes may trace the whole of his graceful and majestic height, and discover no defect or blemish. With his free and noble attitude, with the bow in his hand, and the quiver at his back, he might seem, but for his face, the Pythian Apollo himself. Such a figure rose before the imagination of West, when on first seeing the Belvidere in the Vatican, he exclaimed, “By God, a Mohawk!”

When the sun was about an hour high, the village was lively. The warriors walked calmly among the lodges, along the streams, or headed out to check on the herds of horses grazing on the prairie. Half of the village left the cramped, stuffy lodges and headed to the water; there, you could see boys, girls, and young women splashing, swimming, and diving under the afternoon sun, filled with joyful laughter and shouts. But when the sun was just resting above the jagged peaks, and the purple mountains cast long shadows across the prairie; when our old tree, illuminated by the slanted rays, looked peaceful like one loves after times of chaos and excitement; and when the rolling plains and scattered groves glowed with a serene beauty, our camp was an impressive sight. If Salvator Rosa could have captured it on canvas, it would have brought him even more fame. Native figures surrounded our tent, with quivers on their backs and guns, spears, or tomahawks in hand. Some sat on horseback, still as statues, arms crossed over their chests, their eyes fixed steadily on us. Some stood tall, wrapped from head to toe in long white buffalo hide robes. Some sat together on the grass, holding onto their shaggy horses by a rope, their broad chests exposed as their robes slipped from their shoulders. Others casually mingled within the crowd, showing off the flawless symmetry of their bodies; I’m not exaggerating when I say that only on the prairie and in the Vatican have I seen such perfect human models. Look at that warrior by the tree, standing six and a half feet tall. You can see his entire graceful and majestic figure without noticing any flaws. With his proud pose, bow in hand, and quiver on his back, he might look like the Pythian Apollo himself, except for his face. Such a vision inspired West when he first saw the Belvidere in the Vatican, exclaiming, “By God, a Mohawk!”

When the sky darkened and the stars began to appear; when the prairie was involved in gloom and the horses were driven in and secured around the camp, the crowd began to melt away. Fires gleamed around, duskily revealing the rough trappers and the graceful Indians. One of the families near us would always be gathered about a bright blaze, that displayed the shadowy dimensions of their lodge, and sent its lights far up among the masses of foliage above, gilding the dead and ragged branches. Withered witchlike hags flitted around the blaze, and here for hour after hour sat a circle of children and young girls, laughing and talking, their round merry faces glowing in the ruddy light. We could hear the monotonous notes of the drum from the Indian village, with the chant of the war song, deadened in the distance, and the long chorus of quavering yells, where the war dance was going on in the largest lodge. For several nights, too, we could hear wild and mournful cries, rising and dying away like the melancholy voice of a wolf. They came from the sisters and female relatives of Mahto-Tatonka, who were gashing their limbs with knives, and bewailing the death of Henry Chatillon’s squaw. The hour would grow late before all retired to rest in the camp. Then the embers of the fires would be glowing dimly, the men would be stretched in their blankets on the ground, and nothing could be heard but the restless motions of the crowded horses.

When the sky turned dark and the stars started to show up; when the prairie was covered in shadow and the horses were brought in and secured around the camp, the crowd began to thin out. Fires flickered all around, dimly revealing the rugged trappers and the graceful Indians. One of the families nearby would always gather around a bright fire, which showcased the shadowy outline of their lodge and sent its light high into the trees above, illuminating the dead and ragged branches. Old, witch-like women moved around the fire, and there sat for hours a circle of children and young girls, laughing and chatting, their round, cheerful faces glowing in the warm light. We could hear the steady beat of a drum from the Indian village, along with the chant of a war song, fading in the distance, and the long chorus of wavering cries where the war dance was taking place in the largest lodge. For several nights, we also heard wild and mournful cries, rising and falling like the sad howl of a wolf. They came from the sisters and female relatives of Mahto-Tatonka, who were cutting their arms with knives and mourning the death of Henry Chatillon’s wife. It would get late before everyone settled down for the night in the camp. Then the glowing embers of the fires would fade, the men would lie wrapped in their blankets on the ground, and the only sound would be the restless movements of the packed horses.

I recall these scenes with a mixed feeling of pleasure and pain. At this time I was so reduced by illness that I could seldom walk without reeling like a drunken man, and when I rose from my seat upon the ground the landscape suddenly grew dim before my eyes, the trees and lodges seemed to sway to and fro, and the prairie to rise and fall like the swells of the ocean. Such a state of things is by no means enviable anywhere. In a country where a man’s life may at any moment depend on the strength of his arm, or it may be on the activity of his legs, it is more particularly inconvenient. Medical assistance of course there was none; neither had I the means of pursuing a system of diet; and sleeping on a damp ground, with an occasional drenching from a shower, would hardly be recommended as beneficial. I sometimes suffered the extremity of languor and exhaustion, and though at the time I felt no apprehensions of the final result, I have since learned that my situation was a critical one.

I remember these moments with a mix of pleasure and pain. At that time, I was so weakened by illness that I could barely walk without swaying like a drunk person. When I stood up from sitting on the ground, the landscape suddenly blurred in my vision; the trees and tents seemed to sway back and forth, and the prairie appeared to rise and fall like ocean waves. This kind of situation is definitely not something to be envied anywhere. In a place where a person’s survival might depend at any moment on the strength of their arm or the speed of their legs, it’s especially inconvenient. There was no medical help available, and I didn’t have any way to follow a specific diet. Sleeping on damp ground and getting soaked by the occasional rain shower definitely isn’t considered healthy. I sometimes experienced extreme weakness and fatigue, and although at the time I didn’t worry about the possible outcome, I’ve since realized that my situation was critical.

Besides other formidable inconveniences I owe it in a great measure to the remote effects of that unlucky disorder that from deficient eyesight I am compelled to employ the pen of another in taking down this narrative from my lips; and I have learned very effectually that a violent attack of dysentery on the prairie is a thing too serious for a joke. I tried repose and a very sparing diet. For a long time, with exemplary patience, I lounged about the camp, or at the utmost staggered over to the Indian village, and walked faint and dizzy among the lodges. It would not do, and I bethought me of starvation. During five days I sustained life on one small biscuit a day. At the end of that time I was weaker than before, but the disorder seemed shaken in its stronghold and very gradually I began to resume a less rigid diet. No sooner had I done so than the same detested symptoms revisited me; my old enemy resumed his pertinacious assaults, yet not with his former violence or constancy, and though before I regained any fair portion of my ordinary strength weeks had elapsed, and months passed before the disorder left me, yet thanks to old habits of activity, and a merciful Providence, I was able to sustain myself against it.

Aside from other serious inconveniences, I mainly owe it to the lingering effects of that unfortunate illness that I have to rely on someone else to write down this account from what I say; I've learned just how serious a sudden bout of dysentery on the prairie can be. I tried resting and eating very little. For a long time, with remarkable patience, I lounged around the camp or at most staggered over to the Indian village, walking weak and dizzy among the lodges. That wasn’t working, so I considered starving myself. For five days, I survived on just one small biscuit a day. By the end of that time, I was weaker than before, but the illness seemed to have loosened its grip, and slowly I started to eat a more normal diet. As soon as I did, the same hated symptoms hit me again; my old enemy resumed its relentless attacks, although not with the same intensity or frequency as before. Even though it took weeks before I regained a decent amount of my regular strength and months before the illness finally left me, thanks to my old habits of being active and a kind Providence, I was able to hold on against it.

I used to lie languid and dreamy before our tent and muse on the past and the future, and when most overcome with lassitude, my eyes turned always toward the distant Black Hills. There is a spirit of energy and vigor in mountains, and they impart it to all who approach their presence. At that time I did not know how many dark superstitions and gloomy legends are associated with those mountains in the minds of the Indians, but I felt an eager desire to penetrate their hidden recesses, to explore the awful chasms and precipices, the black torrents, the silent forests, that I fancied were concealed there.

I used to lie back, relaxed and dreamy, in front of our tent, reflecting on the past and the future. When I was most overcome with tiredness, my gaze always drifted toward the distant Black Hills. There's a sense of energy and strength in mountains, and they pass it on to everyone who gets close. At that time, I didn't realize all the dark superstitions and grim legends tied to those mountains in the minds of the Indians, but I felt a strong urge to explore their hidden depths, to check out the terrifying chasms and cliffs, the rushing dark waters, and the quiet forests that I imagined were hidden there.





CHAPTER XII

ILL LUCK

A Canadian came from Fort Laramie, and brought a curious piece of intelligence. A trapper, fresh from the mountains, had become enamored of a Missouri damsel belonging to a family who with other emigrants had been for some days encamped in the neighborhood of the fort. If bravery be the most potent charm to win the favor of the fair, then no wooer could be more irresistible than a Rocky Mountain trapper. In the present instance, the suit was not urged in vain. The lovers concerted a scheme, which they proceeded to carry into effect with all possible dispatch. The emigrant party left the fort, and on the next succeeding night but one encamped as usual, and placed a guard. A little after midnight the enamored trapper drew near, mounted on a strong horse and leading another by the bridle. Fastening both animals to a tree, he stealthily moved toward the wagons, as if he were approaching a band of buffalo. Eluding the vigilance of the guard, who was probably half asleep, he met his mistress by appointment at the outskirts of the camp, mounted her on his spare horse, and made off with her through the darkness. The sequel of the adventure did not reach our ears, and we never learned how the imprudent fair one liked an Indian lodge for a dwelling, and a reckless trapper for a bridegroom.

A Canadian came from Fort Laramie with some interesting news. A trapper, just back from the mountains, had fallen for a girl from Missouri whose family had been camping nearby with other emigrants for several days. If bravery is the best way to win a woman's heart, then no suitor could be more charming than a Rocky Mountain trapper. In this case, his advances were successful. The couple came up with a plan, which they acted on as quickly as they could. The group of emigrants left the fort and, on the night after next, set up camp as usual and put a guard on watch. A little after midnight, the lovesick trapper approached, riding a sturdy horse and leading another one. He tied both horses to a tree and quietly made his way toward the wagons, as if he were creeping up on a herd of buffalo. Avoiding the guard, who was likely half asleep, he met his sweetheart at the edge of the camp, helped her onto his spare horse, and rode off with her into the darkness. We never found out how the story ended, and we'll never know how the reckless girl felt about living in an Indian lodge with a daring trapper as her husband.

At length The Whirlwind and his warriors determined to move. They had resolved after all their preparations not to go to the rendezvous at La Bonte’s Camp, but to pass through the Black Hills and spend a few weeks in hunting the buffalo on the other side, until they had killed enough to furnish them with a stock of provisions and with hides to make their lodges for the next season. This done, they were to send out a small independent war party against the enemy. Their final determination left us in some embarrassment. Should we go to La Bonte’s Camp, it was not impossible that the other villages would prove as vacillating and indecisive as The Whirlwinds, and that no assembly whatever would take place. Our old companion Reynal had conceived a liking for us, or rather for our biscuit and coffee, and for the occasional small presents which we made him. He was very anxious that we should go with the village which he himself intended to accompany. He declared he was certain that no Indians would meet at the rendezvous, and said moreover that it would be easy to convey our cart and baggage through the Black Hills. In saying this, he told as usual an egregious falsehood. Neither he nor any white man with us had ever seen the difficult and obscure defiles through which the Indians intended to make their way. I passed them afterward, and had much ado to force my distressed horse along the narrow ravines, and through chasms where daylight could scarcely penetrate. Our cart might as easily have been conveyed over the summit of Pike’s Peak. Anticipating the difficulties and uncertainties of an attempt to visit the rendezvous, we recalled the old proverb about “A bird in the hand,” and decided to follow the village.

Finally, The Whirlwind and his warriors decided to move. After all their preparations, they chose not to go to the meeting at La Bonte’s Camp, but instead to travel through the Black Hills and spend a few weeks hunting buffalo on the other side, until they had killed enough to stock up on provisions and gather hides for their lodges for the next season. Once that was accomplished, they planned to send out a small independent war party against the enemy. Their final decision left us in a bit of a dilemma. If we went to La Bonte’s Camp, it was possible that the other villages would be just as indecisive as The Whirlwinds, and that no gathering would take place at all. Our old friend Reynal had taken a liking to us, or more accurately, to our biscuits and coffee, as well as the occasional small gifts we gave him. He was eager for us to go with the village he intended to join. He insisted he was sure that no Indians would meet at the rendezvous and claimed it would be easy to transport our cart and baggage through the Black Hills. In saying this, he, as usual, told a blatant lie. Neither he nor any white man with us had ever seen the tough and hidden paths the Indians planned to take. I traveled through them later and had a hard time getting my struggling horse through the narrow ravines and crevices where daylight barely reached. Our cart could have been as easily moved over the peak of Pike’s Peak. Foreseeing the challenges and uncertainties of trying to reach the rendezvous, we recalled the old saying about “A bird in the hand,” and decided to stick with the village.

Both camps, the Indians’ and our own, broke up on the morning of the 1st of July. I was so weak that the aid of a potent auxiliary, a spoonful of whisky swallowed at short intervals, alone enabled me to sit on my hardy little mare Pauline through the short journey of that day. For half a mile before us and half a mile behind, the prairie was covered far and wide with the moving throng of savages. The barren, broken plain stretched away to the right and left, and far in front rose the gloomy precipitous ridge of the Black Hills. We pushed forward to the head of the scattered column, passing the burdened travaux, the heavily laden pack horses, the gaunt old women on foot, the gay young squaws on horseback, the restless children running among the crowd, old men striding along in their white buffalo robes, and groups of young warriors mounted on their best horses. Henry Chatillon, looking backward over the distant prairie, exclaimed suddenly that a horseman was approaching, and in truth we could just discern a small black speck slowly moving over the face of a distant swell, like a fly creeping on a wall. It rapidly grew larger as it approached.

Both camps, the Indians’ and ours, broke up on the morning of July 1st. I was so weak that the only thing allowing me to ride my tough little mare, Pauline, through that day’s short journey was a spoonful of whisky taken at short intervals. For half a mile in front of us and half a mile behind, the prairie was filled with the moving crowd of natives. The dry, rough ground extended to the right and left, and far in front loomed the dark, steep ridge of the Black Hills. We headed to the front of the scattered column, passing the overloaded pack horses, the old women trudging on foot, the young women riding horseback, the restless children darting around the crowd, the old men striding in their white buffalo robes, and groups of young warriors riding their finest horses. Henry Chatillon suddenly looked back over the distant prairie and exclaimed that a horseman was coming; indeed, we could just make out a small black dot slowly moving over the rise in the distance, like a fly crawling on a wall. It quickly grew larger as it got closer.

“White man, I b’lieve,” said Henry; “look how he ride! Indian never ride that way. Yes; he got rifle on the saddle before him.”

“White man, I believe,” said Henry; “look how he rides! An Indian would never ride that way. Yes; he has a rifle on the saddle in front of him.”

The horseman disappeared in a hollow of the prairie, but we soon saw him again, and as he came riding at a gallop toward us through the crowd of Indians, his long hair streaming in the wind behind him, we recognized the ruddy face and old buckskin frock of Jean Gras the trapper. He was just arrived from Fort Laramie, where he had been on a visit, and said he had a message for us. A trader named Bisonette, one of Henry’s friends, was lately come from the settlements, and intended to go with a party of men to La Bonte’s Camp, where, as Jean Gras assured us, ten or twelve villages of Indians would certainly assemble. Bisonette desired that we would cross over and meet him there, and promised that his men should protect our horses and baggage while we went among the Indians. Shaw and I stopped our horses and held a council, and in an evil hour resolved to go.

The horseman vanished into a dip in the prairie, but we quickly spotted him again. As he galloped toward us through the crowd of Indians, his long hair flowing in the wind, we recognized the sunburned face and worn buckskin jacket of Jean Gras the trapper. He had just returned from Fort Laramie, where he had been visiting, and said he had a message for us. A trader named Bisonette, a friend of Henry’s, had recently come from the settlements and planned to join a group heading to La Bonte’s Camp, where, as Jean Gras confirmed, ten or twelve Indian villages would definitely gather. Bisonette asked us to cross over and meet him there, promising that his men would guard our horses and gear while we were with the Indians. Shaw and I stopped our horses and held a meeting, and at a bad moment, we decided to go.

For the rest of that day’s journey our course and that of the Indians was the same. In less than an hour we came to where the high barren prairie terminated, sinking down abruptly in steep descent; and standing on these heights, we saw below us a great level meadow. Laramie Creek bounded it on the left, sweeping along in the shadow of the declivities, and passing with its shallow and rapid current just below us. We sat on horseback, waiting and looking on, while the whole savage array went pouring past us, hurrying down the descent and spreading themselves over the meadow below. In a few moments the plain was swarming with the moving multitude, some just visible, like specks in the distance, others still passing on, pressing down, and fording the stream with bustle and confusion. On the edge of the heights sat half a dozen of the elder warriors, gravely smoking and looking down with unmoved faces on the wild and striking spectacle.

For the rest of that day’s journey, we followed the same path as the Indians. In less than an hour, we reached the point where the high, barren prairie ended, dropping off sharply. From this height, we could see a vast, flat meadow below us. Laramie Creek bordered it on the left, flowing quickly in the shadow of the slopes and passing just beneath us with its shallow, swift current. We perched on our horses, waiting and watching as the entire wild group surged past us, rushing down the slope and spreading out over the meadow below. In just a few moments, the plain was alive with a throng of people, some barely visible like tiny dots in the distance, while others continued to come, pushing downward and fording the stream amid the chaos. At the edge of the heights, a few older warriors sat gravely smoking, their faces impassive as they observed the wild and impressive scene.

Up went the lodges in a circle on the margin of the stream. For the sake of quiet we pitched our tent among some trees at half a mile’s distance. In the afternoon we were in the village. The day was a glorious one, and the whole camp seemed lively and animated in sympathy. Groups of children and young girls were laughing gayly on the outside of the lodges. The shields, the lances, and the bows were removed from the tall tripods on which they usually hung before the dwellings of their owners. The warriors were mounting their horses, and one by one riding away over the prairie toward the neighboring hills.

The lodges were set up in a circle by the stream. For some peace and quiet, we pitched our tent among some trees half a mile away. In the afternoon, we visited the village. It was a beautiful day, and the whole camp felt lively and cheerful together. Groups of children and young girls laughed happily outside the lodges. The shields, lances, and bows were taken down from the tall tripods where they usually hung in front of their owners' homes. The warriors were getting on their horses, leaving one by one to ride across the prairie toward the nearby hills.

Shaw and I sat on the grass near the lodge of Reynal. An old woman, with true Indian hospitality, brought a bowl of boiled venison and placed it before us. We amused ourselves with watching half a dozen young squaws who were playing together and chasing each other in and out of one of the lodges. Suddenly the wild yell of the war-whoop came pealing from the hills. A crowd of horsemen appeared, rushing down their sides and riding at full speed toward the village, each warrior’s long hair flying behind him in the wind like a ship’s streamer. As they approached, the confused throng assumed a regular order, and entering two by two, they circled round the area at full gallop, each warrior singing his war song as he rode. Some of their dresses were splendid. They wore superb crests of feathers and close tunics of antelope skins, fringed with the scalp-locks of their enemies; their shields too were often fluttering with the war eagle’s feathers. All had bows and arrows at their back; some carried long lances, and a few were armed with guns. The White Shield, their partisan, rode in gorgeous attire at their head, mounted on a black-and-white horse. Mahto-Tatonka and his brothers took no part in this parade, for they were in mourning for their sister, and were all sitting in their lodges, their bodies bedaubed from head to foot with white clay, and a lock of hair cut from each of their foreheads.

Shaw and I sat on the grass near Reynal's lodge. An older woman, showing genuine Indian hospitality, brought us a bowl of boiled venison and set it down in front of us. We entertained ourselves by watching a group of young women playing together, chasing each other in and out of one of the lodges. Suddenly, the wild sound of a war-whoop echoed from the hills. A crowd of horsemen appeared, racing down the slopes and galloping toward the village, each warrior's long hair streaming behind them in the wind like a flag. As they got closer, the chaotic group organized themselves into formation, entering two by two, circling around the area at full speed, each warrior singing their war song as they rode. Some of their outfits were stunning. They wore impressive feather headdresses and close-fitting tunics made from antelope skins, adorned with the scalp locks of their enemies; their shields often fluttered with eagles' war feathers. All carried bows and arrows on their backs; some had long lances, and a few were armed with guns. The White Shield, their leader, rode at the front, dressed in magnificent attire on a black-and-white horse. Mahto-Tatonka and his brothers didn’t participate in the parade because they were mourning for their sister, sitting in their lodges, their bodies covered in white clay, with a lock of hair cut from each of their foreheads.

The warriors circled three times round the village; and as each distinguished champion passed, the old women would scream out his name in honor of his bravery, and to incite the emulation of the younger warriors. Little urchins, not two years old, followed the warlike pageant with glittering eyes, and looked with eager wonder and admiration at those whose honors were proclaimed by the public voice of the village. Thus early is the lesson of war instilled into the mind of an Indian, and such are the stimulants which incite his thirst for martial renown.

The warriors made three laps around the village, and as each well-known champion passed by, the older women would shout his name to celebrate his bravery and encourage the younger warriors to aspire to greatness. Little kids, not even two years old, followed the colorful spectacle with wide eyes, watching in eager wonder and admiration at those whose achievements were celebrated by the village. This is how the lesson of war is introduced early in the minds of Native Americans, and these are the motivations that fuel their desire for martial glory.

The procession rode out of the village as it had entered it, and in half an hour all the warriors had returned again, dropping quietly in, singly or in parties of two or three.

The parade left the village just like it had come in, and within thirty minutes, all the warriors were back, arriving quietly, either one by one or in small groups of two or three.

As the sun rose next morning we looked across the meadow, and could see the lodges leveled and the Indians gathering together in preparation to leave the camp. Their course lay to the westward. We turned toward the north with our men, the four trappers following us, with the Indian family of Moran. We traveled until night. I suffered not a little from pain and weakness. We encamped among some trees by the side of a little brook, and here during the whole of the next day we lay waiting for Bisonette, but no Bisonette appeared. Here also two of our trapper friends left us, and set out for the Rocky Mountains. On the second morning, despairing of Bisonette’s arrival we resumed our journey, traversing a forlorn and dreary monotony of sun-scorched plains, where no living thing appeared save here and there an antelope flying before us like the wind. When noon came we saw an unwonted and most welcome sight; a rich and luxuriant growth of trees, marking the course of a little stream called Horseshoe Creek. We turned gladly toward it. There were lofty and spreading trees, standing widely asunder, and supporting a thick canopy of leaves, above a surface of rich, tall grass. The stream ran swiftly, as clear as crystal, through the bosom of the wood, sparkling over its bed of white sand and darkening again as it entered a deep cavern of leaves and boughs. I was thoroughly exhausted, and flung myself on the ground, scarcely able to move. All that afternoon I lay in the shade by the side of the stream, and those bright woods and sparkling waters are associated in my mind with recollections of lassitude and utter prostration. When night came I sat down by the fire, longing, with an intensity of which at this moment I can hardly conceive, for some powerful stimulant.

As the sun rose the next morning, we looked across the meadow and saw the lodges flattened and the Indians gathering together to get ready to leave the camp. They were heading west. We turned north with our men, followed by the four trappers and Moran's Indian family. We traveled until nightfall. I was in considerable pain and felt weak. We set up camp among some trees by a small stream, and there we spent the entire next day waiting for Bisonette, but he never showed up. Two of our trapper friends also decided to leave us and headed for the Rocky Mountains. On the second morning, feeling hopeless about Bisonette’s arrival, we continued our journey, crossing a desolate and boring stretch of sun-baked plains, where no living thing appeared except for the occasional antelope darting away in the distance. When noon arrived, we saw an unusual and very welcome sight: a lush and thriving cluster of trees along a little stream called Horseshoe Creek. We happily headed toward it. There were tall, spreading trees standing apart, creating a thick canopy of leaves above a carpet of lush, tall grass. The stream flowed swiftly, clear as crystal, through the heart of the woods, glistening over its bed of white sand, then darkening as it entered a deep thicket of leaves and branches. I was completely exhausted and collapsed onto the ground, barely able to move. All afternoon I lay in the shade by the stream, and those bright woods and sparkling waters remind me of feelings of fatigue and utter weakness. When night fell, I sat by the fire, intensely longing for a strong stimulant, a desire that I can hardly grasp at this moment.

In the morning as glorious a sun rose upon us as ever animated that desolate wilderness. We advanced and soon were surrounded by tall bare hills, overspread from top to bottom with prickly-pears and other cacti, that seemed like clinging reptiles. A plain, flat and hard, and with scarcely the vestige of grass, lay before us, and a line of tall misshapen trees bounded the onward view. There was no sight or sound of man or beast, or any living thing, although behind those trees was the long-looked-for place of rendezvous, where we fondly hoped to have found the Indians congregated by thousands. We looked and listened anxiously. We pushed forward with our best speed, and forced our horses through the trees. There were copses of some extent beyond, with a scanty stream creeping through their midst; and as we pressed through the yielding branches, deer sprang up to the right and left. At length we caught a glimpse of the prairie beyond. Soon we emerged upon it, and saw, not a plain covered with encampments and swarming with life, but a vast unbroken desert stretching away before us league upon league, without a bush or a tree or anything that had life. We drew rein and gave to the winds our sentiments concerning the whole aboriginal race of America. Our journey was in vain and much worse than in vain. For myself, I was vexed and disappointed beyond measure; as I well knew that a slight aggravation of my disorder would render this false step irrevocable, and make it quite impossible to accomplish effectively the design which had led me an arduous journey of between three and four thousand miles. To fortify myself as well as I could against such a contingency, I resolved that I would not under any circumstances attempt to leave the country until my object was completely gained.

In the morning, a glorious sun rose over us, lighting up the desolate wilderness. We moved forward and soon found ourselves surrounded by tall, bare hills, covered from top to bottom with prickly pears and other cacti that resembled clinging reptiles. A flat, hard plain stretched out before us, with hardly a trace of grass, bordered by a line of tall, oddly shaped trees that obscured our view ahead. There were no signs or sounds of man, beast, or any living creature, even though just behind those trees was the place we had long been hoping to reach, where we thought we would find thousands of Indians gathered. We anxiously looked and listened. We pressed on as fast as we could, pushing our horses through the trees. Beyond them lay some thickets with a thin stream winding through, and as we forced our way through the bending branches, deer sprang up on either side. Finally, we caught a glimpse of the prairie beyond. When we stepped out onto it, we found not a plain filled with camps and buzzing with life, but a vast, unbroken desert extending endlessly before us, without a bush, a tree, or anything alive. We paused and vented our thoughts about the entire indigenous population of America. Our journey had been futile and even worse than that. Personally, I was extremely frustrated and disappointed; I knew that even a slight worsening of my condition would make this mistake irreversible and completely prevent me from achieving the goal that had driven me on an arduous journey of three to four thousand miles. To prepare myself for such a possibility, I made up my mind that I would not try to leave the country under any circumstances until I fully achieved my objective.

And where were the Indians? They were assembled in great numbers at a spot about twenty miles distant, and there at that very moment they were engaged in their warlike ceremonies. The scarcity of buffalo in the vicinity of La Bonte’s Camp, which would render their supply of provisions scanty and precarious, had probably prevented them from assembling there; but of all this we knew nothing until some weeks after.

And where were the Native Americans? They were gathered in large numbers at a place about twenty miles away, and at that moment, they were involved in their warlike ceremonies. The lack of buffalo near La Bonte’s Camp, which would make their food supply limited and uncertain, probably kept them from gathering there; but we had no idea about any of this until weeks later.

Shaw lashed his horse and galloped forward, I, though much more vexed than he, was not strong enough to adopt this convenient vent to my feelings; so I followed at a quiet pace, but in no quiet mood. We rode up to a solitary old tree, which seemed the only place fit for encampment. Half its branches were dead, and the rest were so scantily furnished with leaves that they cast but a meager and wretched shade, and the old twisted trunk alone furnished sufficient protection from the sun. We threw down our saddles in the strip of shadow that it cast, and sat down upon them. In silent indignation we remained smoking for an hour or more, shifting our saddles with the shifting shadow, for the sun was intolerably hot.

Shaw whipped his horse and rode ahead. I, feeling more frustrated than he was, didn’t have it in me to take out my feelings that way, so I followed slowly, though I wasn’t calm at all. We arrived at an old, lonely tree, which seemed like the only suitable spot to camp. Half of its branches were dead, and the rest had just a few leaves, providing only a weak and miserable shade, and the gnarled trunk was the only thing that offered decent shelter from the sun. We tossed our saddles down into the small patch of shade it created and sat on them. In silent anger, we stayed there smoking for over an hour, moving our saddles as the shade shifted since the sun was painfully hot.





CHAPTER XIII

HUNTING INDIANS

At last we had reached La Bonte’s Camp, toward which our eyes had turned so long. Of all weary hours, those that passed between noon and sunset of the day when we arrived there may bear away the palm of exquisite discomfort. I lay under the tree reflecting on what course to pursue, watching the shadows which seemed never to move, and the sun which remained fixed in the sky, and hoping every moment to see the men and horses of Bisonette emerging from the woods. Shaw and Henry had ridden out on a scouting expedition, and did not return until the sun was setting. There was nothing very cheering in their faces nor in the news they brought.

At last we had reached La Bonte’s Camp, which we had been looking forward to for so long. Of all the tiring hours, those that went by between noon and sunset on the day we got there were the absolute worst. I lay under a tree, thinking about what to do next, watching the shadows that seemed stuck in place, and the sun that felt like it was frozen in the sky, hoping to see Bisonette's men and horses come out of the woods any moment. Shaw and Henry had gone out on a scouting mission and didn't return until the sun was setting. There was nothing very uplifting about their expressions or the news they brought back.

“We have been ten miles from here,” said Shaw. “We climbed the highest butte we could find, and could not see a buffalo or Indian; nothing but prairie for twenty miles around us.”

“We’ve been ten miles from here,” Shaw said. “We climbed the highest butte we could find and couldn’t see a buffalo or any Indians; just prairie for twenty miles in every direction.”

Henry’s horse was quite disabled by clambering up and down the sides of ravines, and Shaw’s was severely fatigued.

Henry’s horse was pretty worn out from climbing up and down the sides of ravines, and Shaw’s was really tired.

After supper that evening, as we sat around the fire, I proposed to Shaw to wait one day longer in hopes of Bisonette’s arrival, and if he should not come to send Delorier with the cart and baggage back to Fort Laramie, while we ourselves followed The Whirlwind’s village and attempted to overtake it as it passed the mountains. Shaw, not having the same motive for hunting Indians that I had, was averse to the plan; I therefore resolved to go alone. This design I adopted very unwillingly, for I knew that in the present state of my health the attempt would be extremely unpleasant, and, as I considered, hazardous. I hoped that Bisonette would appear in the course of the following day, and bring us some information by which to direct our course, and enable me to accomplish my purpose by means less objectionable.

After dinner that evening, as we gathered around the fire, I suggested to Shaw that we wait one more day in hopes of Bisonette showing up. If he didn’t come, we could send Delorier back to Fort Laramie with the cart and our belongings while we chased after The Whirlwind’s village and tried to catch up with it as it moved past the mountains. Shaw, not sharing the same motivation for hunting Indians that I had, was against the idea, so I decided to go alone. I made this choice very reluctantly because I knew that given my current health, attempting this would be very uncomfortable and, in my view, risky. I hoped that Bisonette would turn up the next day and provide us with some information to help us decide our next steps and allow me to achieve my goal in a less objectionable way.

The rifle of Henry Chatillon was necessary for the subsistence of the party in my absence; so I called Raymond, and ordered him to prepare to set out with me. Raymond rolled his eyes vacantly about, but at length, having succeeded in grappling with the idea, he withdrew to his bed under the cart. He was a heavy-molded fellow, with a broad face exactly like an owl’s, expressing the most impenetrable stupidity and entire self-confidence. As for his good qualities, he had a sort of stubborn fidelity, an insensibility to danger, and a kind of instinct or sagacity, which sometimes led him right, where better heads than his were at a loss. Besides this, he knew very well how to handle a rifle and picket a horse.

The rifle belonging to Henry Chatillon was essential for the group's survival while I was gone, so I called Raymond and told him to get ready to leave with me. Raymond stared blankly for a moment, but eventually, after figuring it out, he went back to his bed under the cart. He was a stocky guy with a broad face that looked just like an owl's, showing a complete lack of understanding and total self-assurance. As for his strengths, he had a stubborn loyalty, an indifference to danger, and a sort of instinct or common sense that sometimes guided him better than smarter people. Plus, he knew exactly how to handle a rifle and tie up a horse.

Through the following day the sun glared down upon us with a pitiless, penetrating heat. The distant blue prairie seemed quivering under it. The lodge of our Indian associates was baking in the rays, and our rifles, as they leaned against the tree, were too hot for the touch. There was a dead silence through our camp and all around it, unbroken except by the hum of gnats and mosquitoes. The men, resting their foreheads on their arms, were sleeping under the cart. The Indians kept close within their lodge except the newly married pair, who were seated together under an awning of buffalo robes, and the old conjurer, who, with his hard, emaciated face and gaunt ribs, was perched aloft like a turkey-buzzard among the dead branches of an old tree, constantly on the lookout for enemies. He would have made a capital shot. A rifle bullet, skillfully planted, would have brought him tumbling to the ground. Surely, I thought, there could be no more harm in shooting such a hideous old villain, to see how ugly he would look when he was dead, than in shooting the detestable vulture which he resembled. We dined, and then Shaw saddled his horse.

The next day, the sun beat down on us with an unforgiving, intense heat. The distant blue prairie seemed to shimmer beneath it. The lodge of our Indian companions was roasting in the sun, and our rifles, leaning against the tree, were too hot to touch. There was a heavy silence throughout our camp and the surrounding area, broken only by the buzzing of gnats and mosquitoes. The men, resting their foreheads on their arms, were sleeping under the cart. The Indians stayed close to their lodge except for the newly married couple, who were sitting together under an awning of buffalo robes, and the old conjurer, who, with his weathered, thin face and bony ribs, was perched high like a turkey vulture among the dead branches of an old tree, always on the lookout for threats. He would have made an easy target. A well-aimed rifle shot would have sent him tumbling to the ground. Surely, I thought, there would be no more harm in shooting such an ugly old villain to see how hideous he would look when dead than in shooting the loathsome vulture he resembled. We had dinner, and then Shaw saddled his horse.

“I will ride back,” said he, “to Horseshoe Creek, and see if Bisonette is there.”

“I'll ride back,” he said, “to Horseshoe Creek and check if Bisonette is there.”

“I would go with you,” I answered, “but I must reserve all the strength I have.”

“I'd go with you,” I replied, “but I need to save all the energy I have.”

The afternoon dragged away at last. I occupied myself in cleaning my rifle and pistols, and making other preparations for the journey. After supper, Henry Chatillon and I lay by the fire, discussing the properties of that admirable weapon, the rifle, in the use of which he could fairly outrival Leatherstocking himself.

The afternoon finally passed. I kept myself busy cleaning my rifle and pistols, and getting ready for the trip. After dinner, Henry Chatillon and I relaxed by the fire, talking about the amazing qualities of the rifle, which he could use even better than Leatherstocking himself.

It was late before I wrapped myself in my blanket and lay down for the night, with my head on my saddle. Shaw had not returned, but this gave no uneasiness, for we presumed that he had fallen in with Bisonette, and was spending the night with him. For a day or two past I had gained in strength and health, but about midnight an attack of pain awoke me, and for some hours I felt no inclination to sleep. The moon was quivering on the broad breast of the Platte; nothing could be heard except those low inexplicable sounds, like whisperings and footsteps, which no one who has spent the night alone amid deserts and forests will be at a loss to understand. As I was falling asleep, a familiar voice, shouting from the distance, awoke me again. A rapid step approached the camp, and Shaw on foot, with his gun in his hand, hastily entered.

It was late when I wrapped myself in my blanket and lay down for the night, using my saddle as a pillow. Shaw hadn't come back, but I wasn't worried since we figured he had met up with Bisonette and was spending the night with him. For the past day or two, I had been feeling stronger and healthier, but around midnight, a wave of pain woke me up, and for several hours, I couldn't find the motivation to sleep. The moon was shimmering over the wide expanse of the Platte; all I could hear were those low, strange sounds, like whispers and footsteps, that anyone who has spent a night alone in deserts and forests would recognize. Just as I was drifting off again, a familiar voice calling from a distance jolted me awake. A quick step approached the camp, and Shaw came in on foot, gun in hand, and hurried inside.

“Where’s your horse?” said I, raising myself on my elbow.

“Where's your horse?” I asked, propping myself up on my elbow.

“Lost!” said Shaw. “Where’s Delorier?”

“Lost!” Shaw exclaimed. “Where’s Delorier?”

“There,” I replied, pointing to a confused mass of blankets and buffalo robes.

“There,” I replied, pointing to a tangle of blankets and buffalo robes.

Shaw touched them with the butt of his gun, and up sprang our faithful Canadian.

Shaw tapped them with the end of his gun, and up jumped our loyal Canadian.

“Come, Delorier; stir up the fire, and get me something to eat.”

“Come on, Delorier; stoke the fire and get me something to eat.”

“Where’s Bisonette?” asked I.

“Where’s Bisonette?” I asked.

“The Lord knows; there’s nobody at Horseshoe Creek.”

“The Lord knows; there's no one at Horseshoe Creek.”

Shaw had gone back to the spot where we had encamped two days before, and finding nothing there but the ashes of our fires, he had tied his horse to the tree while he bathed in the stream. Something startled his horse, who broke loose, and for two hours Shaw tried in vain to catch him. Sunset approached, and it was twelve miles to camp. So he abandoned the attempt, and set out on foot to join us. The greater part of his perilous and solitary work was performed in darkness. His moccasins were worn to tatters and his feet severely lacerated. He sat down to eat, however, with the usual equanimity of his temper not at all disturbed by his misfortune, and my last recollection before falling asleep was of Shaw, seated cross-legged before the fire, smoking his pipe. The horse, I may as well mention here, was found the next morning by Henry Chatillon.

Shaw went back to where we had camped two days earlier, and finding nothing but the ashes of our fires, he tied his horse to a tree while he bathed in the stream. Something startled the horse, and it broke free, leaving Shaw to spend two hours unsuccessfully trying to catch it. With sunset approaching and twelve miles to go to reach camp, he gave up and started walking to join us. Most of his dangerous and lonely journey was done in the dark. His moccasins were in tatters, and his feet were badly cut up. Despite this, he sat down to eat with his usual calmness, not at all bothered by his bad luck. My last memory before falling asleep was of Shaw sitting cross-legged by the fire, smoking his pipe. I should mention here that Henry Chatillon found the horse the next morning.

When I awoke again there was a fresh damp smell in the air, a gray twilight involved the prairie, and above its eastern verge was a streak of cold red sky. I called to the men, and in a moment a fire was blazing brightly in the dim morning light, and breakfast was getting ready. We sat down together on the grass, to the last civilized meal which Raymond and I were destined to enjoy for some time.

When I woke up again, there was a fresh, damp smell in the air, a gray twilight covering the prairie, and a streak of cold red sky in the east. I called to the guys, and soon a fire was blazing brightly in the dim morning light while breakfast was being prepared. We sat down together on the grass for the last civilized meal that Raymond and I were going to have for a while.

“Now, bring in the horses.”

"Now, bring in the horses."

My little mare Pauline was soon standing by the fire. She was a fleet, hardy, and gentle animal, christened after Paul Dorion, from whom I had procured her in exchange for Pontiac. She did not look as if equipped for a morning pleasure ride. In front of the black, high-bowed mountain saddle, holsters, with heavy pistols, were fastened. A pair of saddle bags, a blanket tightly rolled, a small parcel of Indian presents tied up in a buffalo skin, a leather bag of flour, and a smaller one of tea were all secured behind, and a long trail-rope was wound round her neck. Raymond had a strong black mule, equipped in a similar manner. We crammed our powder-horns to the throat, and mounted.

My little mare Pauline was soon standing by the fire. She was a quick, tough, and gentle animal, named after Paul Dorion, from whom I had gotten her in exchange for Pontiac. She didn’t seem like she was ready for a leisurely morning ride. In front of the black, high-backed mountain saddle, holsters with heavy pistols were attached. A pair of saddlebags, a tightly rolled blanket, a small bundle of Indian gifts wrapped in buffalo skin, a leather bag of flour, and a smaller one of tea were all secured behind her, and a long trail rope was wrapped around her neck. Raymond had a strong black mule, set up in a similar way. We filled our powder horns to the brim and mounted up.

“I will meet you at Fort Laramie on the 1st of August,” said I to Shaw.

“I'll meet you at Fort Laramie on August 1st,” I said to Shaw.

“That is,” replied he, “if we don’t meet before that. I think I shall follow after you in a day or two.”

“That's,” he responded, “if we don't run into each other before then. I think I’ll catch up with you in a day or two.”

This in fact he attempted, and he would have succeeded if he had not encountered obstacles against which his resolute spirit was of no avail. Two days after I left him he sent Delorier to the fort with the cart and baggage, and set out for the mountains with Henry Chatillon; but a tremendous thunderstorm had deluged the prairie, and nearly obliterated not only our trail but that of the Indians themselves. They followed along the base of the mountains, at a loss in which direction to go. They encamped there, and in the morning Shaw found himself poisoned by ivy in such a manner that it was impossible for him to travel. So they turned back reluctantly toward Fort Laramie. Shaw’s limbs were swollen to double their usual size, and he rode in great pain. They encamped again within twenty miles of the fort, and reached it early on the following morning. Shaw lay seriously ill for a week, and remained at the fort till I rejoined him some time after.

He actually tried to do this, and he would have succeeded if he hadn't run into obstacles that his determined spirit couldn't overcome. Two days after I left him, he sent Delorier to the fort with the cart and luggage and set out for the mountains with Henry Chatillon. But a massive thunderstorm had flooded the prairie, nearly erasing not only our trail but also the path of the Indians. They stumbled along the base of the mountains, unsure of which way to go. They set up camp there, and in the morning, Shaw discovered he had a severe case of poison ivy, making it impossible for him to travel. So, they reluctantly turned back toward Fort Laramie. Shaw's limbs were swollen to double their normal size, and he was in great pain while riding. They camped again within twenty miles of the fort and arrived early the next morning. Shaw was seriously ill for a week and stayed at the fort until I reunited with him sometime later.

To return to my own story. We shook hands with our friends, rode out upon the prairie, and clambering the sandy hollows that were channeled in the sides of the hills gained the high plains above. If a curse had been pronounced upon the land it could not have worn an aspect of more dreary and forlorn barrenness. There were abrupt broken hills, deep hollows, and wide plains; but all alike glared with an insupportable whiteness under the burning sun. The country, as if parched by the heat, had cracked into innumerable fissures and ravines, that not a little impeded our progress. Their steep sides were white and raw, and along the bottom we several times discovered the broad tracks of the terrific grizzly bear, nowhere more abundant than in this region. The ridges of the hills were hard as rock, and strewn with pebbles of flint and coarse red jasper; looking from them, there was nothing to relieve the desert uniformity of the prospect, save here and there a pine-tree clinging at the edge of a ravine, and stretching out its rough, shaggy arms. Under the scorching heat these melancholy trees diffused their peculiar resinous odor through the sultry air. There was something in it, as I approached them, that recalled old associations; the pine-clad mountains of New England, traversed in days of health and buoyancy, rose like a reality before my fancy. In passing that arid waste I was goaded with a morbid thirst produced by my disorder, and I thought with a longing desire on the crystal treasure poured in such wasteful profusion from our thousand hills. Shutting my eyes, I more than half believed that I heard the deep plunging and gurgling of waters in the bowels of the shaded rocks. I could see their dark ice glittering far down amid the crevices, and the cold drops trickling from the long green mosses.

To get back to my own story. We shook hands with our friends, rode out onto the prairie, and climbed the sandy dips on the sides of the hills until we reached the high plains above. If a curse had been placed on the land, it couldn't have looked more dreary and desolate. There were steep, broken hills, deep hollows, and wide plains; but everything shone with an unbearable whiteness under the blazing sun. The ground, as if scorched by the heat, had cracked into countless fissures and ravines, which really slowed us down. Their steep sides were white and raw, and several times we spotted the large tracks of the fearsome grizzly bear, which were particularly common in this area. The ridges of the hills were as hard as rock and scattered with flint pebbles and coarse red jasper; looking from them, there was nothing to break up the monotonous landscape, except for the occasional pine tree clinging to the edge of a ravine, stretching out its rough, shaggy branches. Under the blistering heat, these sad trees released their distinct resinous scent into the humid air. As I got closer, something about it brought back old memories; the pine-covered mountains of New England, which I had explored in healthier, happier days, rose vividly in my mind. As we passed through that dry wasteland, I was driven by an intense thirst caused by my illness, and I longed for the crystal clear water that flowed so lavishly from our thousands of hills. Closing my eyes, I almost believed I could hear the deep splashing and gurgling of water deep within the shaded rocks. I could picture their dark ice glistening far down among the crevices, with cold drops trickling from the long green mosses.

When noon came, we found a little stream, with a few trees and bushes; and here we rested for an hour. Then we traveled on, guided by the sun, until, just before sunset, we reached another stream, called Bitter Cotton-wood Creek. A thick growth of bushes and old storm-beaten trees grew at intervals along its bank. Near the foot of one of the trees we flung down our saddles, and hobbling our horses turned them loose to feed. The little stream was clear and swift, and ran musically on its white sands. Small water birds were splashing in the shallows, and filling the air with their cries and flutterings. The sun was just sinking among gold and crimson clouds behind Mount Laramie. I well remember how I lay upon a log by the margin of the water, and watched the restless motions of the little fish in a deep still nook below. Strange to say, I seemed to have gained strength since the morning, and almost felt a sense of returning health.

When noon arrived, we stumbled upon a small stream, surrounded by a few trees and bushes, and we took an hour to rest here. After that, we continued on, following the sun, until just before sunset when we reached another stream, known as Bitter Cottonwood Creek. A dense growth of bushes and weathered trees lined its banks at intervals. Near the base of one of the trees, we dropped our saddles, hobbled our horses, and let them roam to graze. The stream was clear and flowed swiftly over its white sands. Small water birds were splashing in the shallows, filling the air with their calls and flutters. The sun was setting amid golden and crimson clouds behind Mount Laramie. I distinctly remember lying on a log by the water's edge, watching the restless movements of the little fish in a deep, still spot below. Strangely, I felt like I had regained strength since the morning and almost sensed a return to health.

We built our fire. Night came, and the wolves began to howl. One deep voice commenced, and it was answered in awful responses from the hills, the plains, and the woods along the stream above and below us. Such sounds need not and do not disturb one’s sleep upon the prairie. We picketed the mare and the mule close at our feet, and did not wake until daylight. Then we turned them loose, still hobbled, to feed for an hour before starting. We were getting ready our morning’s meal, when Raymond saw an antelope at half a mile’s distance, and said he would go and shoot it.

We built our fire. Night fell, and the wolves started howling. One deep voice began, and it was echoed back from the hills, the plains, and the woods along the stream above and below us. Such sounds don't really interrupt your sleep on the prairie. We tied up the mare and the mule close at our feet and didn’t wake up until daylight. Then we let them loose, still hobbled, to graze for an hour before we took off. We were preparing our breakfast when Raymond spotted an antelope half a mile away and said he would go and shoot it.

“Your business,” said. I, “is to look after the animals. I am too weak to do much, if anything happens to them, and you must keep within sight of the camp.”

“Your job,” I said, “is to take care of the animals. I’m too weak to do much if anything happens to them, and you need to stay within sight of the camp.”

Raymond promised, and set out with his rifle in his hand. The animals had passed across the stream, and were feeding among the long grass on the other side, much tormented by the attacks of the numerous large green-headed flies. As I watched them, I saw them go down into a hollow, and as several minutes elapsed without their reappearing, I waded through the stream to look after them. To my vexation and alarm I discovered them at a great distance, galloping away at full speed, Pauline in advance, with her hobbles broken, and the mule, still fettered, following with awkward leaps. I fired my rifle and shouted to recall Raymond. In a moment he came running through the stream, with a red handkerchief bound round his head. I pointed to the fugitives, and ordered him to pursue them. Muttering a “Sacre!” between his teeth, he set out at full speed, still swinging his rifle in his hand. I walked up to the top of a hill, and looking away over the prairie, could just distinguish the runaways, still at full gallop. Returning to the fire, I sat down at the foot of a tree. Wearily and anxiously hour after hour passed away. The old loose bark dangling from the trunk behind me flapped to and fro in the wind, and the mosquitoes kept up their incessant drowsy humming; but other than this, there was no sight nor sound of life throughout the burning landscape. The sun rose higher and higher, until the shadows fell almost perpendicularly, and I knew that it must be noon. It seemed scarcely possible that the animals could be recovered. If they were not, my situation was one of serious difficulty. Shaw, when I left him had decided to move that morning, but whither he had not determined. To look for him would be a vain attempt. Fort Laramie was forty miles distant, and I could not walk a mile without great effort. Not then having learned the sound philosophy of yielding to disproportionate obstacles, I resolved to continue in any event the pursuit of the Indians. Only one plan occurred to me; this was to send Raymond to the fort with an order for more horses, while I remained on the spot, awaiting his return, which might take place within three days. But the adoption of this resolution did not wholly allay my anxiety, for it involved both uncertainty and danger. To remain stationary and alone for three days, in a country full of dangerous Indians, was not the most flattering of prospects; and protracted as my Indian hunt must be by such delay, it was not easy to foretell its ultimate result. Revolving these matters, I grew hungry; and as our stock of provisions, except four or five pounds of flour, was by this time exhausted, I left the camp to see what game I could find. Nothing could be seen except four or five large curlew, which, with their loud screaming, were wheeling over my head, and now and then alighting upon the prairie. I shot two of them, and was about returning, when a startling sight caught my eye. A small, dark object, like a human head, suddenly appeared, and vanished among the thick hushes along the stream below. In that country every stranger is a suspected enemy. Instinctively I threw forward the muzzle of my rifle. In a moment the bushes were violently shaken, two heads, but not human heads, protruded, and to my great joy I recognized the downcast, disconsolate countenance of the black mule and the yellow visage of Pauline. Raymond came upon the mule, pale and haggard, complaining of a fiery pain in his chest. I took charge of the animals while he kneeled down by the side of the stream to drink. He had kept the runaways in sight as far as the Side Fork of Laramie Creek, a distance of more than ten miles; and here with great difficulty he had succeeded in catching them. I saw that he was unarmed, and asked him what he had done with his rifle. It had encumbered him in his pursuit, and he had dropped it on the prairie, thinking that he could find it on his return; but in this he had failed. The loss might prove a very formidable one. I was too much rejoiced however at the recovery of the animals to think much about it; and having made some tea for Raymond in a tin vessel which we had brought with us, I told him that I would give him two hours for resting before we set out again. He had eaten nothing that day; but having no appetite, he lay down immediately to sleep. I picketed the animals among the richest grass that I could find, and made fires of green wood to protect them from the flies; then sitting down again by the tree, I watched the slow movements of the sun, begrudging every moment that passed.

Raymond promised and set off with his rifle in hand. The animals had crossed the stream and were grazing in the tall grass on the other side, constantly bothered by large green-headed flies. As I watched them, they disappeared into a dip, and after several minutes without seeing them again, I waded through the stream to check on them. To my frustration and worry, I found them far off, running away at full speed, with Pauline in the lead, her hobbles broken, and the mule, still tied up, struggling to follow with awkward jumps. I shot my rifle and shouted for Raymond to come back. In a moment, he sprinted through the stream, a red handkerchief tied around his head. I pointed at the fleeing animals and told him to chase after them. Muttering a “Sacre!” under his breath, he took off at full speed, still swinging his rifle. I climbed to the top of a hill and, looking out over the prairie, could just make out the fugitives still galloping away. Returning to the fire, I sat down at the base of a tree. Hours passed slowly and wearily, filled with anxiety. The old, loose bark hanging from the trunk behind me flapped in the wind, and the mosquitoes buzzed with their incessant drone; but besides that, there was no sign of life in the scorching landscape. The sun climbed higher in the sky until the shadows fell nearly straight down, and I realized it must be noon. It seemed almost impossible to recover the animals. If I couldn’t, I would be in serious trouble. Shaw had decided to move that morning when I left him, but he hadn’t said where. Searching for him would be pointless. Fort Laramie was forty miles away, and I could barely walk a mile without a lot of effort. Not having yet learned the rational approach of giving in to overwhelming obstacles, I decided to keep pursuing the Indians no matter what. The only plan that came to me was to send Raymond to the fort for more horses while I stayed put, waiting for his return, which could take up to three days. But this decision didn’t completely ease my anxiety, as it brought both uncertainty and danger. Staying alone for three days in a territory with hostile Indians was not a comforting thought, and the extended wait would surely complicate my hunt for the Indians, making its outcome hard to predict. As I thought through these issues, I grew hungry; and since we had run out of provisions except for four or five pounds of flour, I left the camp to see what game I could find. I saw nothing except for four or five large curlews, which were screaming loudly and flying overhead, occasionally landing on the prairie. I shot two of them and was about to head back when something caught my eye. A small, dark object that looked like a human head suddenly popped up and then vanished among the thick bushes by the stream below. In that region, every stranger is a potential threat. Instinctively, I aimed my rifle. Moments later, the bushes shook violently, and two heads popped out, but they weren’t human. To my relief, I recognized the sad, downcast face of the black mule and the yellow-hued Pauline. Raymond appeared with the mule, looking pale and worn out, complaining of a burning pain in his chest. I took care of the animals while he knelt by the stream to drink. He had kept the runaway animals in sight as far as the Side Fork of Laramie Creek, a distance of over ten miles, and had worked hard to catch them. I noticed he was unarmed and asked him what happened to his rifle. It had slowed him down during the chase, so he had left it on the prairie, thinking he could find it later, but he hadn’t. Losing it could be a significant issue. However, I was too relieved to have the animals back to dwell on it much; after making some tea for Raymond in a tin pot we had brought, I told him he could rest for two hours before we headed out again. He hadn’t eaten anything that day, but feeling no hunger, he lay down right away to sleep. I tied the animals to the richest grass I could find and built fires of green wood to keep the flies away; then, sitting down again by the tree, I watched the sun’s slow progress, resenting every moment that passed.

The time I had mentioned expired, and I awoke Raymond. We saddled and set out again, but first we went in search of the lost rifle, and in the course of an hour Raymond was fortunate enough to find it. Then we turned westward, and moved over the hills and hollows at a slow pace toward the Black Hills. The heat no longer tormented us, for a cloud was before the sun. Yet that day shall never be marked with white in my calendar. The air began to grow fresh and cool, the distant mountains frowned more gloomily, there was a low muttering of thunder, and dense black masses of cloud rose heavily behind the broken peaks. At first they were gayly fringed with silver by the afternoon sun, but soon the thick blackness overspread the whole sky, and the desert around us was wrapped in deep gloom. I scarcely heeded it at the time, but now I cannot but feel that there was an awful sublimity in the hoarse murmuring of the thunder, in the somber shadows that involved the mountains and the plain. The storm broke. It came upon us with a zigzag blinding flash, with a terrific crash of thunder, and with a hurricane that howled over the prairie, dashing floods of water against us. Raymond looked round, and cursed the merciless elements. There seemed no shelter near, but we discerned at length a deep ravine gashed in the level prairie, and saw half way down its side an old pine tree, whose rough horizontal boughs formed a sort of penthouse against the tempest. We found a practicable passage, and hastily descending, fastened our animals to some large loose stones at the bottom; then climbing up, we drew our blankets over our heads, and seated ourselves close beneath the old tree. Perhaps I was no competent judge of time, but it seemed to me that we were sitting there a full hour, while around us poured a deluge of rain, through which the rocks on the opposite side of the gulf were barely visible. The first burst of the tempest soon subsided, but the rain poured steadily. At length Raymond grew impatient, and scrambling out of the ravine, he gained the level prairie above.

The time I had mentioned passed, and I woke Raymond up. We saddled our horses and set off again, but first we went to look for the lost rifle, and after about an hour, Raymond was lucky enough to find it. Then we headed west, moving slowly over the hills and valleys toward the Black Hills. The heat didn’t bother us anymore because a cloud was covering the sun. However, that day will never be marked as a good one on my calendar. The air started to feel fresh and cool, the distant mountains looked more ominous, there was a low rumble of thunder, and thick black clouds rose heavily behind the jagged peaks. At first, they were brightly edged with silver by the afternoon sun, but soon the darkness spread over the entire sky, and the surrounding desert was engulfed in deep gloom. I hardly noticed it at the time, but now I can’t help but feel there was an overwhelming grandeur in the deep rumble of the thunder and the somber shadows enveloping the mountains and the plains. The storm hit. It came at us with a blinding flash, a deafening crash of thunder, and a wind that howled across the prairie, slamming torrents of rain against us. Raymond looked around and cursed the fierce elements. There didn’t seem to be any shelter nearby, but eventually, we spotted a deep ravine cut into the flat prairie, and halfway down its side was an old pine tree with rough horizontal branches that offered some protection from the storm. We found a way down, quickly descended, and tied our horses to some large loose stones at the bottom. Then we climbed up, pulled our blankets over our heads, and settled in close under the old tree. Maybe I wasn’t the best judge of time, but it felt like we were sitting there for a full hour while a downpour surrounded us, making the rocks on the opposite side of the gorge barely visible. The initial onslaught of the storm soon eased, but the rain continued steadily. Eventually, Raymond got impatient, scrambled out of the ravine, and made his way to the level prairie above.

“What does the weather look like?” asked I, from my seat under the tree.

“What does the weather look like?” I asked from my seat under the tree.

“It looks bad,” he answered; “dark all around,” and again he descended and sat down by my side. Some ten minutes elapsed.

“It looks bad,” he replied; “dark all around,” and he went back down and sat next to me. About ten minutes passed.

“Go up again,” said I, “and take another look;” and he clambered up the precipice. “Well, how is it?”

“Go up again,” I said, “and take another look;” and he climbed up the cliff. “So, what is it?”

“Just the same, only I see one little bright spot over the top of the mountain.”

“Just the same, but I see a little bright spot over the top of the mountain.”

The rain by this time had begun to abate; and going down to the bottom of the ravine, we loosened the animals, who were standing up to their knees in water. Leading them up the rocky throat of the ravine, we reached the plain above. “Am I,” I thought to myself, “the same man who a few months since, was seated, a quiet student of BELLES-LETTRES, in a cushioned arm-chair by a sea-coal fire?”

The rain had started to let up by now; and as we made our way to the bottom of the ravine, we released the animals, who were standing in water up to their knees. Leading them up the rocky passage of the ravine, we reached the plain above. “Am I,” I thought to myself, “the same person who just a few months ago was sitting, a quiet student of literature, in a comfy armchair by a coal fire?”

All around us was obscurity; but the bright spot above the mountaintops grew wider and ruddier, until at length the clouds drew apart, and a flood of sunbeams poured down from heaven, streaming along the precipices, and involving them in a thin blue haze, as soft and lovely as that which wraps the Apennines on an evening in spring. Rapidly the clouds were broken and scattered, like routed legions of evil spirits. The plain lay basking in sunbeams around us; a rainbow arched the desert from north to south, and far in front a line of woods seemed inviting us to refreshment and repose. When we reached them, they were glistening with prismatic dewdrops, and enlivened by the song and flutterings of a hundred birds. Strange winged insects, benumbed by the rain, were clinging to the leaves and the bark of the trees.

All around us was darkness, but the bright area above the mountaintops got larger and more colorful until finally the clouds parted, and a stream of sunlight poured down from the sky, shining along the cliffs and wrapping them in a soft blue mist, as gentle and beautiful as that which covers the Apennines on a spring evening. The clouds quickly broke apart and scattered, like defeated legions of evil spirits. The plain lay soaking up the sunlight around us; a rainbow arched across the desert from north to south, and far ahead, a line of trees seemed to invite us to rest and refresh ourselves. When we reached them, they sparkled with colorful dewdrops and were filled with the songs and flutters of a hundred birds. Odd winged insects, stunned by the rain, clung to the leaves and bark of the trees.

Raymond kindled a fire with great difficulty. The animals turned eagerly to feed on the soft rich grass, while I, wrapping myself in my blanket, lay down and gazed on the evening landscape. The mountains, whose stern features had lowered upon us with so gloomy and awful a frown, now seemed lighted up with a serene, benignant smile, and the green waving undulations of the plain were gladdened with the rich sunshine. Wet, ill, and wearied as I was, my spirit grew lighter at the view, and I drew from it an augury of good for my future prospects.

Raymond struggled to start a fire. The animals eagerly moved to munch on the soft, lush grass while I wrapped myself in my blanket, lay down, and looked at the evening scenery. The mountains, which had loomed over us with such a gloomy, terrifying frown, now appeared to be lit up with a calm, kind smile, and the green, gently rolling hills of the plain were brightened by the warm sunshine. Wet, sick, and tired as I was, my spirits lifted at the sight, and I felt it brought me a sign of hope for my future.

When morning came, Raymond awoke, coughing violently, though I had apparently received no injury. We mounted, crossed the little stream, pushed through the trees, and began our journey over the plain beyond. And now, as we rode slowly along, we looked anxiously on every hand for traces of the Indians, not doubting that the village had passed somewhere in that vicinity; but the scanty shriveled grass was not more than three or four inches high, and the ground was of such unyielding hardness that a host might have marched over it and left scarcely a trace of its passage. Up hill and down hill, and clambering through ravines, we continued our journey. As we were skirting the foot of a hill I saw Raymond, who was some rods in advance, suddenly jerking the reins of his mule. Sliding from his seat, and running in a crouching posture up a hollow, he disappeared; and then in an instant I heard the sharp quick crack of his rifle. A wounded antelope came running on three legs over the hill. I lashed Pauline and made after him. My fleet little mare soon brought me by his side, and after leaping and bounding for a few moments in vain, he stood still, as if despairing of escape. His glistening eyes turned up toward my face with so piteous a look that it was with feelings of infinite compunction that I shot him through the head with a pistol. Raymond skinned and cut him up, and we hung the forequarters to our saddles, much rejoiced that our exhausted stock of provisions was renewed in such good time.

When morning came, Raymond woke up, coughing violently, though I seemed to have received no injuries. We mounted our horses, crossed the small stream, pushed through the trees, and began our journey across the plain beyond. As we rode slowly along, we anxiously looked around for any signs of the Indians, not doubting that the village had passed somewhere nearby; but the sparse, dried grass was only about three or four inches high, and the ground was so hard that a large group could have marched over it and left almost no trace. We continued our journey, going up hills and down, and climbing through ravines. As we were skirting the foot of a hill, I saw Raymond, who was a few yards ahead, suddenly jerk the reins of his mule. He slid off his seat and ran crouched up a hollow, then disappeared; and in an instant, I heard the sharp crack of his rifle. A wounded antelope came running on three legs over the hill. I spurred Pauline and chased after him. My quick little mare soon caught up to him, and after jumping and bounding in vain for a few moments, he stood still, as if hopeless of escape. His shining eyes looked up at me with such a pitiful expression that I shot him through the head with a pistol, feeling an immense wave of guilt. Raymond skinned and butchered him, and we hung the forequarters on our saddles, very happy that our dwindling supplies were replenished just in time.

Gaining the top of a hill, we could see along the cloudy verge of the prairie before us lines of trees and shadowy groves that marked the course of Laramie Creek. Some time before noon we reached its banks and began anxiously to search them for footprints of the Indians. We followed the stream for several miles, now on the shore and now wading in the water, scrutinizing every sand-bar and every muddy bank. So long was the search that we began to fear that we had left the trail undiscovered behind us. At length I heard Raymond shouting, and saw him jump from his mule to examine some object under the shelving bank. I rode up to his side. It was the clear and palpable impression of an Indian moccasin. Encouraged by this we continued our search, and at last some appearances on a soft surface of earth not far from the shore attracted my eye; and going to examine them I found half a dozen tracks, some made by men and some by children. Just then Raymond observed across the stream the mouth of a small branch entering it from the south. He forded the water, rode in at the opening, and in a moment I heard him shouting again, so I passed over and joined him. The little branch had a broad sandy bed, along which the water trickled in a scanty stream; and on either bank the bushes were so close that the view was completely intercepted. I found Raymond stooping over the footprints of three or four horses. Proceeding we found those of a man, then those of a child, then those of more horses; and at last the bushes on each bank were beaten down and broken, and the sand plowed up with a multitude of footsteps, and scored across with the furrows made by the lodge-poles that had been dragged through. It was now certain that we had found the trail. I pushed through the bushes, and at a little distance on the prairie beyond found the ashes of a hundred and fifty lodge fires, with bones and pieces of buffalo robes scattered around them, and in some instances the pickets to which horses had been secured still standing in the ground. Elated by our success we selected a convenient tree, and turning the animals loose, prepared to make a meal from the fat haunch of our victim.

Reaching the top of a hill, we could see along the cloudy edge of the prairie ahead of us lines of trees and dark groves that marked the path of Laramie Creek. Sometime before noon, we reached its banks and began anxiously searching for footprints of the Indians. We followed the stream for several miles, sometimes on the shore and sometimes wading in the water, examining every sandbar and muddy bank. The search took so long that we started to worry we had missed the trail behind us. Finally, I heard Raymond shouting and saw him jump off his mule to check something under the overhanging bank. I rode over to him. It was the clear and distinct impression of an Indian moccasin. Encouraged by this, we continued our search, and eventually something caught my eye on a soft patch of earth not far from the shore. When I went to take a look, I found half a dozen tracks—some made by men and some by children. Just then, Raymond noticed across the stream the mouth of a small branch stream coming in from the south. He crossed the water, rode into the opening, and soon I heard him shouting again, so I went over and joined him. The small branch had a wide sandy bed, with water trickling in a thin stream; the bushes on both banks were so thick that our view was completely blocked. I found Raymond bent over the footprints of three or four horses. As we moved forward, we found footprints of a man, then a child, then more horse tracks; and soon the bushes on either side were trampled and broken, and the sand was churned up with a multitude of footsteps, crossed with furrows made by lodge poles that had been dragged through. It was now clear we had found the trail. I pushed through the bushes, and just a little ways out on the prairie, I found the ashes of one hundred fifty lodge fires, with bones and scraps of buffalo robes scattered around, and in some cases, the pickets for the horses were still standing in the ground. Excited by our success, we chose a convenient tree, let the animals loose, and prepared to make a meal from the large haunch of our prey.

Hardship and exposure had thriven with me wonderfully. I had gained both health and strength since leaving La Bonte’s Camp. Raymond and I made a hearty meal together in high spirits, for we rashly presumed that having found one end of the trail we should have little difficulty in reaching the other. But when the animals were led in we found that our old ill luck had not ceased to follow us close. As I was saddling Pauline I saw that her eye was as dull as lead, and the hue of her yellow coat visibly darkened. I placed my foot in the stirrup to mount, when instantly she staggered and fell flat on her side. Gaining her feet with an effort she stood by the fire with a drooping head. Whether she had been bitten by a snake or poisoned by some noxious plant or attacked by a sudden disorder, it was hard to say; but at all events her sickness was sufficiently ill-timed and unfortunate. I succeeded in a second attempt to mount her, and with a slow pace we moved forward on the trail of the Indians. It led us up a hill and over a dreary plain; and here, to our great mortification, the traces almost disappeared, for the ground was hard as adamant; and if its flinty surface had ever retained the print of a hoof, the marks had been washed away by the deluge of yesterday. An Indian village, in its disorderly march, is scattered over the prairie, often to the width of full half a mile; so that its trail is nowhere clearly marked, and the task of following it is made doubly wearisome and difficult. By good fortune plenty of large ant-hills, a yard or more in diameter, were scattered over the plain, and these were frequently broken by the footprints of men and horses, and marked by traces of the lodge-poles. The succulent leaves of the prickly-pear, also bruised from the same causes, helped a little to guide us; so inch by inch we moved along. Often we lost the trail altogether, and then would recover it again, but late in the afternoon we found ourselves totally at fault. We stood alone without clew to guide us. The broken plain expanded for league after league around us, and in front the long dark ridge of mountains was stretching from north to south. Mount Laramie, a little on our right, towered high above the rest and from a dark valley just beyond one of its lower declivities, we discerned volumes of white smoke slowly rolling up into the clear air.

Hardship and exposure had been really good for me. I had gained both health and strength since leaving La Bonte’s Camp. Raymond and I enjoyed a hearty meal together in high spirits, because we foolishly thought that after finding one end of the trail, reaching the other would be easy. But when we brought in the animals, we found that our bad luck was still close behind us. As I was saddling Pauline, I noticed that her eye was dull and her yellow coat visibly darkened. I put my foot in the stirrup to mount her when she suddenly staggered and fell on her side. After struggling to get up, she stood by the fire with her head hanging low. It was hard to tell if she had been bitten by a snake, poisoned by a poisonous plant, or hit by some sudden illness, but regardless, her sickness came at a really bad time. I managed to mount her on my second try, and we slowly moved forward on the trail of the Indians. It led us up a hill and over a bleak plain; to our great disappointment, the traces almost vanished because the ground was as hard as rock. If the rough surface had ever held the print of a hoof, the marks had been washed away in yesterday's downpour. An Indian village, in its disordered movement, was spread out across the prairie, sometimes spanning half a mile; so the trail was unclear, making our task of following it even more exhausting and difficult. Fortunately, plenty of large ant hills, about a yard wide, were dotted across the plain, often broken by the footprints of men and horses and marked by signs of the lodge-poles. The juicy leaves of the prickly-pear, also disturbed by the same reasons, helped guide us a bit, so we moved forward inch by inch. Often we lost the trail completely and then picked it up again, but by late afternoon, we found ourselves completely lost. We stood there without any clue to guide us. The broken plain stretched for miles around us, and ahead, a long dark ridge of mountains extended from north to south. Mount Laramie, slightly to our right, loomed high above the rest, and from a dark valley just beyond one of its lower slopes, we saw plumes of white smoke slowly rising into the clear air.

“I think,” said Raymond, “some Indians must be there. Perhaps we had better go.” But this plan was not rashly to be adopted, and we determined still to continue our search after the lost trail. Our good stars prompted us to this decision, for we afterward had reason to believe, from information given us by the Indians, that the smoke was raised as a decoy by a Crow war party.

“I think,” said Raymond, “there might be some Indians nearby. Maybe we should leave.” But we didn't jump to that conclusion, and we decided to keep looking for the lost trail. Our good fortune guided us in this choice, as we later found out from the Indians that the smoke was actually a lure set by a Crow war party.

Evening was coming on, and there was no wood or water nearer than the foot of the mountains. So thither we turned, directing our course toward the point where Laramie Creek issues forth upon the prairie. When we reached it the bare tops of the mountains were still brightened with sunshine. The little river was breaking with a vehement and angry current from its dark prison. There was something in the near vicinity of the mountains, in the loud surging of the rapids, wonderfully cheering and exhilarating; for although once as familiar as home itself, they had been for months strangers to my experience. There was a rich grass-plot by the river’s bank, surrounded by low ridges, which would effectually screen ourselves and our fire from the sight of wandering Indians. Here among the grass I observed numerous circles of large stones, which, as Raymond said, were traces of a Dakota winter encampment. We lay down and did not awake till the sun was up. A large rock projected from the shore, and behind it the deep water was slowly eddying round and round. The temptation was irresistible. I threw off my clothes, leaped in, suffered myself to be borne once round with the current, and then, seizing the strong root of a water plant, drew myself to the shore. The effect was so invigorating and refreshing that I mistook it for returning health. “Pauline,” thought I, as I led the little mare up to be saddled, “only thrive as I do, and you and I will have sport yet among the buffalo beyond these mountains.” But scarcely were we mounted and on our way before the momentary glow passed. Again I hung as usual in my seat, scarcely able to hold myself erect.

Evening was approaching, and there was no firewood or water closer than the foot of the mountains. So we headed there, aiming for the spot where Laramie Creek flows out onto the prairie. When we arrived, the tops of the mountains were still lit by the sun. The little river was rushing out with a fierce and angry current from its dark confines. There was something wonderfully uplifting and refreshing in the proximity of the mountains and the loud roar of the rapids; even though they were once as familiar as home, they had been strangers to me for months. By the riverbank, there was a lush patch of grass, surrounded by low ridges, providing cover for us and our fire from wandering Indians. Among the grass, I noticed several circles of large stones, which, as Raymond mentioned, were remnants of a Dakota winter campsite. We lay down and didn't wake up until the sun was up. A large rock stuck out from the shore, and behind it, the deep water was slowly swirling around. The temptation was too strong to resist. I stripped off my clothes, jumped in, let the current take me around once, and then grabbed the sturdy root of a water plant to pull myself back to shore. The effect was so refreshing and invigorating that I mistook it for a sign of recovering health. “Pauline,” I thought as I led the little mare to be saddled, “if you thrive as I do, you and I will still have fun among the buffalo beyond these mountains.” But as soon as we were mounted and on our way, that brief burst of energy faded. Again, I slumped in my seat, barely able to stay upright.

“Look yonder,” said Raymond; “you see that big hollow there; the Indians must have gone that way, if they went anywhere about here.”

“Look over there,” said Raymond; “you see that big hollow? The Indians must have gone that way if they went anywhere around here.”

We reached the gap, which was like a deep notch cut into the mountain ridge, and here we soon discerned an ant-hill furrowed with the mark of a lodge-pole. This was quite enough; there could be no doubt now. As we rode on, the opening growing narrower, the Indians had been compelled to march in closer order, and the traces became numerous and distinct. The gap terminated in a rocky gateway, leading into a rough passage upward, between two precipitous mountains. Here grass and weeds were bruised to fragments by the throng that had passed through. We moved slowly over the rocks, up the passage; and in this toilsome manner we advanced for an hour or two, bare precipices, hundreds of feet high, shooting up on either hand. Raymond, with his hardy mule, was a few rods before me, when we came to the foot of an ascent steeper than the rest, and which I trusted might prove the highest point of the defile. Pauline strained upward for a few yards, moaning and stumbling, and then came to a dead stop, unable to proceed further. I dismounted, and attempted to lead her; but my own exhausted strength soon gave out; so I loosened the trail-rope from her neck, and tying it round my arm, crawled up on my hands and knees. I gained the top, totally exhausted, the sweat drops trickling from my forehead. Pauline stood like a statue by my side, her shadow falling upon the scorching rock; and in this shade, for there was no other, I lay for some time, scarcely able to move a limb. All around the black crags, sharp as needles at the top, stood glowing in the sun, without a tree, or a bush, or a blade of grass, to cover their precipitous sides. The whole scene seemed parched with a pitiless, insufferable heat.

We reached the gap, which was like a deep notch in the mountain ridge, and soon spotted an ant hill marked by a lodge-pole. This was enough; there was no doubt now. As we continued onward, the opening got narrower, forcing the Indians to march closer together, and the signs became clear and numerous. The gap ended in a rocky entrance leading into a rough passage upward between two steep mountains. Here, the grass and weeds were trampled, crushed by the crowd that had passed through. We moved slowly over the rocks, making our way up the passage; in this exhausting manner, we advanced for an hour or two, with sheer cliffs, hundreds of feet high, rising on either side. Raymond, with his sturdy mule, was a few yards ahead of me when we reached a steeper section of the ascent, which I hoped would be the highest point of the defile. Pauline struggled upward for a few yards, groaning and stumbling, then came to a complete stop, unable to go any further. I got off my horse and tried to lead her, but my own tired strength ran out quickly; so I untied the trail-rope from her neck, tied it around my arm, and crawled up on my hands and knees. I made it to the top, completely worn out, sweat dripping from my forehead. Pauline stood like a statue next to me, her shadow cast on the hot rock; and in that shade, since there was no other, I lay for a while, barely able to move. All around, the black crags, sharp as needles at the top, stood gleaming in the sun, with no trees, bushes, or blades of grass to cover their steep sides. The entire scene felt parched under a relentless, unbearable heat.

After a while I could mount again, and we moved on, descending the rocky defile on its western side. Thinking of that morning’s journey, it has sometimes seemed to me that there was something ridiculous in my position; a man, armed to the teeth, but wholly unable to fight, and equally so to run away, traversing a dangerous wilderness, on a sick horse. But these thoughts were retrospective, for at the time I was in too grave a mood to entertain a very lively sense of the ludicrous.

After a while, I was able to get back on my horse, and we continued our descent down the rocky pass on its western side. Reflecting on that morning's journey, I've sometimes thought there was something absurd about my situation; a man fully armed yet completely unable to fight or run away, making his way through a dangerous wilderness on a sick horse. But these thoughts were in hindsight, as at the moment I was too serious to find much humor in it.

Raymond’s saddle-girth slipped; and while I proceeded he was stopping behind to repair the mischief. I came to the top of a little declivity, where a most welcome sight greeted my eye; a nook of fresh green grass nestled among the cliffs, sunny clumps of bushes on one side, and shaggy old pine trees leaning forward from the rocks on the other. A shrill, familiar voice saluted me, and recalled me to days of boyhood; that of the insect called the “locust” by New England schoolboys, which was fast clinging among the heated boughs of the old pine trees. Then, too, as I passed the bushes, the low sound of falling water reached my ear. Pauline turned of her own accord, and pushing through the boughs we found a black rock, over-arched by the cool green canopy. An icy stream was pouring from its side into a wide basin of white sand, from whence it had no visible outlet, but filtered through into the soil below. While I filled a tin cup at the spring, Pauline was eagerly plunging her head deep in the pool. Other visitors had been there before us. All around in the soft soil were the footprints of elk, deer, and the Rocky Mountain sheep; and the grizzly bear too had left the recent prints of his broad foot, with its frightful array of claws. Among these mountains was his home.

Raymond's saddle strap slipped, and while I moved on, he stayed behind to fix it. I reached the top of a small slope where a delightful sight met my eyes: a patch of fresh green grass nestled among the cliffs, sunny bushes on one side and old, shaggy pine trees leaning out from the rocks on the other. A sharp, familiar sound greeted me, bringing back memories of my childhood: the chirp of the insect known as the “locust” by New England schoolboys, clinging to the warm branches of the old pines. As I passed the bushes, I also heard the gentle sound of falling water. Pauline instinctively turned and, pushing through the branches, we discovered a black rock shaded by a cool green canopy. An icy stream spilled from its side into a wide basin of white sand, with no visible outlet, just filtering into the soil beneath. While I filled a tin cup from the spring, Pauline eagerly stuck her head into the pool. Other visitors had been here before us; all around in the soft soil were the footprints of elk, deer, and Rocky Mountain sheep, along with fresh tracks of a grizzly bear, showing the wide imprint of its formidable claws. This was his territory among the mountains.

Soon after leaving the spring we found a little grassy plain, encircled by the mountains, and marked, to our great joy, with all the traces of an Indian camp. Raymond’s practiced eye detected certain signs by which he recognized the spot where Reynal’s lodge had been pitched and his horses picketed. I approached, and stood looking at the place. Reynal and I had, I believe, hardly a feeling in common. I disliked the fellow, and it perplexed me a good deal to understand why I should look with so much interest on the ashes of his fire, when between him and me there seemed no other bond of sympathy than the slender and precarious one of a kindred race.

Soon after leaving the spring, we came across a small grassy plain surrounded by mountains, and we were thrilled to find all the signs of an Indian camp. Raymond’s keen eye spotted certain clues that helped him identify the exact spot where Reynal’s lodge had been set up and his horses tied. I walked over and stood there, staring at the area. Reynal and I didn’t really share any feelings; in fact, I couldn’t stand the guy. It puzzled me a lot that I felt such a strong curiosity about the ashes of his fire when the only connection between us seemed to be the thin and fragile one of a shared background.

In half an hour from this we were clear of the mountains. There was a plain before us, totally barren and thickly peopled in many parts with the little prairie dogs, who sat at the mouths of their burrows and yelped at us as we passed. The plain, as we thought, was about six miles wide; but it cost us two hours to cross it. Then another mountain range rose before us, grander and more wild than the last had been. Far out of the dense shrubbery that clothed the steeps for a thousand feet shot up black crags, all leaning one way, and shattered by storms and thunder into grim and threatening shapes. As we entered a narrow passage on the trail of the Indians, they impended frightfully on one side, above our heads.

In half an hour, we were out of the mountains. A barren plain stretched out before us, populated in many areas by little prairie dogs, who sat at the entrances of their burrows and barked at us as we went by. We estimated the plain to be about six miles wide, but it took us two hours to cross it. Then, another mountain range loomed ahead, even more majestic and wild than the last. From the dense shrubbery that covered the slopes for a thousand feet, black crags shot up, all leaning in one direction and jagged from storms and thunder, forming grim and ominous shapes. As we entered a narrow path following the trail of the Indians, they loomed threateningly over us on one side.

Our course was through dense woods, in the shade and twinkling sunlight of overhanging boughs. I would I could recall to mind all the startling combinations that presented themselves, as winding from side to side of the passage, to avoid its obstructions, we could see, glancing at intervals through the foliage, the awful forms of the gigantic cliffs, that seemed at times to hem us in on the right and on the left, before us and behind! Another scene in a few moments greeted us; a tract of gray and sunny woods, broken into knolls and hollows, enlivened by birds and interspersed with flowers. Among the rest I recognized the mellow whistle of the robin, an old familiar friend whom I had scarce expected to meet in such a place. Humble-bees too were buzzing heavily about the flowers; and of these a species of larkspur caught my eye, more appropriate, it should seem, to cultivated gardens than to a remote wilderness. Instantly it recalled a multitude of dormant and delightful recollections.

Our path led us through thick woods, in the shade and sparkling sunlight filtering through the branches. I wish I could remember all the surprising sights we encountered as we zigzagged to avoid obstacles. From time to time, we caught glimpses through the leaves of the towering cliffs that seemed to close in on us from both sides and all around! Soon, another scene welcomed us: an area of gray and sunlit woods, dotted with hills and valleys, filled with the sounds of birds and blooming flowers. Among them, I recognized the cheerful whistle of a robin, an old friend I never expected to find in such a place. Bumblebees were buzzing heavily around the flowers, and a type of larkspur caught my eye, seeming more suited for cultivated gardens than a remote wilderness. Instantly, it brought back a flood of wonderful memories.

Leaving behind us this spot and its associations, a sight soon presented itself, characteristic of that warlike region. In an open space, fenced in by high rocks, stood two Indian forts, of a square form, rudely built of sticks and logs. They were somewhat ruinous, having probably been constructed the year before. Each might have contained about twenty men. Perhaps in this gloomy spot some party had been beset by their enemies, and those scowling rocks and blasted trees might not long since have looked down on a conflict unchronicled and unknown. Yet if any traces of bloodshed remained they were completely hidden by the bushes and tall rank weeds.

Leaving this place and its memories behind, a typical sight of that warlike area soon came into view. In an open space, enclosed by tall rocks, stood two Indian forts, square-shaped and crudely built from sticks and logs. They were somewhat dilapidated, likely built the year before. Each could have housed about twenty men. Maybe in this dark spot, a group had been ambushed by their enemies, and those looming rocks and shattered trees might have recently witnessed an undocumented and unknown conflict. Yet if there were any signs of violence, they were completely concealed by the bushes and tall, dense weeds.

Gradually the mountains drew apart, and the passage expanded into a plain, where again we found traces of an Indian encampment. There were trees and bushes just before us, and we stopped here for an hour’s rest and refreshment. When we had finished our meal Raymond struck fire, and lighting his pipe, sat down at the foot of a tree to smoke. For some time I observed him puffing away with a face of unusual solemnity. Then slowly taking the pipe from his lips, he looked up and remarked that we had better not go any farther.

Gradually, the mountains parted, and the passage opened into a plain, where we once again found signs of an Indian campsite. There were trees and bushes right in front of us, and we paused here for an hour to rest and have some food. After we finished eating, Raymond lit a fire, and after lighting his pipe, he settled down at the base of a tree to smoke. For a while, I watched him smoking with an unusually serious expression. Then, slowly pulling the pipe from his mouth, he looked up and said that we might want to reconsider going any further.

“Why not?” asked I.

“Why not?” I asked.

He said that the country was becoming very dangerous, that we were entering the range of the Snakes, Arapahoes and Grosventre Blackfeet, and that if any of their wandering parties should meet us, it would cost us our lives; but he added, with a blunt fidelity that nearly reconciled me to his stupidity, that he would go anywhere I wished. I told him to bring up the animals, and mounting them we proceeded again. I confess that, as we moved forward, the prospect seemed but a dreary and doubtful one. I would have given the world for my ordinary elasticity of body and mind, and for a horse of such strength and spirit as the journey required.

He said that the country was getting really dangerous, that we were entering the territory of the Snakes, Arapahoes, and Grosventre Blackfeet, and that if any of their wandering groups ran into us, it would cost us our lives; but he added, with a blunt honesty that almost made me tolerate his foolishness, that he would go anywhere I wanted. I told him to bring up the animals, and after getting on them, we moved forward again. I admit that, as we continued, the outlook seemed pretty grim and uncertain. I would have given anything for my usual energy of body and mind, and for a horse with the strength and spirit that the journey needed.

Closer and closer the rocks gathered round us, growing taller and steeper, and pressing more and more upon our path. We entered at length a defile which I never had seen rivaled. The mountain was cracked from top to bottom, and we were creeping along the bottom of the fissure, in dampness and gloom, with the clink of hoofs on the loose shingly rocks, and the hoarse murmuring of a petulant brook which kept us company. Sometimes the water, foaming among the stones, overspread the whole narrow passage; sometimes, withdrawing to one side, it gave us room to pass dry-shod. Looking up, we could see a narrow ribbon of bright blue sky between the dark edges of the opposing cliffs. This did not last long. The passage soon widened, and sunbeams found their way down, flashing upon the black waters. The defile would spread out to many rods in width; bushes, trees, and flowers would spring by the side of the brook; the cliffs would be feathered with shrubbery, that clung in every crevice, and fringed with trees, that grew along their sunny edges. Then we would be moving again in the darkness. The passage seemed about four miles long, and before we reached the end of it, the unshod hoofs of our animals were lamentably broken, and their legs cut by the sharp stones. Issuing from the mountain we found another plain. All around it stood a circle of lofty precipices, that seemed the impersonation of silence and solitude. Here again the Indians had encamped, as well they might, after passing with their women, children and horses through the gulf behind us. In one day we had made a journey which had cost them three to accomplish.

Closer and closer, the rocks surrounded us, getting taller and steeper, pressing more heavily on our path. We finally entered a narrow gorge that I had never seen matched. The mountain was cracked from top to bottom, and we were inching along the base of the fissure, surrounded by dampness and darkness, hearing the clink of hooves on the loose, shingly rocks and the harsh murmuring of a restless brook accompanying us. Sometimes the water, bubbling among the stones, flooded the entire narrow passage; other times, pulling to one side, it allowed us to pass without getting wet. Looking up, we could see a narrow strip of bright blue sky between the dark edges of the opposing cliffs. This didn’t last long. The passage soon widened, and beams of sunlight penetrated, gleaming on the dark waters. The gorge would expand to many yards in width; bushes, trees, and flowers would bloom alongside the brook; the cliffs would be dressed in shrubbery clinging to every crevice, fringed with trees flourishing along their sunlit edges. Then we would be moving again into the darkness. The passage felt about four miles long, and by the time we reached the end, our animals’ unshod hooves were sadly broken, and their legs wounded by the sharp stones. Emerging from the mountain, we found another plain. All around it was a circle of towering cliffs that seemed to personify silence and solitude. Here again, the Indians had set up camp, as they rightly could after leading their women, children, and horses through the gorge behind us. In one day, we had traveled the distance that had taken them three days to complete.

The only outlet to this amphitheater lay over a hill some two hundred feet high, up which we moved with difficulty. Looking from the top, we saw that at last we were free of the mountains. The prairie spread before us, but so wild and broken that the view was everywhere obstructed. Far on our left one tall hill swelled up against the sky, on the smooth, pale green surface of which four slowly moving black specks were discernible. They were evidently buffalo, and we hailed the sight as a good augury; for where the buffalo were, there too the Indians would probably be found. We hoped on that very night to reach the village. We were anxious to do so for a double reason, wishing to bring our wearisome journey to an end, and knowing, moreover, that though to enter the village in broad daylight would be a perfectly safe experiment, yet to encamp in its vicinity would be dangerous. But as we rode on, the sun was sinking, and soon was within half an hour of the horizon. We ascended a hill and looked round us for a spot for our encampment. The prairie was like a turbulent ocean, suddenly congealed when its waves were at the highest, and it lay half in light and half in shadow, as the rich sunshine, yellow as gold, was pouring over it. The rough bushes of the wild sage were growing everywhere, its dull pale green overspreading hill and hollow. Yet a little way before us, a bright verdant line of grass was winding along the plain, and here and there throughout its course water was glistening darkly. We went down to it, kindled a fire, and turned our horses loose to feed. It was a little trickling brook, that for some yards on either bank turned the barren prairie into fertility, and here and there it spread into deep pools, where the beaver had dammed it up.

The only way out of this amphitheater was over a hill about two hundred feet high, which we climbed with some difficulty. From the top, we finally saw that we were free from the mountains. The prairie stretched out in front of us, but it was so wild and uneven that the view was blocked everywhere. Far to our left, a tall hill rose against the sky, on its smooth, pale green surface we could see four slowly moving black dots. They were definitely buffalo, and we welcomed the sight as a good sign; where there were buffalo, the Indians would likely be nearby. We hoped to reach the village that very night. We were eager to do so for two reasons: to end our exhausting journey and because while entering the village in broad daylight would be perfectly safe, camping nearby could be risky. However, as we continued on, the sun was setting and was soon half an hour from the horizon. We climbed another hill to look for a camping spot. The prairie looked like a turbulent ocean that suddenly froze when its waves were at their peak, lying half in light and half in shadow as the rich golden sunlight poured over it. The rough bushes of wild sage grew everywhere, its dull pale green covering the hills and valleys. But just ahead, a bright line of green grass wound through the plain, and here and there along its path, water glistened darkly. We went down to it, built a fire, and let our horses graze. It was a small bubbling brook that turned the barren prairie into fertile land for a few yards on either bank, and it spread into deep pools here and there where beavers had built dams.

We placed our last remaining piece of the antelope before a scanty fire, mournfully reflecting on our exhausted stock of provisions. Just then an enormous gray hare, peculiar to these prairies, came jumping along, and seated himself within fifty yards to look at us. I thoughtlessly raised my rifle to shoot him, but Raymond called out to me not to fire for fear the report should reach the ears of the Indians. That night for the first time we considered that the danger to which we were exposed was of a somewhat serious character; and to those who are unacquainted with Indians, it may seem strange that our chief apprehensions arose from the supposed proximity of the people whom we intended to visit. Had any straggling party of these faithful friends caught sight of us from the hill-top, they would probably have returned in the night to plunder us of our horses and perhaps of our scalps. But we were on the prairie, where the GENIUS LOCI is at war with all nervous apprehensions; and I presume that neither Raymond nor I thought twice of the matter that evening.

We put our last piece of antelope on a small fire, sadly thinking about how low our food supply was. Just then, a huge gray hare, which is common in these prairies, hopped over and sat down about fifty yards away to watch us. I absentmindedly lifted my rifle to shoot it, but Raymond shouted at me not to fire, fearing that the noise might attract the Indians. That night, for the first time, we realized that the danger we were facing was quite serious; and for those unfamiliar with Indians, it might seem odd that our biggest worries came from the expected closeness of the people we planned to visit. If any wandering group of those so-called friends spotted us from the hilltop, they might have come back at night to steal our horses and maybe even attack us. But we were out on the prairie, where the local spirit is at odds with all anxious thoughts; and I doubt that either Raymond or I gave it much more thought that evening.

While he was looking after the animals, I sat by the fire engaged in the novel task of baking bread. The utensils were of the most simple and primitive kind, consisting of two sticks inclining over the bed of coals, one end thrust into the ground while the dough was twisted in a spiral form round the other. Under such circumstances all the epicurean in a man’s nature is apt to awaken within him. I revisited in fancy the far distant abodes of good fare, not indeed Frascati’s, or the Trois Freres Provencaux, for that were too extreme a flight; but no other than the homely table of my old friend and host, Tom Crawford, of the White Mountains. By a singular revulsion, Tom himself, whom I well remember to have looked upon as the impersonation of all that is wild and backwoodsman-like, now appeared before me as the ministering angel of comfort and good living. Being fatigued and drowsy I began to doze, and my thoughts, following the same train of association, assumed another form. Half-dreaming, I saw myself surrounded with the mountains of New England, alive with water-falls, their black crags tinctured with milk-white mists. For this reverie I paid a speedy penalty; for the bread was black on one side and soft on the other.

While he took care of the animals, I sat by the fire trying my hand at baking bread. The tools were really simple and basic, just two sticks leaning over the coals, one end stuck in the ground while I twisted the dough around the other. In such moments, it’s easy for a person’s inner foodie to awaken. I found myself daydreaming about the far-off places with great food, not exactly Frascati or Trois Frères Provençaux, because that was too big a leap, but rather just the cozy table of my old friend, Tom Crawford, from the White Mountains. Oddly enough, Tom, whom I had always thought of as the very image of wilderness and backwoods life, now appeared to me as the comforting angel of good food and hospitality. Feeling tired and drowsy, I started to doze off, and my thoughts began to drift in another direction. Half-awake, I imagined myself surrounded by the New England mountains, filled with waterfalls, their dark cliffs shaded by white mists. For this daydream, I quickly faced the consequences; the bread turned out black on one side and soft on the other.

For eight hours Raymond and I, pillowed on our saddles, lay insensible as logs. Pauline’s yellow head was stretched over me when I awoke. I got up and examined her. Her feet indeed were bruised and swollen by the accidents of yesterday, but her eye was brighter, her motions livelier, and her mysterious malady had visibly abated. We moved on, hoping within an hour to come in sight of the Indian village; but again disappointment awaited us. The trail disappeared, melting away upon a hard and stony plain. Raymond and I separating, rode from side to side, scrutinizing every yard of ground, until at length I discerned traces of the lodge-poles passing by the side of a ridge of rocks. We began again to follow them.

For eight hours, Raymond and I lay unconscious on our saddles like logs. When I woke up, Pauline's blonde head was resting over me. I got up and checked on her. Her feet were definitely bruised and swollen from yesterday's mishaps, but her eyes were brighter, her movements more lively, and her mysterious illness had noticeably improved. We moved on, hoping to catch sight of the Indian village within the hour; however, disappointment hit us again. The trail vanished, disappearing into a hard, rocky plain. Raymond and I split up and rode back and forth, examining every inch of the ground until I finally noticed signs of the lodge poles along the side of a rocky ridge. We started to follow them again.

“What is that black spot out there on the prairie?”

“What’s that black spot over there on the prairie?”

“It looks like a dead buffalo,” answered Raymond.

“It looks like a dead buffalo,” Raymond replied.

We rode out to it, and found it to be the huge carcass of a bull killed by the Indians as they had passed. Tangled hair and scraps of hide were scattered all around, for the wolves had been making merry over it, and had hollowed out the entire carcass. It was covered with myriads of large black crickets, and from its appearance must certainly have lain there for four or five days. The sight was a most disheartening one, and I observed to Raymond that the Indians might still be fifty or sixty miles before us. But he shook his head, and replied that they dared not go so far for fear of their enemies, the Snakes.

We rode out to it and found the massive carcass of a bull that the Indians had killed while passing through. Tangled hair and bits of hide were scattered everywhere because the wolves had been feasting on it, completely hollowing out the body. It was covered in countless large black crickets, and judging by its condition, it must have been there for four or five days. The sight was incredibly discouraging, and I pointed out to Raymond that the Indians might still be fifty or sixty miles ahead of us. But he shook his head and said they wouldn’t dare go that far for fear of their enemies, the Snakes.

Soon after this we lost the trail again, and ascended a neighboring ridge, totally at a loss. Before us lay a plain perfectly flat, spreading on the right and left, without apparent limit, and bounded in front by a long broken line of hills, ten or twelve miles distant. All was open and exposed to view, yet not a buffalo nor an Indian was visible.

Soon after this, we lost the trail again and climbed a nearby ridge, completely confused. In front of us was a perfectly flat plain, stretching endlessly to the right and left, and bordered in front by a long, jagged line of hills about ten or twelve miles away. Everything was open and in plain sight, yet we could see neither a buffalo nor an Indian.

“Do you see that?” said Raymond; “Now we had better turn round.”

“Do you see that?” Raymond said. “We should turn back now.”

But as Raymond’s bourgeois thought otherwise, we descended the hill and began to cross the plain. We had come so far that I knew perfectly well neither Pauline’s limbs nor my own could carry me back to Fort Laramie. I considered that the lines of expediency and inclination tallied exactly, and that the most prudent course was to keep forward. The ground immediately around us was thickly strewn with the skulls and bones of buffalo, for here a year or two before the Indians had made a “surround”; yet no living game presented itself. At length, however, an antelope sprang up and gazed at us. We fired together, and by a singular fatality we both missed, although the animal stood, a fair mark, within eighty yards. This ill success might perhaps be charged to our own eagerness, for by this time we had no provision left except a little flour. We could discern several small lakes, or rather extensive pools of water, glistening in the distance. As we approached them, wolves and antelopes bounded away through the tall grass that grew in their vicinity, and flocks of large white plover flew screaming over their surface. Having failed of the antelope, Raymond tried his hand at the birds with the same ill success. The water also disappointed us. Its muddy margin was so beaten up by the crowd of buffalo that our timorous animals were afraid to approach. So we turned away and moved toward the hills. The rank grass, where it was not trampled down by the buffalo, fairly swept our horses’ necks.

But since Raymond thought differently, we went down the hill and started crossing the plain. We had come so far that I knew neither Pauline’s legs nor mine could take us back to Fort Laramie. I figured that the lines of practicality and desire matched perfectly, and that the smartest move was to keep going forward. The ground around us was covered with buffalo skulls and bones because a year or two earlier, the Indians had set up a “surround”; yet we saw no living animals. Finally, though, an antelope jumped up and stared at us. We both shot at the same time but, ironically, we both missed, even though the animal was an easy target within eighty yards. This failure might have been due to our eagerness, as by this point we had no food left except for a little flour. We could see several small lakes, or more like large pools of water, sparkling in the distance. As we got closer, wolves and antelopes dashed away through the tall grass around them, and flocks of large white plovers flew overhead, screaming. After missing the antelope, Raymond tried to shoot at the birds but had the same lack of luck. The water let us down, too. Its muddy edge was so disturbed by the herd of buffalo that our nervous horses wouldn’t come near it. So we turned away and headed toward the hills. The thick grass, where it wasn’t trampled by the buffalo, brushed against our horses’ necks.

Again we found the same execrable barren prairie offering no clew by which to guide our way. As we drew near the hills an opening appeared, through which the Indians must have gone if they had passed that way at all. Slowly we began to ascend it. I felt the most dreary forebodings of ill success, when on looking round I could discover neither dent of hoof, nor footprint, nor trace of lodge-pole, though the passage was encumbered by the ghastly skulls of buffalo. We heard thunder muttering; a storm was coming on.

Once again, we found the same miserable empty prairie with no clue to guide us. As we approached the hills, we spotted an opening, which the Indians must have used if they had traveled through here at all. We slowly started to climb it. I felt a deep sense of dread about our chances of success when I looked around and saw no hoofprints, no footprints, and no signs of a campsite, even though the path was littered with the eerie skulls of buffalo. We could hear thunder rumbling; a storm was approaching.

As we gained the top of the gap, the prospect beyond began to disclose itself. First, we saw a long dark line of ragged clouds upon the horizon, while above them rose the peak of the Medicine-Bow, the vanguard of the Rocky Mountains; then little by little the plain came into view, a vast green uniformity, forlorn and tenantless, though Laramie Creek glistened in a waving line over its surface, without a bush or a tree upon its banks. As yet, the round projecting shoulder of a hill intercepted a part of the view. I rode in advance, when suddenly I could distinguish a few dark spots on the prairie, along the bank of the stream.

As we reached the top of the gap, the view ahead started to reveal itself. First, we noticed a long, dark line of ragged clouds on the horizon, while the peak of Medicine-Bow, the front line of the Rocky Mountains, rose above them. Gradually, the vast green plain came into sight, empty and desolate, although Laramie Creek shimmered in a winding line across its surface, with no bushes or trees along its banks. For now, the rounded shoulder of a hill blocked part of the view. I rode ahead when suddenly I spotted a few dark shapes on the prairie next to the stream.

“Buffalo!” said I. Then a sudden hope flashed upon me, and eagerly and anxiously I looked again.

“Buffalo!” I exclaimed. Then a sudden hope struck me, and I eagerly and anxiously looked again.

“Horses!” exclaimed Raymond, with a tremendous oath, lashing his mule forward as he spoke. More and more of the plain disclosed itself, and in rapid succession more and more horses appeared, scattered along the river bank, or feeding in bands over the prairie. Then, suddenly, standing in a circle by the stream, swarming with their savage inhabitants, we saw rising before us the tall lodges of the Ogallalla. Never did the heart of wanderer more gladden at the sight of home than did mine at the sight of those wild habitations!

“Horses!” Raymond shouted, cursing as he urged his mule forward. More of the open plain came into view, and quickly, more horses appeared, scattered along the riverbank or grazing in groups across the prairie. Then, suddenly, standing in a circle by the stream, filled with their fierce inhabitants, we saw the tall lodges of the Ogallalla rising before us. Never had a wanderer's heart been happier at the sight of home than mine was at the sight of those wild dwellings!





CHAPTER XIV

THE OGALLALLA VILLAGE

Such a narrative as this is hardly the place for portraying the mental features of the Indians. The same picture, slightly changed in shade and coloring, would serve with very few exceptions for all the tribes that lie north of the Mexican territories. But with this striking similarity in their modes of thought, the tribes of the lake and ocean shores, of the forests and of the plains, differ greatly in their manner of life. Having been domesticated for several weeks among one of the wildest of the wild hordes that roam over the remote prairies, I had extraordinary opportunities of observing them, and I flatter myself that a faithful picture of the scenes that passed daily before my eyes may not be devoid of interest and value. These men were thorough savages. Neither their manners nor their ideas were in the slightest degree modified by contact with civilization. They knew nothing of the power and real character of the white men, and their children would scream in terror at the sight of me. Their religion, their superstitions, and their prejudices were the same that had been handed down to them from immemorial time. They fought with the same weapons that their fathers fought with and wore the same rude garments of skins.

Such a story isn’t the right place to describe the mental traits of the Indigenous people. The same description, with only slight changes in tone and color, could apply to almost all the tribes north of Mexico. However, despite these striking similarities in their thought processes, the tribes living by the lakes and oceans, in the forests and on the plains, have very different lifestyles. After spending several weeks living among one of the wildest groups roaming the remote prairies, I had unique chances to observe them. I believe I can provide an accurate depiction of the daily scenes I witnessed that might be interesting and valuable. These men were pure savages. Neither their behavior nor their beliefs showed any change from contact with civilization. They had no understanding of the power and true nature of white people, and their children would scream in fear at the sight of me. Their religion, superstitions, and biases were the same as those passed down through generations. They fought with the same weapons as their ancestors and wore the same rough skin garments.

Great changes are at hand in that region. With the stream of emigration to Oregon and California, the buffalo will dwindle away, and the large wandering communities who depend on them for support must be broken and scattered. The Indians will soon be corrupted by the example of the whites, abased by whisky, and overawed by military posts; so that within a few years the traveler may pass in tolerable security through their country. Its danger and its charm will have disappeared together.

Big changes are coming to that area. With the flow of people moving to Oregon and California, the buffalo will disappear, and the large nomadic groups that rely on them for survival will be disrupted and dispersed. The Native Americans will soon be influenced by the behavior of white settlers, degraded by alcohol, and intimidated by army installations; so within a few years, travelers might be able to pass through their lands relatively safely. The excitement and the risk will have vanished together.

As soon as Raymond and I discovered the village from the gap in the hills, we were seen in our turn; keen eyes were constantly on the watch. As we rode down upon the plain the side of the village nearest us was darkened with a crowd of naked figures gathering around the lodges. Several men came forward to meet us. I could distinguish among them the green blanket of the Frenchman Reynal. When we came up the ceremony of shaking hands had to be gone through with in due form, and then all were eager to know what had become of the rest of my party. I satisfied them on this point, and we all moved forward together toward the village.

As soon as Raymond and I spotted the village from the gap in the hills, we noticed that we were being watched; sharp eyes were always on the lookout. As we rode down to the plain, we saw that the side of the village closest to us was filled with a crowd of naked figures gathering around the lodges. A few men came forward to greet us. I recognized the green blanket of the Frenchman Reynal among them. When we arrived, we went through the formalities of shaking hands, and then everyone was eager to find out what had happened to the rest of my group. I updated them on that, and we all moved forward together toward the village.

“You’ve missed it,” said Reynal; “if you’d been here day before yesterday, you’d have found the whole prairie over yonder black with buffalo as far as you could see. There were no cows, though; nothing but bulls. We made a ‘surround’ every day till yesterday. See the village there; don’t that look like good living?”

“You missed it,” Reynal said. “If you had been here the day before yesterday, you would have seen the entire prairie over there filled with buffalo as far as you could see. There were no cows, just bulls. We did a ‘surround’ every day until yesterday. Look at the village over there; doesn’t that look like a great place to live?”

In fact I could see, even at that distance, that long cords were stretched from lodge to lodge, over which the meat, cut by the squaws into thin sheets, was hanging to dry in the sun. I noticed too that the village was somewhat smaller than when I had last seen it, and I asked Reynal the cause. He said that the old Le Borgne had felt too weak to pass over the mountains, and so had remained behind with all his relations, including Mahto-Tatonka and his brothers. The Whirlwind too had been unwilling to come so far, because, as Reynal said, he was afraid. Only half a dozen lodges had adhered to him, the main body of the village setting their chief’s authority at naught, and taking the course most agreeable to their inclinations.

I could clearly see, even from that distance, that long cords were stretched between the lodges, with strips of meat, cut by the women into thin sheets, hanging out to dry in the sun. I also noticed that the village was a bit smaller than the last time I had seen it, so I asked Reynal why. He explained that the old Le Borgne felt too weak to cross the mountains, so he stayed behind with all his relatives, including Mahto-Tatonka and his brothers. The Whirlwind also didn’t want to travel that far because, as Reynal put it, he was afraid. Only about half a dozen lodges had stayed with him, while the majority of the village disregarded their chief's authority and followed their own preferences.

“What chiefs are there in the village now?” said I.

“What chiefs are in the village now?” I asked.

“Well,” said Reynal, “there’s old Red-Water, and the Eagle-Feather, and the Big Crow, and the Mad Wolf and the Panther, and the White Shield, and—what’s his name?—the half-breed Cheyenne.”

“Well,” said Reynal, “there’s old Red-Water, and the Eagle-Feather, and the Big Crow, and the Mad Wolf and the Panther, and the White Shield, and—what’s his name?—the half-breed Cheyenne.”

By this time we were close to the village, and I observed that while the greater part of the lodges were very large and neat in their appearance, there was at one side a cluster of squalid, miserable huts. I looked toward them, and made some remark about their wretched appearance. But I was touching upon delicate ground.

By this point, we were nearing the village, and I noticed that although most of the lodges were quite large and tidy, there was a group of shabby, run-down huts on one side. I glanced over at them and commented on how awful they looked. But I was treading on sensitive territory.

“My squaw’s relations live in those lodges,” said Reynal very warmly, “and there isn’t a better set in the whole village.”

“My wife’s family lives in those lodges,” Reynal said fondly, “and there isn’t a better group in the whole village.”

“Are there any chiefs among them?” asked I.

“Are there any leaders among them?” I asked.

“Chiefs?” said Reynal; “yes, plenty!”

“Chiefs?” Reynal said; “yes, lots!”

“What are their names?” I inquired.

“What are their names?” I asked.

“Their names? Why, there’s the Arrow-Head. If he isn’t a chief he ought to be one. And there’s the Hail-Storm. He’s nothing but a boy, to be sure; but he’s bound to be a chief one of these days!”

“Their names? Well, there’s the Arrow-Head. If he’s not a chief, he really should be one. And then there’s the Hail-Storm. He’s just a kid, no doubt about it; but he’s definitely going to be a chief someday!”

Just then we passed between two of the lodges, and entered the great area of the village. Superb naked figures stood silently gazing on us.

Just then, we walked between two of the cabins and entered the big open space of the village. Amazing naked individuals stood silently, staring at us.

“Where’s the Bad Wound’s lodge?” said I to Reynal.

“Where’s the Bad Wound’s lodge?” I asked Reynal.

“There, you’ve missed it again! The Bad Wound is away with The Whirlwind. If you could have found him here, and gone to live in his lodge, he would have treated you better than any man in the village. But there’s the Big Crow’s lodge yonder, next to old Red-Water’s. He’s a good Indian for the whites, and I advise you to go and live with him.”

“There, you’ve missed it again! The Bad Wound has gone off with The Whirlwind. If you could have found him here and lived in his lodge, he would have treated you better than anyone else in the village. But there’s the Big Crow’s lodge over there, next to old Red-Water’s. He’s a good guy for the whites, and I recommend you go live with him.”

“Are there many squaws and children in his lodge?” said I.

“Are there a lot of women and kids in his lodge?” I asked.

“No; only one squaw and two or three children. He keeps the rest in a separate lodge by themselves.”

“No; just one woman and two or three kids. He keeps the others in a different lodge by themselves.”

So, still followed by a crowd of Indians, Raymond and I rode up to the entrance of the Big Crow’s lodge. A squaw came out immediately and took our horses. I put aside the leather nap that covered the low opening, and stooping, entered the Big Crow’s dwelling. There I could see the chief in the dim light, seated at one side, on a pile of buffalo robes. He greeted me with a guttural “How, cola!” I requested Reynal to tell him that Raymond and I were come to live with him. The Big Crow gave another low exclamation. If the reader thinks that we were intruding somewhat cavalierly, I beg him to observe that every Indian in the village would have deemed himself honored that white men should give such preference to his hospitality.

So, still followed by a crowd of Native Americans, Raymond and I rode up to the entrance of Big Crow’s lodge. A woman came out right away and took our horses. I pushed aside the leather flap that covered the low opening, and bending down, entered Big Crow’s home. Inside, I could see the chief in the dim light, seated on a pile of buffalo robes. He welcomed me with a guttural “How, cola!” I asked Reynal to tell him that Raymond and I had come to live with him. Big Crow made another low sound. If you think we were barging in a bit too casually, just know that every person in the village would have felt honored that white men chose to stay with him.

The squaw spread a buffalo robe for us in the guest’s place at the head of the lodge. Our saddles were brought in, and scarcely were we seated upon them before the place was thronged with Indians, who came crowding in to see us. The Big Crow produced his pipe and filled it with the mixture of tobacco and shongsasha, or red willow bark. Round and round it passed, and a lively conversation went forward. Meanwhile a squaw placed before the two guests a wooden bowl of boiled buffalo meat, but unhappily this was not the only banquet destined to be inflicted on us. Rapidly, one after another, boys and young squaws thrust their heads in at the opening, to invite us to various feasts in different parts of the village. For half an hour or more we were actively engaged in passing from lodge to lodge, tasting in each of the bowl of meat set before us, and inhaling a whiff or two from our entertainer’s pipe. A thunderstorm that had been threatening for some time now began in good earnest. We crossed over to Reynal’s lodge, though it hardly deserved this name, for it consisted only of a few old buffalo robes, supported on poles, and was quite open on one side. Here we sat down, and the Indians gathered round us.

The woman laid out a buffalo robe for us in the guest spot at the front of the lodge. Our saddles were brought in, and hardly had we settled in before the place was filled with Indians who came rushing in to see us. The Big Crow took out his pipe and filled it with a mix of tobacco and shongsasha, or red willow bark. It went around, and a lively conversation started. Meanwhile, a woman set a wooden bowl of boiled buffalo meat in front of the two guests, but unfortunately, that was just the first of many feasts we would be invited to. Rapidly, one after another, boys and young women peeked in at the entrance to invite us to different feasts in various parts of the village. For half an hour or more, we were busy hopping from lodge to lodge, tasting the bowl of meat set before us and taking a puff or two from our host's pipe. A thunderstorm that had been looming for a while finally broke out. We made our way to Reynal’s lodge, though it hardly qualified as a lodge since it was just a few old buffalo robes propped up on poles and was completely open on one side. Here, we sat down, and the Indians gathered around us.

“What is it,” said I, “that makes the thunder?”

“What is it,” I asked, “that causes the thunder?”

“It’s my belief,” said Reynal, “that it is a big stone rolling over the sky.”

“It’s my belief,” said Reynal, “that it’s a big stone rolling across the sky.”

“Very likely,” I replied; “but I want to know what the Indians think about it.”

“Probably,” I said; “but I want to know what the Indigenous people think about it.”

So he interpreted my question, which seemed to produce some doubt and debate. There was evidently a difference of opinion. At last old Mene-Seela, or Red-Water, who sat by himself at one side, looked up with his withered face, and said he had always known what the thunder was. It was a great black bird; and once he had seen it, in a dream, swooping down from the Black Hills, with its loud roaring wings; and when it flapped them over a lake, they struck lightning from the water.

So he interpreted my question, which seemed to create some doubt and discussion. There was clearly a difference of opinion. Finally, old Mene-Seela, or Red-Water, who was sitting alone on one side, looked up with his wrinkled face and said he had always known what the thunder was. It was a huge black bird; and once he had seen it in a dream, swooping down from the Black Hills with its loud, roaring wings; and when it flapped them over a lake, they sparked lightning from the water.

“The thunder is bad,” said another old man, who sat muffled in his buffalo robe; “he killed my brother last summer.”

“The thunder is bad,” said another old man, who was wrapped up in his buffalo robe; “it killed my brother last summer.”

Reynal, at my request, asked for an explanation; but the old man remained doggedly silent, and would not look up. Some time after I learned how the accident occurred. The man who was killed belonged to an association which, among other mystic functions, claimed the exclusive power and privilege of fighting the thunder. Whenever a storm which they wished to avert was threatening, the thunder-fighters would take their bows and arrows, their guns, their magic drum, and a sort of whistle, made out of the wingbone of the war eagle. Thus equipped, they would run out and fire at the rising cloud, whooping, yelling, whistling, and beating their drum, to frighten it down again. One afternoon a heavy black cloud was coming up, and they repaired to the top of a hill, where they brought all their magic artillery into play against it. But the undaunted thunder, refusing to be terrified, kept moving straight onward, and darted out a bright flash which struck one of the party dead, as he was in the very act of shaking his long iron-pointed lance against it. The rest scattered and ran yelling in an ecstasy of superstitious terror back to their lodges.

Reynal, at my request, asked for an explanation, but the old man stayed stubbornly silent and wouldn’t look up. Some time later, I found out how the accident happened. The man who died was part of a group that, among other mystical roles, claimed to have the exclusive ability to fight the thunder. Whenever a storm that they wanted to stop was approaching, the thunder-fighters would grab their bows and arrows, guns, a magic drum, and a whistle made from the wingbone of a war eagle. With all this gear, they would rush out and shoot at the rising cloud, whooping, yelling, whistling, and banging their drum to scare it away. One afternoon, a thick black cloud was rolling in, and they went to the top of a hill, using all their magical weapons against it. But the fearless thunder, refusing to be scared, kept coming straight towards them and shot out a bright flash that struck one of the group dead as he was shaking his long iron-pointed lance at it. The others scattered and ran back to their lodges, screaming in a frenzy of superstitious fear.

The lodge of my host Kongra-Tonga, or the Big Crow, presented a picturesque spectacle that evening. A score or more of Indians were seated around in a circle, their dark naked forms just visible by the dull light of the smoldering fire in the center, the pipe glowing brightly in the gloom as it passed from hand to hand round the lodge. Then a squaw would drop a piece of buffalo-fat on the dull embers. Instantly a bright glancing flame would leap up, darting its clear light to the very apex of the tall conical structure, where the tops of the slender poles that supported its covering of leather were gathered together. It gilded the features of the Indians, as with animated gestures they sat around it, telling their endless stories of war and hunting. It displayed rude garments of skins that hung around the lodge; the bow, quiver, and lance suspended over the resting-place of the chief, and the rifles and powder-horns of the two white guests. For a moment all would be bright as day; then the flames would die away, and fitful flashes from the embers would illumine the lodge, and then leave it in darkness. Then all the light would wholly fade, and the lodge and all within it be involved again in obscurity.

The lodge of my host, Kongra-Tonga, or the Big Crow, looked stunning that evening. Around twenty Indians sat in a circle, their dark, naked bodies barely visible in the dim light of the smoldering fire in the center. The pipe glowed brightly as it passed from hand to hand around the lodge. Occasionally, a woman would drop a piece of buffalo fat onto the embers, instantly creating a bright flame that leaped up to the very top of the tall conical structure, where the ends of the slender poles holding up the leather covering came together. The fire illuminated the faces of the Indians as they animatedly shared endless stories of war and hunting. It highlighted the rough skin garments hanging around the lodge, the bow, quiver, and lance above the chief's resting spot, and the rifles and powder horns belonging to the two white guests. For a moment, everything was as bright as day; then the flames would fade, and flickering light from the embers would briefly illuminate the lodge before plunging it back into darkness. Eventually, all the light would completely vanish, leaving the lodge and everything in it once again shrouded in obscurity.

As I left the lodge next morning, I was saluted by howling and yelling from all around the village, and half its canine population rushed forth to the attack. Being as cowardly as they were clamorous, they kept jumping around me at the distance of a few yards, only one little cur, about ten inches long, having spirit enough to make a direct assault. He dashed valiantly at the leather tassel which in the Dakota fashion was trailing behind the heel of my moccasin, and kept his hold, growling and snarling all the while, though every step I made almost jerked him over on his back. As I knew that the eyes of the whole village were on the watch to see if I showed any sign of apprehension, I walked forward without looking to the right or left, surrounded wherever I went by this magic circle of dogs. When I came to Reynal’s lodge I sat down by it, on which the dogs dispersed growling to their respective quarters. Only one large white one remained, who kept running about before me and showing his teeth. I called him, but he only growled the more. I looked at him well. He was fat and sleek; just such a dog as I wanted. “My friend,” thought I, “you shall pay for this! I will have you eaten this very morning!”

As I left the lodge the next morning, I was greeted by howling and yelling from all around the village, and half of its dogs rushed forward to attack. They were as cowardly as they were noisy, jumping around me from a few yards away, with only one little dog, about ten inches tall, having enough courage to make a direct charge. He bravely lunged at the leather tassel trailing behind my moccasin, holding on while growling and snarling the entire time, even though each step I took nearly flipped him over. Knowing that everyone in the village was watching to see if I showed any fear, I walked on without looking to the right or left, surrounded by this circle of dogs. When I reached Reynal’s lodge, I sat down beside it, and the dogs scattered, growling as they returned to their spots. Only one big white dog stayed, running around in front of me while baring his teeth. I called him, but he just growled more. I studied him closely. He was fat and sleek; just the dog I wanted. “My friend,” I thought, “you'll pay for this! I’m going to have you cooked up this very morning!”

I intended that day to give the Indians a feast, by way of conveying a favorable impression of my character and dignity; and a white dog is the dish which the customs of the Dakota prescribe for all occasions of formality and importance. I consulted Reynal; he soon discovered that an old woman in the next lodge was owner of the white dog. I took a gaudy cotton handkerchief, and laying it on the ground, arranged some vermilion, beads, and other trinkets upon it. Then the old squaw was summoned. I pointed to the dog and to the handkerchief. She gave a scream of delight, snatched up the prize, and vanished with it into her lodge. For a few more trifles I engaged the services of two other squaws, each of whom took the white dog by one of his paws, and led him away behind the lodges, while he kept looking up at them with a face of innocent surprise. Having killed him they threw him into a fire to singe; then chopped him up and put him into two large kettles to boil. Meanwhile I told Raymond to fry in buffalo-fat what little flour we had left, and also to make a kettle of tea as an additional item of the repast.

That day, I planned to throw a feast for the Indians to create a good impression of my character and status. According to Dakota customs, a white dog is the dish for all important formal occasions. I spoke with Reynal, and he quickly found out that an old woman in the next lodge owned the white dog. I took a colorful cotton handkerchief, laid it on the ground, and arranged some vermilion, beads, and other trinkets on it. Then, we called the old woman over. I pointed to the dog and the handkerchief. She let out a scream of joy, grabbed the prize, and disappeared into her lodge with it. For a few more items, I enlisted the help of two other women, each of whom took the white dog by one of his paws and led him behind the lodges while he looked up at them with an innocent expression. After they killed him, they tossed him into a fire to singe him, then chopped him up and placed him into two large kettles to boil. In the meantime, I told Raymond to fry what little flour we had left in buffalo fat and to make a kettle of tea as an extra dish for the meal.

The Big Crow’s squaw was set briskly at work sweeping out the lodge for the approaching festivity. I confided to my host himself the task of inviting the guests, thinking that I might thereby shift from my own shoulders the odium of fancied neglect and oversight.

The Big Crow's wife was quickly busy cleaning the lodge for the upcoming celebration. I entrusted my host with the job of inviting the guests, believing that this way I could avoid the blame for any perceived neglect and oversight.

When feasting is in question, one hour of the day serves an Indian as well as another. My entertainment came off about eleven o’clock. At that hour, Reynal and Raymond walked across the area of the village, to the admiration of the inhabitants, carrying the two kettles of dog-meat slung on a pole between them. These they placed in the center of the lodge, and then went back for the bread and the tea. Meanwhile I had put on a pair of brilliant moccasins, and substituted for my old buckskin frock a coat which I had brought with me in view of such public occasions. I also made careful use of the razor, an operation which no man will neglect who desires to gain the good opinion of Indians. Thus attired, I seated myself between Reynal and Raymond at the head of the lodge. Only a few minutes elapsed before all the guests had come in and were seated on the ground, wedged together in a close circle around the lodge. Each brought with him a wooden bowl to hold his share of the repast. When all were assembled, two of the officials called “soldiers” by the white men, came forward with ladles made of the horn of the Rocky Mountain sheep, and began to distribute the feast, always assigning a double share to the old men and chiefs. The dog vanished with astonishing celerity, and each guest turned his dish bottom upward to show that all was gone. Then the bread was distributed in its turn, and finally the tea. As the soldiers poured it out into the same wooden bowls that had served for the substantial part of the meal, I thought it had a particularly curious and uninviting color.

When it comes to feasting, any hour of the day works just as well for an Indian as another. My meal was set for around eleven o’clock. At that time, Reynal and Raymond strolled through the village, impressing the locals as they carried two kettles of dog meat balanced on a pole between them. They placed these in the middle of the lodge and then went back for the bread and tea. Meanwhile, I put on a pair of bright moccasins and swapped my old buckskin coat for a jacket that I had brought specifically for such occasions. I also made good use of a razor, something no man should ignore if he wants to earn the respect of the Indians. Dressed like this, I took my seat between Reynal and Raymond at the head of the lodge. It wasn't long before all the guests arrived and settled on the ground, packed closely in a circle around the lodge. Each one brought a wooden bowl to hold their portion of the meal. Once everyone was there, two of the officials, referred to as “soldiers” by the white men, stepped forward with ladles made from the horn of Rocky Mountain sheep and began serving the feast, always giving extra shares to the elderly and the chiefs. The dog meat disappeared quickly, and each guest flipped their dish upside down to show that it was empty. Next, the bread was served, followed by the tea. As the soldiers poured it into the same wooden bowls that had been used for the main dish, I noticed it had a particularly odd and unappealing color.

“Oh!” said Reynal, “there was not tea enough, so I stirred some soot in the kettle, to make it look strong.”

“Oh!” Reynal said, “there wasn't enough tea, so I stirred some soot into the kettle to make it look strong.”

Fortunately an Indian’s palate is not very discriminating. The tea was well sweetened, and that was all they cared for.

Fortunately, an Indian's taste isn't very particular. The tea was nicely sweetened, and that was all that mattered to them.

Now the former part of the entertainment being concluded, the time for speech-making was come. The Big Crow produced a flat piece of wood on which he cut up tobacco and shongsasha, and mixed them in due proportions. The pipes were filled and passed from hand to hand around the company. Then I began my speech, each sentence being interpreted by Reynal as I went on, and echoed by the whole audience with the usual exclamations of assent and approval. As nearly as I can recollect, it was as follows:

Now that the first part of the entertainment was over, it was time for speeches. The Big Crow brought out a flat piece of wood, where he cut up tobacco and shongsasha, mixing them in just the right amounts. The pipes were filled and passed around to everyone. Then I started my speech, with Reynal interpreting each sentence as I went along, and the whole audience responding with their usual cheers of agreement and approval. As far as I can remember, it went something like this:

I had come, I told them, from a country so far distant, that at the rate they travel, they could not reach it in a year.

I told them I had come from a country so far away that at the rate they travel, they wouldn't be able to get there in a year.

“Howo how!”

“How cool!”

“There the Meneaska were more numerous than the blades of grass on the prairie. The squaws were far more beautiful than any they had ever seen, and all the men were brave warriors.”

“There, the Meneaska were more numerous than the blades of grass on the prairie. The women were far more beautiful than anyone they had ever seen, and all the men were brave warriors.”

“How! how! how!”

“Wow! Wow! Wow!”

Here I was assailed by sharp twinges of conscience, for I fancied I could perceive a fragrance of perfumery in the air, and a vision rose before me of white kid gloves and silken mustaches with the mild and gentle countenances of numerous fair-haired young men. But I recovered myself and began again.

Here I was hit by sharp pangs of guilt, as I thought I could smell perfume in the air, and a vision appeared before me of white leather gloves and silky mustaches, accompanied by the soft and gentle faces of several light-haired young men. But I pulled myself together and started again.

“While I was living in the Meneaska lodges, I had heard of the Ogallalla, how great and brave a nation they were, how they loved the whites, and how well they could hunt the buffalo and strike their enemies. I resolved to come and see if all that I heard was true.”

“While I was staying at the Meneaska lodges, I heard about the Ogallala, how great and brave they were, how they cared for the white people, and how skilled they were at hunting buffalo and confronting their enemies. I decided to come and see if everything I heard was true.”

“How! how! how! how!”

“How! how! how! how!”

“As I had come on horseback through the mountains, I had been able to bring them only a very few presents.”

“As I rode through the mountains on horseback, I was only able to bring them a few gifts.”

“How!”

“How?!”

“But I had enough tobacco to give them all a small piece. They might smoke it, and see how much better it was than the tobacco which they got from the traders.”

“But I had enough tobacco to give everyone a little bit. They could smoke it and see how much better it was than the tobacco they got from the traders.”

“How! how! how!”

“How! How! How!”

“I had plenty of powder, lead, knives, and tobacco at Fort Laramie. These I was anxious to give them, and if any of them should come to the fort before I went away, I would make them handsome presents.”

“I had enough gunpowder, bullets, knives, and tobacco at Fort Laramie. I was eager to give them away, and if any of them showed up at the fort before I left, I would give them nice gifts.”

“How! howo how! how!”

“How! how! how! how!”

Raymond then cut up and distributed among them two or three pounds of tobacco, and old Mene-Seela began to make a reply. It was quite long, but the following was the pith of it:

Raymond then divided and shared two or three pounds of tobacco among them, and old Mene-Seela started to respond. It was fairly lengthy, but the main point was as follows:

“He had always loved the whites. They were the wisest people on earth. He believed they could do everything, and he was always glad when any of them came to live in the Ogallalla lodges. It was true I had not made them many presents, but the reason of it was plain. It was clear that I liked them, or I never should have come so far to find their village.”

“He had always loved white people. They were the wisest people on earth. He believed they could do anything, and he was always happy when any of them moved into the Ogallalla lodges. It was true I hadn’t given them many gifts, but the reason was obvious. It was clear that I liked them, or I wouldn’t have come all this way to find their village.”

Several other speeches of similar import followed, and then this more serious matter being disposed of, there was an interval of smoking, laughing, and conversation; but old Mene-Seela suddenly interrupted it with a loud voice:

Several other speeches of a similar nature followed, and once this more serious matter was addressed, there was a break of smoking, laughing, and chatting; but old Mene-Seela suddenly interrupted it with a loud voice:

“Now is a good time,” he said, “when all the old men and chiefs are here together, to decide what the people shall do. We came over the mountain to make our lodges for next year. Our old ones are good for nothing; they are rotten and worn out. But we have been disappointed. We have killed buffalo bulls enough, but we have found no herds of cows, and the skins of bulls are too thick and heavy for our squaws to make lodges of. There must be plenty of cows about the Medicine-Bow Mountain. We ought to go there. To be sure it is farther westward than we have ever been before, and perhaps the Snakes will attack us, for those hunting-grounds belong to them. But we must have new lodges at any rate; our old ones will not serve for another year. We ought not to be afraid of the Snakes. Our warriors are brave, and they are all ready for war. Besides, we have three white men with their rifles to help us.”

“Now is a good time,” he said, “with all the old men and chiefs gathered here, to decide what the people should do. We came over the mountain to set up our lodges for next year. Our old ones are useless; they’re rotten and worn out. But we’ve been let down. We’ve killed enough buffalo bulls, but we haven’t found any herds of cows, and the hides of bulls are too thick and heavy for our women to make lodges from. There must be plenty of cows around Medicine-Bow Mountain. We should go there. It is true that it’s further west than we’ve ever traveled before, and the Snakes might attack us since those hunting grounds belong to them. But we need new lodges anyway; our old ones won’t last another year. We shouldn’t be afraid of the Snakes. Our warriors are brave and ready for battle. Plus, we have three white men with their rifles to help us.”

I could not help thinking that the old man relied a little too much on the aid of allies, one of whom was a coward, another a blockhead, and the third an invalid. This speech produced a good deal of debate. As Reynal did not interpret what was said, I could only judge of the meaning by the features and gestures of the speakers. At the end of it, however, the greater number seemed to have fallen in with Mene-Seela’s opinion. A short silence followed, and then the old man struck up a discordant chant, which I was told was a song of thanks for the entertainment I had given them.

I couldn't help but think that the old man depended a little too much on his allies, one of whom was a coward, another a fool, and the third an invalid. This sparked quite a bit of debate. Since Reynal didn't explain what was being said, I had to infer the meaning from the expressions and gestures of the speakers. In the end, though, most people seemed to agree with Mene-Seela’s viewpoint. A brief silence followed, and then the old man began to sing a discordant chant, which I was told was a song of thanks for the entertainment I had provided.

“Now,” said he, “let us go and give the white men a chance to breathe.”

“Now,” he said, “let’s go and give the white men a chance to catch their breath.”

So the company all dispersed into the open air, and for some time the old chief was walking round the village, singing his song in praise of the feast, after the usual custom of the nation.

So the group all spread out into the fresh air, and for a while, the old chieftain was wandering around the village, singing his song in praise of the feast, following the tradition of the people.

At last the day drew to a close, and as the sun went down the horses came trooping from the surrounding plains to be picketed before the dwellings of their respective masters. Soon within the great circle of lodges appeared another concentric circle of restless horses; and here and there fires were glowing and flickering amid the gloom of the dusky figures around them. I went over and sat by the lodge of Reynal. The Eagle-Feather, who was a son of Mene-Seela, and brother of my host the Big Crow, was seated there already, and I asked him if the village would move in the morning. He shook his head, and said that nobody could tell, for since old Mahto-Tatonka had died, the people had been like children that did not know their own minds. They were no better than a body without a head. So I, as well as the Indians themselves, fell asleep that night without knowing whether we should set out in the morning toward the country of the Snakes.

At last, the day came to an end, and as the sun set, the horses started coming in from the surrounding plains to be tied up in front of their owners' homes. Soon, within the large circle of lodges, there was another ring of restless horses; and here and there, fires were glowing and flickering among the dark figures around them. I went over and sat by Reynal's lodge. The Eagle Feather, who was a son of Mene-Seela and the brother of my host, the Big Crow, was already sitting there, and I asked him if the village would move in the morning. He shook his head and said that no one could tell because since old Mahto-Tatonka had died, the people had acted like children who didn’t know what they wanted. They were like a body without a head. So, like the Indians themselves, I fell asleep that night without knowing if we would head out in the morning toward the land of the Snakes.

At daybreak, however, as I was coming up from the river after my morning’s ablutions, I saw that a movement was contemplated. Some of the lodges were reduced to nothing but bare skeletons of poles; the leather covering of others was flapping in the wind as the squaws were pulling it off. One or two chiefs of note had resolved, it seemed, on moving; and so having set their squaws at work, the example was tacitly followed by the rest of the village. One by one the lodges were sinking down in rapid succession, and where the great circle of the village had been only a moment before, nothing now remained but a ring of horses and Indians, crowded in confusion together. The ruins of the lodges were spread over the ground, together with kettles, stone mallets, great ladles of horn, buffalo robes, and cases of painted hide, filled with dried meat. Squaws bustled about in their busy preparations, the old hags screaming to one another at the stretch of their leathern lungs. The shaggy horses were patiently standing while the lodge-poles were lashed to their sides, and the baggage piled upon their backs. The dogs, with their tongues lolling out, lay lazily panting, and waiting for the time of departure. Each warrior sat on the ground by the decaying embers of his fire, unmoved amid all the confusion, while he held in his hand the long trail-rope of his horse.

At daybreak, though, as I was coming up from the river after my morning wash, I noticed that a move was being planned. Some of the lodges were just skeletal frames; the leather covering of others was flapping in the wind as the women were taking it off. It seemed that one or two important chiefs had decided to move, and once they set their women to work, the rest of the village quietly followed suit. One by one, the lodges collapsed in quick succession, and where the large circle of the village had just been, there was now nothing but a ring of horses and people crowded together in confusion. The remnants of the lodges were scattered on the ground, along with kettles, stone mallets, large horn ladles, buffalo robes, and cases of painted hide filled with dried meat. Women bustled around in their preparations, with the older ones shouting to each other at the top of their lungs. The shaggy horses patiently stood as the lodge poles were tied to their sides, and the baggage was piled on their backs. The dogs, tongues hanging out, lay around lazily panting, waiting for the departure. Each warrior sat on the ground by the smoldering embers of his fire, unfazed by the chaos around him, while holding onto the long lead rope of his horse.

As their preparations were completed, each family moved off the ground. The crowd was rapidly melting away. I could see them crossing the river, and passing in quick succession along the profile of the hill on the farther bank. When all were gone, I mounted and set out after them, followed by Raymond, and as we gained the summit, the whole village came in view at once, straggling away for a mile or more over the barren plains before us. Everywhere the iron points of lances were glittering. The sun never shone upon a more strange array. Here were the heavy-laden pack horses, some wretched old women leading them, and two or three children clinging to their backs. Here were mules or ponies covered from head to tail with gaudy trappings, and mounted by some gay young squaw, grinning bashfulness and pleasure as the Meneaska looked at her. Boys with miniature bows and arrows were wandering over the plains, little naked children were running along on foot, and numberless dogs were scampering among the feet of the horses. The young braves, gaudy with paint and feathers, were riding in groups among the crowd, and often galloping, two or three at once along the line, to try the speed of their horses. Here and there you might see a rank of sturdy pedestrians stalking along in their white buffalo robes. These were the dignitaries of the village, the old men and warriors, to whose age and experience that wandering democracy yielded a silent deference. With the rough prairie and the broken hills for its background, the restless scene was striking and picturesque beyond description. Days and weeks made me familiar with it, but never impaired its effect upon my fancy.

As their preparations wrapped up, each family moved off the ground. The crowd was quickly dispersing. I saw them crossing the river and moving in quick succession along the hillside on the other bank. Once they were all gone, I mounted and set out after them, followed by Raymond. As we reached the top, the entire village came into view, stretching out for a mile or more across the barren plains ahead of us. Everywhere, the sharp points of lances were glinting. The sun had never shone on such a strange sight. Here were the heavily burdened pack horses, some frail old women leading them, with two or three children clinging to their backs. There were mules and ponies decked out from head to toe in bright decorations, ridden by cheerful young women, smiling in shyness and joy as they caught the Meneaska’s eye. Boys with tiny bows and arrows roamed the plains, little naked children ran along on foot, and countless dogs dashed between the horses’ feet. The young warriors, brightly painted and feathered, rode in groups among the crowd, often racing each other, two or three at a time, to test their horses' speed. Here and there, you could spot a line of sturdy walkers making their way in their white buffalo robes. These were the village leaders, the elders and warriors, who earned a quiet respect from that wandering community due to their age and wisdom. With the rugged prairie and the rugged hills as a backdrop, the lively scene was striking and picturesque beyond words. Days and weeks made me accustomed to it, but never lessened its impact on my imagination.

As we moved on the broken column grew yet more scattered and disorderly, until, as we approached the foot of a hill, I saw the old men before mentioned seating themselves in a line upon the ground, in advance of the whole. They lighted a pipe and sat smoking, laughing, and telling stories, while the people, stopping as they successively came up, were soon gathered in a crowd behind them. Then the old men rose, drew their buffalo robes over their shoulders, and strode on as before. Gaining the top of the hill, we found a very steep declivity before us. There was not a minute’s pause. The whole descended in a mass, amid dust and confusion. The horses braced their feet as they slid down, women and children were screaming, dogs yelping as they were trodden upon, while stones and earth went rolling to the bottom. In a few moments I could see the village from the summit, spreading again far and wide over the plain below.

As we continued, the broken column became even more scattered and chaotic, until, as we got closer to the bottom of a hill, I saw the old men I mentioned earlier sitting in a line on the ground ahead of everyone else. They lit up a pipe and began smoking, laughing, and sharing stories, while the people, stopping as they arrived one by one, quickly formed a crowd behind them. Then the old men stood up, pulled their buffalo robes over their shoulders, and walked on as before. When we reached the top of the hill, we faced a very steep decline. There was no pause at all. Everyone rushed down in a crowd, surrounded by dust and chaos. The horses dug their hooves in as they slid down, women and children were screaming, dogs were barking as they got stepped on, while rocks and dirt tumbled down to the bottom. Moments later, I could see the village from the top, spreading out wide across the plain below.

At our encampment that afternoon I was attacked anew by my old disorder. In half an hour the strength that I had been gaining for a week past had vanished again, and I became like a man in a dream. But at sunset I lay down in the Big Crow’s lodge and slept, totally unconscious till the morning. The first thing that awakened me was a hoarse flapping over my head, and a sudden light that poured in upon me. The camp was breaking up, and the squaws were moving the covering from the lodge. I arose and shook off my blanket with the feeling of perfect health; but scarcely had I gained my feet when a sense of my helpless condition was once more forced upon me, and I found myself scarcely able to stand. Raymond had brought up Pauline and the mule, and I stooped to raise my saddle from the ground. My strength was quite inadequate to the task. “You must saddle her,” said I to Raymond, as I sat down again on a pile of buffalo robes:

At our camp that afternoon, my old illness hit me again. In just half an hour, the strength I had been building up for the past week was gone, and I felt like I was in a dream. But at sunset, I lay down in the Big Crow’s lodge and slept, completely unaware until morning. The first thing that woke me was a loud flapping above my head and a sudden light pouring in. The camp was being taken down, and the women were moving the covering from the lodge. I got up and shook off my blanket, feeling perfectly healthy; but as soon as I was on my feet, I was hit with the realization of how weak I truly was, and I found it hard to stand. Raymond had brought up Pauline and the mule, and I bent down to lift my saddle from the ground. My strength was totally inadequate for the job. “You need to saddle her,” I said to Raymond as I sat down again on a pile of buffalo robes:

“Et hoec etiam fortasse meminisse juvabit.”

“Also, it might be helpful to remember this.”

I thought, while with a painful effort I raised myself into the saddle. Half an hour after, even the expectation that Virgil’s line expressed seemed destined to disappointment. As we were passing over a great plain, surrounded by long broken ridges, I rode slowly in advance of the Indians, with thoughts that wandered far from the time and from the place. Suddenly the sky darkened, and thunder began to mutter. Clouds were rising over the hills, as dreary and dull as the first forebodings of an approaching calamity; and in a moment all around was wrapped in shadow. I looked behind. The Indians had stopped to prepare for the approaching storm, and the dark, dense mass of savages stretched far to the right and left. Since the first attack of my disorder the effects of rain upon me had usually been injurious in the extreme. I had no strength to spare, having at that moment scarcely enough to keep my seat on horseback. Then, for the first time, it pressed upon me as a strong probability that I might never leave those deserts. “Well,” thought I to myself, “a prairie makes quick and sharp work. Better to die here, in the saddle to the last, than to stifle in the hot air of a sick chamber, and a thousand times better than to drag out life, as many have done, in the helpless inaction of lingering disease.” So, drawing the buffalo robe on which I sat over my head, I waited till the storm should come. It broke at last with a sudden burst of fury, and passing away as rapidly as it came, left the sky clear again. My reflections served me no other purpose than to look back upon as a piece of curious experience; for the rain did not produce the ill effects that I had expected. We encamped within an hour. Having no change of clothes, I contrived to borrow a curious kind of substitute from Reynal: and this done, I went home, that is, to the Big Crow’s lodge to make the entire transfer that was necessary. Half a dozen squaws were in the lodge, and one of them taking my arm held it against her own, while a general laugh and scream of admiration were raised at the contrast in the color of the skin.

I thought, as I strained to lift myself into the saddle. Half an hour later, even the hope that Virgil's line suggested seemed likely to lead to disappointment. While we crossed a vast plain surrounded by long, broken ridges, I rode slowly ahead of the Indians, my thoughts drifting far from the moment and the place. Suddenly, the sky darkened, and thunder began to rumble. Clouds were building over the hills, ominous and dull, like the first signs of an impending disaster; in an instant, everything around me was enveloped in shadow. I glanced back. The Indians had paused to prepare for the coming storm, a dark, heavy mass of warriors stretching far to my right and left. Since the first onset of my illness, rain had usually affected me extremely negatively. I had no strength to spare, barely managing to stay in the saddle. For the first time, it struck me as a real possibility that I might never leave these deserts. “Well,” I thought to myself, “a prairie death is quick and decisive. Better to die here, in the saddle to the very end, than to suffocate in the stifling air of a sickroom, and a thousand times better than to drag out a life, as so many have done, in the powerless inaction of a lingering illness.” So, pulling the buffalo robe draped over me up to shield my head, I waited for the storm to arrive. It finally hit with a sudden burst of fury, only to pass as quickly as it came, leaving the sky clear again. My thoughts provided me no more than a curious piece of experience to reflect on; the rain didn't have the negative effects I had anticipated. We set up camp within an hour. Lacking a change of clothes, I managed to borrow a peculiar substitute from Reynal; once that was sorted, I went home—specifically, to the Big Crow’s lodge—to make the necessary full transfer. Half a dozen women were in the lodge, and one of them took my arm and pressed it against her own while a general laugh and squeal of admiration erupted at the contrast in our skin tones.

Our encampment that afternoon was not far distant from a spur of the Black Hills, whose ridges, bristling with fir trees, rose from the plains a mile or two on our right. That they might move more rapidly toward their proposed hunting-grounds, the Indians determined to leave at this place their stock of dried meat and other superfluous articles. Some left even their lodges, and contented themselves with carrying a few hides to make a shelter from the sun and rain. Half the inhabitants set out in the afternoon, with loaded pack horses, toward the mountains. Here they suspended the dried meat upon trees, where the wolves and grizzly bears could not get at it. All returned at evening. Some of the young men declared that they had heard the reports of guns among the mountains to the eastward, and many surmises were thrown out as to the origin of these sounds. For my part, I was in hopes that Shaw and Henry Chatillon were coming to join us. I would have welcomed them cordially, for I had no other companions than two brutish white men and five hundred savages. I little suspected that at that very moment my unlucky comrade was lying on a buffalo robe at Fort Laramie, fevered with ivy poison, and solacing his woes with tobacco and Shakespeare.

That afternoon, our camp was not far from a small part of the Black Hills, which had ridges covered with fir trees rising from the plains about a mile or two to our right. To move more quickly toward their intended hunting grounds, the Indians decided to leave behind their stock of dried meat and other unnecessary items. Some even abandoned their lodges and opted to carry a few hides to make a shelter from the sun and rain. Half of the group set out in the afternoon with loaded pack horses heading toward the mountains. There, they hung the dried meat in trees so it would be out of reach of wolves and grizzly bears. Everyone returned by evening. Some of the young men claimed they had heard gunshots in the mountains to the east, which sparked various theories about the source of those sounds. Personally, I was hoping that Shaw and Henry Chatillon were coming to join us. I would have welcomed them warmly since my only companions were two rough white men and five hundred natives. Little did I know that at that very moment, my unfortunate comrade was lying on a buffalo robe at Fort Laramie, suffering from ivy poison, and easing his troubles with tobacco and Shakespeare.

As we moved over the plains on the next morning, several young men were riding about the country as scouts; and at length we began to see them occasionally on the tops of the hills, shaking their robes as a signal that they saw buffalo. Soon after, some bulls came in sight. Horsemen darted away in pursuit, and we could see from the distance that one or two of the buffalo were killed. Raymond suddenly became inspired. I looked at him as he rode by my side; his face had actually grown intelligent!

As we traveled across the plains the next morning, several young men were riding around as scouts, and soon we started spotting them on the hilltops, waving their robes as a signal that they had spotted buffalo. Before long, some bulls appeared in view. Riders took off in pursuit, and from a distance, we could see that one or two buffalo were killed. Suddenly, Raymond seemed filled with inspiration. I glanced at him as he rode alongside me; his face had actually brightened!

“This is the country for me!” he said; “if I could only carry the buffalo that are killed here every month down to St. Louis I’d make my fortune in one winter. I’d grow as rich as old Papin, or Mackenzie either. I call this the poor man’s market. When I’m hungry I have only got to take my rifle and go out and get better meat than the rich folks down below can get with all their money. You won’t catch me living in St. Louis another winter.”

“This is the place for me!” he said. “If I could just take the buffalo that are killed here every month down to St. Louis, I’d make my fortune in one winter. I’d be as rich as old Papin or Mackenzie. I call this the poor man’s market. When I’m hungry, I just grab my rifle and go out to get better meat than the wealthy folks down below can buy with all their money. You won’t find me living in St. Louis another winter.”

“No,” said Reynal, “you had better say that after you and your Spanish woman almost starved to death there. What a fool you were ever to take her to the settlements.”

“No,” Reynal said, “you should really say that after you and your Spanish woman nearly starved to death there. What were you thinking, taking her to the settlements?”

“Your Spanish woman?” said I; “I never heard of her before. Are you married to her?”

"Your Spanish woman?" I said. "I never heard of her before. Are you married to her?"

“No,” answered Raymond, again looking intelligent; “the priests don’t marry their women, and why should I marry mine?”

“No,” Raymond replied, sounding clever again. “The priests don’t marry their women, so why should I marry mine?”

This honorable mention of the Mexican clergy introduced the subject of religion, and I found that my two associates, in common with other white men in the country, were as indifferent to their future welfare as men whose lives are in constant peril are apt to be. Raymond had never heard of the Pope. A certain bishop, who lived at Taos or at Santa Fe, embodied his loftiest idea of an ecclesiastical dignitary. Reynal observed that a priest had been at Fort Laramie two years ago, on his way to the Nez Perce mission, and that he had confessed all the men there and given them absolution. “I got a good clearing out myself that time,” said Reynal, “and I reckon that will do for me till I go down to the settlements again.”

This mention of the Mexican clergy brought up the topic of religion, and I noticed that my two companions, like many other white men in the area, were just as indifferent to their future well-being as people whose lives are often at risk tend to be. Raymond had never heard of the Pope. A certain bishop who lived in Taos or Santa Fe represented his highest concept of a church official. Reynal noted that a priest had visited Fort Laramie two years ago on his way to the Nez Perce mission, and he had confessed all the men there and granted them absolution. “I had a good cleansing myself that time,” Reynal said, “and I figure that will be enough for me until I head back to the settlements.”

Here he interrupted himself with an oath and exclaimed: “Look! look! The Panther is running an antelope!”

Here he paused with an oath and exclaimed: “Look! Look! The Panther is chasing an antelope!”

The Panther, on his black and white horse, one of the best in the village, came at full speed over the hill in hot pursuit of an antelope that darted away like lightning before him. The attempt was made in mere sport and bravado, for very few are the horses that can for a moment compete in swiftness with this little animal. The antelope ran down the hill toward the main body of the Indians who were moving over the plain below. Sharp yells were given and horsemen galloped out to intercept his flight. At this he turned sharply to the left and scoured away with such incredible speed that he distanced all his pursuers and even the vaunted horse of the Panther himself. A few moments after we witnessed a more serious sport. A shaggy buffalo bull bounded out from a neighboring hollow, and close behind him came a slender Indian boy, riding without stirrups or saddle and lashing his eager little horse to full speed. Yard after yard he drew closer to his gigantic victim, though the bull, with his short tail erect and his tongue lolling out a foot from his foaming jaws, was straining his unwieldy strength to the utmost. A moment more and the boy was close alongside of him. It was our friend the Hail-Storm. He dropped the rein on his horse’s neck and jerked an arrow like lightning from the quiver at his shoulder.

The Panther, on his black and white horse, one of the best in the village, came charging over the hill at full speed, hot on the heels of an antelope that darted away like lightning. This chase was just for fun and bravado, since very few horses can keep up with this little creature, even for a moment. The antelope raced down the hill toward the main group of Indians moving across the plain below. Sharp yells erupted as horsemen galloped out to cut off its escape. In response, the antelope sharply turned left and sped away with such incredible speed that it outpaced all its pursuers, including the Panther's prized horse. Moments later, we witnessed a more serious chase. A shaggy buffalo bull bounded out from a nearby hollow, with a slender Indian boy right behind him, riding bareback without stirrups and urging his eager little horse to full speed. Yard by yard, he got closer to his massive target, while the bull, its short tail raised and tongue hanging from its foaming jaws, pushed its heavy body to the limit. In another moment, the boy was right alongside the bull. It was our friend the Hail-Storm. He dropped the reins onto his horse’s neck and quickly pulled an arrow from the quiver at his shoulder.

“I tell you,” said Reynal, “that in a year’s time that boy will match the best hunter in the village. There he has given it to him! and there goes another! You feel well, now, old bull, don’t you, with two arrows stuck in your lights? There, he has given him another! Hear how the Hail-Storm yells when he shoots! Yes, jump at him; try it again, old fellow! You may jump all day before you get your horns into that pony!”

“I’m telling you,” said Reynal, “that in a year, that kid will be the best hunter in the village. Look at that! He got one! And there goes another! You feeling good now, old bull, with two arrows in your side? There, he got another one! Listen to how the Hail-Storm cheers when he shoots! Yeah, go after him; try again, old man! You could jump all day and still not catch that pony!”

The bull sprang again and again at his assailant, but the horse kept dodging with wonderful celerity. At length the bull followed up his attack with a furious rush, and the Hail-Storm was put to flight, the shaggy monster following close behind. The boy clung in his seat like a leech, and secure in the speed of his little pony, looked round toward us and laughed. In a moment he was again alongside of the bull, who was now driven to complete desperation. His eyeballs glared through his tangled mane, and the blood flew from his mouth and nostrils. Thus, still battling with each other, the two enemies disappeared over the hill.

The bull charged again and again at his attacker, but the horse kept dodging with amazing speed. Finally, the bull launched a furious charge, causing the Hail-Storm to flee, with the shaggy beast close behind. The boy clung to his seat like a leech and, confident in his little pony's speed, looked back at us and laughed. In no time, he was back beside the bull, who was now completely desperate. His eyes bulged through his matted mane, and blood dripped from his mouth and nostrils. Still locked in their struggle, the two adversaries vanished over the hill.

Many of the Indians rode at full gallop toward the spot. We followed at a more moderate pace, and soon saw the bull lying dead on the side of the hill. The Indians were gathered around him, and several knives were already at work. These little instruments were plied with such wonderful address that the twisted sinews were cut apart, the ponderous bones fell asunder as if by magic, and in a moment the vast carcass was reduced to a heap of bloody ruins. The surrounding group of savages offered no very attractive spectacle to a civilized eye. Some were cracking the huge thigh-bones and devouring the marrow within; others were cutting away pieces of the liver and other approved morsels, and swallowing them on the spot with the appetite of wolves. The faces of most of them, besmeared with blood from ear to ear, looked grim and horrible enough. My friend the White Shield proffered me a marrowbone, so skillfully laid open that all the rich substance within was exposed to view at once. Another Indian held out a large piece of the delicate lining of the paunch; but these courteous offerings I begged leave to decline. I noticed one little boy who was very busy with his knife about the jaws and throat of the buffalo, from which he extracted some morsel of peculiar delicacy. It is but fair to say that only certain parts of the animal are considered eligible in these extempore banquets. The Indians would look with abhorrence on anyone who should partake indiscriminately of the newly killed carcass.

Many of the Indians rode full speed toward the spot. We followed at a more moderate pace and soon saw the bull lying dead on the hillside. The Indians were gathered around it, and several knives were already in use. These small tools were handled with such skill that the twisted sinews were sliced apart, the heavy bones broke apart as if by magic, and in no time, the massive carcass was reduced to a pile of bloody remains. The group of savages surrounding the scene was not very appealing to a civilized eye. Some were cracking open the large thigh bones and devouring the marrow inside; others were cutting out pieces of the liver and other choice bits, swallowing them right there with the hunger of wolves. The faces of most of them, smeared with blood from ear to ear, looked grim and truly horrifying. My friend the White Shield offered me a marrow bone, expertly opened so that all the rich substance inside was visible at once. Another Indian held out a large piece of the tender lining of the stomach; however, I politely declined these generous offers. I noticed one small boy who was busy with his knife working on the jaws and throat of the buffalo, from which he extracted some particularly tasty morsel. It’s worth mentioning that only certain parts of the animal are considered appropriate at these spontaneous feasts. The Indians would look with disgust at anyone who ventured to eat indiscriminately from the freshly killed carcass.

We encamped that night, and marched westward through the greater part of the following day. On the next morning we again resumed our journey. It was the 17th of July, unless my notebook misleads me. At noon we stopped by some pools of rain-water, and in the afternoon again set forward. This double movement was contrary to the usual practice of the Indians, but all were very anxious to reach the hunting ground, kill the necessary number of buffalo, and retreat as soon as possible from the dangerous neighborhood. I pass by for the present some curious incidents that occurred during these marches and encampments. Late in the afternoon of the last-mentioned day we came upon the banks of a little sandy stream, of which the Indians could not tell the name; for they were very ill acquainted with that part of the country. So parched and arid were the prairies around that they could not supply grass enough for the horses to feed upon, and we were compelled to move farther and farther up the stream in search of ground for encampment. The country was much wilder than before. The plains were gashed with ravines and broken into hollows and steep declivities, which flanked our course, as, in long-scattered array, the Indians advanced up the side of the stream. Mene-Seela consulted an extraordinary oracle to instruct him where the buffalo were to be found. When he with the other chiefs sat down on the grass to smoke and converse, as they often did during the march, the old man picked up one of those enormous black-and-green crickets, which the Dakota call by a name that signifies “They who point out the buffalo.” The Root-Diggers, a wretched tribe beyond the mountains, turn them to good account by making them into a sort of soup, pronounced by certain unscrupulous trappers to be extremely rich. Holding the bloated insect respectfully between his fingers and thumb, the old Indian looked attentively at him and inquired, “Tell me, my father, where must we go to-morrow to find the buffalo?” The cricket twisted about his long horns in evident embarrassment. At last he pointed, or seemed to point, them westward. Mene-Seela, dropping him gently on the grass, laughed with great glee, and said that if we went that way in the morning we should be sure to kill plenty of game.

We set up camp that night and headed west for most of the next day. The following morning, we continued our journey. It was July 17th, unless my notebook is mistaken. At noon, we took a break by some rainwater pools, and in the afternoon, we moved on again. This double travel was unusual for the Indians, but everyone was eager to reach the hunting grounds, hunt the necessary number of buffalo, and get away from the dangerous area as quickly as possible. I’ll skip over some interesting incidents that happened during these marches and camps for now. Late in the afternoon of that day, we came across a little sandy stream, but the Indians didn’t know its name since they weren’t familiar with that part of the country. The prairies around were so dry and barren that there wasn’t enough grass for the horses to eat, and we had to keep moving further up the stream in search of a good camping spot. The terrain was wilder than before. The plains were marked by ravines and interrupted by hollows and steep slopes, which bordered our path as the Indians advanced alongside the stream in a scattered formation. Mene-Seela consulted a unique oracle to find out where the buffalo were. While he and the other chiefs sat on the grass to smoke and chat, as they often did during the march, the old man picked up one of those big black-and-green crickets, which the Dakota call “They who point out the buffalo.” The Root-Diggers, a poor tribe beyond the mountains, make good use of them by turning them into a type of soup, which some dubious trappers say is really rich. Holding the swollen insect carefully between his fingers and thumb, the old Indian looked closely at it and asked, “Tell me, my father, where should we go tomorrow to find the buffalo?” The cricket squirmed its long horns in obvious discomfort. Finally, it pointed, or seemed to point, westward. Mene-Seela, gently releasing it onto the grass, laughed joyfully and declared that if we headed that way in the morning, we would definitely find plenty of game.

Toward evening we came upon a fresh green meadow, traversed by the stream, and deep-set among tall sterile bluffs. The Indians descended its steep bank; and as I was at the rear, I was one of the last to reach this point. Lances were glittering, feathers fluttering, and the water below me was crowded with men and horses passing through, while the meadow beyond was swarming with the restless crowd of Indians. The sun was just setting, and poured its softened light upon them through an opening in the hills.

Towards evening, we arrived at a lush green meadow, crossed by a stream and nestled among tall, barren bluffs. The Native Americans came down its steep bank, and since I was at the back, I was one of the last to get there. Lances sparkled, feathers waved in the breeze, and the water below me was filled with men and horses moving through it, while the meadow beyond was bustling with a restless crowd of Native Americans. The sun was just setting, casting its gentle light on them through a gap in the hills.

I remarked to Reynal that at last we had found a good camping-ground.

I told Reynal that we had finally found a great camping spot.

“Oh, it is very good,” replied he ironically; “especially if there is a Snake war party about, and they take it into their heads to shoot down at us from the top of these hills. It is no plan of mine, camping in such a hole as this!”

“Oh, it’s great,” he replied sarcastically; “especially if there’s a Snake war party nearby and they decide to shoot at us from the top of these hills. Camping in a spot like this is definitely not my idea!”

The Indians also seemed apprehensive. High up on the top of the tallest bluff, conspicuous in the bright evening sunlight, sat a naked warrior on horseback, looking around, as it seemed, over the neighboring country; and Raymond told me that many of the young men had gone out in different directions as scouts.

The Indians also appeared uneasy. High up on the top of the tallest bluff, visible in the bright evening sunlight, sat a naked warrior on horseback, surveying the surrounding land. Raymond mentioned that many of the young men had gone out in various directions as scouts.

The shadows had reached to the very summit of the bluffs before the lodges were erected and the village reduced again to quiet and order. A cry was suddenly raised, and men, women, and children came running out with animated faces, and looked eagerly through the opening on the hills by which the stream entered from the westward. I could discern afar off some dark, heavy masses, passing over the sides of a low hill. They disappeared, and then others followed. These were bands of buffalo cows. The hunting-ground was reached at last, and everything promised well for the morrow’s sport. Being fatigued and exhausted, I went and lay down in Kongra-Tonga’s lodge, when Raymond thrust in his head, and called upon me to come and see some sport. A number of Indians were gathered, laughing, along the line of lodges on the western side of the village, and at some distance, I could plainly see in the twilight two huge black monsters stalking, heavily and solemnly, directly toward us. They were buffalo bulls. The wind blew from them to the village, and such was their blindness and stupidity that they were advancing upon the enemy without the least consciousness of his presence. Raymond told me that two men had hidden themselves with guns in a ravine about twenty yards in front of us. The two bulls walked slowly on, heavily swinging from side to side in their peculiar gait of stupid dignity. They approached within four or five rods of the ravine where the Indians lay in ambush. Here at last they seemed conscious that something was wrong, for they both stopped and stood perfectly still, without looking either to the right or to the left. Nothing of them was to be seen but two huge black masses of shaggy mane, with horns, eyes, and nose in the center, and a pair of hoofs visible at the bottom. At last the more intelligent of them seemed to have concluded that it was time to retire. Very slowly, and with an air of the gravest and most majestic deliberation, he began to turn round, as if he were revolving on a pivot. Little by little his ugly brown side was exposed to view. A white smoke sprang out, as it were from the ground; a sharp report came with it. The old bull gave a very undignified jump and galloped off. At this his comrade wheeled about with considerable expedition. The other Indian shot at him from the ravine, and then both the bulls were running away at full speed, while half the juvenile population of the village raised a yell and ran after them. The first bull was soon stopped, and while the crowd stood looking at him at a respectable distance, he reeled and rolled over on his side. The other, wounded in a less vital part, galloped away to the hills and escaped.

The shadows had reached the very top of the bluffs by the time the lodges were set up and the village settled back into peace and order. Suddenly, a shout went up, and men, women, and children rushed out with excited expressions, eagerly peering through the opening in the hills where the stream flowed in from the west. I could make out some dark, heavy shapes moving over a low hill in the distance. They vanished, then more followed. These were herds of buffalo cows. We finally reached the hunting ground, and everything looked promising for tomorrow's hunt. Exhausted and worn out, I lay down in Kongra-Tonga’s lodge when Raymond popped his head in and urged me to come see the action. A group of Indians were gathered, laughing near the line of lodges on the western side of the village, and in the fading light, I could clearly see two enormous black beasts moving solemnly and heavily toward us. They were buffalo bulls. The wind was blowing from them to the village, and they were so oblivious that they approached the enemy without realizing it. Raymond told me that two men were hiding with guns in a ravine about twenty yards ahead. The two bulls continued slowly, swaying side to side in their unique, lumbering way. They came within four or five rods of the ravine where the Indians were lying in wait. Finally, they seemed to sense that something was off, stopping dead in their tracks without glancing to the right or left. All that was visible were two massive black shapes with shaggy manes, horns, eyes, and noses showing in the center, and a pair of hooves at the bottom. Eventually, the more perceptive one decided it was time to leave. Very slowly, with a serious and grand air, he began to turn around as if on a pivot. Gradually, his ugly brown side came into view. A white puff of smoke erupted from the ground, followed by a sharp bang. The old bull jumped awkwardly and dashed off. Reacting quickly, his companion turned and ran. The other Indian shot at him from the ravine, and soon both bulls were sprinting away full speed while half the kids in the village yelled and chased after them. The first bull was quickly brought down, and while the crowd watched from a safe distance, he staggered and collapsed on his side. The other, hit in a less critical area, galloped off to the hills and escaped.

In half an hour it was totally dark. I lay down to sleep, and ill as I was, there was something very animating in the prospect of the general hunt that was to take place on the morrow.

In half an hour, it was completely dark. I lay down to sleep, and even though I felt unwell, there was something really uplifting about the idea of the big hunt that was set to happen tomorrow.





CHAPTER XV

THE HUNTING CAMP

Long before daybreak the Indians broke up their camp. The women of Mene-Seela’s lodge were as usual among the first that were ready for departure, and I found the old man himself sitting by the embers of the decayed fire, over which he was warming his withered fingers, as the morning was very chilly and damp. The preparations for moving were even more confused and disorderly than usual. While some families were leaving the ground the lodges of others were still standing untouched. At this old Mene-Seela grew impatient, and walking out to the middle of the village stood with his robe wrapped close around him, and harangued the people in a loud, sharp voice. Now, he said, when they were on an enemy’s hunting-grounds, was not the time to behave like children; they ought to be more active and united than ever. His speech had some effect. The delinquents took down their lodges and loaded their pack horses; and when the sun rose, the last of the men, women, and children had left the deserted camp.

Long before dawn, the Indians packed up their camp. The women from Mene-Seela’s lodge were, as always, among the first to get ready to leave, and I found the old man himself sitting by the dying fire, warming his frail fingers because the morning was quite chilly and damp. The preparations to move were even more chaotic and disorganized than usual. While some families were already leaving, others still had their lodges standing untouched. This made old Mene-Seela impatient, and stepping out to the center of the village, he stood with his robe tightly wrapped around him and spoke to the people in a loud, sharp voice. Now, he said, when they were on enemy territory, was not the time to act like children; they needed to be more active and united than ever. His words had some impact. Those who were lagging removed their lodges and packed up their horses, and by the time the sun rose, the last of the men, women, and children had left the deserted camp.

This movement was made merely for the purpose of finding a better and safer position. So we advanced only three or four miles up the little stream, before each family assumed its relative place in the great ring of the village, and all around the squaws were actively at work in preparing the camp. But not a single warrior dismounted from his horse. All the men that morning were mounted on inferior animals, leading their best horses by a cord, or confiding them to the care of boys. In small parties they began to leave the ground and ride rapidly away over the plains to the westward. I had taken no food that morning, and not being at all ambitious of further abstinence, I went into my host’s lodge, which his squaws had erected with wonderful celerity, and sat down in the center, as a gentle hint that I was hungry. A wooden bowl was soon set before me, filled with the nutritious preparation of dried meat called pemmican by the northern voyagers and wasna by the Dakota. Taking a handful to break my fast upon, I left the lodge just in time to see the last band of hunters disappear over the ridge of the neighboring hill. I mounted Pauline and galloped in pursuit, riding rather by the balance than by any muscular strength that remained to me. From the top of the hill I could overlook a wide extent of desolate and unbroken prairie, over which, far and near, little parties of naked horsemen were rapidly passing. I soon came up to the nearest, and we had not ridden a mile before all were united into one large and compact body. All was haste and eagerness. Each hunter was whipping on his horse, as if anxious to be the first to reach the game. In such movements among the Indians this is always more or less the case; but it was especially so in the present instance, because the head chief of the village was absent, and there were but few “soldiers,” a sort of Indian police, who among their other functions usually assumed the direction of a buffalo hunt. No man turned to the right hand or to the left. We rode at a swift canter straight forward, uphill and downhill, and through the stiff, obstinate growth of the endless wild-sage bushes. For an hour and a half the same red shoulders, the same long black hair rose and fell with the motion of the horses before me. Very little was said, though once I observed an old man severely reproving Raymond for having left his rifle behind him, when there was some probability of encountering an enemy before the day was over. As we galloped across a plain thickly set with sagebushes, the foremost riders vanished suddenly from sight, as if diving into the earth. The arid soil was cracked into a deep ravine. Down we all went in succession and galloped in a line along the bottom, until we found a point where, one by one, the horses could scramble out. Soon after we came upon a wide shallow stream, and as we rode swiftly over the hard sand-beds and through the thin sheets of rippling water, many of the savage horsemen threw themselves to the ground, knelt on the sand, snatched a hasty draught, and leaping back again to their seats, galloped on again as before.

This movement was made just to find a better and safer position. So we moved only three or four miles up the small stream before each family took its place in the great circle of the village, while the women were busily preparing the camp. But not a single warrior got off his horse. All the men that morning were riding lesser animals, leading their best horses by a rope or leaving them in the care of boys. In small groups, they began to leave the area and ride quickly away across the plains to the west. I hadn’t eaten anything that morning, and not being keen on starving any longer, I went into my host’s lodge, which his women had set up with impressive speed, and sat down in the center, as a gentle hint that I was hungry. A wooden bowl was soon placed before me, filled with a nutritious dish of dried meat called pemmican by northern explorers and wasna by the Dakota. Taking a handful to break my fast, I left the lodge just in time to see the last group of hunters disappear over the ridge of the nearby hill. I mounted Pauline and galloped after them, riding more by balance than by any remaining strength. From the top of the hill, I could see a vast stretch of desolate prairie, over which, far and near, small groups of barebacked horsemen were passing quickly. I soon caught up to the nearest group, and we hadn’t ridden a mile before everyone came together into one large, tight group. There was a sense of urgency and excitement. Each hunter was urging on his horse, eager to be the first to reach the game. This kind of urgency among the Native Americans is always somewhat common, but it was especially true this time because the chief of the village was absent, and there were few “soldiers,” a sort of Indian police, who usually took charge of a buffalo hunt. No one turned to the right or to the left. We rode at a fast canter straight ahead, uphill and downhill, and through the tough, stubborn wild-sage bushes. For an hour and a half, the same red shoulders and long black hair rose and fell with the horses' movements in front of me. Very little was said, though I noticed one old man sternly scolding Raymond for leaving his rifle behind when there was a chance of encountering an enemy before the day ended. As we galloped across a plain thick with sagebrush, the leading riders suddenly disappeared from sight, as if they had sunk into the earth. The dry ground was cracked into a deep ravine. Down we all went in succession and galloped in a line along the bottom until we found a place where the horses could scramble out one by one. Soon after, we came upon a wide shallow stream, and as we rode swiftly over the hard sandbanks and through the shallow rippling water, many of the wild horsemen threw themselves to the ground, knelt on the sand, took a quick drink, and jumped back onto their horses, galloping on as before.

Meanwhile scouts kept in advance of the party; and now we began to see them on the ridge of the hills, waving their robes in token that buffalo were visible. These however proved to be nothing more than old straggling bulls, feeding upon the neighboring plains, who would stare for a moment at the hostile array and then gallop clumsily off. At length we could discern several of these scouts making their signals to us at once; no longer waving their robes boldly from the top of the hill, but standing lower down, so that they could not be seen from the plains beyond. Game worth pursuing had evidently been discovered. The excited Indians now urged forward their tired horses even more rapidly than before. Pauline, who was still sick and jaded, began to groan heavily; and her yellow sides were darkened with sweat. As we were crowding together over a lower intervening hill, I heard Reynal and Raymond shouting to me from the left; and looking in that direction, I saw them riding away behind a party of about twenty mean-looking Indians. These were the relatives of Reynal’s squaw Margot, who, not wishing to take part in the general hunt, were riding toward a distant hollow, where they could discern a small band of buffalo which they meant to appropriate to themselves. I answered to the call by ordering Raymond to turn back and follow me. He reluctantly obeyed, though Reynal, who had relied on his assistance in skinning, cutting up, and carrying to camp the buffalo that he and his party should kill, loudly protested and declared that we should see no sport if we went with the rest of the Indians. Followed by Raymond I pursued the main body of hunters, while Reynal in a great rage whipped his horse over the hill after his ragamuffin relatives. The Indians, still about a hundred in number, rode in a dense body at some distance in advance. They galloped forward, and a cloud of dust was flying in the wind behind them. I could not overtake them until they had stopped on the side of the hill where the scouts were standing. Here, each hunter sprang in haste from the tired animal which he had ridden, and leaped upon the fresh horse that he had brought with him. There was not a saddle or a bridle in the whole party. A piece of buffalo robe girthed over the horse’s back served in the place of the one, and a cord of twisted hair lashed firmly round his lower jaw answered for the other. Eagle feathers were dangling from every mane and tail, as insignia of courage and speed. As for the rider, he wore no other clothing than a light cincture at his waist, and a pair of moccasins. He had a heavy whip, with a handle of solid elk-horn, and a lash of knotted bull-hide, fastened to his wrist by an ornamental band. His bow was in his hand, and his quiver of otter or panther skin hung at his shoulder. Thus equipped, some thirty of the hunters galloped away toward the left, in order to make a circuit under cover of the hills, that the buffalo might be assailed on both sides at once. The rest impatiently waited until time enough had elapsed for their companions to reach the required position. Then riding upward in a body, we gained the ridge of the hill, and for the first time came in sight of the buffalo on the plain beyond.

Meanwhile, scouts moved ahead of the group; and now we started to see them on the ridge of the hills, waving their robes to signal that buffalo were in sight. However, these turned out to be nothing more than a few old stray bulls, grazing on the nearby plains, who would glance at our group for a moment and then clumsily run off. Eventually, we noticed several scouts signaling us at once; no longer waving their robes boldly from the hilltop, but standing lower down, where they couldn’t be seen from the plains beyond. It was clear that they had found something worth pursuing. The excited Indians urged their tired horses on even faster than before. Pauline, still sick and worn out, began to moan heavily; and her sides were soaked with sweat. As we huddled together over a lower hill in between, I heard Reynal and Raymond shouting for me from the left; and looking in that direction, I saw them riding off behind a group of about twenty shabby-looking Indians. These were Reynal’s in-laws, related to his wife Margot, who, not wanting to join the main hunt, were heading toward a distant hollow where they had spotted a small herd of buffalo they intended to claim for themselves. I responded to their call by telling Raymond to turn back and follow me. He complied reluctantly, while Reynal, who had counted on his help skinning, cutting up, and hauling back to camp the buffalo they were supposed to kill, loudly objected and insisted we wouldn’t see any action if we stuck with the other Indians. Following Raymond, I went after the main group of hunters, while Reynal, furious, rode after his ragtag relatives. The Indians, still around a hundred strong, rode together at a distance ahead of us. They charged forward, kicking up a cloud of dust behind them. I couldn’t catch up until they had stopped on the side of the hill where the scouts were positioned. There, each hunter quickly jumped off the tired horse he had ridden and leaped onto a fresh one he had brought with him. There wasn’t a saddle or bridle among them. A piece of buffalo robe strapped over the horse's back served as a saddle, and a cord of twisted hair tightly bound around the lower jaw acted as the bridle. Eagle feathers hung from every mane and tail, symbols of bravery and speed. As for the rider, he wore nothing but a light belt around his waist and a pair of moccasins. He carried a heavy whip with a solid elk-horn handle and a knotted bull-hide lash, secured to his wrist with a decorative band. His bow was in his hand, and his quiver made of otter or panther skin hung at his shoulder. Equipped this way, around thirty of the hunters rode off to the left, planning a circuit under the cover of the hills so they could attack the buffalo from both sides at once. The rest of us waited impatiently until enough time had passed for our companions to get into position. Then riding together, we climbed up to the ridge of the hill, and for the first time, we saw the buffalo on the plain beyond.

They were a band of cows, four or five hundred in number, who were crowded together near the bank of a wide stream that was soaking across the sand-beds of the valley. This was a large circular basin, sun-scorched and broken, scantily covered with herbage and encompassed with high barren hills, from an opening in which we could see our allies galloping out upon the plain. The wind blew from that direction. The buffalo were aware of their approach, and had begun to move, though very slowly and in a compact mass. I have no further recollection of seeing the game until we were in the midst of them, for as we descended the hill other objects engrossed my attention. Numerous old bulls were scattered over the plain, and ungallantly deserting their charge at our approach, began to wade and plunge through the treacherous quick-sands or the stream, and gallop away toward the hills. One old veteran was struggling behind all the rest with one of his forelegs, which had been broken by some accident, dangling about uselessly at his side. His appearance, as he went shambling along on three legs, was so ludicrous that I could not help pausing for a moment to look at him. As I came near, he would try to rush upon me, nearly throwing himself down at every awkward attempt. Looking up, I saw the whole body of Indians full a hundred yards in advance. I lashed Pauline in pursuit and reached them just in time, for as we mingled among them, each hunter, as if by a common impulse, violently struck his horse, each horse sprang forward convulsively, and scattering in the charge in order to assail the entire herd at once, we all rushed headlong upon the buffalo. We were among them in an instant. Amid the trampling and the yells I could see their dark figures running hither and thither through clouds of dust, and the horsemen darting in pursuit. While we were charging on one side, our companions had attacked the bewildered and panic-stricken herd on the other. The uproar and confusion lasted but for a moment. The dust cleared away, and the buffalo could be seen scattering as from a common center, flying over the plain singly, or in long files and small compact bodies, while behind each followed the Indians, lashing their horses to furious speed, forcing them close upon their prey, and yelling as they launched arrow after arrow into their sides. The large black carcasses were strewn thickly over the ground. Here and there wounded buffalo were standing, their bleeding sides feathered with arrows; and as I rode past them their eyes would glare, they would bristle like gigantic cats, and feebly attempt to rush up and gore my horse.

They were a herd of cows, four or five hundred strong, crowded together near the edge of a wide stream that was soaking into the sandy beds of the valley. This was a large circular basin, scorched by the sun and rugged, only sparsely covered with grass and surrounded by high barren hills, from which we could see our allies galloping out onto the plain. The wind was blowing from that direction. The buffalo sensed their approach and started to move, albeit very slowly and in a tightly packed group. I don’t remember seeing the game again until we were right in the middle of them, because as we went down the hill, my attention was diverted by other things. Numerous old bulls were scattered across the plain, and, ungraciously abandoning their charge at our arrival, began to wade through the treacherous quicksand or the stream, galloping away toward the hills. One old veteran was struggling at the back with one of his forelegs, which had been broken in an accident, dangling uselessly by his side. His awkward attempt to walk on three legs was so funny that I couldn’t help but pause for a moment to watch him. As I got closer, he tried to charge at me, nearly stumbling with each clumsy move. Looking up, I spotted the whole group of Indians a hundred yards ahead. I spurred Pauline into action and reached them just in time, because as we mixed in with them, each hunter, almost instinctively, struck his horse. Each horse jumped forward violently, scattering in the charge to attack the entire herd simultaneously, and we all rushed headlong at the buffalo. We were among them in an instant. Amid the chaos and shouting, I could see their dark shapes darting around through clouds of dust, while the horsemen chased after them. While we charged from one side, our companions hit the confused and panicked herd from the other. The noise and turmoil lasted only a moment. The dust settled, and the buffalo were seen scattering from a central point, fleeing across the plain - some alone, others in long lines or small tight groups - while behind them, the Indians urged their horses into wild speeds, forcing them close to their prey, and yelling as they sent arrow after arrow into their sides. The large black carcasses were spread thickly across the ground. Here and there wounded buffalo stood, their bleeding sides covered in arrows; and as I rode past, their eyes would glare at me, bristling like giant cats, and they would weakly try to charge and gore my horse.

I left camp that morning with a philosophic resolution. Neither I nor my horse were at that time fit for such sport, and I had determined to remain a quiet spectator; but amid the rush of horses and buffalo, the uproar and the dust, I found it impossible to sit still; and as four or five buffalo ran past me in a line, I drove Pauline in pursuit. We went plunging close at their heels through the water and the quick-sands, and clambering the bank, chased them through the wild-sage bushes that covered the rising ground beyond. But neither her native spirit nor the blows of the knotted bull-hide could supply the place of poor Pauline’s exhausted strength. We could not gain an inch upon the poor fugitives. At last, however, they came full upon a ravine too wide to leap over; and as this compelled them to turn abruptly to the left, I contrived to get within ten or twelve yards of the hindmost. At this she faced about, bristled angrily, and made a show of charging. I shot at her with a large holster pistol, and hit her somewhere in the neck. Down she tumbled into the ravine, whither her companions had descended before her. I saw their dark backs appearing and disappearing as they galloped along the bottom; then, one by one, they came scrambling out on the other side and ran off as before, the wounded animal following with unabated speed.

I left camp that morning with a thoughtful mindset. Neither I nor my horse were really ready for such excitement, and I had decided to just watch quietly. But with the chaos of horses and buffalo, the noise, and the dust all around, I found it impossible to stay still. When four or five buffalo ran past me in a line, I urged Pauline to chase after them. We charged close behind through the water and quicksand, and after climbing the bank, we chased them through the wild sage bushes that covered the rising ground beyond. But neither her natural spirit nor the hits from the knotted bull-hide could make up for poor Pauline’s tiredness. We couldn't gain any ground on the fleeing buffalo. Finally, they reached a ravine that was too wide to jump over, which forced them to turn sharply to the left. I managed to close in to within ten or twelve yards of the last one. At that moment, she turned around, bristled with anger, and seemed ready to charge. I shot at her with a large holster pistol and hit her somewhere in the neck. She tumbled down into the ravine, where her companions had already gone. I saw their dark backs rising and falling as they galloped along the bottom. Then, one by one, they scrambled out on the other side and took off again, the wounded buffalo following just as fast.

Turning back, I saw Raymond coming on his black mule to meet me; and as we rode over the field together, we counted dozens of carcasses lying on the plain, in the ravines and on the sandy bed of the stream. Far away in the distance, horses and buffalo were still scouring along, with little clouds of dust rising behind them; and over the sides of the hills we could see long files of the frightened animals rapidly ascending. The hunters began to return. The boys, who had held the horses behind the hill, made their appearance, and the work of flaying and cutting up began in earnest all over the field. I noticed my host Kongra-Tonga beyond the stream, just alighting by the side of a cow which he had killed. Riding up to him I found him in the act of drawing out an arrow, which, with the exception of the notch at the end, had entirely disappeared in the animal. I asked him to give it to me, and I still retain it as a proof, though by no means the most striking one that could be offered, of the force and dexterity with which the Indians discharge their arrows.

Turning around, I saw Raymond approaching me on his black mule, and as we rode across the field together, we counted dozens of carcasses scattered across the plain, in the ravines, and in the sandy bed of the stream. Far away in the distance, horses and buffalo were still running, with little clouds of dust rising behind them; and over the hills, we could see long lines of the scared animals quickly climbing. The hunters started to come back. The boys who had held the horses behind the hill showed up, and the work of skinning and cutting up began in earnest all over the field. I spotted my host Kongra-Tonga beyond the stream, just landing next to a cow he had killed. Riding up to him, I found him in the process of pulling out an arrow, which, except for the notch at the end, had completely vanished into the animal. I asked him to give it to me, and I still keep it as evidence, though it's not the most impressive one that could be shown, of the power and skill with which the Indians shoot their arrows.

The hides and meat were piled upon the horses, and the hunters began to leave the ground. Raymond and I, too, getting tired of the scene, set out for the village, riding straight across the intervening desert. There was no path, and as far as I could see, no landmarks sufficient to guide us; but Raymond seemed to have an instinctive perception of the point on the horizon toward which we ought to direct our course. Antelope were bounding on all sides, and as is always the case in the presence of buffalo, they seemed to have lost their natural shyness and timidity. Bands of them would run lightly up the rocky declivities, and stand gazing down upon us from the summit. At length we could distinguish the tall white rocks and the old pine trees that, as we well remembered, were just above the site of the encampment. Still, we could see nothing of the village itself until, ascending a grassy hill, we found the circle of lodges, dingy with storms and smoke, standing on the plain at our very feet.

The hides and meat were stacked on the horses, and the hunters started to leave the area. Raymond and I, also growing tired of the scene, headed towards the village, riding straight across the open desert. There was no path, and as far as I could see, no landmarks to guide us; but Raymond seemed to instinctively know where we should be heading on the horizon. Antelope were bounding around us, and as is often the case when buffalo are nearby, they seemed to have lost their usual shyness and fear. Groups of them would hop up the rocky slopes, stopping to watch us from the top. Finally, we spotted the tall white rocks and the old pine trees that we remembered were just above where the camp was set up. Still, we couldn't see the village itself until we climbed a grassy hill, where we found the circle of lodges, dirty from storms and smoke, right there on the plain below us.

I entered the lodge of my host. His squaw instantly brought me food and water, and spread a buffalo robe for me to lie upon; and being much fatigued, I lay down and fell asleep. In about an hour the entrance of Kongra-Tonga, with his arms smeared with blood to the elbows, awoke me. He sat down in his usual seat on the left side of the lodge. His squaw gave him a vessel of water for washing, set before him a bowl of boiled meat, and as he was eating pulled off his bloody moccasins and placed fresh ones on his feet; then outstretching his limbs, my host composed himself to sleep.

I entered my host's lodge. His wife quickly brought me food and water and spread a buffalo robe for me to lie on. Feeling very tired, I lay down and fell asleep. About an hour later, Kongra-Tonga walked in with his arms covered in blood up to the elbows and woke me up. He sat down in his usual spot on the left side of the lodge. His wife handed him a bowl of water to wash his hands, set down a bowl of boiled meat, and while he was eating, she took off his bloody moccasins and put fresh ones on his feet. Then, stretching out his limbs, my host settled down to sleep.

And now the hunters, two or three at a time, began to come rapidly in, and each, consigning his horses to the squaws, entered his lodge with the air of a man whose day’s work was done. The squaws flung down the load from the burdened horses, and vast piles of meat and hides were soon accumulated before every lodge. By this time it was darkening fast, and the whole village was illumined by the glare of fires blazing all around. All the squaws and children were gathered about the piles of meat, exploring them in search of the daintiest portions. Some of these they roasted on sticks before the fires, but often they dispensed with this superfluous operation. Late into the night the fires were still glowing upon the groups of feasters engaged in this savage banquet around them.

And now the hunters, two or three at a time, started coming in quickly, each handing their horses over to the women and entering their lodge as if their day’s work was finished. The women unloaded the heavily loaded horses, and soon there were huge piles of meat and hides in front of every lodge. By this time, it was getting dark, and the whole village was lit up by the bright fires blazing all around. All the women and children gathered around the piles of meat, searching for the best pieces. Some of them roasted these over sticks in front of the fires, but often they skipped that step. Late into the night, the fires still glowed around the groups of eaters enjoying this wild feast.

Several hunters sat down by the fire in Kongra-Tonga’s lodge to talk over the day’s exploits. Among the rest, Mene-Seela came in. Though he must have seen full eighty winters, he had taken an active share in the day’s sport. He boasted that he had killed two cows that morning, and would have killed a third if the dust had not blinded him so that he had to drop his bow and arrows and press both hands against his eyes to stop the pain. The firelight fell upon his wrinkled face and shriveled figure as he sat telling his story with such inimitable gesticulation that every man in the lodge broke into a laugh.

Several hunters sat by the fire in Kongra-Tonga’s lodge, talking about the day's adventures. Among them was Mene-Seela. Even though he must have seen almost eighty winters, he actively participated in the day's activities. He proudly claimed he had killed two cows that morning and would have gotten a third if the dust hadn't blinded him, forcing him to drop his bow and arrows and press both hands against his eyes to relieve the pain. The firelight illuminated his wrinkled face and shrunken figure as he shared his story with such unique gestures that every man in the lodge burst into laughter.

Old Mene-Seela was one of the few Indians in the village with whom I would have trusted myself alone without suspicion, and the only one from whom I would have received a gift or a service without the certainty that it proceeded from an interested motive. He was a great friend to the whites. He liked to be in their society, and was very vain of the favors he had received from them. He told me one afternoon, as we were sitting together in his son’s lodge, that he considered the beaver and the whites the wisest people on earth; indeed, he was convinced they were the same; and an incident which had happened to him long before had assured him of this. So he began the following story, and as the pipe passed in turn to him, Reynal availed himself of these interruptions to translate what had preceded. But the old man accompanied his words with such admirable pantomime that translation was hardly necessary.

Old Mene-Seela was one of the few Indians in the village I would have trusted to be alone with without any suspicion, and the only one from whom I would have accepted a gift or a favor without thinking it had some hidden agenda. He was a good friend to white people. He enjoyed being in their company and took great pride in the favors he had received from them. One afternoon, while we were sitting together in his son’s lodge, he told me that he believed beavers and white people were the wisest beings on earth; in fact, he was convinced they were the same. An experience from long ago had convinced him of this. So he started to tell the following story, and as the pipe was passed to him, Reynal took the opportunity to translate the previous conversation. But the old man added such impressive gestures that translation was hardly needed.

He said that when he was very young, and had never yet seen a white man, he and three or four of his companions were out on a beaver hunt, and he crawled into a large beaver lodge, to examine what was there. Sometimes he was creeping on his hands and knees, sometimes he was obliged to swim, and sometimes to lie flat on his face and drag himself along. In this way he crawled a great distance underground. It was very dark, cold and close, so that at last he was almost suffocated, and fell into a swoon. When he began to recover, he could just distinguish the voices of his companions outside, who had given him up for lost, and were singing his death song. At first he could see nothing, but soon he discerned something white before him, and at length plainly distinguished three people, entirely white; one man and two women, sitting at the edge of a black pool of water. He became alarmed and thought it high time to retreat. Having succeeded, after great trouble, in reaching daylight again, he went straight to the spot directly above the pool of water where he had seen the three mysterious beings. Here he beat a hole with his war club in the ground, and sat down to watch. In a moment the nose of an old male beaver appeared at the opening. Mene-Seela instantly seized him and dragged him up, when two other beavers, both females, thrust out their heads, and these he served in the same way. “These,” continued the old man, “must have been the three white people whom I saw sitting at the edge of the water.”

He said that when he was very young and had never seen a white man, he and three or four of his friends were out on a beaver hunt. He crawled into a large beaver lodge to see what was inside. Sometimes he was crawling on his hands and knees, sometimes he had to swim, and other times he had to lie flat on his face and drag himself along. In this way, he crawled a long distance underground. It was very dark, cold, and cramped, so he nearly suffocated and fainted. When he started to recover, he could barely hear the voices of his friends outside, who thought he was lost and were singing his death song. At first, he couldn’t see anything, but soon he noticed something white in front of him and eventually clearly saw three people, completely white—one man and two women—sitting at the edge of a black pool of water. He got scared and thought it was time to back out. After a lot of effort, he finally made it back to the surface and went straight to the spot above the pool of water where he had seen the three mysterious figures. He used his war club to make a hole in the ground and sat down to watch. In a moment, the nose of an old male beaver appeared at the opening. Mene-Seela immediately grabbed it and pulled it up, and then two other beavers, both females, poked their heads out, and he caught those in the same way. “These,” the old man continued, “must have been the three white people I saw sitting at the edge of the water.”

Mene-Seela was the grand depository of the legends and traditions of the village. I succeeded, however, in getting from him only a few fragments. Like all Indians, he was excessively superstitious, and continually saw some reason for withholding his stories. “It is a bad thing,” he would say, “to tell the tales in summer. Stay with us till next winter, and I will tell you everything I know; but now our war parties are going out, and our young men will be killed if I sit down to tell stories before the frost begins.”

Mene-Seela was the main keeper of the village's legends and traditions. However, I only managed to get a few bits and pieces from him. Like many Indians, he was very superstitious and often found excuses to hold back his stories. “It's not good,” he would say, “to share the tales in summer. Stay with us until next winter, and I'll tell you everything I know; but right now our war parties are heading out, and our young men might get killed if I sit down to tell stories before the frost sets in.”

But to leave this digression. We remained encamped on this spot five days, during three of which the hunters were at work incessantly, and immense quantities of meat and hides were brought in. Great alarm, however, prevailed in the village. All were on the alert. The young men were ranging through the country as scouts, and the old men paid careful attention to omens and prodigies, and especially to their dreams. In order to convey to the enemy (who, if they were in the neighborhood, must inevitably have known of our presence) the impression that we were constantly on the watch, piles of sticks and stones were erected on all the surrounding hills, in such a manner as to appear at a distance like sentinels. Often, even to this hour, that scene will rise before my mind like a visible reality: the tall white rocks; the old pine trees on their summits; the sandy stream that ran along their bases and half encircled the village; and the wild-sage bushes, with their dull green hue and their medicinal odor, that covered all the neighboring declivities. Hour after hour the squaws would pass and repass with their vessels of water between the stream and the lodges. For the most part no one was to be seen in the camp but women and children, two or three super-annuated old men, and a few lazy and worthless young ones. These, together with the dogs, now grown fat and good-natured with the abundance in the camp, were its only tenants. Still it presented a busy and bustling scene. In all quarters the meat, hung on cords of hide, was drying in the sun, and around the lodges the squaws, young and old, were laboring on the fresh hides that were stretched upon the ground, scraping the hair from one side and the still adhering flesh from the other, and rubbing into them the brains of the buffalo, in order to render them soft and pliant.

But to get back on track. We stayed set up at this spot for five days, three of which the hunters were hard at work, bringing in huge amounts of meat and hides. However, there was a lot of worry in the village. Everyone was on high alert. The young men were scouting the area, while the older men closely watched for signs and omens, especially from their dreams. To make the enemy (who, if they were nearby, must have known we were there) think we were always on guard, we built piles of sticks and stones on all the surrounding hills to look like sentinels from a distance. Even now, that scene comes to my mind like it's real: the tall white rocks, the old pine trees at the top, the sandy stream flowing at their base and partially surrounding the village, and the wild sage bushes with their dull green color and medicinal scent covering the nearby slopes. Hour after hour, the women would go back and forth with their water vessels between the stream and the lodges. Mostly, there were only women, children, a couple of very old men, and a few lazy young ones in the camp. These, along with the dogs that had grown fat and friendly from the abundance in the camp, were the only ones there. Yet, it still seemed busy and lively. In every direction, meat hung on hide cords drying in the sun, and around the lodges, women of all ages were working on fresh hides laid out on the ground, scraping one side of the hair and the still-attached flesh from the other, and rubbing buffalo brains into them to make them soft and flexible.

In mercy to myself and my horse, I never went out with the hunters after the first day. Of late, however, I had been gaining strength rapidly, as was always the case upon every respite of my disorder. I was soon able to walk with ease. Raymond and I would go out upon the neighboring prairies to shoot antelope, or sometimes to assail straggling buffalo, on foot, an attempt in which we met with rather indifferent success. To kill a bull with a rifle-ball is a difficult art, in the secret of which I was as yet very imperfectly initiated. As I came out of Kongra-Tonga’s lodge one morning, Reynal called to me from the opposite side of the village, and asked me over to breakfast. The breakfast was a substantial one. It consisted of the rich, juicy hump-ribs of a fat cow; a repast absolutely unrivaled. It was roasting before the fire, impaled upon a stout stick, which Reynal took up and planted in the ground before his lodge; when he, with Raymond and myself, taking our seats around it, unsheathed our knives and assailed it with good will. It spite of all medical experience, this solid fare, without bread or salt, seemed to agree with me admirably.

To be kind to myself and my horse, I never joined the hunters after the first day. Recently, though, I had been getting stronger quickly, as I always did after any break from my illness. I could soon walk with ease. Raymond and I would head out to the nearby prairies to shoot antelope, or occasionally try to hunt down wandering buffalo on foot, which didn’t usually go well for us. It’s quite a challenge to take down a bull with a rifle shot, and I was still pretty new to that skill. One morning, as I walked out of Kongra-Tonga’s lodge, Reynal called to me from the other side of the village and invited me over for breakfast. The breakfast was hearty. It consisted of the rich, juicy hump-ribs from a fat cow—an unmatched meal. It was roasting over the fire, skewered on a strong stick, which Reynal set up in front of his lodge. Once he, Raymond, and I gathered around it, we pulled out our knives and dug in enthusiastically. Despite all medical advice, this solid food, without any bread or salt, seemed to sit well with me.

“We shall have strangers here before night,” said Reynal.

“We'll have visitors here before night,” said Reynal.

“How do you know that?” I asked.

“How do you know that?” I asked.

“I dreamed so. I am as good at dreaming as an Indian. There is the Hail-Storm; he dreamed the same thing, and he and his crony, the Rabbit, have gone out on discovery.”

“I dreamed that too. I’m as good at dreaming as an Indian. There’s the Hail-Storm; he had the same dream, and he and his buddy, the Rabbit, have gone out exploring.”

I laughed at Reynal for his credulity, went over to my host’s lodge, took down my rifle, walked out a mile or two on the prairie, saw an old bull standing alone, crawled up a ravine, shot him and saw him escape. Then, quite exhausted and rather ill-humored, I walked back to the village. By a strange coincidence, Reynal’s prediction had been verified; for the first persons whom I saw were the two trappers, Rouleau and Saraphin, coming to meet me. These men, as the reader may possibly recollect, had left our party about a fortnight before. They had been trapping for a while among the Black Hills, and were now on their way to the Rocky Mountains, intending in a day or two to set out for the neighboring Medicine Bow. They were not the most elegant or refined of companions, yet they made a very welcome addition to the limited society of the village. For the rest of that day we lay smoking and talking in Reynal’s lodge. This indeed was no better than a little hut, made of hides stretched on poles, and entirely open in front. It was well carpeted with soft buffalo robes, and here we remained, sheltered from the sun, surrounded by various domestic utensils of Madame Margot’s household. All was quiet in the village. Though the hunters had not gone out that day, they lay sleeping in their lodges, and most of the women were silently engaged in their heavy tasks. A few young men were playing a lazy game of ball in the center of the village; and when they became tired, some girls supplied their place with a more boisterous sport. At a little distance, among the lodges, some children and half-grown squaws were playfully tossing up one of their number in a buffalo robe, an exact counterpart of the ancient pastime from which Sancho Panza suffered so much. Farther out on the prairie, a host of little naked boys were roaming about, engaged in various rough games, or pursuing birds and ground-squirrels with their bows and arrows; and woe to the unhappy little animals that fell into their merciless, torture-loving hands! A squaw from the next lodge, a notable active housewife named Weah Washtay, or the Good Woman, brought us a large bowl of wasna, and went into an ecstasy of delight when I presented her with a green glass ring, such as I usually wore with a view to similar occasions.

I chuckled at Reynal for being so gullible, went over to my host's lodge, grabbed my rifle, and walked a mile or two on the prairie. I spotted an old bull standing alone, crept up a ravine, shot it, and then watched it escape. Exhausted and a bit grumpy, I made my way back to the village. By a strange twist of fate, Reynal's prediction turned out to be true; the first people I saw were the two trappers, Rouleau and Saraphin, coming to meet me. You might remember that these guys had left our group about two weeks earlier. They had been trapping for a while in the Black Hills and were now headed to the Rocky Mountains, planning to set out for the nearby Medicine Bow in a day or two. They weren't the most sophisticated or polished companions, but they were a welcome addition to the small community in the village. For the rest of the day, we lounged, smoking and chatting in Reynal's lodge. It was a simple hut, made of hides stretched over poles and completely open in front. The floor was covered with soft buffalo robes, and we stayed there, sheltered from the sun, surrounded by various household items belonging to Madame Margot. The village was calm. Although the hunters hadn't gone out that day, they were resting in their lodges, and most of the women were quietly going about their heavy chores. A few young men were playing a laid-back game of ball in the village center, and when they grew tired, some girls took their place with a livelier game. Nearby, among the lodges, some children and young girls were playfully tossing one of their friends up in a buffalo robe, a version of an old game that caused Sancho Panza quite a bit of trouble. Farther out on the prairie, a group of little naked boys were running around, engaged in various rough games, or chasing birds and ground squirrels with their bows and arrows; and woe to any unfortunate little animals that fell into their merciless, torment-loving hands! A woman from the next lodge, an especially active housewife named Weah Washtay, or the Good Woman, brought us a large bowl of wasna, and she was overjoyed when I gave her a green glass ring, which I often wore for occasions like this.

The sun went down and half the sky was growing fiery red, reflected on the little stream as it wound away among the sagebushes. Some young men left the village, and soon returned, driving in before them all the horses, hundreds in number, and of every size, age, and color. The hunters came out, and each securing those that belonged to him, examined their condition, and tied them fast by long cords to stakes driven in front of his lodge. It was half an hour before the bustle subsided and tranquillity was restored again. By this time it was nearly dark. Kettles were hung over the blazing fires, around which the squaws were gathered with their children, laughing and talking merrily. A circle of a different kind was formed in the center of the village. This was composed of the old men and warriors of repute, who with their white buffalo robes drawn close around their shoulders, sat together, and as the pipe passed from hand to hand, their conversation had not a particle of the gravity and reserve usually ascribed to Indians. I sat down with them as usual. I had in my hand half a dozen squibs and serpents, which I had made one day when encamped upon Laramie Creek, out of gunpowder and charcoal, and the leaves of “Fremont’s Expedition,” rolled round a stout lead pencil. I waited till I contrived to get hold of the large piece of burning BOIS DE VACHE which the Indians kept by them on the ground for lighting their pipes. With this I lighted all the fireworks at once, and tossed them whizzing and sputtering into the air, over the heads of the company. They all jumped up and ran off with yelps of astonishment and consternation. After a moment or two, they ventured to come back one by one, and some of the boldest, picking up the cases of burnt paper that were scattered about, examined them with eager curiosity to discover their mysterious secret. From that time forward I enjoyed great repute as a “fire-medicine.”

The sun set, and half the sky turned a fiery red, reflecting off the small stream as it meandered through the sagebrush. Some young men left the village and soon returned, herding in hundreds of horses of every size, age, and color. The hunters came out, and each one rounded up the horses that belonged to him, checked their condition, and tied them securely with long ropes to stakes in front of his lodge. It took about half an hour for the excitement to die down and peace to settle in. By then, it was almost dark. Kettles hung over the crackling fires, where the women gathered with their children, laughing and chatting cheerfully. In the center of the village, a different kind of circle formed. This one was made up of the older men and respected warriors, who sat closely together wrapped in their white buffalo robes. As they passed the pipe from person to person, their conversation lacked the seriousness often associated with Native Americans. I joined them as usual. I had half a dozen firecrackers and snakes that I had made one day while camping by Laramie Creek, using gunpowder, charcoal, and the leaves from “Fremont’s Expedition,” rolled around a sturdy lead pencil. I waited until I managed to grab a large piece of burning BOIS DE VACHE that the Indians kept on the ground to light their pipes. With this, I ignited all the fireworks at once and tossed them whizzing and sputtering into the air above everyone. They all jumped up and ran off, yelping in surprise and fear. After a moment, they cautiously returned one by one, and some of the bravest, picking up the burnt paper casings that lay scattered, examined them with eager curiosity to uncover their secret. From that day on, I was well known as a “fire-medicine.”

The camp was filled with the low hum of cheerful voices. There were other sounds, however, of a very different kind, for from a large lodge, lighted up like a gigantic lantern by the blazing fire within, came a chorus of dismal cries and wailings, long drawn out, like the howling of wolves, and a woman, almost naked, was crouching close outside, crying violently, and gashing her legs with a knife till they were covered with blood. Just a year before, a young man belonging to this family had gone out with a war party and had been slain by the enemy, and his relatives were thus lamenting his loss. Still other sounds might be heard; loud earnest cries often repeated from amid the gloom, at a distance beyond the village. They proceeded from some young men who, being about to set out in a few days on a warlike expedition, were standing at the top of a hill, calling on the Great Spirit to aid them in their enterprise. While I was listening, Rouleau, with a laugh on his careless face, called to me and directed my attention to another quarter. In front of the lodge where Weah Washtay lived another squaw was standing, angrily scolding an old yellow dog, who lay on the ground with his nose resting between his paws, and his eyes turned sleepily up to her face, as if he were pretending to give respectful attention, but resolved to fall asleep as soon as it was all over.

The camp was filled with the low buzz of happy voices. However, there were other sounds of a very different kind, for from a large lodge, lit up like a giant lantern by the blazing fire inside, came a chorus of mournful cries and wails, long and drawn out, like the howling of wolves. A woman, nearly naked, was crouched close outside, crying uncontrollably, and cutting her legs with a knife until they were covered in blood. Just a year earlier, a young man from this family had gone out with a war party and had been killed by the enemy, and his relatives were mourning his loss. Other sounds could be heard as well; loud, earnest cries repeatedly echoed from the darkness, a distance beyond the village. These came from some young men who, about to set out on a war expedition in a few days, were standing at the top of a hill, calling on the Great Spirit to help them in their mission. While I was listening, Rouleau, with a laugh on his carefree face, called to me and pointed my attention to another scene. In front of the lodge where Weah Washtay lived, another woman was standing, angrily scolding an old yellow dog, who lay on the ground with his nose resting between his paws, eyes sleepily turned up to her face, as if pretending to listen respectfully but ready to fall asleep as soon as it was over.

“You ought to be ashamed of yourself!” said the old woman. “I have fed you well, and taken care of you ever since you were small and blind, and could only crawl about and squeal a little, instead of howling as you do now. When you grew old, I said you were a good dog. You were strong and gentle when the load was put on your back, and you never ran among the feet of the horses when we were all traveling together over the prairie. But you had a bad heart! Whenever a rabbit jumped out of the bushes, you were always the first to run after him and lead away all the other dogs behind you. You ought to have known that it was very dangerous to act so. When you had got far out on the prairie, and no one was near to help you, perhaps a wolf would jump out of the ravine; and then what could you do? You would certainly have been killed, for no dog can fight well with a load on his back. Only three days ago you ran off in that way, and turned over the bag of wooden pins with which I used to fasten up the front of the lodge. Look up there, and you will see that it is all flapping open. And now to-night you have stolen a great piece of fat meat which was roasting before the fire for my children. I tell you, you have a bad heart, and you must die!”

“You should be ashamed of yourself!” the old woman said. “I’ve taken care of you and fed you well since you were small and blind, only able to crawl around and squeak a little, instead of howling like you do now. As you grew older, I said you were a good dog. You were strong and gentle when you carried a load on your back, and you never ran among the horse’s feet when we traveled together across the prairie. But you had a bad heart! Whenever a rabbit would jump out from the bushes, you were always the first to chase after it, leading all the other dogs behind you. You should have known that acting like that was very dangerous. When you were far out on the prairie and no one was around to help, maybe a wolf would jump out of the ravine; and then what would you do? You would definitely be killed, because no dog can fight well with a load on his back. Just three days ago, you ran off like that and knocked over the bag of wooden pins I used to secure the front of the lodge. Look up there, and you’ll see it’s all flapping open. And tonight, you stole a huge piece of fat meat that was roasting by the fire for my children. I’m telling you, you have a bad heart, and you must die!”

So saying, the squaw went into the lodge, and coming out with a large stone mallet, killed the unfortunate dog at one blow. This speech is worthy of notice as illustrating a curious characteristic of the Indians: the ascribing intelligence and a power of understanding speech to the inferior animals, to whom, indeed, according to many of their traditions, they are linked in close affinity, and they even claim the honor of a lineal descent from bears, wolves, deer, or tortoises.

So saying, the woman went into the lodge, and coming out with a large stone mallet, killed the unfortunate dog in one blow. This remark deserves attention as it highlights an interesting trait of the Indigenous people: the belief that animals have intelligence and can understand human speech. According to many of their traditions, they are closely connected to these animals, and they even claim a proud lineage from bears, wolves, deer, or tortoises.

As it grew late, and the crowded population began to disappear, I too walked across the village to the lodge of my host, Kongra-Tonga. As I entered I saw him, by the flickering blaze of the fire in the center, reclining half asleep in his usual place. His couch was by no means an uncomfortable one. It consisted of soft buffalo robes laid together on the ground, and a pillow made of whitened deerskin stuffed with feathers and ornamented with beads. At his back was a light framework of poles and slender reeds, against which he could lean with ease when in a sitting posture; and at the top of it, just above his head, his bow and quiver were hanging. His squaw, a laughing, broad-faced woman, apparently had not yet completed her domestic arrangements, for she was bustling about the lodge, pulling over the utensils and the bales of dried meats that were ranged carefully round it. Unhappily, she and her partner were not the only tenants of the dwelling, for half a dozen children were scattered about, sleeping in every imaginable posture. My saddle was in its place at the head of the lodge and a buffalo robe was spread on the ground before it. Wrapping myself in my blanket I lay down, but had I not been extremely fatigued the noise in the next lodge would have prevented my sleeping. There was the monotonous thumping of the Indian drum, mixed with occasional sharp yells, and a chorus chanted by twenty voices. A grand scene of gambling was going forward with all the appropriate formalities. The players were staking on the chance issue of the game their ornaments, their horses, and as the excitement rose, their garments, and even their weapons, for desperate gambling is not confined to the hells of Paris. The men of the plains and the forests no less resort to it as a violent but grateful relief to the tedious monotony of their lives, which alternate between fierce excitement and listless inaction. I fell asleep with the dull notes of the drum still sounding on my ear, but these furious orgies lasted without intermission till daylight. I was soon awakened by one of the children crawling over me, while another larger one was tugging at my blanket and nestling himself in a very disagreeable proximity. I immediately repelled these advances by punching the heads of these miniature savages with a short stick which I always kept by me for the purpose; and as sleeping half the day and eating much more than is good for them makes them extremely restless, this operation usually had to be repeated four or five times in the course of the night. My host himself was the author of another most formidable annoyance. All these Indians, and he among the rest, think themselves bound to the constant performance of certain acts as the condition on which their success in life depends, whether in war, love, hunting, or any other employment. These “medicines,” as they are called in that country, which are usually communicated in dreams, are often absurd enough. Some Indians will strike the butt of the pipe against the ground every time they smoke; others will insist that everything they say shall be interpreted by contraries; and Shaw once met an old man who conceived that all would be lost unless he compelled every white man he met to drink a bowl of cold water. My host was particularly unfortunate in his allotment. The Great Spirit had told him in a dream that he must sing a certain song in the middle of every night; and regularly at about twelve o’clock his dismal monotonous chanting would awaken me, and I would see him seated bolt upright on his couch, going through his dolorous performances with a most business-like air. There were other voices of the night still more inharmonious. Twice or thrice, between sunset and dawn, all the dogs in the village, and there were hundreds of them, would bay and yelp in chorus; a most horrible clamor, resembling no sound that I have ever heard, except perhaps the frightful howling of wolves that we used sometimes to hear long afterward when descending the Arkansas on the trail of General Kearny’s army. The canine uproar is, if possible, more discordant than that of the wolves. Heard at a distance, slowly rising on the night, it has a strange unearthly effect, and would fearfully haunt the dreams of a nervous man; but when you are sleeping in the midst of it the din is outrageous. One long loud howl from the next lodge perhaps begins it, and voice after voice takes up the sound till it passes around the whole circumference of the village, and the air is filled with confused and discordant cries, at once fierce and mournful. It lasts but for a moment and then dies away into silence.

As it got late and the crowd started to thin out, I walked across the village to my host, Kongra-Tonga's lodge. When I entered, I saw him half-asleep in his usual spot, relaxing by the flickering fire in the center. His couch wasn’t uncomfortable; it was made of soft buffalo robes spread out on the ground, and his pillow was a deerskin stuffed with feathers and decorated with beads. Behind him was a light frame of poles and slender reeds that he could lean against easily while sitting, and above his head hung his bow and quiver. His wife, a cheerful broad-faced woman, seemed not to have finished her chores yet; she was busy moving utensils and bales of dried meat that were neatly arranged around the lodge. Unfortunately, she and her partner weren’t the only ones in the dwelling, as several children were scattered around, sleeping in every possible position. My saddle was in place at the head of the lodge, and a buffalo robe was spread out on the ground in front of it. I wrapped myself in my blanket and lay down, but if I hadn’t been extremely tired, the noise from the next lodge would have kept me awake. There was the constant thumping of an Indian drum, mixed with sharp yells and a chorus sung by twenty voices. A big gambling scene was happening, complete with all the formalities. The players were wagering their jewelry, horses, and as the excitement grew, even their clothes and weapons, because desperate gambling isn’t limited to the gambling halls of Paris. The men of the plains and forests also turn to it as a wild yet welcome escape from the dull routine of their lives, which swing between intense excitement and mind-numbing idleness. I fell asleep to the dull beat of the drum still ringing in my ears, but these wild parties continued non-stop until dawn. I was soon woken up by one of the kids crawling over me while another, a bigger one, was tugging at my blanket and snuggling way too close for comfort. I quickly pushed back against them, using a short stick I kept nearby for that purpose; since sleeping half the day and eating way too much makes them very restless, I often had to repeat this four or five times during the night. My host himself was responsible for another major annoyance. All these Indians, including him, believe they must perform certain rituals regularly for success in life, whether in war, love, hunting, or anything else. These “medicines,” as they call them, are usually revealed in dreams and can be quite bizarre. Some Indians will hit the base of their pipe against the ground every time they smoke; others think everything they say should be interpreted in reverse; and Shaw once met an old man who believed everything would be lost unless he made every white man he encountered drink a bowl of cold water. My host was particularly unlucky with his ritual. The Great Spirit had told him in a dream that he must sing a particular song every night, and right around midnight, his dreary, repetitive singing would wake me up, making me see him sitting upright on his couch, going through his tedious performance with a serious expression. There were also other nighttime voices that were even less pleasant. A few times between sunset and dawn, all the dogs in the village (and there were hundreds) would howl and bark in unison—a truly horrible racket, sounding unlike anything I've heard, except maybe the terrifying howls of wolves that we later heard while following General Kearny's army down the Arkansas. The sound from the dogs is even more jarring than that of the wolves. When heard from a distance, rising slowly in the night, it creates a strange, eerie effect that could haunt the dreams of a nervous person. But when you’re trying to sleep right in the middle of it, the noise is unbearable. One long, loud howl from the next lodge may kick it off, and one voice after another jumps in until it goes around the whole village, filling the air with chaotic and jarring cries, both fierce and mournful. It lasts only a moment before fading into silence.

Morning came, and Kongra-Tonga, mounting his horse, rode out with the hunters. It may not be amiss to glance at him for an instant in his domestic character of husband and father. Both he and his squaw, like most other Indians, were very fond of their children, whom they indulged to excess, and never punished, except in extreme cases when they would throw a bowl of cold water over them. Their offspring became sufficiently undutiful and disobedient under this system of education, which tends not a little to foster that wild idea of liberty and utter intolerance of restraint which lie at the very foundation of the Indian character. It would be hard to find a fonder father than Kongra-Tonga. There was one urchin in particular, rather less than two feet high, to whom he was exceedingly attached; and sometimes spreading a buffalo robe in the lodge, he would seat himself upon it, place his small favorite upright before him, and chant in a low tone some of the words used as an accompaniment to the war dance. The little fellow, who could just manage to balance himself by stretching out both arms, would lift his feet and turn slowly round and round in time to his father’s music, while my host would laugh with delight, and look smiling up into my face to see if I were admiring this precocious performance of his offspring. In his capacity of husband he was somewhat less exemplary. The squaw who lived in the lodge with him had been his partner for many years. She took good care of his children and his household concerns. He liked her well enough, and as far as I could see they never quarreled; but all his warmer affections were reserved for younger and more recent favorites. Of these he had at present only one, who lived in a lodge apart from his own. One day while in his camp he became displeased with her, pushed her out, threw after her her ornaments, dresses, and everything she had, and told her to go home to her father. Having consummated this summary divorce, for which he could show good reasons, he came back, seated himself in his usual place, and began to smoke with an air of utmost tranquillity and self-satisfaction.

Morning arrived, and Kongra-Tonga, mounting his horse, rode out with the hunters. It’s worth taking a moment to look at him as a husband and father. He and his wife, like most other Native Americans, were very fond of their children, indulging them to excess and rarely punishing them—only in extreme cases would they throw a bowl of cold water over them. Their kids became quite undisciplined under this approach, which helped fuel that wild idea of freedom and complete intolerance for restraint that lies at the core of the Native American character. It would be hard to find a more loving father than Kongra-Tonga. There was one little boy in particular, just under two feet tall, to whom he was especially attached; sometimes he would spread a buffalo robe in the lodge, sit on it, place his small favorite upright in front of him, and softly chant some of the words used in the war dance. The little guy, who could just manage to balance himself by extending both arms, would lift his feet and turn slowly in time to his father’s music, while Kongra-Tonga would laugh with delight and look up at me, eager to see if I was admiring his child’s impressive performance. As a husband, he was somewhat less upstanding. The woman living with him had been his partner for many years; she took good care of his children and household. He liked her enough, and as far as I could tell, they never fought, but all his deeper affections were saved for younger and more recent interests. Currently, he had only one such interest, who lived in a lodge separate from his own. One day, while in his camp, he became upset with her, pushed her out, tossed her ornaments, dresses, and everything she owned after her, and told her to go home to her father. After completing this abrupt divorce—something he had good reasons for—he returned, sat in his usual spot, and began to smoke, appearing completely calm and satisfied.

I was sitting in the lodge with him on that very afternoon, when I felt some curiosity to learn the history of the numerous scars that appeared on his naked body. Of some of them, however, I did not venture to inquire, for I already understood their origin. Each of his arms was marked as if deeply gashed with a knife at regular intervals, and there were other scars also, of a different character, on his back and on either breast. They were the traces of those formidable tortures which these Indians, in common with a few other tribes, inflict upon themselves at certain seasons; in part, it may be, to gain the glory of courage and endurance, but chiefly as an act of self-sacrifice to secure the favor of the Great Spirit. The scars upon the breast and back were produced by running through the flesh strong splints of wood, to which ponderous buffalo-skulls are fastened by cords of hide, and the wretch runs forward with all his strength, assisted by two companions, who take hold of each arm, until the flesh tears apart and the heavy loads are left behind. Others of Kongra-Tonga’s scars were the result of accidents; but he had many which he received in war. He was one of the most noted warriors in the village. In the course of his life he had slain as he boasted to me, fourteen men, and though, like other Indians, he was a great braggart and utterly regardless of truth, yet in this statement common report bore him out. Being much flattered by my inquiries he told me tale after tale, true or false, of his warlike exploits; and there was one among the rest illustrating the worst features of the Indian character too well for me to omit. Pointing out of the opening of the lodge toward the Medicine-Bow Mountain, not many miles distant he said that he was there a few summers ago with a war party of his young men. Here they found two Snake Indians, hunting. They shot one of them with arrows and chased the other up the side of the mountain till they surrounded him on a level place, and Kongra-Tonga himself, jumping forward among the trees, seized him by the arm. Two of his young men then ran up and held him fast while he scalped him alive. Then they built a great fire, and cutting the tendons of their captive’s wrists and feet, threw him in, and held him down with long poles until he was burnt to death. He garnished his story with a great many descriptive particulars much too revolting to mention. His features were remarkably mild and open, without the fierceness of expression common among these Indians; and as he detailed these devilish cruelties, he looked up into my face with the same air of earnest simplicity which a little child would wear in relating to its mother some anecdote of its youthful experience.

I was sitting in the lodge with him that afternoon when I got curious about the many scars on his bare body. However, there were some I didn’t feel comfortable asking about because I already knew where they came from. Both of his arms had deep cuts that looked like they were made by a knife at regular intervals, and there were other scars of different kinds on his back and chest. These were the marks of the brutal rituals that these Indians, along with a few other tribes, perform on themselves at certain times; partly to earn the honor of bravery and endurance, but mainly as a sacrifice to gain the favor of the Great Spirit. The scars on his chest and back were made by driving strong sticks of wood through his flesh, to which heavy buffalo skulls were attached with hide cords, and the poor guy would run forward with all his strength while two companions held his arms until his flesh tore apart and the heavy weights were left behind. Some of Kongra-Tonga’s scars were from accidents, but many others were from war. He was one of the village's most famous warriors. Throughout his life, he claimed to have killed fourteen men, and although, like other Indians, he was a big braggart and didn’t care much for the truth, this claim was supported by common reputation. Flattered by my questions, he regaled me with story after story, whether they were true or not, about his wartime adventures; there was one story that illustrated the darker side of the Indian character too well for me to ignore. Pointing out the lodge opening toward Medicine-Bow Mountain, not far away, he said that a few summers ago, he was there with a war party of his young men. They found two Snake Indians hunting, shot one with arrows, and chased the other up the mountain until they trapped him on a flat area. Kongra-Tonga himself leaped among the trees and grabbed him by the arm. Two of his young men then ran up and held him tightly while he scalped him alive. Afterward, they made a big fire, cut the tendons in their captive’s wrists and ankles, threw him in, and held him down with long poles until he was burnt to death. He added many graphic details that were too gruesome to repeat. His face was surprisingly gentle and open, lacking the fierce expression typical of these Indians; and as he described these horrific acts, he looked up at me with the same earnest simplicity that a little child might have when sharing an anecdote with its mother.

Old Mene-Seela’s lodge could offer another illustration of the ferocity of Indian warfare. A bright-eyed, active little boy was living there. He had belonged to a village of the Gros-Ventre Blackfeet, a small but bloody and treacherous band, in close alliance with the Arapahoes. About a year before, Kongra-Tonga and a party of warriors had found about twenty lodges of these Indians upon the plains a little to the eastward of our present camp; and surrounding them in the night, they butchered men, women, and children without mercy, preserving only this little boy alive. He was adopted into the old man’s family, and was now fast becoming identified with the Ogallalla children, among whom he mingled on equal terms. There was also a Crow warrior in the village, a man of gigantic stature and most symmetrical proportions. Having been taken prisoner many years before and adopted by a squaw in place of a son whom she had lost, he had forgotten his old national antipathies, and was now both in act and inclination an Ogallalla.

Old Mene-Seela’s lodge could provide another example of the brutal nature of Indian warfare. A bright-eyed, lively little boy lived there. He had been part of a village of the Gros-Ventre Blackfeet, a small but fierce and deceitful group closely allied with the Arapahoes. About a year earlier, Kongra-Tonga and a group of warriors had discovered about twenty lodges of these Indians on the plains just east of our current camp; they surrounded them at night and mercilessly killed men, women, and children, sparing only this little boy. He was adopted into the old man’s family and was now quickly becoming part of the Ogallalla children, playing with them on equal footing. There was also a Crow warrior in the village, a man of massive size and impressive build. He had been captured many years earlier and adopted by a woman who had lost her son. He had forgotten his old national grudges and had now become both in behavior and spirit an Ogallalla.

It will be remembered that the scheme of the grand warlike combination against the Snake and Crow Indians originated in this village; and though this plan had fallen to the ground, the embers of the martial ardor continued to glow brightly. Eleven young men had prepared themselves to go out against the enemy. The fourth day of our stay in this camp was fixed upon for their departure. At the head of this party was a well-built active little Indian, called the White Shield, whom I had always noticed for the great neatness of his dress and appearance. His lodge too, though not a large one, was the best in the village, his squaw was one of the prettiest girls, and altogether his dwelling presented a complete model of an Ogallalla domestic establishment. I was often a visitor there, for the White Shield being rather partial to white men, used to invite me to continual feasts at all hours of the day. Once when the substantial part of the entertainment was concluded, and he and I were seated cross-legged on a buffalo robe smoking together very amicably, he took down his warlike equipments, which were hanging around the lodge, and displayed them with great pride and self-importance. Among the rest was a most superb headdress of feathers. Taking this from its case, he put it on and stood before me, as if conscious of the gallant air which it gave to his dark face and his vigorous, graceful figure. He told me that upon it were the feathers of three war-eagles, equal in value to the same number of good horses. He took up also a shield gayly painted and hung with feathers. The effect of these barbaric ornaments was admirable, for they were arranged with no little skill and taste. His quiver was made of the spotted skin of a small panther, such as are common among the Black Hills, from which the tail and distended claws were still allowed to hang. The White Shield concluded his entertainment in a manner characteristic of an Indian. He begged of me a little powder and ball, for he had a gun as well as bow and arrows; but this I was obliged to refuse, because I had scarcely enough for my own use. Making him, however, a parting present of a paper of vermilion, I left him apparently quite contented.

It will be remembered that the plan for the large military campaign against the Snake and Crow Indians started in this village; and even though that plan had fallen apart, the sparks of warrior spirit stayed strong. Eleven young men had gotten ready to go out against the enemy. The fourth day of our stay in this camp was chosen for their departure. Leading this group was a well-built, active young Indian called White Shield, who I always noticed for his neat dress and appearance. His lodge, although small, was the best in the village, his wife was one of the prettiest girls, and altogether his home was a perfect example of an Ogallalla household. I often visited there because White Shield liked white men and invited me to many feasts throughout the day. Once, after the main part of the meal was over, we sat cross-legged on a buffalo robe, smoking together in a friendly way. He took down his war gear, which was hanging around the lodge, and proudly showed it off. Among other items was a stunning headdress made of feathers. He took this from its case, put it on, and stood before me, clearly aware of how gallantly it suited his dark face and strong, graceful figure. He told me that it had the feathers of three war eagles, worth as much as three good horses. He also picked up a brightly painted shield adorned with feathers. The impact of these traditional decorations was impressive, skillfully and tastefully arranged. His quiver was made from the spotted skin of a small panther, common in the Black Hills, with the tail and outstretched claws still attached. White Shield ended our time together in a typical Indian way. He asked me for some powder and ball since he had a gun along with his bow and arrows; however, I had to decline because I barely had enough for myself. I left him a bit satisfied after giving him a packet of vermilion as a parting gift.

Unhappily on the next morning the White Shield took cold and was attacked with a violent inflammation of the throat. Immediately he seemed to lose all spirit, and though before no warrior in the village had borne himself more proudly, he now moped about from lodge to lodge with a forlorn and dejected air. At length he came and sat down, close wrapped in his robe, before the lodge of Reynal, but when he found that neither he nor I knew how to relieve him, he arose and stalked over to one of the medicine-men of the village. This old imposter thumped him for some time with both fists, howled and yelped over him, and beat a drum close to his ear to expel the evil spirit that had taken possession of him. This vigorous treatment failing of the desired effect, the White Shield withdrew to his own lodge, where he lay disconsolate for some hours. Making his appearance once more in the afternoon, he again took his seat on the ground before Reynal’s lodge, holding his throat with his hand. For some time he sat perfectly silent with his eyes fixed mournfully on the ground. At last he began to speak in a low tone:

Unfortunately, the next morning the White Shield caught a cold and developed a severe throat infection. He seemed to lose all his energy, and although he had previously walked proudly like a warrior in the village, now he drifted from lodge to lodge with a sad and defeated look. Eventually, he came and sat down, wrapped tightly in his robe, in front of Reynal’s lodge, but when he realized that neither Reynal nor I knew how to help him, he got up and walked over to one of the village medicine men. This old fraud hit him repeatedly with his fists, howled and yelped over him, and banged a drum right by his ear to chase away the evil spirit that had taken hold of him. When this intense treatment didn't work, the White Shield returned to his own lodge, where he lay heartbroken for several hours. Later in the afternoon, he reappeared and again sat on the ground in front of Reynal’s lodge, holding his throat with his hand. For a while, he sat completely silent, staring sadly at the ground. Finally, he began to speak in a low voice:

“I am a brave man,” he said; “all the young men think me a great warrior, and ten of them are ready to go with me to the war. I will go and show them the enemy. Last summer the Snakes killed my brother. I cannot live unless I revenge his death. To-morrow we will set out and I will take their scalps.”

“I’m a brave man,” he said; “all the young guys see me as a great warrior, and ten of them are ready to join me in the fight. I’m going to go show them the enemy. Last summer, the Snakes killed my brother. I can’t live unless I avenge his death. Tomorrow, we’ll set out, and I’ll take their scalps.”

The White Shield, as he expressed this resolution, seemed to have lost all the accustomed fire and spirit of his look, and hung his head as if in a fit of despondency.

The White Shield, as he conveyed this decision, appeared to have lost all the usual fire and spirit in his expression, and hung his head as if he were in a state of despair.

As I was sitting that evening at one of the fires, I saw him arrayed in his splendid war dress, his cheeks painted with vermilion, leading his favorite war horse to the front of his lodge. He mounted and rode round the village, singing his war song in a loud hoarse voice amid the shrill acclamations of the women. Then dismounting, he remained for some minutes prostrate upon the ground, as if in an act of supplication. On the following morning I looked in vain for the departure of the warriors. All was quiet in the village until late in the forenoon, when the White Shield, issuing from his lodge, came and seated himself in his old place before us. Reynal asked him why he had not gone out to find the enemy.

As I sat by one of the fires that evening, I saw him dressed in his impressive war attire, his cheeks painted bright red, as he led his favorite war horse to the front of his lodge. He mounted and rode around the village, singing his war song in a loud, hoarse voice while the women cheered him on. After dismounting, he lay on the ground for several minutes, as if in a moment of prayer. The next morning, I looked in vain for the warriors to leave. The village was quiet until late in the morning when White Shield came out of his lodge and sat in his usual spot in front of us. Reynal asked him why he hadn’t gone out to find the enemy.

“I cannot go,” answered the White Shield in a dejected voice. “I have given my war arrows to the Meneaska.”

“I can’t go,” replied the White Shield in a sad voice. “I’ve given my war arrows to the Meneaska.”

“You have only given him two of your arrows,” said Reynal. “If you ask him, he will give them back again.”

“You've only given him two of your arrows,” Reynal said. “If you ask him, he'll give them back.”

For some time the White Shield said nothing. At last he spoke in a gloomy tone:

For a while, the White Shield was silent. Finally, he spoke in a somber tone:

“One of my young men has had bad dreams. The spirits of the dead came and threw stones at him in his sleep.”

“One of my young guys has been having bad dreams. The spirits of the dead came and threw stones at him while he was sleeping.”

If such a dream had actually taken place it might have broken up this or any other war party, but both Reynal and I were convinced at the time that it was a mere fabrication to excuse his remaining at home.

If that kind of dream had really happened, it might have split up this or any other war party, but both Reynal and I were convinced at the time that it was just a made-up story to justify him staying at home.

The White Shield was a warrior of noted prowess. Very probably, he would have received a mortal wound without a show of pain, and endured without flinching the worst tortures that an enemy could inflict upon him. The whole power of an Indian’s nature would be summoned to encounter such a trial; every influence of his education from childhood would have prepared him for it; the cause of his suffering would have been visibly and palpably before him, and his spirit would rise to set his enemy at defiance, and gain the highest glory of a warrior by meeting death with fortitude. But when he feels himself attacked by a mysterious evil, before whose insidious assaults his manhood is wasted, and his strength drained away, when he can see no enemy to resist and defy, the boldest warrior falls prostrate at once. He believes that a bad spirit has taken possession of him, or that he is the victim of some charm. When suffering from a protracted disorder, an Indian will often abandon himself to his supposed destiny, pine away and die, the victim of his own imagination. The same effect will often follow from a series of calamities, or a long run of ill success, and the sufferer has been known to ride into the midst of an enemy’s camp, or attack a grizzly bear single-handed, to get rid of a life which he supposed to lie under the doom of misfortune.

The White Shield was a warrior of great skill. Most likely, he could have taken a fatal blow without showing any pain and endured the worst torture without flinching. Every bit of his Indian heritage would prepare him for such a challenge; all the lessons learned from childhood would be called upon. The reason for his suffering would be clear and tangible, and his spirit would rise to confront his enemy boldly, achieving the ultimate honor of a warrior by facing death with courage. But when he finds himself attacked by a mysterious force, one that slowly wears down his manhood and drains his strength, and when he sees no enemy to fight against, even the bravest warrior falls to the ground instantly. He believes that an evil spirit has taken over him or that he is under some kind of curse. When suffering from a long-lasting illness, an Indian will often resign himself to his believed fate, withering away and dying as a result of his own imagination. The same thing can happen after a string of misfortunes or prolonged failure, and it's been known for someone to ride right into an enemy's camp or attack a grizzly bear alone, just to escape a life they think is doomed to bad luck.

Thus after all his fasting, dreaming, and calling upon the Great Spirit, the White Shield’s war party was pitifully broken up.

So, after all his fasting, dreaming, and calling on the Great Spirit, the White Shield’s war party was sadly broken up.





CHAPTER XVI

THE TRAPPERS

In speaking of the Indians, I have almost forgotten two bold adventurers of another race, the trappers Rouleau and Saraphin. These men were bent on a most hazardous enterprise. A day’s journey to the westward was the country over which the Arapahoes are accustomed to range, and for which the two trappers were on the point of setting out. These Arapahoes, of whom Shaw and I afterward fell in with a large village, are ferocious barbarians, of a most brutal and wolfish aspect, and of late they had declared themselves enemies to the whites, and threatened death to the first who should venture within their territory. The occasion of the declaration was as follows:

In talking about the Indians, I almost forgot two daring adventurers from another background, the trappers Rouleau and Saraphin. These guys were on a very risky mission. A day’s travel to the west was the land where the Arapahoes usually roamed, and the two trappers were about to leave for it. These Arapahoes, with whom Shaw and I later encountered a large village, are fierce and brutal, with a wild and savage appearance, and recently they had announced themselves as enemies of the whites, threatening death to anyone who dared to enter their territory. The reason for this declaration was as follows:

In the previous spring, 1845, Colonel Kearny left Fort Leavenworth with several companies of dragoons, and marching with extraordinary celerity reached Fort Laramie, whence he passed along the foot of the mountains to Bent’s Fort and then, turning eastward again, returned to the point from whence he set out. While at Fort Larantie, he sent a part of his command as far westward as Sweetwater, while he himself remained at the fort, and dispatched messages to the surrounding Indians to meet him there in council. Then for the first time the tribes of that vicinity saw the white warriors, and, as might have been expected, they were lost in astonishment at their regular order, their gay attire, the completeness of their martial equipment, and the great size and power of their horses. Among the rest, the Arapahoes came in considerable numbers to the fort. They had lately committed numerous acts of outrage, and Colonel Kearny threatened that if they killed any more white men he would turn loose his dragoons upon them, and annihilate their whole nation. In the evening, to add effect to his speech, he ordered a howitzer to be fired and a rocket to be thrown up. Many of the Arapahoes fell prostrate on the ground, while others ran screaming with amazement and terror. On the following day they withdrew to their mountains, confounded with awe at the appearance of the dragoons, at their big gun which went off twice at one shot, and the fiery messenger which they had sent up to the Great Spirit. For many months they remained quiet, and did no further mischief. At length, just before we came into the country, one of them, by an act of the basest treachery, killed two white men, Boot and May, who were trapping among the mountains. For this act it was impossible to discover a motive. It seemed to spring from one of those inexplicable impulses which often actuate Indians and appear no better than the mere outbreaks of native ferocity. No sooner was the murder committed than the whole tribe were in extreme consternation. They expected every day that the avenging dragoons would arrive, little thinking that a desert of nine hundred miles in extent lay between the latter and their mountain fastnesses. A large deputation of them came to Fort Laramie, bringing a valuable present of horses, in compensation for the lives of the murdered men. These Bordeaux refused to accept. They then asked him if he would be satisfied with their delivering up the murderer himself; but he declined this offer also. The Arapahoes went back more terrified than ever. Weeks passed away, and still no dragoons appeared. A result followed which all those best acquainted with Indians had predicted. They conceived that fear had prevented Bordeaux from accepting their gifts, and that they had nothing to apprehend from the vengeance of the whites. From terror they rose to the height of insolence and presumption. They called the white men cowards and old women; and a friendly Dakota came to Fort Laramie and reported that they were determined to kill the first of the white dogs whom they could lay hands on.

In the spring of 1845, Colonel Kearny left Fort Leavenworth with a few companies of dragoons and quickly made his way to Fort Laramie. From there, he traveled along the base of the mountains to Bent’s Fort and then turned back east, returning to his starting point. While at Fort Laramie, he sent part of his command west to Sweetwater while he stayed at the fort, sending messages to the nearby tribes to meet him for a council. This was the first time the local tribes saw the white soldiers, and as expected, they were amazed by their organized formations, colorful uniforms, complete military gear, and the large, powerful horses. Among them, a significant number of Arapahoes came to the fort. Recently, they had committed several violent acts, and Colonel Kearny warned them that if they killed any more white men, he would unleash his dragoons on them and destroy their entire nation. To emphasize his point, he ordered a howitzer to be fired and a rocket to be launched. Many of the Arapahoes fell to the ground, while others ran away in shock and fear. The next day, they retreated to their mountains, overwhelmed by the appearance of the dragoons, the big gun that fired twice, and the fiery projectile they had sent up to the Great Spirit. For several months, they kept quiet and caused no further trouble. However, just before we arrived in the area, one of them committed an act of treachery by killing two white men, Boot and May, who were trapping in the mountains. The motive behind this act was unclear; it seemed to come from one of those inexplicable impulses that often drive Indians and appeared to be nothing more than native savagery. As soon as the murder occurred, the entire tribe was extremely anxious. They expected the avenging dragoons to arrive any day, unaware that a desert of nine hundred miles separated them from their pursuers. A large group from the tribe came to Fort Laramie, bringing valuable horses as compensation for the slain men’s lives, but Bordeaux refused to accept them. They then asked if he would be satisfied with the surrender of the murderer, but he declined that offer too. The Arapahoes returned even more terrified. Weeks went by, and still no dragoons showed up. This led to the outcome that those familiar with Indian behavior had predicted. They thought that fear had prevented Bordeaux from accepting their gifts and believed they had nothing to fear from white vengeance. From fear, they grew arrogant and reckless. They called the white men cowards and old women, and a friendly Dakota came to Fort Laramie to report that they were determined to kill the first white person they could get their hands on.

Had a military officer, intrusted with suitable powers, been stationed at Fort Laramie, and having accepted the offer of the Arapahoes to deliver up the murderer, had ordered him to be immediately led out and shot, in presence of his tribe, they would have been awed into tranquillity, and much danger and calamity averted; but now the neighborhood of the Medicine-Bow Mountain and the region beyond it was a scene of extreme peril. Old Mene-Seela, a true friend of the whites, and many other of the Indians gathered about the two trappers, and vainly endeavored to turn them from their purpose; but Rouleau and Saraphin only laughed at the danger. On the morning preceding that on which they were to leave the camp, we could all discern faint white columns of smoke rising against the dark base of the Medicine-Bow. Scouts were out immediately, and reported that these proceeded from an Arapahoe camp, abandoned only a few hours before. Still the two trappers continued their preparations for departure.

If a military officer with proper authority had been stationed at Fort Laramie and had accepted the Arapahoes' offer to hand over the murderer, ordering him to be led out and shot in front of his tribe, it would have terrified them into submission, preventing much danger and disaster. But now, the area around Medicine-Bow Mountain and beyond was extremely dangerous. Old Mene-Seela, a true friend of the white settlers, along with many other Indians, gathered around the two trappers, trying in vain to dissuade them from their plans. However, Rouleau and Saraphin just laughed at the threat. On the morning before they were set to leave camp, we could all see faint white columns of smoke rising against the dark backdrop of Medicine-Bow. Scouts were sent out right away and reported that the smoke was coming from an Arapahoe camp that had been abandoned only hours before. Still, the two trappers went ahead with their preparations to leave.

Saraphin was a tall, powerful fellow, with a sullen and sinister countenance. His rifle had very probably drawn other blood than that of buffalo or even Indians. Rouleau had a broad ruddy face marked with as few traces of thought or care as a child’s. His figure was remarkably square and strong, but the first joints of both his feet were frozen off, and his horse had lately thrown and trampled upon him, by which he had been severely injured in the chest. But nothing could check his inveterate propensity for laughter and gayety. He went all day rolling about the camp on his stumps of feet, talking and singing and frolicking with the Indian women, as they were engaged at their work. In fact Rouleau had an unlucky partiality for squaws. He always had one whom he must needs bedizen with beads, ribbons, and all the finery of an Indian wardrobe; and though he was of course obliged to leave her behind him during his expeditions, yet this hazardous necessity did not at all trouble him, for his disposition was the very reverse of jealous. If at any time he had not lavished the whole of the precarious profits of his vocation upon his dark favorite, he always devoted the rest to feasting his comrades. If liquor was not to be had—and this was usually the case—strong coffee was substituted. As the men of that region are by no means remarkable for providence or self-restraint, whatever was set before them on these occasions, however extravagant in price, or enormous in quantity, was sure to be disposed of at one sitting. Like other trappers, Rouleau’s life was one of contrast and variety. It was only at certain seasons, and for a limited time, that he was absent on his expeditions. For the rest of the year he would be lounging about the fort, or encamped with his friends in its vicinity, lazily hunting or enjoying all the luxury of inaction; but when once in pursuit of beaver, he was involved in extreme privations and desperate perils. When in the midst of his game and his enemies, hand and foot, eye and ear, are incessantly active. Frequently he must content himself with devouring his evening meal uncooked, lest the light of his fire should attract the eyes of some wandering Indian; and sometimes having made his rude repast, he must leave his fire still blazing, and withdraw to a distance under cover of the darkness, that his disappointed enemy, drawn thither by the light, may find his victim gone, and be unable to trace his footsteps in the gloom. This is the life led by scores of men in the Rocky Mountains and their vicinity. I once met a trapper whose breast was marked with the scars of six bullets and arrows, one of his arms broken by a shot and one of his knees shattered; yet still, with the undaunted mettle of New England, from which part of the country he had come, he continued to follow his perilous occupation. To some of the children of cities it may seem strange that men with no object in view should continue to follow a life of such hardship and desperate adventure; yet there is a mysterious, restless charm in the basilisk eye of danger, and few men perhaps remain long in that wild region without learning to love peril for its own sake, and to laugh carelessly in the face of death.

Saraphin was a tall, strong guy with a gloomy and threatening look. His rifle had likely killed more than just buffalo or even Native Americans. Rouleau had a broad, rosy face that showed as few signs of thought or worry as a child's. He was built remarkably square and strong, but the first joints of both his feet had frozen off, and his horse had recently thrown him and trampled him, which severely injured his chest. Still, nothing could stop his deep-rooted urge to laugh and have a good time. He spent all day rolling around the camp on his stumps, chatting, singing, and frolicking with the Native American women while they worked. In fact, Rouleau had an unfortunate fondness for Indian women. He always had one he had to dress up with beads, ribbons, and all the fancy stuff in an Indian wardrobe; and though he had to leave her behind during his expeditions, this didn't bother him at all, since he wasn't jealous at all. If he ever didn’t spend all of the meager money he made on his dark-haired favorite, he always spent the rest on treating his buddies. If there was no liquor available—and that was usually the case—strong coffee was used instead. Since the men in that area aren’t known for being very prudent or self-disciplined, whatever was put in front of them on these occasions, no matter how expensive or abundant, was sure to be eaten in one go. Like other trappers, Rouleau’s life was full of contrasts and variety. He was only away on his expeditions during certain seasons and for limited times. For the rest of the year, he would lounge around the fort or camp out with his friends nearby, lazily hunting or enjoying the luxury of doing nothing; but once he was off chasing beaver, he faced extreme hardship and serious dangers. When he was in the thick of hunting, he was constantly alert, using all his senses. Often, he had to settle for eating his dinner raw to avoid attracting the attention of wandering Native Americans with the fire's light; and sometimes after eating a quick meal, he had to leave his fire still burning and sneak away into the dark so that his frustrated enemy, drawn by the light, would find him gone and could not track him in the dark. This is the life led by countless men in the Rocky Mountains and the surrounding areas. I once met a trapper whose body was marked with scars from six bullets and arrows, one of his arms was broken from a shot, and one of his knees was shattered; yet, with the fearless spirit of a New Englander, where he hailed from, he continued his dangerous work. To some city kids, it might seem strange that men with no clear goal continue living such a hard and risky life; yet there’s a mysterious, restless appeal in the eye of danger, and few men stick around that wild area long without coming to love risk for its own sake and laughing carelessly in the face of death.

On the last day of our stay in this camp, the trappers were ready for departure. When in the Black Hills they had caught seven beaver, and they now left their skins in charge of Reynal, to be kept until their return. Their strong, gaunt horses were equipped with rusty Spanish bits and rude Mexican saddles, to which wooden stirrups were attached, while a buffalo robe was rolled up behind them, and a bundle of beaver traps slung at the pommel. These, together with their rifles, their knives, their powder-horns and bullet-pouches, flint and steel and a tincup, composed their whole traveling equipment. They shook hands with us and rode away; Saraphin with his grim countenance, like a surly bulldog’s, was in advance; but Rouleau, clambering gayly into his seat, kicked his horse’s sides, flourished his whip in the air, and trotted briskly over the prairie, trolling forth a Canadian song at the top of his lungs. Reynal looked after them with his face of brutal selfishness.

On the last day of our stay at the camp, the trappers were getting ready to leave. While in the Black Hills, they had caught seven beavers and now left their skins with Reynal to hold until they returned. Their strong, lean horses were equipped with rusty Spanish bits and rough Mexican saddles, with wooden stirrups attached. A buffalo robe was rolled up behind them, and a bundle of beaver traps was slung over the pommel. Along with their rifles, knives, powder horns, bullet pouches, flint and steel, and a tin cup, this was their entire traveling gear. They shook hands with us and rode off; Saraphin, with his stern face like a grumpy bulldog, led the way, while Rouleau happily scrambled into his saddle, kicked his horse's sides, waved his whip in the air, and trotted cheerfully across the prairie, singing a Canadian song at the top of his lungs. Reynal watched them go with his brutish, selfish expression.

“Well,” he said, “if they are killed, I shall have the beaver. They’ll fetch me fifty dollars at the fort, anyhow.”

“Well,” he said, “if they get killed, I’ll take the beaver. They’ll get me fifty bucks at the fort, for sure.”

This was the last I saw of them.

This was the last time I saw them.

We had been for five days in the hunting camp, and the meat, which all this time had hung drying in the sun, was now fit for transportation. Buffalo hides also had been procured in sufficient quantities for making the next season’s lodges; but it remained to provide the long slender poles on which they were to be supported. These were only to be had among the tall pine woods of the Black Hills, and in that direction therefore our next move was to be made. It is worthy of notice that amid the general abundance which during this time had prevailed in the camp there were no instances of individual privation; for although the hide and the tongue of the buffalo belong by exclusive right to the hunter who has killed it, yet anyone else is equally entitled to help himself from the rest of the carcass. Thus, the weak, the aged, and even the indolent come in for a share of the spoils, and many a helpless old woman, who would otherwise perish from starvation, is sustained in profuse abundance.

We had been at the hunting camp for five days, and the meat, which had been drying in the sun all this time, was now ready for transport. We also had enough buffalo hides for making the lodges for next season, but we still needed to find the long, slender poles to support them. These could only be found in the tall pine woods of the Black Hills, so that was where we were headed next. It's worth noting that despite the overall abundance in the camp during this time, no one suffered from lack. Even though the hide and tongue of the buffalo belong exclusively to the hunter who killed it, everyone is welcome to take from the rest of the carcass. This way, the weak, the elderly, and even the lazy get their share of the spoils, and many helpless old women who would otherwise starve are kept well-fed.

On the 25th of July, late in the afternoon, the camp broke up, with the usual tumult and confusion, and we were all moving once more, on horseback and on foot, over the plains. We advanced, however, but a few miles. The old men, who during the whole march had been stoutly striding along on foot in front of the people, now seated themselves in a circle on the ground, while all the families, erecting their lodges in the prescribed order around them, formed the usual great circle of the camp; meanwhile these village patriarchs sat smoking and talking. I threw my bridle to Raymond, and sat down as usual along with them. There was none of that reserve and apparent dignity which an Indian always assumes when in council, or in the presence of white men whom he distrusts. The party, on the contrary, was an extremely merry one; and as in a social circle of a quite different character, “if there was not much wit, there was at least a great deal of laughter.”

On July 25th, late in the afternoon, the camp packed up amidst the usual noise and chaos, and we all started moving again, both on horseback and on foot, across the plains. We only made it a few miles, though. The older men, who had been walking firmly at the front of the group throughout the march, now settled down in a circle on the ground. Meanwhile, all the families set up their lodges in the designated order around them, forming the typical large circle of the camp; during this time, the village elders sat together, smoking and chatting. I handed my reins to Raymond and joined them as usual. There was none of the formality or pretended dignity that an Indian typically shows in council or around white people they don’t trust. Instead, the group was really cheerful, and just like in a different kind of social gathering, “if there wasn’t much cleverness, there was at least a lot of laughter.”

When the first pipe was smoked out, I rose and withdrew to the lodge of my host. Here I was stooping, in the act of taking off my powder-horn and bullet-pouch, when suddenly, and close at hand, pealing loud and shrill, and in right good earnest, came the terrific yell of the war-whoop. Kongra-Tonga’s squaw snatched up her youngest child, and ran out of the lodge. I followed, and found the whole village in confusion, resounding with cries and yells. The circle of old men in the center had vanished. The warriors with glittering eyes came darting, their weapons in their hands, out of the low opening of the lodges, and running with wild yells toward the farther end of the village. Advancing a few rods in that direction, I saw a crowd in furious agitation, while others ran up on every side to add to the confusion. Just then I distinguished the voices of Raymond and Reynal, shouting to me from a distance, and looking back, I saw the latter with his rifle in his hand, standing on the farther bank of a little stream that ran along the outskirts of the camp. He was calling to Raymond and myself to come over and join him, and Raymond, with his usual deliberate gait and stolid countenance, was already moving in that direction.

When the first pipe was finished, I stood up and went to my host's lodge. As I was bending down to take off my powder horn and bullet pouch, I suddenly heard a loud, piercing war whoop nearby. Kongra-Tonga’s wife grabbed her youngest child and sprinted out of the lodge. I followed her and found the whole village in chaos, filled with screams and yells. The group of old men in the center had disappeared. The warriors with fierce eyes dashed out of the low openings of the lodges, shouting wildly as they ran toward the far end of the village. After moving a few yards in that direction, I saw a crowd in a frenzied state, while others rushed in from all sides, adding to the commotion. At that moment, I recognized the voices of Raymond and Reynal calling out to me from a distance. Looking back, I saw Reynal on the opposite bank of a small stream that ran along the edge of the camp, rifle in hand. He was urging Raymond and me to come over and join him, and Raymond, with his usual slow, steady walk and expressionless face, was already heading that way.

This was clearly the wisest course, unless we wished to involve ourselves in the fray; so I turned to go, but just then a pair of eyes, gleaming like a snake’s, and an aged familiar countenance was thrust from the opening of a neighboring lodge, and out bolted old Mene-Seela, full of fight, clutching his bow and arrows in one hand and his knife in the other. At that instant he tripped and fell sprawling on his face, while his weapons flew scattering away in every direction. The women with loud screams were hurrying with their children in their arms to place them out of danger, and I observed some hastening to prevent mischief, by carrying away all the weapons they could lay hands on. On a rising ground close to the camp stood a line of old women singing a medicine song to allay the tumult. As I approached the side of the brook I heard gun-shots behind me, and turning back, I saw that the crowd had separated into two lines of naked warriors confronting each other at a respectful distance, and yelling and jumping about to dodge the shot of their adversaries, while they discharged bullets and arrows against each other. At the same time certain sharp, humming sounds in the air over my head, like the flight of beetles on a summer evening, warned me that the danger was not wholly confined to the immediate scene of the fray. So wading through the brook, I joined Reynal and Raymond, and we sat down on the grass, in the posture of an armed neutrality, to watch the result.

This was obviously the smartest option unless we wanted to get caught up in the chaos; so I turned to leave, but just then a pair of eyes, shining like a snake's, and a familiar, aged face popped out from the opening of a nearby lodge. Old Mene-Seela came charging out, ready for a fight, gripping his bow and arrows in one hand and his knife in the other. At that moment, he tripped and fell flat on his face, scattering his weapons in every direction. The women were rushing with loud screams, cradling their children in their arms, trying to get them to safety, and I noticed some hurrying to prevent trouble by collecting all the weapons they could find. On a small rise near the camp, a line of older women was singing a medicine song to calm the uproar. When I came to the edge of the stream, I heard gunshots behind me, and turning back, I saw the crowd had split into two lines of naked warriors facing off at a respectful distance, yelling and jumping around to avoid shots from their opponents while firing bullets and arrows at each other. At the same time, certain sharp, buzzing sounds overhead, like beetles flying on a summer evening, reminded me that the danger wasn't just limited to the immediate fight. So, wading through the stream, I joined Reynal and Raymond, and we sat down on the grass, in a stance of armed neutrality, to watch how it all played out.

Happily it may be for ourselves, though quite contrary to our expectation, the disturbance was quelled almost as soon as it had commenced. When I looked again, the combatants were once more mingled together in a mass. Though yells sounded, occasionally from the throng, the firing had entirely ceased, and I observed five or six persons moving busily about, as if acting the part of peacemakers. One of the village heralds or criers proclaimed in a loud voice something which my two companions were too much engrossed in their own observations to translate for me. The crowd began to disperse, though many a deep-set black eye still glittered with an unnatural luster, as the warriors slowly withdrew to their lodges. This fortunate suppression of the disturbance was owing to a few of the old men, less pugnacious than Mene-Seela, who boldly ran in between the combatants and aided by some of the “soldiers,” or Indian police, succeeded in effecting their object.

Fortunately for us, even though it was completely unexpected, the chaos settled down almost as soon as it started. When I looked again, the fighters were once again mixed together in a crowd. Although there were still some shouts coming from the group, the shooting had completely stopped, and I noticed five or six people moving around busily, seemingly acting as peacemakers. One of the village criers announced something in a loud voice that my two companions were too focused on their own observations to translate for me. The crowd began to break up, though many deep-set dark eyes still shone with an unnatural gleam as the warriors slowly returned to their lodges. This fortunate resolution of the disturbance was thanks to a few of the older men, less aggressive than Mene-Seela, who bravely stepped between the fighters and, with the help of some of the "soldiers," or Indian police, succeeded in achieving their goal.

It seemed very strange to me that although many arrows and bullets were discharged, no one was mortally hurt, and I could only account for this by the fact that both the marksman and the object of his aim were leaping about incessantly during the whole time. By far the greater part of the villagers had joined in the fray, for although there were not more than a dozen guns in the whole camp, I heard at least eight or ten shots fired.

It felt really odd to me that even though a lot of arrows and bullets were shot, no one was seriously injured, and I could only explain this by the fact that both the shooter and his target were constantly jumping around the whole time. Most of the villagers had jumped into the fight, because even though there were only about a dozen guns in the entire camp, I heard at least eight or ten shots fired.

In a quarter of an hour all was comparatively quiet. A large circle of warriors were again seated in the center of the village, but this time I did not venture to join them, because I could see that the pipe, contrary to the usual order, was passing from the left hand to the right around the circle, a sure sign that a “medicine-smoke” of reconciliation was going forward, and that a white man would be an unwelcome intruder. When I again entered the still agitated camp it was nearly dark, and mournful cries, howls and wailings resounded from many female voices. Whether these had any connection with the late disturbance, or were merely lamentations for relatives slain in some former war expeditions, I could not distinctly ascertain.

In about fifteen minutes, everything was relatively quiet. A large group of warriors was seated in the center of the village again, but this time I didn’t dare to join them, because I could see that the pipe, instead of following the usual order, was passing from left to right around the circle, a clear sign that a “medicine-smoke” of reconciliation was taking place, and that a white man would be an unwelcome outsider. When I entered the still unsettled camp again, it was almost dark, and mournful cries, howls, and wails echoed from many female voices. Whether these were connected to the recent disturbance or were simply expressions of grief for relatives killed in past wars, I couldn’t clearly determine.

To inquire too closely into the cause of the quarrel was by no means prudent, and it was not until some time after that I discovered what had given rise to it. Among the Dakota there are many associations, or fraternities, connected with the purposes of their superstitions, their warfare, or their social life. There was one called “The Arrow-Breakers,” now in a great measure disbanded and dispersed. In the village there were, however, four men belonging to it, distinguished by the peculiar arrangement of their hair, which rose in a high bristling mass above their foreheads, adding greatly to their apparent height, and giving them a most ferocious appearance. The principal among them was the Mad Wolf, a warrior of remarkable size and strength, great courage, and the fierceness of a demon. I had always looked upon him as the most dangerous man in the village; and though he often invited me to feasts, I never entered his lodge unarmed. The Mad Wolf had taken a fancy to a fine horse belonging to another Indian, who was called the Tall Bear; and anxious to get the animal into his possession, he made the owner a present of another horse nearly equal in value. According to the customs of the Dakota, the acceptance of this gift involved a sort of obligation to make an equitable return; and the Tall Bear well understood that the other had in view the obtaining of his favorite buffalo horse. He however accepted the present without a word of thanks, and having picketed the horse before his lodge, he suffered day after day to pass without making the expected return. The Mad Wolf grew impatient and angry; and at last, seeing that his bounty was not likely to produce the desired return, he resolved to reclaim it. So this evening, as soon as the village was encamped, he went to the lodge of the Tall Bear, seized upon the horse that he had given him, and led him away. At this the Tall Bear broke into one of those fits of sullen rage not uncommon among the Indians. He ran up to the unfortunate horse, and gave him three mortals stabs with his knife. Quick as lightning the Mad Wolf drew his bow to its utmost tension, and held the arrow quivering close to the breast of his adversary. The Tall Bear, as the Indians who were near him said, stood with his bloody knife in his hand, facing the assailant with the utmost calmness. Some of his friends and relatives, seeing his danger, ran hastily to his assistance. The remaining three Arrow-Breakers, on the other hand, came to the aid of their associate. Many of their friends joined them, the war-cry was raised on a sudden, and the tumult became general.

Asking too much about the reason for the fight wasn’t wise, and it wasn't until some time later that I figured out what caused it. Among the Dakota, there are various groups or fraternities related to their superstitions, wars, or social activities. One was called “The Arrow-Breakers,” but it was mostly disbanded and scattered now. In the village, though, there were four members recognizable by their unique hairstyles, which stood high and spiky above their foreheads, making them look much taller and quite fierce. The leader among them was the Mad Wolf, a warrior of impressive size and strength, known for his bravery and a wild fierceness. I always considered him the most dangerous man in the village, and even though he frequently invited me to his feasts, I never entered his lodge without being armed. The Mad Wolf had taken a liking to a fine horse owned by another Indian named the Tall Bear. Eager to get this horse, he gave the owner another horse of nearly equal value as a gift. According to Dakota customs, accepting this gift meant there was an expectation to give something fair in return, and the Tall Bear understood that the Mad Wolf wanted his prized buffalo horse. However, he accepted the gift without thanking him, and after tying up the horse in front of his lodge, he let days go by without making the anticipated return. The Mad Wolf grew frustrated and angry; finally, seeing that his generosity wasn’t likely to get a response, he decided to take back his gift. So that evening, once the village was set up, he went to the Tall Bear's lodge, took the horse he had given him, and led it away. This made the Tall Bear erupt into one of those brooding fits common among the Indians. He rushed to the unfortunate horse and stabbed it three times with his knife. In an instant, the Mad Wolf drew his bow back all the way and held the arrow steady at the chest of his opponent. According to the nearby Indians, the Tall Bear stood there with his bloody knife, facing the Mad Wolf with complete composure. Some of his friends and family, seeing the threat, rushed to help him. Meanwhile, the other three Arrow-Breakers came to support their ally. Many of their friends joined them, the war cry suddenly erupted, and chaos broke out.

The “soldiers,” who lent their timely aid in putting it down, are by far the most important executive functionaries in an Indian village. The office is one of considerable honor, being confided only to men of courage and repute. They derive their authority from the old men and chief warriors of the village, who elect them in councils occasionally convened for the purpose, and thus can exercise a degree of authority which no one else in the village would dare to assume. While very few Ogallalla chiefs could venture without instant jeopardy of their lives to strike or lay hands upon the meanest of their people, the “soldiers” in the discharge of their appropriate functions, have full license to make use of these and similar acts of coercion.

The “soldiers” who provided their timely help in putting it down are by far the most important executive officials in an Indian village. This role carries a lot of respect, reserved only for men of bravery and reputation. They get their authority from the elders and chief warriors of the village, who elect them in councils held from time to time for this purpose, giving them a level of authority that no one else in the village would dare to claim. While very few Ogallalla chiefs could safely strike or lay hands on even the least of their people without risking their lives, the “soldiers,” in carrying out their duties, have full permission to use these and similar acts of force.





CHAPTER XVII

THE BLACK HILLS

We traveled eastward for two days, and then the gloomy ridges of the Black Hills rose up before us. The village passed along for some miles beneath their declivities, trailing out to a great length over the arid prairie, or winding at times among small detached hills or distorted shapes. Turning sharply to the left, we entered a wide defile of the mountains, down the bottom of which a brook came winding, lined with tall grass and dense copses, amid which were hidden many beaver dams and lodges. We passed along between two lines of high precipices and rocks, piled in utter disorder one upon another, and with scarcely a tree, a bush, or a clump of grass to veil their nakedness. The restless Indian boys were wandering along their edges and clambering up and down their rugged sides, and sometimes a group of them would stand on the verge of a cliff and look down on the array as it passed in review beneath them. As we advanced, the passage grew more narrow; then it suddenly expanded into a round grassy meadow, completely encompassed by mountains; and here the families stopped as they came up in turn, and the camp rose like magic.

We traveled east for two days, and then the dark ridges of the Black Hills loomed ahead. The village stretched for miles along their slopes, extending over the dry prairie and sometimes weaving between small hills or odd formations. We turned sharply left into a wide mountain pass, where a brook meandered through, lined with tall grass and thick bushes, hiding many beaver dams and lodges. We moved between two walls of steep cliffs and rocks, stacked in complete chaos, with barely a tree, bush, or patch of grass to cover their nakedness. Energetic Indian boys wandered along the edges, climbing up and down the rugged sides, occasionally stopping in groups on the edge of a cliff to look down at the scene unfolding below. As we proceeded, the passage narrowed, then suddenly opened up into a round grassy meadow completely surrounded by mountains; here, families paused as they arrived in order, and the camp sprang up as if by magic.

The lodges were hardly erected when, with their usual precipitation, the Indians set about accomplishing the object that had brought them there; that is, the obtaining poles for supporting their new lodges. Half the population, men, women and boys, mounted their horses and set out for the interior of the mountains. As they rode at full gallop over the shingly rocks and into the dark opening of the defile beyond, I thought I had never read or dreamed of a more strange or picturesque cavalcade. We passed between precipices more than a thousand feet high, sharp and splintering at the tops, their sides beetling over the defile or descending in abrupt declivities, bristling with black fir trees. On our left they rose close to us like a wall, but on the right a winding brook with a narrow strip of marshy soil intervened. The stream was clogged with old beaver dams, and spread frequently into wide pools. There were thick bushes and many dead and blasted trees along its course, though frequently nothing remained but stumps cut close to the ground by the beaver, and marked with the sharp chisel-like teeth of those indefatigable laborers. Sometimes we were driving among trees, and then emerging upon open spots, over which, Indian-like, all galloped at full speed. As Pauline bounded over the rocks I felt her saddle-girth slipping, and alighted to draw it tighter; when the whole array swept past me in a moment, the women with their gaudy ornaments tinkling as they rode, the men whooping, and laughing, and lashing forward their horses. Two black-tailed deer bounded away among the rocks; Raymond shot at them from horseback; the sharp report of his rifle was answered by another equally sharp from the opposing cliffs, and then the echoes, leaping in rapid succession from side to side, died away rattling far amid the mountains.

The lodges were barely up when, as usual, the Indians quickly got to work on what had brought them there: finding poles to support their new lodges. Half the population—men, women, and boys—got on their horses and headed into the mountains. As they rode full speed over the rocky terrain and into the dark opening of the canyon ahead, I thought I had never seen or imagined a more unusual or picturesque parade. We rode between cliffs towering over a thousand feet high, sharp and jagged at the tops, their sides looming over the canyon or dropping steeply, covered in black fir trees. On our left, they rose right beside us like a wall, while on the right, a winding stream with a narrow strip of marshy ground separated us. The stream was blocked by old beaver dams and frequently widened into large pools. Thick bushes and many dead, blasted trees lined its path, though often all that remained were stumps cut close to the ground by the beavers, marked with the sharp, chisel-like teeth of those tireless workers. Sometimes we were weaving through trees, and then breaking out into open areas, where everyone rode full speed, in true Indian fashion. As Pauline jumped over the rocks, I felt her saddle girth slipping, so I got off to tighten it; just then, the whole group rushed past me in an instant, the women’s colorful ornaments jingling as they rode, the men hooting, laughing, and spurring their horses forward. Two black-tailed deer jumped away among the rocks; Raymond shot at them from his horse; the sharp crack of his rifle was met with another equally sharp sound from the opposite cliffs, and then the echoes, bouncing quickly from side to side, faded away with a rattle deep in the mountains.

After having ridden in this manner for six or eight miles, the appearance of the scene began to change, and all the declivities around us were covered with forests of tall, slender pine trees. The Indians began to fall off to the right and left, and dispersed with their hatchets and knives among these woods, to cut the poles which they had come to seek. Soon I was left almost alone; but in the deep stillness of those lonely mountains, the stroke of hatchets and the sound of voices might be heard from far and near.

After riding like this for six or eight miles, the landscape started to change, and all the slopes around us were covered with forests of tall, thin pine trees. The Indians began to drift off to the right and left, spreading out with their hatchets and knives among the trees to cut the poles they had come for. Soon, I was almost alone; but in the deep quiet of those isolated mountains, the sound of hatchets striking and voices could be heard from far away.

Reynal, who imitated the Indians in their habits as well as the worst features of their character, had killed buffalo enough to make a lodge for himself and his squaw, and now he was eager to get the poles necessary to complete it. He asked me to let Raymond go with him and assist in the work. I assented, and the two men immediately entered the thickest part of the wood. Having left my horse in Raymond’s keeping, I began to climb the mountain. I was weak and weary and made slow progress, often pausing to rest, but after an hour had elapsed, I gained a height, whence the little valley out of which I had climbed seemed like a deep, dark gulf, though the inaccessible peak of the mountain was still towering to a much greater distance above. Objects familiar from childhood surrounded me; crags and rocks, a black and sullen brook that gurgled with a hollow voice deep among the crevices, a wood of mossy distorted trees and prostrate trunks flung down by age and storms, scattered among the rocks, or damming the foaming waters of the little brook. The objects were the same, yet they were thrown into a wilder and more startling scene, for the black crags and the savage trees assumed a grim and threatening aspect, and close across the valley the opposing mountain confronted me, rising from the gulf for thousands of feet, with its bare pinnacles and its ragged covering of pines. Yet the scene was not without its milder features. As I ascended, I found frequent little grassy terraces, and there was one of these close at hand, across which the brook was stealing, beneath the shade of scattered trees that seemed artificially planted. Here I made a welcome discovery, no other than a bed of strawberries, with their white flowers and their red fruit, close nestled among the grass by the side of the brook, and I sat down by them, hailing them as old acquaintances; for among those lonely and perilous mountains they awakened delicious associations of the gardens and peaceful homes of far-distant New England.

Reynal, who copied the Indians in their customs and the less admirable traits of their character, had killed enough buffalo to build a shelter for himself and his wife, and now he was eager to gather the poles needed to finish it. He asked me to let Raymond join him and help with the task. I agreed, and the two men quickly went into the thickest part of the woods. After leaving my horse in Raymond's care, I started to climb the mountain. I was weak and tired, making slow progress and often stopping to rest, but after an hour, I reached a height where the small valley I had come from looked like a deep, dark chasm, even though the peak of the mountain still soared far above. Familiar sights from my childhood surrounded me: crags and rocks, a black and gloomy brook that gurgled with a hollow sound deep within the crevices, a grove of moss-covered twisted trees and fallen trunks thrown down by age and storms, scattered among the rocks or blocking the rushing waters of the brook. The same objects were there, yet they were set against a wilder and more dramatic backdrop, as the dark crags and fierce trees took on a grim and threatening appearance, and right across the valley, the opposing mountain loomed, rising thousands of feet from the chasm, with its bare peaks and ragged cover of pines. Still, the scene was not without its gentler aspects. As I climbed higher, I found several little grassy ledges, one of which was nearby, over which the brook flowed, shaded by scattered trees that looked like they had been intentionally planted. Here, I made a delightful discovery: a patch of strawberries with their white flowers and red fruit nestled closely in the grass by the brook, and I sat down beside them, greeting them like old friends; for among those lonely and perilous mountains, they brought back wonderful memories of gardens and peaceful homes far away in New England.

Yet wild as they were, these mountains were thickly peopled. As I climbed farther, I found the broad dusty paths made by the elk, as they filed across the mountainside. The grass on all the terraces was trampled down by deer; there were numerous tracks of wolves, and in some of the rougher and more precipitous parts of the ascent, I found foot-prints different from any that I had ever seen, and which I took to be those of the Rocky Mountain sheep. I sat down upon a rock; there was a perfect stillness. No wind was stirring, and not even an insect could be heard. I recollected the danger of becoming lost in such a place, and therefore I fixed my eye upon one of the tallest pinnacles of the opposite mountain. It rose sheer upright from the woods below, and by an extraordinary freak of nature sustained aloft on its very summit a large loose rock. Such a landmark could never be mistaken, and feeling once more secure, I began again to move forward. A white wolf jumped up from among some bushes, and leaped clumsily away; but he stopped for a moment, and turned back his keen eye and his grim bristling muzzle. I longed to take his scalp and carry it back with me, as an appropriate trophy of the Black Hills, but before I could fire, he was gone among the rocks. Soon I heard a rustling sound, with a cracking of twigs at a little distance, and saw moving above the tall bushes the branching antlers of an elk. I was in the midst of a hunter’s paradise.

Yet as wild as they were, these mountains were densely populated. As I climbed higher, I found the wide dusty paths made by elk as they moved across the mountainside. The grass on all the terraces was trampled down by deer; there were plenty of wolf tracks, and in some of the rougher, steeper parts of the ascent, I found footprints unlike any I had ever seen, which I believed belonged to the Rocky Mountain sheep. I sat down on a rock; there was complete silence. No wind was blowing, and I couldn't even hear an insect. I remembered the risk of getting lost in such a place, so I focused my gaze on one of the tallest peaks of the opposite mountain. It shot straight up from the woods below, and by some incredible quirk of nature, a large loose rock was balanced on its very summit. Such a landmark could never be mistaken, and feeling secure again, I started moving forward. A white wolf jumped up from some bushes and clumsily bounded away; but he paused for a moment, turned with his sharp eyes and gritty muzzle. I wanted to take his pelt and bring it back with me as a fitting trophy from the Black Hills, but before I could shoot, he disappeared among the rocks. Soon, I heard a rustling sound and the cracking of twigs a little distance away, and I saw the branching antlers of an elk moving above the tall bushes. I was in the heart of a hunter’s paradise.

Such are the Black Hills, as I found them in July; but they wear a different garb when winter sets in, when the broad boughs of the fir tree are bent to the ground by the load of snow, and the dark mountains are whitened with it. At that season the mountain-trappers, returned from their autumn expeditions, often build their rude cabins in the midst of these solitudes, and live in abundance and luxury on the game that harbors there. I have heard them relate, how with their tawny mistresses, and perhaps a few young Indian companions, they have spent months in total seclusion. They would dig pitfalls, and set traps for the white wolves, the sables, and the martens, and though through the whole night the awful chorus of the wolves would resound from the frozen mountains around them, yet within their massive walls of logs they would lie in careless ease and comfort before the blazing fire, and in the morning shoot the elk and the deer from their very door.

These are the Black Hills, as I saw them in July; but they look different when winter comes, when the thick branches of the fir trees bend under the weight of snow, and the dark mountains are covered in white. During that season, mountain trappers, back from their autumn journeys, often build their simple cabins in the middle of these remote areas and live in comfort and abundance on the game that lives there. I’ve heard them share stories about how, with their tan-skinned partners and maybe a few young Native friends, they spent months in complete solitude. They would dig pits and set traps for the white wolves, sables, and martens, and even though the terrifying sounds of wolves echoed through the frozen mountains all night, they would relax and feel cozy inside their sturdy log walls by the roaring fire, shooting elk and deer right from their doorstep in the morning.





CHAPTER XVIII

A MOUNTAIN HUNT

The camp was full of the newly-cut lodge-poles; some, already prepared, were stacked together, white and glistening, to dry and harden in the sun; others were lying on the ground, and the squaws, the boys, and even some of the warriors were busily at work peeling off the bark and paring them with their knives to the proper dimensions. Most of the hides obtained at the last camp were dressed and scraped thin enough for use, and many of the squaws were engaged in fitting them together and sewing them with sinews, to form the coverings for the lodges. Men were wandering among the bushes that lined the brook along the margin of the camp, cutting sticks of red willow, or shongsasha, the bark of which, mixed with tobacco, they use for smoking. Reynal’s squaw was hard at work with her awl and buffalo sinews upon her lodge, while her proprietor, having just finished an enormous breakfast of meat, was smoking a social pipe along with Raymond and myself. He proposed at length that we should go out on a hunt. “Go to the Big Crow’s lodge,” said he, “and get your rifle. I’ll bet the gray Wyandotte pony against your mare that we start an elk or a black-tailed deer, or likely as not, a bighorn, before we are two miles out of camp. I’ll take my squaw’s old yellow horse; you can’t whip her more than four miles an hour, but she is as good for the mountains as a mule.”

The camp was filled with freshly cut lodge poles; some, already processed, were stacked together, white and shiny, drying and hardening in the sun. Others were lying on the ground, and the women, the boys, and even some of the warriors were busy peeling off the bark and trimming them to the right size with their knives. Most of the hides collected at the last camp were tanned and scraped thin enough for use, and many of the women were working on fitting them together and sewing them with sinews to create the coverings for the lodges. Men were wandering around the bushes along the brook's edge, cutting sticks of red willow, or shongsasha, whose bark, mixed with tobacco, they use for smoking. Reynal’s wife was diligently working on her lodge with her awl and buffalo sinews, while her husband, having just finished a huge breakfast of meat, was sharing a social pipe with Raymond and me. Eventually, he suggested that we go out hunting. “Go to the Big Crow’s lodge,” he said, “and grab your rifle. I’ll bet my gray Wyandotte pony against your mare that we’ll spot an elk or a black-tailed deer, or maybe even a bighorn, before we’re two miles out of camp. I’ll ride my wife’s old yellow horse; she can’t go faster than four miles an hour, but she’s as good in the mountains as a mule.”

I mounted the black mule which Raymond usually rode. She was a very fine and powerful animal, gentle and manageable enough by nature; but of late her temper had been soured by misfortune. About a week before I had chanced to offend some one of the Indians, who out of revenge went secretly into the meadow and gave her a severe stab in the haunch with his knife. The wound, though partially healed, still galled her extremely, and made her even more perverse and obstinate than the rest of her species.

I got on the black mule that Raymond usually rode. She was a beautiful and strong animal, naturally gentle and easy to handle; but recently her mood had been affected by bad experiences. About a week earlier, I had accidentally upset one of the Indians, who, out of revenge, snuck into the meadow and stabbed her hard in the hindquarters with a knife. The wound, although mostly healed, still bothered her a lot and made her even more stubborn and difficult than other mules.

The morning was a glorious one, and I was in better health than I had been at any time for the last two months. Though a strong frame and well compacted sinews had borne me through hitherto, it was long since I had been in a condition to feel the exhilaration of the fresh mountain wind and the gay sunshine that brightened the crags and trees. We left the little valley and ascended a rocky hollow in the mountain. Very soon we were out of sight of the camp, and of every living thing, man, beast, bird, or insect. I had never before, except on foot, passed over such execrable ground, and I desire never to repeat the experiment. The black mule grew indignant, and even the redoubtable yellow horse stumbled every moment, and kept groaning to himself as he cut his feet and legs among the sharp rocks.

The morning was beautiful, and I felt healthier than I had in the past two months. Although I had relied on my strong body and tough muscles until now, it had been a while since I experienced the refreshing mountain breeze and the bright sunlight that illuminated the cliffs and trees. We left the small valley and climbed up a rocky dip in the mountain. Before long, we were out of sight of the camp and completely alone, with no living beings around—no people, animals, birds, or even insects. I had never crossed such terrible terrain before, except on foot, and I hope to never go through that again. The black mule was visibly annoyed, and even the reliable yellow horse stumbled constantly, groaning to himself as he scraped his feet and legs on the sharp rocks.

It was a scene of silence and desolation. Little was visible except beetling crags and the bare shingly sides of the mountains, relieved by scarcely a trace of vegetation. At length, however, we came upon a forest tract, and had no sooner done so than we heartily wished ourselves back among the rocks again; for we were on a steep descent, among trees so thick that we could see scarcely a rod in any direction.

It was a scene of silence and emptiness. There was little to see except towering cliffs and the bare, rocky slopes of the mountains, barely showing any signs of plant life. Eventually, though, we stumbled upon a forest, and as soon as we did, we wished we were back among the rocks; we were on a steep downhill path, surrounded by trees so dense that we could barely see a yard in any direction.

If one is anxious to place himself in a situation where the hazardous and the ludicrous are combined in about equal proportions, let him get upon a vicious mule, with a snaffle bit, and try to drive her through the woods down a slope of 45 degrees. Let him have on a long rifle, a buckskin frock with long fringes, and a head of long hair. These latter appendages will be caught every moment and twitched away in small portions by the twigs, which will also whip him smartly across the face, while the large branches above thump him on the head. His mule, if she be a true one, will alternately stop short and dive violently forward, and his position upon her back will be somewhat diversified and extraordinary. At one time he will clasp her affectionately, to avoid the blow of a bough overhead; at another, he will throw himself back and fling his knee forward against the side of her neck, to keep it from being crushed between the rough bark of a tree and the equally unyielding ribs of the animal herself. Reynal was cursing incessantly during the whole way down. Neither of us had the remotest idea where we were going; and though I have seen rough riding, I shall always retain an evil recollection of that five minutes’ scramble.

If someone is eager to put themselves in a situation where danger and humor mix about equally, they should hop on a stubborn mule with a snaffle bit and try to ride her down a 45-degree slope through the woods. They should wear a long rifle, a buckskin jacket with long fringes, and have long hair. Those extra bits will get snagged constantly and yanked away in small chunks by the twigs, which will also whip across their face, while the big branches overhead bang against their head. If the mule is true to form, she'll stop suddenly and then lurch violently forward, making the rider’s position on her back totally unpredictable and awkward. At one moment, they'll hug her tightly to avoid a branch overhead; at another, they'll lean back and shove their knee against her neck to prevent it from getting crushed between the rough bark of a tree and the mule’s solid ribs. Reynal cursed nonstop the entire way down. Neither of us had the slightest clue where we were going, and although I've experienced rough riding, I'll always remember that five minutes of chaos with a sense of dread.

At last we left our troubles behind us, emerging into the channel of a brook that circled along the foot of the descent; and here, turning joyfully to the left, we rode in luxury and ease over the white pebbles and the rippling water, shaded from the glaring sun by an overarching green transparency. These halcyon moments were of short duration. The friendly brook, turning sharply to one side, went brawling and foaming down the rocky hill into an abyss, which, as far as we could discern, had no bottom; so once more we betook ourselves to the detested woods. When next we came forth from their dancing shadow and sunlight, we found ourselves standing in the broad glare of day, on a high jutting point of the mountain. Before us stretched a long, wide, desert valley, winding away far amid the mountains. No civilized eye but mine had ever looked upon that virgin waste. Reynal was gazing intently; he began to speak at last:

Finally, we left our troubles behind, arriving at a brook that wound along the base of the slope. Here, joyfully turning to the left, we traveled in comfort over the smooth pebbles and the flowing water, shaded from the harsh sun by a canopy of green. However, these blissful moments were short-lived. The friendly brook suddenly curved to one side, rushing and crashing down the rocky hill into an abyss that appeared bottomless. So, once again, we had to venture into the hated woods. When we finally emerged from their shifting shadows and sunlight, we found ourselves standing in the bright light of day on a high protruding point of the mountain. In front of us lay a vast, empty valley winding far between the mountains. No civilized eye but mine had ever gazed upon that untouched wasteland. Reynal was staring intently; he finally began to speak:

“Many a time, when I was with the Indians, I have been hunting for gold all through the Black Hills. There’s plenty of it here; you may be certain of that. I have dreamed about it fifty times, and I never dreamed yet but what it came true. Look over yonder at those black rocks piled up against that other big rock. Don’t it look as if there might be something there? It won’t do for a white man to be rummaging too much about these mountains; the Indians say they are full of bad spirits; and I believe myself that it’s no good luck to be hunting about here after gold. Well, for all that, I would like to have one of these fellows up here, from down below, to go about with his witch-hazel rod, and I’ll guarantee that it would not be long before he would light on a gold mine. Never mind; we’ll let the gold alone for to-day. Look at those trees down below us in the hollow; we’ll go down there, and I reckon we’ll get a black-tailed deer.”

“Many times, when I was with the Native Americans, I went searching for gold all through the Black Hills. There’s plenty of it here; you can count on that. I’ve dreamed about it fifty times, and every time, my dreams have come true. Look over there at those black rocks piled against that other big rock. Doesn’t it look like there might be something there? It’s not a good idea for a white guy to be rummaging too much around these mountains; the Native Americans say they are full of bad spirits, and I believe myself that it’s bad luck to be hunting for gold around here. Still, I’d like to have one of those guys from down below up here, using his witch-hazel stick, and I’ll bet it wouldn’t take long before he found a gold mine. Never mind; we’ll leave the gold alone for today. Look at those trees down in the hollow; let’s head down there, and I think we’ll get a black-tailed deer.”

But Reynal’s predictions were not verified. We passed mountain after mountain, and valley after valley; we explored deep ravines; yet still to my companion’s vexation and evident surprise, no game could be found. So, in the absence of better, we resolved to go out on the plains and look for an antelope. With this view we began to pass down a narrow valley, the bottom of which was covered with the stiff wild-sage bushes and marked with deep paths, made by the buffalo, who, for some inexplicable reason, are accustomed to penetrate, in their long grave processions, deep among the gorges of these sterile mountains.

But Reynal's predictions didn't come true. We went past mountain after mountain and valley after valley; we explored deep ravines; yet, much to my companion's frustration and clear surprise, we couldn't find any game. So, since we didn't have any better options, we decided to head out to the plains and search for an antelope. With that in mind, we started to descend a narrow valley, the bottom of which was covered with tough wild-sage bushes and marked with deep paths made by the buffalo, who, for some unknown reason, tend to wander deep into the gorges of these barren mountains during their long, solemn processions.

Reynal’s eye was ranging incessantly among the rocks and along the edges of the black precipices, in hopes of discovering the mountain sheep peering down upon us in fancied security from that giddy elevation. Nothing was visible for some time. At length we both detected something in motion near the foot of one of the mountains, and in a moment afterward a black-tailed deer, with his spreading antlers, stood gazing at us from the top of a rock, and then, slowly turning away, disappeared behind it. In an instant Reynal was out of his saddle, and running toward the spot. I, being too weak to follow, sat holding his horse and waiting the result. I lost sight of him, then heard the report of his rifle, deadened among the rocks, and finally saw him reappear, with a surly look that plainly betrayed his ill success. Again we moved forward down the long valley, when soon after we came full upon what seemed a wide and very shallow ditch, incrusted at the bottom with white clay, dried and cracked in the sun. Under this fair outside, Reynal’s eye detected the signs of lurking mischief. He called me to stop, and then alighting, picked up a stone and threw it into the ditch. To my utter amazement it fell with a dull splash, breaking at once through the thin crust, and spattering round the hole a yellowish creamy fluid, into which it sank and disappeared. A stick, five or six feet long lay on the ground, and with this we sounded the insidious abyss close to its edge. It was just possible to touch the bottom. Places like this are numerous among the Rocky Mountains. The buffalo, in his blind and heedless walk, often plunges into them unawares. Down he sinks; one snort of terror, one convulsive struggle, and the slime calmly flows above his shaggy head, the languid undulations of its sleek and placid surface alone betraying how the powerful monster writhes in his death-throes below.

Reynal kept scanning the rocks and the edges of the dark cliffs, hoping to spot the mountain sheep looking down at us in imagined safety from that dizzy height. For a while, we saw nothing. Finally, we both noticed movement near the bottom of one of the mountains, and moments later a black-tailed deer with its wide antlers stood staring at us from the top of a rock, then slowly turned and vanished behind it. In an instant, Reynal was off his horse, running toward the spot. I, too weak to follow, kept hold of his horse and waited for what would happen next. I lost sight of him, then heard the sound of his rifle echoing among the rocks, and finally saw him return, looking grumpy, which clearly showed his failure. We continued down the long valley until we came upon what seemed like a wide, shallow ditch, with a bottom covered in white clay, dried and cracked from the sun. Beneath this unassuming surface, Reynal's keen eye noticed signs of hidden danger. He told me to stop, got off his horse, picked up a rock, and threw it into the ditch. To my complete surprise, it landed with a dull splash, breaking through the thin crust and splattering a yellowish, creamy liquid around the hole, into which it sank and vanished. There was a five-or-six-foot stick lying on the ground, and with it, we probed the treacherous depths near the edge. It was just possible to touch the bottom. Spots like this are common in the Rocky Mountains. The buffalo, in its blind, careless walk, often falls into them without realizing. Down it goes; one terrified snort, one desperate struggle, and the muck flows calmly over its shaggy head, the gentle ripples of its smooth surface alone revealing the powerful beast thrashing in its death throes below.

We found after some trouble a point where we could pass the abyss, and now the valley began to open upon the plains which spread to the horizon before us. On one of their distant swells we discerned three or four black specks, which Reynal pronounced to be buffalo.

We eventually found a spot where we could cross the abyss, and now the valley started to open up to the plains stretching out to the horizon in front of us. On one of the distant hills, we spotted three or four black dots, which Reynal said were buffalo.

“Come,” said he, “we must get one of them. My squaw wants more sinews to finish her lodge with, and I want some glue myself.”

“Come on,” he said, “we need to get one of those. My wife needs more sinews to finish her lodge, and I want some glue for myself.”

He immediately put the yellow horse at such a gallop as he was capable of executing, while I set spurs to the mule, who soon far outran her plebeian rival. When we had galloped a mile or more, a large rabbit, by ill luck, sprang up just under the feet of the mule, who bounded violently aside in full career. Weakened as I was, I was flung forcibly to the ground, and my rifle, falling close to my head, went off with a shock. Its sharp spiteful report rang for some moments in my ear. Being slightly stunned, I lay for an instant motionless, and Reynal, supposing me to be shot, rode up and began to curse the mule. Soon recovering myself, I rose, picked up the rifle and anxiously examined it. It was badly injured. The stock was cracked, and the main screw broken, so that the lock had to be tied in its place with a string; yet happily it was not rendered totally unserviceable. I wiped it out, reloaded it, and handing it to Reynal, who meanwhile had caught the mule and led her up to me, I mounted again. No sooner had I done so, than the brute began to rear and plunge with extreme violence; but being now well prepared for her, and free from incumbrance, I soon reduced her to submission. Then taking the rifle again from Reynal, we galloped forward as before.

He quickly got the yellow horse galloping as fast as he could, while I spurred the mule, who soon outpaced her less impressive rival. After we had raced for a mile or more, a large rabbit unexpectedly jumped up right in front of the mule, causing her to leap violently to the side. Weakened as I was, I was thrown hard to the ground, and my rifle, landing close to my head, fired off with a loud bang. Its sharp, annoying report echoed in my ears for a moment. Slightly dazed, I lay still for a moment, and Reynal, thinking I had been shot, rode up and started cursing the mule. Once I regained my composure, I got up, picked up the rifle, and examined it anxiously. It was damaged. The stock was cracked, and the main screw was broken, so the lock had to be tied in place with a string; thankfully, it was still usable. I cleaned it out, reloaded it, and handed it to Reynal, who had meanwhile caught the mule and brought her back to me. I got back on, and as soon as I did, the mule started to rear and buck violently; but now that I was prepared and free from extra weight, I quickly got her to calm down. Then, taking the rifle back from Reynal, we took off galloping again as before.

We were now free of the mountain and riding far out on the broad prairie. The buffalo were still some two miles in advance of us. When we came near them, we stopped where a gentle swell of the plain concealed us from their view, and while I held his horse Reynal ran forward with his rifle, till I lost sight of him beyond the rising ground. A few minutes elapsed; I heard the report of his piece, and saw the buffalo running away at full speed on the right, and immediately after, the hunter himself unsuccessful as before, came up and mounted his horse in excessive ill-humor. He cursed the Black Hills and the buffalo, swore that he was a good hunter, which indeed was true, and that he had never been out before among those mountains without killing two or three deer at least.

We were now free from the mountain and riding far out on the wide prairie. The buffalo were still about two miles ahead of us. When we got closer, we stopped where a gentle rise in the land hid us from their view, and while I held his horse, Reynal ran ahead with his rifle until I lost sight of him beyond the hill. A few minutes passed; I heard the shot from his gun and saw the buffalo running away at full speed to the right. Soon after, the hunter himself, unsuccessful as before, came back and mounted his horse, clearly in a bad mood. He cursed the Black Hills and the buffalo, insisting that he was a good hunter, which was true, and that he'd never gone out into those mountains without killing at least two or three deer.

We now turned toward the distant encampment. As we rode along, antelope in considerable numbers were flying lightly in all directions over the plain, but not one of them would stand and be shot at. When we reached the foot of the mountain ridge that lay between us and the village, we were too impatient to take the smooth and circuitous route; so turning short to the left, we drove our wearied animals directly upward among the rocks. Still more antelope were leaping about among these flinty hillsides. Each of us shot at one, though from a great distance, and each missed his mark. At length we reached the summit of the last ridge. Looking down, we saw the bustling camp in the valley at our feet, and ingloriously descended to it. As we rode among the lodges, the Indians looked in vain for the fresh meat that should have hung behind our saddles, and the squaws uttered various suppressed ejaculations, to the great indignation of Reynal. Our mortification was increased when we rode up to his lodge. Here we saw his young Indian relative, the Hail-Storm, his light graceful figure on the ground in an easy attitude, while with his friend the Rabbit, who sat by his side, he was making an abundant meal from a wooden bowl of wasna, which the squaw had placed between them. Near him lay the fresh skin of a female elk, which he had just killed among the mountains, only a mile or two from the camp. No doubt the boy’s heart was elated with triumph, but he betrayed no sign of it. He even seemed totally unconscious of our approach, and his handsome face had all the tranquillity of Indian self-control; a self-control which prevents the exhibition of emotion, without restraining the emotion itself. It was about two months since I had known the Hail-Storm, and within that time his character had remarkably developed. When I first saw him, he was just emerging from the habits and feelings of the boy into the ambition of the hunter and warrior. He had lately killed his first deer, and this had excited his aspirations after distinction. Since that time he had been continually in search of game, and no young hunter in the village had been so active or so fortunate as he. It will perhaps be remembered how fearlessly he attacked the buffalo bull, as we were moving toward our camp at the Medicine-Bow Mountain. All this success had produced a marked change in his character. As I first remembered him he always shunned the society of the young squaws, and was extremely bashful and sheepish in their presence; but now, in the confidence of his own reputation, he began to assume the airs and the arts of a man of gallantry. He wore his red blanket dashingly over his left shoulder, painted his cheeks every day with vermilion, and hung pendants of shells in his ears. If I observed aright, he met with very good success in his new pursuits; still the Hail-Storm had much to accomplish before he attained the full standing of a warrior. Gallantly as he began to bear himself among the women and girls, he still was timid and abashed in the presence of the chiefs and old men; for he had never yet killed a man, or stricken the dead body of an enemy in battle. I have no doubt that the handsome smooth-faced boy burned with keen desire to flash his maiden scalping-knife, and I would not have encamped alone with him without watching his movements with a distrustful eye.

We turned towards the distant camp. As we rode, antelope were darting in all directions across the plain, but none stood still long enough to be shot at. When we reached the base of the mountain ridge between us and the village, we were too eager to take the smooth, winding path; so, turning left, we pushed our tired animals straight up among the rocks. More antelope were leaping around on the rocky slopes. Each of us took a shot at one from a distance, but we all missed. Finally, we reached the top of the last ridge. Looking down, we saw the busy camp laid out below us and made our way down. As we rode through the lodges, the Indians searched in vain for the fresh meat that should have been tied to our saddles, and the women murmured various comments, much to Reynal's annoyance. Our embarrassment increased when we reached his lodge. There, we saw his young Indian relative, Hail-Storm, lounging comfortably on the ground with his friend Rabbit beside him, enjoying a hearty meal from a wooden bowl of wasna that a woman had set between them. Nearby lay the fresh skin of a female elk, which he had just killed in the mountains, just a mile or two from camp. No doubt the boy was feeling triumphant, but he showed no signs of it. He seemed completely unaware of us approaching, and his handsome face displayed the calm of Indian self-control; a self-control that hides emotions without suppressing them. I had known Hail-Storm for about two months, and during that time, his character had grown significantly. When I first met him, he was just transitioning from boyhood to the ambitions of a hunter and warrior. He had recently killed his first deer, sparking his aspirations for glory. Since then, he had tirelessly chased after game, and no other young hunter in the village had been as active or successful as him. It might be remembered how bravely he confronted the buffalo bull as we made our way towards our camp at Medicine-Bow Mountain. All this success had noticeably changed him. Initially, he avoided the company of young women and felt extremely shy around them; but now, with newfound confidence, he started to take on the demeanor and charm of a man. He wore his red blanket stylishly over his left shoulder, painted his cheeks with vermilion every day, and put shell pendants in his ears. From what I observed, he seemed to do well in his new pursuits; however, Hail-Storm still had a lot to prove before he reached the status of a full warrior. Despite his burgeoning confidence with women and girls, he remained shy and hesitant around chiefs and elders, since he had yet to kill a man or strike down an enemy in battle. I have no doubt that the handsome, smooth-faced boy was burning with a strong desire to use his first scalping knife, and I wouldn't have camped alone with him without keeping a wary eye on his movements.

His elder brother, the Horse, was of a different character. He was nothing but a lazy dandy. He knew very well how to hunt, but preferred to live by the hunting of others. He had no appetite for distinction, and the Hail-Storm, though a few years younger than he, already surpassed him in reputation. He had a dark and ugly face, and he passed a great part of his time in adorning it with vermilion, and contemplating it by means of a little pocket looking-glass which I gave him. As for the rest of the day, he divided it between eating and sleeping, and sitting in the sun on the outside of a lodge. Here he would remain for hour after hour, arrayed in all his finery, with an old dragoon’s sword in his hand, and evidently flattering himself that he was the center of attraction to the eyes of the surrounding squaws. Yet he sat looking straight forward with a face of the utmost gravity, as if wrapped in profound meditation, and it was only by the occasional sidelong glances which he shot at his supposed admirers that one could detect the true course of his thoughts.

His older brother, the Horse, had a different personality. He was just a lazy show-off. He knew how to hunt but preferred to benefit from others’ hunting. He lacked ambition, and the Hail-Storm, though a few years younger, already had a better reputation. He had a dark and unattractive face and spent a lot of time decorating it with red makeup, looking at himself through a small pocket mirror I gave him. For the rest of the day, he split his time between eating, sleeping, and lounging in the sun outside a lodge. There, he would stay for hours, dressed in all his fancy clothes, holding an old dragoon’s sword and clearly thinking he was the center of attention for the nearby women. Yet he sat looking straight ahead with a serious expression, as if lost in deep thought, and it was only by the occasional sideways glances he gave to his supposed admirers that you could tell what he was really thinking.

Both he and his brother may represent a class in the Indian community; neither should the Hail-Storm’s friend, the Rabbit, be passed by without notice. The Hail-Storm and he were inseparable; they ate, slept, and hunted together, and shared with one another almost all that they possessed. If there be anything that deserves to be called romantic in the Indian character, it is to be sought for in friendships such as this, which are quite common among many of the prairie tribes.

Both he and his brother might represent a group within the Indian community; nor should the Hail-Storm's friend, the Rabbit, be overlooked. The Hail-Storm and he were inseparable; they ate, slept, and hunted together, sharing almost everything they had. If there's anything truly romantic about the Indian character, it's found in friendships like this, which are quite common among many prairie tribes.

Slowly, hour after hour, that weary afternoon dragged away. I lay in Reynal’s lodge, overcome by the listless torpor that pervaded the whole encampment. The day’s work was finished, or if it were not, the inhabitants had resolved not to finish it at all, and all were dozing quietly within the shelter of the lodges. A profound lethargy, the very spirit of indolence, seemed to have sunk upon the village. Now and then I could hear the low laughter of some girl from within a neighboring lodge, or the small shrill voices of a few restless children, who alone were moving in the deserted area. The spirit of the place infected me; I could not even think consecutively; I was fit only for musing and reverie, when at last, like the rest, I fell asleep.

Slowly, hour after hour, that tired afternoon dragged on. I lay in Reynal’s lodge, overwhelmed by the lethargy that filled the whole campsite. The day's work was done, or if it wasn’t, the people had decided not to finish it at all, and everyone was dozing peacefully inside the lodges. A deep sense of inactivity, the very essence of laziness, seemed to have settled over the village. Occasionally, I could hear the soft laughter of some girl from a nearby lodge, or the high-pitched voices of a few restless children, who were the only ones moving in the empty area. The atmosphere around me affected me; I couldn’t even think straight; I was only capable of daydreaming and reflection, until finally, like everyone else, I fell asleep.

When evening came and the fires were lighted round the lodges, a select family circle convened in the neighborhood of Reynal’s domicile. It was composed entirely of his squaw’s relatives, a mean and ignoble clan, among whom none but the Hail-Storm held forth any promise of future distinction. Even his protests were rendered not a little dubious by the character of the family, less however from any principle of aristocratic distinction than from the want of powerful supporters to assist him in his undertakings, and help to avenge his quarrels. Raymond and I sat down along with them. There were eight or ten men gathered around the fire, together with about as many women, old and young, some of whom were tolerably good-looking. As the pipe passed round among the men, a lively conversation went forward, more merry than delicate, and at length two or three of the elder women (for the girls were somewhat diffident and bashful) began to assail Raymond with various pungent witticisms. Some of the men took part and an old squaw concluded by bestowing on him a ludicrous nick name, at which a general laugh followed at his expense. Raymond grinned and giggled, and made several futile attempts at repartee. Knowing the impolicy and even danger of suffering myself to be placed in a ludicrous light among the Indians, I maintained a rigid inflexible countenance, and wholly escaped their sallies.

When evening arrived and the fires were lit around the lodges, a select family group gathered near Reynal’s home. It was made up entirely of his wife's relatives, a petty and unimpressive bunch, among whom only Hail-Storm seemed to have any potential for future success. Even his complaints seemed a bit questionable due to the nature of the family, not so much because of any sense of superiority but because he lacked strong allies to support him in his efforts and help him settle scores. Raymond and I joined them. There were about eight or ten men around the fire, along with just as many women, both young and old, some of whom were quite attractive. As the pipe circulated among the men, a lively conversation unfolded, more cheerful than refined, and eventually a couple of the older women (the younger ones were a bit shy and timid) began to tease Raymond with various sharp remarks. Some of the men joined in, and an older woman ended with a funny nickname for him, which led to a general laugh at his expense. Raymond grinned and chuckled, making several unsuccessful attempts at witty comebacks. Knowing it would be unwise and even risky to allow myself to be made a fool of in front of the Indians, I kept a serious and composed expression, completely avoiding their jabs.

In the morning I found, to my great disgust, that the camp was to retain its position for another day. I dreaded its languor and monotony, and to escape it, I set out to explore the surrounding mountains. I was accompanied by a faithful friend, my rifle, the only friend indeed on whose prompt assistance in time of trouble I could implicitly rely. Most of the Indians in the village, it is true, professed good-will toward the whites, but the experience of others and my own observation had taught me the extreme folly of confidence, and the utter impossibility of foreseeing to what sudden acts the strange unbridled impulses of an Indian may urge him. When among this people danger is never so near as when you are unprepared for it, never so remote as when you are armed and on the alert to meet it any moment. Nothing offers so strong a temptation to their ferocious instincts as the appearance of timidity, weakness, or security.

In the morning, I was really annoyed to find that the camp would stay in the same place for another day. I dreaded the boredom and monotony, so I decided to explore the nearby mountains. I was joined by my trusty friend, my rifle, the only companion I could truly count on in times of trouble. While most of the Indians in the village seemed friendly towards the whites, both my own experience and what I had learned from others taught me how foolish it is to be overly trusting. It's impossible to predict what sudden actions the unpredictable impulses of an Indian might lead them to. When you're among this people, danger is always closest when you're unprepared and farthest away when you're armed and ready to face it. There’s nothing that tempts their wild instincts more than seeing someone who appears timid, weak, or overly secure.

Many deep and gloomy gorges, choked with trees and bushes, opened from the sides of the hills, which were shaggy with forests wherever the rocks permitted vegetation to spring. A great number of Indians were stalking along the edges of the woods, and boys were whooping and laughing on the mountain-sides, practicing eye and hand, and indulging their destructive propensities by following birds and small animals and killing them with their little bows and arrows. There was one glen, stretching up between steep cliffs far into the bosom of the mountain. I began to ascend along its bottom, pushing my way onward among the rocks, trees, and bushes that obstructed it. A slender thread of water trickled along its center, which since issuing from the heart of its native rock could scarcely have been warmed or gladdened by a ray of sunshine. After advancing for some time, I conceived myself to be entirely alone; but coming to a part of the glen in a great measure free of trees and undergrowth, I saw at some distance the black head and red shoulders of an Indian among the bushes above. The reader need not prepare himself for a startling adventure, for I have none to relate. The head and shoulders belonged to Mene-Seela, my best friend in the village. As I had approached noiselessly with my moccasined feet, the old man was quite unconscious of my presence; and turning to a point where I could gain an unobstructed view of him, I saw him seated alone, immovable as a statue, among the rocks and trees. His face was turned upward, and his eyes seemed riveted on a pine tree springing from a cleft in the precipice above. The crest of the pine was swaying to and fro in the wind, and its long limbs waved slowly up and down, as if the tree had life. Looking for a while at the old man, I was satisfied that he was engaged in an act of worship or prayer, or communion of some kind with a supernatural being. I longed to penetrate his thoughts, but I could do nothing more than conjecture and speculate. I knew that though the intellect of an Indian can embrace the idea of an all-wise, all-powerful Spirit, the supreme Ruler of the universe, yet his mind will not always ascend into communion with a being that seems to him so vast, remote, and incomprehensible; and when danger threatens, when his hopes are broken, when the black wing of sorrow overshadows him, he is prone to turn for relief to some inferior agency, less removed from the ordinary scope of his faculties. He has a guardian spirit, on whom he relies for succor and guidance. To him all nature is instinct with mystic influence. Among those mountains not a wild beast was prowling, a bird singing, or a leaf fluttering, that might not tend to direct his destiny or give warning of what was in store for him; and he watches the world of nature around him as the astrologer watches the stars. So closely is he linked with it that his guardian spirit, no unsubstantial creation of the fancy, is usually embodied in the form of some living thing—a bear, a wolf, an eagle, or a serpent; and Mene-Seela, as he gazed intently on the old pine tree, might believe it to inshrine the fancied guide and protector of his life.

Many deep and dark gorges, filled with trees and bushes, opened up from the hillsides, which were covered in forests wherever the rocks allowed plants to grow. A lot of Indigenous people were stalking along the edges of the woods, and boys were cheering and laughing on the mountainsides, practicing their aim and indulging their wild sides by chasing birds and small animals, killing them with their little bows and arrows. There was one valley, stretching up between steep cliffs deep into the mountains. I started to climb along its bottom, forcing my way through the rocks, trees, and bushes that blocked my path. A thin stream of water trickled through the center, which, since coming from the heart of the rock, could hardly have been warmed or brightened by any sunlight. After moving forward for a while, I thought I was completely alone; but when I reached a part of the valley mostly free of trees and underbrush, I spotted in the distance the black head and red shoulders of an Indigenous man among the bushes above. The reader shouldn’t expect a thrilling adventure from me, as I have none to share. The head and shoulders belonged to Mene-Seela, my best friend in the village. Since I had approached quietly on my soft-soled shoes, the old man had no idea I was there; and as I moved to a spot where I could see him clearly, I found him seated alone, as still as a statue, among the rocks and trees. His face was tilted upward, and his eyes seemed fixed on a pine tree growing from a crack in the cliff above. The top of the pine swayed in the wind, and its long branches moved slowly up and down, as if the tree were alive. Watching the old man for a while, I realized he was engaged in some kind of worship or prayer, or a deep connection with a supernatural being. I wanted to understand his thoughts, but all I could do was guess and ponder. I knew that while an Indigenous person's mind can grasp the idea of an all-knowing, all-powerful Spirit, the supreme ruler of the universe, they don’t always reach out to such an immense, distant, and unfathomable being; and when danger looms, when their hopes are shattered, when the shadow of sorrow hovers over them, they tend to seek comfort from some lesser force, something closer to their everyday understanding. They have a guardian spirit they rely on for support and guidance. To them, all of nature is filled with mysterious power. Among those mountains, not a wild animal prowled, a bird chirped, or a leaf fluttered that didn't have the potential to influence their fate or provide a warning of what awaited them; and they watch nature around them as an astrologer watches the stars. They are so closely connected that their guardian spirit, a real presence rather than a figment of imagination, usually takes the form of a living creature—a bear, a wolf, an eagle, or a serpent; and as Mene-Seela gazed intently at the old pine tree, he might have thought it contained the imagined guide and protector of his life.

Whatever was passing in the mind of the old man, it was no part of sense or of delicacy to disturb him. Silently retracing my footsteps, I descended the glen until I came to a point where I could climb the steep precipices that shut it in, and gain the side of the mountain. Looking up, I saw a tall peak rising among the woods. Something impelled me to climb; I had not felt for many a day such strength and elasticity of limb. An hour and a half of slow and often intermittent labor brought me to the very summit; and emerging from the dark shadows of the rocks and pines, I stepped forth into the light, and walking along the sunny verge of a precipice, seated myself on its extreme point. Looking between the mountain peaks to the westward, the pale blue prairie was stretching to the farthest horizon like a serene and tranquil ocean. The surrounding mountains were in themselves sufficiently striking and impressive, but this contrast gave redoubled effect to their stern features.

Whatever was going through the old man's mind, it was neither sensible nor considerate to bother him. Silently retracing my steps, I made my way down the valley until I reached a spot where I could climb the steep cliffs that surrounded it and reach the mountain's slope. Looking up, I saw a tall peak towering among the trees. Something drove me to climb; I hadn't felt such strength and energy in my body for many days. An hour and a half of slow and often interrupted effort got me to the very top; and as I emerged from the dark shadows of the rocks and pines, I stepped out into the light, walking along the sunny edge of a cliff and sitting down at its farthest point. Looking between the mountain peaks to the west, the pale blue prairie stretched to the horizon like a calm and peaceful ocean. The surrounding mountains were impressive on their own, but this contrast highlighted their rugged features even more.





CHAPTER XIX

PASSAGE OF THE MOUNTAINS

When I took leave of Shaw at La Bonte’s Camp, I promised that I would meet him at Fort Laramie on the 1st of August. That day, according to my reckoning, was now close at hand. It was impossible, at best, to fulfill my engagement exactly, and my meeting with him must have been postponed until many days after the appointed time, had not the plans of the Indians very well coincided with my own. They too, intended to pass the mountains and move toward the fort. To do so at this point was impossible, because there was no opening; and in order to find a passage we were obliged to go twelve or fourteen miles southward. Late in the afternoon the camp got in motion, defiling back through the mountains along the same narrow passage by which they had entered. I rode in company with three or four young Indians at the rear, and the moving swarm stretched before me, in the ruddy light of sunset, or in the deep shadow of the mountains far beyond my sight. It was an ill-omened spot they chose to encamp upon. When they were there just a year before, a war party of ten men, led by The Whirlwind’s son, had gone out against the enemy, and not one had ever returned. This was the immediate cause of this season’s warlike preparations. I was not a little astonished when I came to the camp, at the confusion of horrible sounds with which it was filled; howls, shrieks, and wailings were heard from all the women present, many of whom not content with this exhibition of grief for the loss of their friends and relatives, were gashing their legs deeply with knives. A warrior in the village, who had lost a brother in the expedition; chose another mode of displaying his sorrow. The Indians, who, though often rapacious, are utterly devoid of avarice, are accustomed in times of mourning, or on other solemn occasions, to give away the whole of their possessions, and reduce themselves to nakedness and want. The warrior in question led his two best horses into the center of the village, and gave them away to his friends; upon which songs and acclamations in praise of his generosity mingled with the cries of the women.

When I said goodbye to Shaw at La Bonte’s Camp, I promised I would meet him at Fort Laramie on August 1st. That day, according to my calculations, was now just around the corner. It was already difficult to keep my promise exactly, and my meeting with him would have to be delayed for many days past the agreed date if the Indians' plans hadn't lined up so perfectly with mine. They also intended to cross the mountains and head toward the fort. However, that wasn’t possible at this point, as there was no way through; we had to travel twelve or fourteen miles south to find a passage. Late in the afternoon, the camp began to move, winding back through the mountains along the same narrow path they'd used to enter. I rode with three or four young Indians at the back, while the moving crowd stretched out before me, bathed in the warm light of sunset, or lost in the deep shadows of the distant mountains. They chose an ill-fated spot to set up camp. A year earlier, a war party of ten men, led by The Whirlwind’s son, had gone out to fight and none of them had returned. This was the main reason for this season's preparations for war. I was quite taken aback when I reached the camp, filled with the horrifying sounds echoing around; howls, shrieks, and wails came from all the women present, many of whom were not satisfied with just showing their grief over the loss of their friends and relatives, but were cutting their legs deeply with knives. One warrior in the village, who had lost a brother on the expedition, chose a different way to express his sorrow. The Indians, who can often be aggressive, are completely devoid of greed and are known to give away all their possessions during mourning or other solemn occasions, bringing themselves down to nakedness and poverty. This particular warrior brought his two best horses to the center of the village and gave them away to his friends, which led to songs and cheers celebrating his generosity, mixing with the cries of the women.

On the next morning we entered once more among the mountains. There was nothing in their appearance either grand or picturesque, though they were desolate to the last degree, being mere piles of black and broken rocks, without trees or vegetation of any kind. As we passed among them along a wide valley, I noticed Raymond riding by the side of a younger squaw, to whom he was addressing various insinuating compliments. All the old squaws in the neighborhood watched his proceedings in great admiration, and the girl herself would turn aside her head and laugh. Just then the old mule thought proper to display her vicious pranks; she began to rear and plunge most furiously. Raymond was an excellent rider, and at first he stuck fast in his seat; but the moment after, I saw the mule’s hind-legs flourishing in the air, and my unlucky follower pitching head foremost over her ears. There was a burst of screams and laughter from all the women, in which his mistress herself took part, and Raymond was instantly assailed by such a shower of witticisms, that he was glad to ride forward out of hearing.

The next morning, we entered the mountains again. They didn’t look grand or picturesque; instead, they were completely desolate, just piles of black, broken rocks, with no trees or vegetation at all. As we made our way through a wide valley, I spotted Raymond riding next to a younger Native woman, giving her all sorts of smooth compliments. All the older women nearby watched him with great admiration, and the girl would turn her head and laugh. Just then, the old mule decided to show off her bad behavior; she started rearing and kicking wildly. Raymond was a great rider, and at first, he held on tight. But a moment later, I saw the mule’s back legs flying in the air, and my unfortunate friend went headfirst over her ears. The women burst into a chorus of screams and laughter, including his lady, and Raymond quickly rode off to escape the barrage of teasing that followed.

Not long after, as I rode near him, I heard him shouting to me. He was pointing toward a detached rocky hill that stood in the middle of the valley before us, and from behind it a long file of elk came out at full speed and entered an opening in the side of the mountain. They had scarcely disappeared when whoops and exclamations came from fifty voices around me. The young men leaped from their horses, flung down their heavy buffalo robes, and ran at full speed toward the foot of the nearest mountain. Reynal also broke away at a gallop in the same direction, “Come on! come on!” he called to us. “Do you see that band of bighorn up yonder? If there’s one of them, there’s a hundred!”

Not long after, as I rode close to him, I heard him shouting at me. He was pointing toward a rocky hill that stood alone in the valley ahead of us, and from behind it, a long line of elk came charging out and disappeared into an opening in the side of the mountain. They had barely vanished when cheers and shouts erupted from around me. The young men jumped off their horses, tossed down their heavy buffalo robes, and sprinted straight toward the base of the nearest mountain. Reynal also took off at a gallop in the same direction, shouting to us, “Come on! Come on! Do you see that group of bighorn over there? If there's one, there are a hundred!”

In fact, near the summit of the mountain, I could see a large number of small white objects, moving rapidly upward among the precipices, while others were filing along its rocky profile. Anxious to see the sport, I galloped forward, and entering a passage in the side of the mountain, ascended the loose rocks as far as my horse could carry me. Here I fastened her to an old pine tree that stood alone, scorching in the sun. At that moment Raymond called to me from the right that another band of sheep was close at hand in that direction. I ran up to the top of the opening, which gave me a full view into the rocky gorge beyond; and here I plainly saw some fifty or sixty sheep, almost within rifle-shot, clattering upward among the rocks, and endeavoring, after their usual custom, to reach the highest point. The naked Indians bounded up lightly in pursuit. In a moment the game and hunters disappeared. Nothing could be seen or heard but the occasional report of a gun, more and more distant, reverberating among the rocks.

Actually, near the top of the mountain, I could see a lot of small white objects moving quickly upward among the cliffs, while others were marching along its rocky edge. Eager to see the action, I rode ahead and entered a passage in the side of the mountain, climbing the loose rocks as far as my horse could take me. I tied her to an old pine tree that stood alone, baking in the sun. At that moment, Raymond called to me from the right that another group of sheep was nearby in that direction. I hurried up to the top of the opening, which gave me a clear view into the rocky gorge beyond; and there I could see about fifty or sixty sheep, almost within rifle-shot, scrambling up the rocks, trying, as usual, to reach the highest point. The naked Indians jumped up lightly in pursuit. In an instant, both the game and the hunters disappeared. The only sounds were the occasional gunshot, fading further away, echoing among the rocks.

I turned to descend, and as I did so I could see the valley below alive with Indians passing rapidly through it, on horseback and on foot. A little farther on, all were stopping as they came up; the camp was preparing, and the lodges rising. I descended to this spot, and soon after Reynal and Raymond returned. They bore between them a sheep which they had pelted to death with stones from the edge of a ravine, along the bottom of which it was attempting to escape. One by one the hunters came dropping in; yet such is the activity of the Rocky Mountain sheep that, although sixty or seventy men were out in pursuit, not more than half a dozen animals were killed. Of these only one was a full-grown male. He had a pair of horns twisted like a ram’s, the dimensions of which were almost beyond belief. I have seen among the Indians ladles with long handles, capable of containing more than a quart, cut from such horns.

I turned to head down, and as I did, I saw the valley below bustling with Indians quickly moving through it, both on horseback and on foot. A little further along, they all stopped as they arrived; the camp was getting set up, and the lodges were going up. I made my way to this spot, and soon after, Reynal and Raymond came back. They were carrying a sheep that they had killed by throwing stones at it from the edge of a ravine, where it was trying to escape. One by one, the hunters started coming in; yet despite the efforts of sixty or seventy men out chasing them, only about half a dozen animals were taken down. Of those, only one was a fully grown male. He had a pair of horns twisted like a ram’s, and they were almost beyond belief in size. I’ve seen ladles among the Indians with long handles, made from such horns, that could hold more than a quart.

There is something peculiarly interesting in the character and habits of the mountain sheep, whose chosen retreats are above the region of vegetation and storms, and who leap among the giddy precipices of their aerial home as actively as the antelope skims over the prairies below.

There’s something uniquely fascinating about the character and behavior of mountain sheep, which make their homes above the vegetation and storm zones, leaping among the dizzying cliffs of their lofty habitat as nimbly as an antelope bounds across the prairies below.

Through the whole of the next morning we were moving forward, among the hills. On the following day the heights gathered around us, and the passage of the mountains began in earnest. Before the village left its camping ground, I set forward in company with the Eagle-Feather, a man of powerful frame, but of bad and sinister face. His son, a light-limbed boy, rode with us, and another Indian, named the Panther, was also of the party. Leaving the village out of sight behind us, we rode together up a rocky defile. After a while, however, the Eagle-Feather discovered in the distance some appearance of game, and set off with his son in pursuit of it, while I went forward with the Panther. This was a mere NOM DE GUERRE; for, like many Indians, he concealed his real name out of some superstitious notion. He was a very noble looking fellow. As he suffered his ornamented buffalo robe to fall into folds about his loins, his stately and graceful figure was fully displayed; and while he sat his horse in an easy attitude, the long feathers of the prairie cock fluttering from the crown of his head, he seemed the very model of a wild prairie-rider. He had not the same features as those of other Indians. Unless his handsome face greatly belied him, he was free from the jealousy, suspicion, and malignant cunning of his people. For the most part, a civilized white man can discover but very few points of sympathy between his own nature and that of an Indian. With every disposition to do justice to their good qualities, he must be conscious that an impassable gulf lies between him and his red brethren of the prairie. Nay, so alien to himself do they appear that, having breathed for a few months or a few weeks the air of this region, he begins to look upon them as a troublesome and dangerous species of wild beast, and, if expedient, he could shoot them with as little compunction as they themselves would experience after performing the same office upon him. Yet, in the countenance of the Panther, I gladly read that there were at least some points of sympathy between him and me. We were excellent friends, and as we rode forward together through rocky passages, deep dells, and little barren plains, he occupied himself very zealously in teaching me the Dakota language. After a while, we came to a little grassy recess, where some gooseberry bushes were growing at the foot of a rock; and these offered such temptation to my companion, that he gave over his instruction, and stopped so long to gather the fruit that before we were in motion again the van of the village came in view. An old woman appeared, leading down her pack horse among the rocks above. Savage after savage followed, and the little dell was soon crowded with the throng.

Throughout the next morning, we kept moving forward among the hills. The following day, the heights surrounded us, and we really began crossing the mountains. Before the village left its campsite, I set off with Eagle-Feather, a strong man with an unsettling face. His son, a lithe boy, rode with us, along with another Indian called the Panther. Once the village was out of sight, we rode up a rocky path together. After a while, though, Eagle-Feather spotted some game in the distance and took off with his son to chase it while I continued on with the Panther. This was just a NAME HE USED; like many Indians, he kept his real name hidden due to some superstitious belief. He looked quite noble. As he let his decorated buffalo robe fall around his waist, his tall and graceful figure was fully visible; and sitting easily on his horse, with the long feathers of the prairie cock fluttering from his head, he looked like the perfect wild prairie rider. He didn't have the same features as other Indians. Unless his handsome face was deceiving, he seemed free from the jealousy, suspicion, and malicious cunning of his people. Generally, a civilized white man finds it hard to see common ground between himself and an Indian. Despite wanting to recognize their good qualities, he must admit that there’s an unbridgeable divide between him and his red brothers of the prairie. In fact, they seem so foreign that after spending even a few weeks in this region, he begins to view them as a troublesome and dangerous breed of wild animal, and if necessary, would shoot them without a second thought, just as they would do to him. However, in the Panther's face, I was happy to see that there were at least some points of connection between us. We were great friends, and as we rode through rocky paths, deep valleys, and small barren plains, he eagerly taught me the Dakota language. After some time, we came across a small grassy area where gooseberry bushes were growing at the base of a rock, which tempted my companion so much that he paused his teaching to gather the fruit. By the time we were ready to move again, the front of the village came into view. An old woman appeared, leading her pack horse down among the rocks above. One savage after another followed, and the small dell quickly filled with the crowd.

That morning’s march was one not easily to be forgotten. It led us through a sublime waste, a wilderness of mountains and pine forests, over which the spirit of loneliness and silence seemed brooding. Above and below little could be seen but the same dark green foliage. It overspread the valleys, and the mountains were clothed with it from the black rocks that crowned their summits to the impetuous streams that circled round their base. Scenery like this, it might seem, could have no very cheering effect on the mind of a sick man (for to-day my disease had again assailed me) in the midst of a horde of savages; but if the reader has ever wandered, with a true hunter’s spirit, among the forests of Maine, or the more picturesque solitudes of the Adirondack Mountains, he will understand how the somber woods and mountains around me might have awakened any other feelings than those of gloom. In truth they recalled gladdening recollections of similar scenes in a distant and far different land. After we had been advancing for several hours through passages always narrow, often obstructed and difficult, I saw at a little distance on our right a narrow opening between two high wooded precipices. All within seemed darkness and mystery. In the mood in which I found myself something strongly impelled me to enter. Passing over the intervening space I guided my horse through the rocky portal, and as I did so instinctively drew the covering from my rifle, half expecting that some unknown evil lay in ambush within those dreary recesses. The place was shut in among tall cliffs, and so deeply shadowed by a host of old pine trees that, though the sun shone bright on the side of the mountain, nothing but a dim twilight could penetrate within. As far as I could see it had no tenants except a few hawks and owls, who, dismayed at my intrusion, flapped hoarsely away among the shaggy branches. I moved forward, determined to explore the mystery to the bottom, and soon became involved among the pines. The genius of the place exercised a strange influence upon my mind. Its faculties were stimulated into extraordinary activity, and as I passed along many half-forgotten incidents, and the images of persons and things far distant, rose rapidly before me with surprising distinctness. In that perilous wilderness, eight hundred miles removed beyond the faintest vestige of civilization, the scenes of another hemisphere, the seat of ancient refinement, passed before me more like a succession of vivid paintings than any mere dreams of the fancy. I saw the church of St. Peter’s illumined on the evening of Easter Day, the whole majestic pile, from the cross to the foundation stone, penciled in fire and shedding a radiance, like the serene light of the moon, on the sea of upturned faces below. I saw the peak of Mount Etna towering above its inky mantle of clouds and lightly curling its wreaths of milk-white smoke against the soft sky flushed with the Sicilian sunset. I saw also the gloomy vaulted passages and the narrow cells of the Passionist convent where I once had sojourned for a few days with the fanatical monks, its pale, stern inmates in their robes of black, and the grated window from whence I could look out, a forbidden indulgence, upon the melancholy Coliseum and the crumbling ruins of the Eternal City. The mighty glaciers of the Splugen too rose before me, gleaming in the sun like polished silver, and those terrible solitudes, the birthplace of the Rhine, where bursting from the bowels of its native mountains, it lashes and foams down the rocky abyss into the little valley of Andeer. These recollections, and many more, crowded upon me, until remembering that it was hardly wise to remain long in such a place, I mounted again and retraced my steps. Issuing from between the rocks I saw a few rods before me the men, women, and children, dogs and horses, still filing slowly across the little glen. A bare round hill rose directly above them. I rode to the top, and from this point I could look down on the savage procession as it passed just beneath my feet, and far on the left I could see its thin and broken line, visible only at intervals, stretching away for miles among the mountains. On the farthest ridge horsemen were still descending like mere specks in the distance.

That morning's march was unforgettable. It took us through a beautiful wasteland, a wilderness of mountains and pine forests, where the spirit of loneliness and silence felt heavy. Above and below, all we could see was the same dark green foliage. It covered the valleys, and the mountains were dressed in it, from the black rocks at their peaks to the rushing streams that flowed around their bases. Scenery like this, one might think, wouldn't be very uplifting for a sick person (because my illness had resurfaced today) amidst a crowd of savages; however, if you've ever roamed, with a true hunter’s spirit, through the forests of Maine or the picturesque solitude of the Adirondack Mountains, you would understand how the somber woods and mountains around me could evoke anything but gloom. In fact, they brought back joyful memories of similar scenes from a distant and very different place. After several hours of navigating through narrow, often obstructed and challenging paths, I noticed a narrow opening to our right between two high wooded cliffs. Everything inside seemed dark and mysterious. In my current mood, something strongly urged me to go in. I crossed the space and guided my horse through the rocky entrance, instinctively uncovering my rifle, half-expecting some unknown danger to be lurking within those gloomy recesses. The place was surrounded by tall cliffs and deeply shadowed by a host of old pine trees, so that, even though the sun shone brightly on the mountainside, only a dim twilight could filter through. As far as I could see, it had no inhabitants except for a few hawks and owls, who, startled by my presence, flapped hoarsely away among the shaggy branches. I moved forward, determined to uncover the mystery completely, and soon became engrossed among the pines. The spirit of the place had a strange influence on my mind. My thoughts became vividly active, and as I walked, many half-forgotten events and images of people and things from far away raced before me with surprising clarity. In that perilous wilderness, eight hundred miles beyond any trace of civilization, scenes from another hemisphere, the seat of ancient culture, unfolded before me like a series of vivid paintings rather than mere fantasies. I saw St. Peter’s Basilica lit up on Easter evening, the entire majestic structure, from the cross to the foundation stone, outlined in flames and casting a glow like the serene moonlight on the sea of upturned faces below. I saw Mount Etna rising above its dark cloud cover, gently curling its white smoke against the soft sky dyed with the Sicilian sunset. I also saw the gloomy vaulted halls and narrow cells of the Passionist convent where I once spent a few days with the zealous monks, its pale, stern residents in their black robes, and the barred window from which I could sneak a glance, a forbidden pleasure, at the somber Coliseum and the crumbling ruins of the Eternal City. The mighty glaciers of Splugen appeared before me as well, shining in the sun like polished silver, along with those grim solitudes, the birthplace of the Rhine, where it bursts from the depths of its native mountains, crashing down the rocky ravine into the small valley of Andeer. These memories, and many more, flooded my mind until I realized it wasn’t wise to linger in such a place for long, so I remounted and retraced my steps. Emerging from between the rocks, I saw a short distance ahead the men, women, children, dogs, and horses still slowly making their way across the small glen. A bare, round hill rose directly above them. I rode to the top, and from there I could look down on the wild procession passing just beneath my feet, while far off to the left, I could see its thin and broken line stretching for miles among the mountains. On the farthest ridge, horsemen were still descending like tiny specks in the distance.

I remained on the hill until all had passed, and then, descending, followed after them. A little farther on I found a very small meadow, set deeply among steep mountains; and here the whole village had encamped. The little spot was crowded with the confused and disorderly host. Some of the lodges were already completely prepared, or the squaws perhaps were busy in drawing the heavy coverings of skin over the bare poles. Others were as yet mere skeletons, while others still—poles, covering, and all—lay scattered in complete disorder on the ground among buffalo robes, bales of meat, domestic utensils, harness, and weapons. Squaws were screaming to one another, horses rearing and plunging dogs yelping, eager to be disburdened of their loads, while the fluttering of feathers and the gleam of barbaric ornaments added liveliness to the scene. The small children ran about amid the crowd, while many of the boys were scrambling among the overhanging rocks, and standing, with their little bows in their hands, looking down upon a restless throng. In contrast with the general confusion, a circle of old men and warriors sat in the midst, smoking in profound indifference and tranquillity. The disorder at length subsided. The horses were driven away to feed along the adjacent valley, and the camp assumed an air of listless repose. It was scarcely past noon; a vast white canopy of smoke from a burning forest to the eastward overhung the place, and partially obscured the sun; yet the heat was almost insupportable. The lodges stood crowded together without order in the narrow space. Each was a perfect hothouse, within which the lazy proprietor lay sleeping. The camp was silent as death. Nothing stirred except now and then an old woman passing from lodge to lodge. The girls and young men sat together in groups under the pine trees upon the surrounding heights. The dogs lay panting on the ground, too lazy even to growl at the white man. At the entrance of the meadow there was a cold spring among the rocks, completely overshadowed by tall trees and dense undergrowth. In this cold and shady retreat a number of girls were assembled, sitting together on rocks and fallen logs, discussing the latest gossip of the village, or laughing and throwing water with their hands at the intruding Meneaska. The minutes seemed lengthened into hours. I lay for a long time under a tree, studying the Ogallalla tongue, with the zealous instructions of my friend the Panther. When we were both tired of this I went and lay down by the side of a deep, clear pool formed by the water of the spring. A shoal of little fishes of about a pin’s length were playing in it, sporting together, as it seemed, very amicably; but on closer observation, I saw that they were engaged in a cannibal warfare among themselves. Now and then a small one would fall a victim, and immediately disappear down the maw of his voracious conqueror. Every moment, however, the tyrant of the pool, a monster about three inches long, with staring goggle eyes, would slowly issue forth with quivering fins and tail from under the shelving bank. The small fry at this would suspend their hostilities, and scatter in a panic at the appearance of overwhelming force.

I stayed on the hill until everyone had passed, and then I followed them down. A little further on, I found a tiny meadow tucked away among steep mountains, where the entire village had set up camp. The area was packed with the chaotic crowd. Some of the tents were already set up, while the women were busy draping heavy skin covers over the bare poles. Others were just frames, and some—poles, coverings, and all—were scattered in complete disarray on the ground among buffalo robes, piles of meat, cooking gear, harnesses, and weapons. Women were shouting to each other, horses were rearing and restless, dogs were barking, eager to be rid of their burdens, while feathers waved and shining ornaments added vibrancy to the scene. Little kids ran around in the crowd, while many boys clambered over the rocks, standing with their small bows in hand, looking down at the bustling mass below. In contrast to the overall disorder, a group of old men and warriors sat calmly in the center, smoking in complete indifference and peace. Eventually, the chaos began to settle down. The horses were sent off to graze in the nearby valley, and the camp took on a lazy calm. It was just past noon; a huge white plume of smoke from a burning forest to the east hung over the area and partially blocked the sun, yet the heat was almost unbearable. The tents were crammed together haphazardly in the tight space. Each was like a sauna, where the sleepy inhabitants lounged around. The camp was eerily quiet. Nothing moved except for an old woman occasionally making her way between the tents. The girls and young men gathered in groups under the pine trees on the surrounding hills. The dogs lay panting on the ground, too lazy even to growl at the white man. At the entrance to the meadow, there was a cold spring among the rocks, completely shaded by tall trees and thick underbrush. In this cool, shady spot, several girls were gathered, sitting on rocks and fallen logs, chatting about the latest village gossip or laughing and splashing water at the intruding Meneaska. The minutes felt like they stretched into hours. I lay there for a long time under a tree, practicing the Ogallalla language with the enthusiastic help of my friend the Panther. When we both got tired of that, I went and lay down next to a deep, clear pool formed by the spring's water. A school of tiny fish, about the size of a pin, were playing in it, seeming to have fun together, but on closer look, I saw they were actually engaged in cannibalism. Every now and then, a small fish would fall victim and immediately vanish down the throat of its greedy conqueror. Meanwhile, the ruler of the pool, a monster about three inches long with bulging eyes, would slowly edge out from beneath the bank, trembling fins and tail quivering. The little fish would stop their fighting and scatter in fear when this formidable presence appeared.

“Soft-hearted philanthropists,” thought I, “may sigh long for their peaceful millennium; for from minnows up to men, life is an incessant battle.”

“Soft-hearted philanthropists,” I thought, “might dream for a long time about their peaceful utopia; because from tiny fish to humans, life is a constant struggle.”

Evening approached at last, the tall mountain-tops around were still gay and bright in sunshine, while our deep glen was completely shadowed. I left the camp and ascended a neighboring hill, whose rocky summit commanded a wide view over the surrounding wilderness. The sun was still glaring through the stiff pines on the ridge of the western mountain. In a moment he was gone, and as the landscape rapidly darkened, I turned again toward the village. As I descended the hill, the howling of wolves and the barking of foxes came up out of the dim woods from far and near. The camp was glowing with a multitude of fires, and alive with dusky naked figures, whose tall shadows flitted among the surroundings crags.

Evening finally arrived, and the tall mountain peaks around us were still vibrant and bright in the sunlight, while our deep valley was completely in shadow. I left the camp and climbed a nearby hill, where the rocky summit offered a wide view of the surrounding wilderness. The sun was still shining through the stiff pines on the ridge of the western mountain. In an instant, it disappeared, and as the landscape quickly darkened, I turned back toward the village. As I made my way down the hill, I could hear the howling of wolves and the barking of foxes coming from the dim woods nearby. The camp was glowing with numerous fires and buzzing with dark figures, whose tall shadows danced among the surrounding rocks.

I found a circle of smokers seated in their usual place; that is, on the ground before the lodge of a certain warrior, who seemed to be generally known for his social qualities. I sat down to smoke a parting pipe with my savage friends. That day was the 1st of August, on which I had promised to meet Shaw at Fort Laramie. The Fort was less than two days’ journey distant, and that my friend need not suffer anxiety on my account, I resolved to push forward as rapidly as possible to the place of meeting. I went to look after the Hail-Storm, and having found him, I offered him a handful of hawks’-bells and a paper of vermilion, on condition that he would guide me in the morning through the mountains within sight of Laramie Creek.

I found a group of smokers gathered in their usual spot, right in front of the lodge of a particular warrior known for his friendly nature. I sat down to share a farewell smoke with my Native friends. It was August 1st, the day I promised to meet Shaw at Fort Laramie. The fort was less than two days' journey away, and to ease my friend's worries about me, I decided to move as quickly as possible to our meeting place. I went to find Hail-Storm, and after locating him, I offered him a handful of hawks' bells and a packet of vermilion, on the condition that he'd guide me in the morning through the mountains near Laramie Creek.

The Hail-Storm ejaculated “How!” and accepted the gift. Nothing more was said on either side; the matter was settled, and I lay down to sleep in Kongra-Tonga’s lodge.

The Hail-Storm exclaimed “How!” and took the gift. No more was said from either side; the issue was resolved, and I lay down to sleep in Kongra-Tonga’s lodge.

Long before daylight Raymond shook me by the shoulder.

Long before dawn, Raymond shook me by the shoulder.

“Everything is ready,” he said.

"Everything's ready," he said.

I went out. The morning was chill, damp, and dark; and the whole camp seemed asleep. The Hail-Storm sat on horseback before the lodge, and my mare Pauline and the mule which Raymond rode were picketed near it. We saddled and made our other arrangements for the journey, but before these were completed the camp began to stir, and the lodge-coverings fluttered and rustled as the squaws pulled them down in preparation for departure. Just as the light began to appear we left the ground, passing up through a narrow opening among the rocks which led eastward out of the meadow. Gaining the top of this passage, I turned round and sat looking back upon the camp, dimly visible in the gray light of the morning. All was alive with the bustle of preparation. I turned away, half unwilling to take a final leave of my savage associates. We turned to the right, passing among the rocks and pine trees so dark that for a while we could scarcely see our way. The country in front was wild and broken, half hill, half plain, partly open and partly covered with woods of pine and oak. Barriers of lofty mountains encompassed it; the woods were fresh and cool in the early morning; the peaks of the mountains were wreathed with mist, and sluggish vapors were entangled among the forests upon their sides. At length the black pinnacle of the tallest mountain was tipped with gold by the rising sun. About that time the Hail-Storm, who rode in front gave a low exclamation. Some large animal leaped up from among the bushes, and an elk, as I thought, his horns thrown back over his neck, darted past us across the open space, and bounded like a mad thing away among the adjoining pines. Raymond was soon out of his saddle, but before he could fire, the animal was full two hundred yards distant. The ball struck its mark, though much too low for mortal effect. The elk, however, wheeled in its flight, and ran at full speed among the trees, nearly at right angles to his former course. I fired and broke his shoulder; still he moved on, limping down into the neighboring woody hollow, whither the young Indian followed and killed him. When we reached the spot we discovered him to be no elk, but a black-tailed deer, an animal nearly twice the size of the common deer, and quite unknown to the East. We began to cut him up; the reports of the rifles had reached the ears of the Indians, and before our task was finished several of them came to the spot. Leaving the hide of the deer to the Hail-Storm, we hung as much of the meat as we wanted behind our saddles, left the rest to the Indians, and resumed our journey. Meanwhile the village was on its way, and had gone so far that to get in advance of it was impossible. Therefore we directed our course so as to strike its line of march at the nearest point. In a short time, through the dark trunks of the pines, we could see the figures of the Indians as they passed. Once more we were among them. They were moving with even more than their usual precipitation, crowded close together in a narrow pass between rocks and old pine trees. We were on the eastern descent of the mountain, and soon came to a rough and difficult defile, leading down a very steep declivity. The whole swarm poured down together, filling the rocky passageway like some turbulent mountain stream. The mountains before us were on fire, and had been so for weeks. The view in front was obscured by a vast dim sea of smoke and vapor, while on either hand the tall cliffs, bearing aloft their crest of pines, thrust their heads boldly through it, and the sharp pinnacles and broken ridges of the mountains beyond them were faintly traceable as through a veil. The scene in itself was most grand and imposing, but with the savage multitude, the armed warriors, the naked children, the gayly appareled girls, pouring impetuously down the heights, it would have formed a noble subject for a painter, and only the pen of a Scott could have done it justice in description.

I went outside. The morning was chilly, damp, and dark, and the whole camp seemed to be asleep. Hail-Storm was on horseback in front of the lodge, and my mare Pauline and Raymond's mule were tied up nearby. We saddled up and got everything ready for the journey, but before we finished, the camp started to wake up, and the lodge coverings fluttered and rustled as the women took them down to get ready to leave. Just as the light began to shine, we departed, passing through a narrow opening among the rocks that led eastward out of the meadow. After reaching the top of this path, I turned around and looked back at the camp, faintly visible in the gray morning light. Everything was buzzing with preparation. I turned away, somewhat reluctant to say a final goodbye to my wild companions. We took a right turn, weaving through the dark rocks and pine trees where at times we could hardly see our way. The land ahead was rugged and uneven, half hills and half plains, part open and part covered with pine and oak forests. Tall mountains surrounded it; the woods were fresh and cool in the early morning, and the mountain peaks were shrouded in mist, with slow vapors tangled in the trees on their slopes. Eventually, the black peak of the tallest mountain was touched with gold by the rising sun. About that time, Hail-Storm, who was leading, let out a low exclamation. A large animal jumped up from the bushes, and an elk, as I thought, with its antlers thrown back over its neck, darted past us across the open field and bounded like a wild thing into the nearby pines. Raymond quickly got off his horse, but before he could shoot, the animal was already over two hundred yards away. His shot hit, but it was too low to be deadly. The elk turned in its flight and ran full speed among the trees at nearly a right angle to its previous path. I shot and broke its shoulder, but it kept moving, limping into a nearby wooded hollow where the young Indian followed and killed it. When we got to the spot, we found it wasn’t an elk at all, but a black-tailed deer, nearly twice the size of a regular deer and completely unknown in the East. We started to cut it up; the sounds of the rifles had attracted the Indians, and before we finished, several of them arrived. Leaving the deer hide to Hail-Storm, we hung as much meat as we wanted behind our saddles, left the rest for the Indians, and continued our journey. Meanwhile, the village was on the move and had gone so far ahead that getting in front of it was impossible. So we changed our course to intersect with its path at the closest point. Before long, through the dark trunks of the pines, we could see the silhouettes of the Indians passing by. Once again, we were among them. They were moving even faster than usual, packed closely together in a narrow passage between rocks and old pine trees. We were on the eastern slope of the mountain and soon came to a rough, steep path leading down. The whole group surged down together, filling the rocky passage like a rushing mountain stream. The mountains ahead were on fire and had been for weeks. The view in front was obscured by a thick sea of smoke and vapor, while tall cliffs, crowned by pines, boldly thrust their heads through it, and the sharp peaks and jagged ridges of the mountains beyond were faintly visible through the haze. The scene was incredibly grand and imposing, especially with the wild crowd, armed warriors, naked children, and brightly dressed girls rushing down the slopes. It would have made a stunning painting, and only the pen of a writer like Scott could have captured it in words.

We passed over a burnt tract where the ground was hot beneath the horses’ feet, and between the blazing sides of two mountains. Before long we had descended to a softer region, where we found a succession of little valleys watered by a stream, along the borders of which grew abundance of wild gooseberries and currants, and the children and many of the men straggled from the line of march to gather them as we passed along. Descending still farther, the view changed rapidly. The burning mountains were behind us, and through the open valleys in front we could see the ocean-like prairie, stretching beyond the sight. After passing through a line of trees that skirted the brook, the Indians filed out upon the plains. I was thirsty and knelt down by the little stream to drink. As I mounted again I very carelessly left my rifle among the grass, and my thoughts being otherwise absorbed, I rode for some distance before discovering its absence. As the reader may conceive, I lost no time in turning about and galloping back in search of it. Passing the line of Indians, I watched every warrior as he rode by me at a canter, and at length discovered my rifle in the hands of one of them, who, on my approaching to claim it, immediately gave it up. Having no other means of acknowledging the obligation, I took off one of my spurs and gave it to him. He was greatly delighted, looking upon it as a distinguished mark of favor, and immediately held out his foot for me to buckle it on. As soon as I had done so, he struck it with force into the side of his horse, who gave a violent leap. The Indian laughed and spurred harder than before. At this the horse shot away like an arrow, amid the screams and laughter of the squaws, and the ejaculations of the men, who exclaimed: “Washtay!—Good!” at the potent effect of my gift. The Indian had no saddle, and nothing in place of a bridle except a leather string tied round the horse’s jaw. The animal was of course wholly uncontrollable, and stretched away at full speed over the prairie, till he and his rider vanished behind a distant swell. I never saw the man again, but I presume no harm came to him. An Indian on horseback has more lives than a cat.

We crossed a burned area where the ground was hot beneath the horses' feet, situated between two fiery mountains. Before long, we descended into a softer landscape, where we encountered a series of small valleys watered by a stream. Along the banks, there was plenty of wild gooseberries and currants, and the kids and many of the men wandered off from our path to gather them as we moved along. As we went further down, the scene changed quickly. The burning mountains were behind us, and through the open valleys ahead, we could see the endless prairie stretching out of sight. After passing through a line of trees that lined the brook, the Indians spread out onto the plains. Feeling thirsty, I knelt by the small stream to drink. When I got back up, I carelessly left my rifle in the grass, and lost in my thoughts, I rode for a while before realizing it was missing. As you can imagine, I quickly turned around and galloped back to find it. As I passed the line of Indians, I watched each warrior as they rode by me at a canter, and eventually spotted my rifle in the hands of one of them. When I approached to reclaim it, he handed it over right away. Since I had no other way to show my gratitude, I took off one of my spurs and gave it to him. He was very pleased, seeing it as a sign of special recognition, and immediately extended his foot for me to buckle it on. Once I did, he struck it hard against the side of his horse, which then jumped violently. The Indian laughed and spurred faster than before. At that, the horse took off like an arrow, amid the screams and laughter of the women, and the shouts of the men, who exclaimed: “Washtay!—Good!” at the impressive effect of my gift. The Indian had no saddle and only a leather string tied around the horse's jaw instead of a bridle. The animal was completely uncontrollable and sped across the prairie until both he and his rider disappeared behind a distant rise. I never saw the man again, but I assume he was fine. An Indian on horseback seems to have more lives than a cat.

The village encamped on a scorching prairie, close to the foot of the mountains. The beat was most intense and penetrating. The coverings of the lodges were raised a foot or more from the ground, in order to procure some circulation of air; and Reynal thought proper to lay aside his trapper’s dress of buckskin and assume the very scanty costume of an Indian. Thus elegantly attired, he stretched himself in his lodge on a buffalo robe, alternately cursing the heat and puffing at the pipe which he and I passed between us. There was present also a select circle of Indian friends and relatives. A small boiled puppy was served up as a parting feast, to which was added, by way of dessert, a wooden bowl of gooseberries, from the mountains.

The village set up camp on a scorching prairie near the base of the mountains. The heat was intense and overwhelming. The covers of the lodges were lifted a foot or more off the ground to allow for some airflow, and Reynal decided to swap his buckskin trapper outfit for the minimal attire of an Indian. Dressed like this, he lay down in his lodge on a buffalo robe, alternating between cursing the heat and puffing on the pipe that he and I shared. A select group of Indian friends and relatives were also present. A small boiled puppy was served as a farewell feast, along with a wooden bowl of gooseberries from the mountains for dessert.

“Look there,” said Reynal, pointing out of the opening of his lodge; “do you see that line of buttes about fifteen miles off? Well, now, do you see that farthest one, with the white speck on the face of it? Do you think you ever saw it before?”

“Look over there,” Reynal said, pointing out of the entrance of his lodge. “Do you see that line of buttes about fifteen miles away? Now, do you see that farthest one with the white spot on it? Do you think you’ve ever seen it before?”

“It looks to me,” said I, “like the hill that we were camped under when we were on Laramie Creek, six or eight weeks ago.”

“It looks to me,” I said, “like the hill we camped under when we were at Laramie Creek, six or eight weeks ago.”

“You’ve hit it,” answered Reynal.

“You've got it,” answered Reynal.

“Go and bring in the animals, Raymond,” said I: “we’ll camp there to-night, and start for the Fort in the morning.”

“Go and bring in the animals, Raymond,” I said. “We’ll camp there tonight and head for the Fort in the morning.”

The mare and the mule were soon before the lodge. We saddled them, and in the meantime a number of Indians collected about us. The virtues of Pauline, my strong, fleet, and hardy little mare, were well known in camp, and several of the visitors were mounted upon good horses which they had brought me as presents. I promptly declined their offers, since accepting them would have involved the necessity of transferring poor Pauline into their barbarous hands. We took leave of Reynal, but not of the Indians, who are accustomed to dispense with such superfluous ceremonies. Leaving the camp we rode straight over the prairie toward the white-faced bluff, whose pale ridges swelled gently against the horizon, like a cloud. An Indian went with us, whose name I forget, though the ugliness of his face and the ghastly width of his mouth dwell vividly in my recollection. The antelope were numerous, but we did not heed them. We rode directly toward our destination, over the arid plains and barren hills, until, late in the afternoon, half spent with heat, thirst, and fatigue, we saw a gladdening sight; the long line of trees and the deep gulf that mark the course of Laramie Creek. Passing through the growth of huge dilapidated old cottonwood trees that bordered the creek, we rode across to the other side.

The mare and the mule were soon in front of the lodge. We saddled them up, and in the meantime, a number of Indians gathered around us. Everyone knew about Pauline, my strong, fast, and tough little mare, and several of the visitors were riding good horses they had brought me as gifts. I quickly declined their offers, since accepting them would mean putting poor Pauline in their rough hands. We said goodbye to Reynal, but not to the Indians, who typically skip such unnecessary formalities. Leaving the camp, we rode straight across the prairie toward the white-faced bluff, whose pale ridges rose gently against the horizon like a cloud. An Indian accompanied us, whose name I can’t remember, though the ugliness of his face and the wide, eerie grin are still vivid in my mind. The antelope were plentiful, but we ignored them. We headed straight toward our destination, crossing the dry plains and barren hills, until, late in the afternoon, exhausted from the heat, thirst, and fatigue, we finally spotted a welcome sight: the long line of trees and the deep ravine marking the course of Laramie Creek. We passed through the cluster of huge, rundown old cottonwood trees lining the creek and rode across to the other side.

The rapid and foaming waters were filled with fish playing and splashing in the shallows. As we gained the farther bank, our horses turned eagerly to drink, and we, kneeling on the sand, followed their example. We had not gone far before the scene began to grow familiar.

The fast-flowing, frothy water was alive with fish swimming and splashing in the shallow areas. When we reached the opposite bank, our horses eagerly stopped to drink, and we, kneeling on the sand, did the same. We hadn’t traveled far before the surroundings started to seem familiar.

“We are getting near home, Raymond,” said I.

“We're getting close to home, Raymond,” I said.

There stood the Big Tree under which we had encamped so long; there were the white cliffs that used to look down upon our tent when it stood at the bend of the creek; there was the meadow in which our horses had grazed for weeks, and a little farther on, the prairie-dog village where I had beguiled many a languid hour in persecuting the unfortunate inhabitants.

There stood the Big Tree where we had camped for so long; there were the white cliffs that looked down on our tent when it was set up at the bend of the creek; there was the meadow where our horses had grazed for weeks, and a little further on, the prairie-dog village where I had spent many lazy hours chasing the unfortunate residents.

“We are going to catch it now,” said Raymond, turning his broad, vacant face up toward the sky.

“We're going to catch it now,” Raymond said, looking up at the sky with his broad, blank face.

In truth, the landscape, the cliffs and the meadow, the stream and the groves were darkening fast. Black masses of cloud were swelling up in the south, and the thunder was growling ominously.

In reality, the landscape, the cliffs and the meadow, the stream and the groves were quickly darkening. Thick clouds were gathering in the south, and the thunder was rumbling threateningly.

“We will camp here,” I said, pointing to a dense grove of trees lower down the stream. Raymond and I turned toward it, but the Indian stopped and called earnestly after us. When we demanded what was the matter, he said that the ghosts of two warriors were always among those trees, and that if we slept there, they would scream and throw stones at us all night, and perhaps steal our horses before morning. Thinking it as well to humor him, we left behind us the haunt of these extraordinary ghosts, and passed on toward Chugwater, riding at full gallop, for the big drops began to patter down. Soon we came in sight of the poplar saplings that grew about the mouth of the little stream. We leaped to the ground, threw off our saddles, turned our horses loose, and drawing our knives, began to slash among the bushes to cut twigs and branches for making a shelter against the rain. Bending down the taller saplings as they grew, we piled the young shoots upon them; and thus made a convenient penthouse, but all our labor was useless. The storm scarcely touched us. Half a mile on our right the rain was pouring down like a cataract, and the thunder roared over the prairie like a battery of cannon; while we by good fortune received only a few heavy drops from the skirt of the passing cloud. The weather cleared and the sun set gloriously. Sitting close under our leafy canopy, we proceeded to discuss a substantial meal of wasna which Weah-Washtay had given me. The Indian had brought with him his pipe and a bag of shongsasha; so before lying down to sleep, we sat for some time smoking together. Previously, however, our wide-mouthed friend had taken the precaution of carefully examining the neighborhood. He reported that eight men, counting them on his fingers, had been encamped there not long before. Bisonette, Paul Dorion, Antoine Le Rouge, Richardson, and four others, whose names he could not tell. All this proved strictly correct. By what instinct he had arrived at such accurate conclusions, I am utterly at a loss to divine.

“We’ll camp here,” I said, pointing to a thick grove of trees down by the stream. Raymond and I started toward it, but the Indian stopped and called after us urgently. When we asked what was wrong, he mentioned that the ghosts of two warriors were always in those trees and that if we slept there, they would scream and throw stones at us all night, and maybe even steal our horses by morning. Thinking it best to humor him, we left behind the haunt of these remarkable ghosts and moved on toward Chugwater, riding fast as the rain began to fall. Soon, we spotted the poplar saplings near the mouth of the little stream. We jumped off our horses, took off our saddles, let our horses roam free, and grabbed our knives to cut twigs and branches to make a shelter from the rain. We bent down the taller saplings and piled the young shoots on top of them, creating a makeshift shelter, but all our effort was in vain. The storm barely touched us. Half a mile to our right, the rain fell in torrents, and the thunder rumbled over the prairie like a cannon barrage, while we were fortunate to receive only a few heavy drops from the edge of the passing cloud. The weather cleared up and the sunset was stunning. Sitting close under our leafy shelter, we started to talk about a hearty meal of wasna that Weah-Washtay had given me. The Indian had brought his pipe and a bag of shongsasha, so before settling down to sleep, we smoked together for a while. Before that, our wide-eyed friend had taken the time to carefully check the area. He reported that eight men, counting them on his fingers, had camped there not long before. Bisonette, Paul Dorion, Antoine Le Rouge, Richardson, and four others whose names he couldn’t recall. All of this turned out to be completely accurate. How he came to such precise conclusions, I have no idea.

It was still quite dark when I awoke and called Raymond. The Indian was already gone, having chosen to go on before us to the Fort. Setting out after him, we rode for some time in complete darkness, and when the sun at length rose, glowing like a fiery ball of copper, we were ten miles distant from the Fort. At length, from the broken summit of a tall sandy bluff we could see Fort Laramie, miles before us, standing by the side of the stream like a little gray speck in the midst of the bounding desolation. I stopped my horse, and sat for a moment looking down upon it. It seemed to me the very center of comfort and civilization. We were not long in approaching it, for we rode at speed the greater part of the way. Laramie Creek still intervened between us and the friendly walls. Entering the water at the point where we had struck upon the bank, we raised our feet to the saddle behind us, and thus, kneeling as it were on horseback, passed dry-shod through the swift current. As we rode up the bank, a number of men appeared in the gateway. Three of them came forward to meet us. In a moment I distinguished Shaw; Henry Chatillon followed with his face of manly simplicity and frankness, and Delorier came last, with a broad grin of welcome. The meeting was not on either side one of mere ceremony. For my own part, the change was a most agreeable one from the society of savages and men little better than savages, to that of my gallant and high-minded companion and our noble-hearted guide. My appearance was equally gratifying to Shaw, who was beginning to entertain some very uncomfortable surmises concerning me.

It was still pretty dark when I woke up and called for Raymond. The Indian had already left, choosing to head to the Fort before us. After him, we rode for a while in complete darkness, and when the sun finally rose, shining like a fiery copper ball, we were ten miles away from the Fort. Finally, from the broken top of a tall sandy bluff, we could see Fort Laramie, miles ahead, standing by the stream like a little gray dot in the vast emptiness. I stopped my horse and took a moment to look down at it. It felt like the very center of comfort and civilization to me. We didn’t take long to get there since we rode most of the way at a fast pace. Laramie Creek was still between us and the welcoming walls. Entering the water at the point where we hit the bank, we lifted our feet to the saddles behind us and, essentially kneeling on horseback, passed through the swift current without getting wet. As we rode up the bank, several men appeared in the gateway. Three of them came forward to greet us. I instantly recognized Shaw; Henry Chatillon followed, looking straightforward and genuine, and Delorier was last, grinning broadly in welcome. The meeting wasn't just a formality on either side. Personally, it was a refreshing change from the company of savages and people hardly better than savages to being with my brave and noble-minded friend and our kind-hearted guide. My appearance was equally reassuring to Shaw, who had begun to have some very uneasy thoughts about me.

Bordeaux greeted me very cordially, and shouted to the cook. This functionary was a new acquisition, having lately come from Fort Pierre with the trading wagons. Whatever skill he might have boasted, he had not the most promising materials to exercise it upon. He set before me, however, a breakfast of biscuit, coffee, and salt pork. It seemed like a new phase of existence, to be seated once more on a bench, with a knife and fork, a plate and teacup, and something resembling a table before me. The coffee seemed delicious, and the bread was a most welcome novelty, since for three weeks I had eaten scarcely anything but meat, and that for the most part without salt. The meal also had the relish of good company, for opposite to me sat Shaw in elegant dishabille. If one is anxious thoroughly to appreciate the value of a congenial companion, he has only to spend a few weeks by himself in an Ogallalla village. And if he can contrive to add to his seclusion a debilitating and somewhat critical illness, his perceptions upon this subject will be rendered considerably more vivid.

Bordeaux welcomed me warmly and called out to the cook. This cook was a new addition, having recently arrived from Fort Pierre with the trading wagons. Whatever skills he might have claimed, he didn’t have the best ingredients to work with. Still, he served me a breakfast of biscuits, coffee, and salt pork. It felt like a brand-new experience to sit at a bench again, with a knife and fork, a plate and teacup, and something that resembled a table in front of me. The coffee tasted wonderful, and the bread was a much-appreciated change, since for three weeks I had barely eaten anything but meat, mostly without salt. The meal was even better thanks to good company, as Shaw sat across from me in casual attire. If you want to truly understand the value of a good companion, all you need to do is spend a few weeks alone in an Ogallalla village. And if you can add a tiring and somewhat critical illness to that solitude, your understanding of this will become even sharper.

Shaw had been upward of two weeks at the Fort. I found him established in his old quarters, a large apartment usually occupied by the absent bourgeois. In one corner was a soft and luxuriant pile of excellent buffalo robes, and here I lay down. Shaw brought me three books.

Shaw had been at the Fort for over two weeks. I found him settled in his old room, a spacious place usually used by the absent wealthy. In one corner was a soft and plush stack of great buffalo robes, and I lay down here. Shaw brought me three books.

“Here,” said he, “is your Shakespeare and Byron, and here is the Old Testament, which has as much poetry in it as the other two put together.”

“Here,” he said, “is your Shakespeare and Byron, and here is the Old Testament, which has just as much poetry in it as the other two combined.”

I chose the worst of the three, and for the greater part of that day lay on the buffalo robes, fairly reveling in the creations of that resplendent genius which has achieved no more signal triumph than that of half beguiling us to forget the pitiful and unmanly character of its possessor.

I picked the worst of the three, and for most of that day, I lounged on the buffalo robes, kind of losing myself in the work of that brilliant genius, which has achieved no greater success than getting us to overlook the sad and unheroic nature of its owner.





CHAPTER XX

THE LONELY JOURNEY

On the day of my arrival at Fort Laramie, Shaw and I were lounging on two buffalo robes in the large apartment hospitably assigned to us; Henry Chatillon also was present, busy about the harness and weapons, which had been brought into the room, and two or three Indians were crouching on the floor, eyeing us with their fixed, unwavering gaze.

On the day I got to Fort Laramie, Shaw and I were lounging on two buffalo robes in the spacious room that had been generously given to us. Henry Chatillon was also there, working on the harness and weapons that had been brought into the room, while two or three Indians were sitting on the floor, staring at us with their unblinking gaze.

“I have been well off here,” said Shaw, “in all respects but one; there is no good shongsasha to be had for love or money.”

“I’ve been doing pretty well here,” Shaw said, “in every way except for one; there’s no good shongsasha to be found for love or money.”

I gave him a small leather bag containing some of excellent quality, which I had brought from the Black Hills.

I gave him a small leather bag filled with some high-quality items that I had brought from the Black Hills.

“Now, Henry,” said he, “hand me Papin’s chopping-board, or give it to that Indian, and let him cut the mixture; they understand it better than any white man.”

“Now, Henry,” he said, “hand me Papin’s chopping board, or give it to that Indian, and let him mix it; they know how to do it better than any white man.”

The Indian, without saying a word, mixed the bark and the tobacco in due proportions, filled the pipe and lighted it. This done, my companion and I proceeded to deliberate on our future course of proceeding; first, however, Shaw acquainted me with some incidents which had occurred at the fort during my absence.

The Indian, without speaking, mixed the bark and tobacco in the right amounts, filled the pipe, and lit it. Once that was done, my companion and I started to discuss our next steps; first, though, Shaw filled me in on some events that took place at the fort while I was away.

About a week previous four men had arrived from beyond the mountains; Sublette, Reddick, and two others. Just before reaching the Fort they had met a large party of Indians, chiefly young men. All of them belonged to the village of our old friend Smoke, who, with his whole band of adherents, professed the greatest friendship for the whites. The travelers therefore approached, and began to converse without the least suspicion. Suddenly, however, their bridles were violently seized and they were ordered to dismount. Instead of complying, they struck their horses with full force, and broke away from the Indians. As they galloped off they heard a yell behind them, mixed with a burst of derisive laughter, and the reports of several guns. None of them were hurt though Reddick’s bridle rein was cut by a bullet within an inch of his hand. After this taste of Indian hostility they felt for the moment no disposition to encounter further risks. They intended to pursue the route southward along the foot of the mountains to Bent’s Fort; and as our plans coincided with theirs, they proposed to join forces. Finding, however, that I did not return, they grew impatient of inaction, forgot their late escape, and set out without us, promising to wait our arrival at Bent’s Fort. From thence we were to make the long journey to the settlements in company, as the path was not a little dangerous, being infested by hostile Pawnees and Comanches.

About a week earlier, four men had arrived from beyond the mountains: Sublette, Reddick, and two others. Just before they reached the Fort, they encountered a large group of Indians, mostly young men. All of them were from the village of our old friend Smoke, who, along with his entire band, claimed to be very friendly toward the whites. The travelers approached and began talking without any suspicion. Suddenly, their bridles were violently grabbed, and they were ordered to get off their horses. Instead of complying, they hit their horses hard and broke away from the Indians. As they rode away, they heard a yell behind them, mixed with mocking laughter and the sounds of several gunshots. None of them were hurt, although a bullet cut Reddick’s bridle rein just an inch from his hand. After this encounter with Indian hostility, they were momentarily hesitant to face any more risks. They planned to head south along the foot of the mountains to Bent’s Fort, and since our plans matched theirs, they suggested joining forces. However, when they realized I hadn’t returned, they grew tired of waiting, forgot about their recent escape, and set off without us, promising to wait for us at Bent’s Fort. From there, we were to travel together on the long journey to the settlements, as the route was quite dangerous due to hostile Pawnees and Comanches.

We expected, on reaching Bent’s Fort, to find there still another re-enforcement. A young Kentuckian of the true Kentucky blood, generous, impetuous, and a gentleman withal, had come out to the mountains with Russel’s party of California emigrants. One of his chief objects, as he gave out, was to kill an Indian; an exploit which he afterwards succeeded in achieving, much to the jeopardy of ourselves and others who had to pass through the country of the dead Pawnee’s enraged relatives. Having become disgusted with his emigrant associates he left them, and had some time before set out with a party of companions for the head of the Arkansas. He sent us previously a letter, intimating that he would wait until we arrived at Bent’s Fort, and accompany us thence to the settlements. When, however, he came to the Fort, he found there a party of forty men about to make the homeward journey. He wisely preferred to avail himself of so strong an escort. Mr. Sublette and his companions also set out, in order to overtake this company; so that on reaching Bent’s Fort, some six weeks after, we found ourselves deserted by our allies and thrown once more upon our own resources.

We expected that when we reached Bent’s Fort, we would find another group of reinforcements. A young man from Kentucky, full of spirit, kind-hearted, and a true gentleman, had joined Russel’s party of California emigrants in the mountains. One of his main goals, as he said, was to kill an Indian; he ultimately accomplished this, putting both ourselves and others at risk as we had to navigate through the territory of the furious relatives of the dead Pawnee. Frustrated with his fellow emigrants, he had left them and set out some time earlier with a group of friends toward the head of the Arkansas River. He sent us a letter beforehand, letting us know he would wait for us at Bent’s Fort and join us on our way to the settlements. However, when he arrived at the Fort, he found a group of forty men ready to head home. He wisely decided to take advantage of such a strong escort. Mr. Sublette and his crew also set off to catch this group, so when we made it to Bent’s Fort about six weeks later, we found ourselves abandoned by our allies and once again relying on our own resources.

But I am anticipating. When, before leaving the settlement we had made inquiries concerning this part of the country of General Kearny, Mr. Mackenzie, Captain Wyeth, and others well acquainted with it, they had all advised us by no means to attempt this southward journey with fewer than fifteen or twenty men. The danger consists in the chance of encountering Indian war parties. Sometimes throughout the whole length of the journey (a distance of 350 miles) one does not meet a single human being; frequently, however, the route is beset by Arapahoes and other unfriendly tribes; in which case the scalp of the adventurer is in imminent peril. As to the escort of fifteen or twenty men, such a force of whites could at that time scarcely be collected by the whole country; and had the case been otherwise, the expense of securing them, together with the necessary number of horses, would have been extremely heavy. We had resolved, however, upon pursuing this southward course. There were, indeed, two other routes from Fort Laramie; but both of these were less interesting, and neither was free from danger. Being unable therefore to procure the fifteen or twenty men recommended, we determined to set out with those we had already in our employ, Henry Chatillon, Delorier, and Raymond. The men themselves made no objection, nor would they have made any had the journey been more dangerous; for Henry was without fear, and the other two without thought.

But I'm getting anxious. Before we left the settlement, we asked General Kearny, Mr. Mackenzie, Captain Wyeth, and others who were familiar with this area for advice. They all told us not to attempt this journey south with fewer than fifteen or twenty men. The danger lies in the possibility of running into Indian war parties. Sometimes, along the entire journey (which is 350 miles), you might not see another person; however, there are often threats from Arapahoes and other hostile tribes, putting the adventurer's life at serious risk. Gathering a group of fifteen or twenty men was nearly impossible at that time, and even if it had been feasible, the cost of hiring them along with the necessary number of horses would have been quite high. Regardless, we decided to head south. There were two other routes from Fort Laramie, but both were less appealing and also came with their own risks. Unable to find the recommended fifteen or twenty men, we chose to set out with our current team: Henry Chatillon, Delorier, and Raymond. The men didn’t object, nor would they have even if the trip was riskier; Henry was fearless, and the other two were thoughtless.

Shaw and I were much better fitted for this mode of traveling than we had been on betaking ourselves to the prairies for the first time a few months before. The daily routine had ceased to be a novelty. All the details of the journey and the camp had become familiar to us. We had seen life under a new aspect; the human biped had been reduced to his primitive condition. We had lived without law to protect, a roof to shelter, or garment of cloth to cover us. One of us at least had been without bread, and without salt to season his food. Our idea of what is indispensable to human existence and enjoyment had been wonderfully curtailed, and a horse, a rifle, and a knife seemed to make up the whole of life’s necessaries. For these once obtained, together with the skill to use them, all else that is essential would follow in their train, and a host of luxuries besides. One other lesson our short prairie experience had taught us; that of profound contentment in the present, and utter contempt for what the future might bring forth.

Shaw and I were much better suited for this way of traveling than we had been when we first ventured into the prairies a few months ago. The daily routine had stopped feeling new. All the details of the journey and camping had become familiar to us. We had seen life from a different perspective; the human being had been reduced to their most basic state. We had lived without laws for protection, a roof over our heads, or clothing to wear. At least one of us had gone without bread and without salt to flavor his food. Our understanding of what is essential for human life and enjoyment had shrunk dramatically, and a horse, a rifle, and a knife seemed to be all we really needed. Once we had those, along with the skills to use them, everything else essential would follow, along with a lot of luxuries too. One more lesson our brief time on the prairie had taught us was a deep contentment with the present and a complete disregard for what the future might hold.

These principles established, we prepared to leave Fort Laramie. On the fourth day of August, early in the afternoon, we bade a final adieu to its hospitable gateway. Again Shaw and I were riding side by side on the prairie. For the first fifty miles we had companions with us; Troche, a little trapper, and Rouville, a nondescript in the employ of the Fur Company, who were going to join the trader Bisonette at his encampment near the head of Horse Creek. We rode only six or eight miles that afternoon before we came to a little brook traversing the barren prairie. All along its course grew copses of young wild-cherry trees, loaded with ripe fruit, and almost concealing the gliding thread of water with their dense growth, while on each side rose swells of rich green grass. Here we encamped; and being much too indolent to pitch our tent, we flung our saddles on the ground, spread a pair of buffalo robes, lay down upon them, and began to smoke. Meanwhile, Delorier busied himself with his hissing frying-pan, and Raymond stood guard over the band of grazing horses. Delorier had an active assistant in Rouville, who professed great skill in the culinary art, and seizing upon a fork, began to lend his zealous aid in making ready supper. Indeed, according to his own belief, Rouville was a man of universal knowledge, and he lost no opportunity to display his manifold accomplishments. He had been a circus-rider at St. Louis, and once he rode round Fort Laramie on his head, to the utter bewilderment of all the Indians. He was also noted as the wit of the Fort; and as he had considerable humor and abundant vivacity, he contributed more that night to the liveliness of the camp than all the rest of the party put together. At one instant he would be kneeling by Delorier, instructing him in the true method of frying antelope steaks, then he would come and seat himself at our side, dilating upon the orthodox fashion of braiding up a horse’s tail, telling apocryphal stories how he had killed a buffalo bull with a knife, having first cut off his tail when at full speed, or relating whimsical anecdotes of the bourgeois Papin. At last he snatched up a volume of Shakespeare that was lying on the grass, and halted and stumbled through a line or two to prove that he could read. He went gamboling about the camp, chattering like some frolicsome ape; and whatever he was doing at one moment, the presumption was a sure one that he would not be doing it the next. His companion Troche sat silently on the grass, not speaking a word, but keeping a vigilant eye on a very ugly little Utah squaw, of whom he was extremely jealous.

With these principles in place, we got ready to leave Fort Laramie. On the afternoon of August fourth, we said our final goodbye to its welcoming entrance. Once more, Shaw and I were riding side by side on the prairie. For the first fifty miles, we were joined by Troche, a small trapper, and Rouville, a nondescript guy working for the Fur Company, who were heading to meet trader Bisonette at his camp near the head of Horse Creek. We rode only six or eight miles that afternoon before we reached a small brook running through the barren prairie. Along its path, clusters of young wild-cherry trees, heavy with ripe fruit, grew thickly, nearly hiding the flowing water while rich green grass rose on either side. Here we set up camp; too lazy to pitch our tent, we tossed our saddles on the ground, spread out a couple of buffalo robes, lay down on them, and started smoking. Meanwhile, Delorier busied himself with his hissing frying pan, and Raymond stood guard over the group of grazing horses. Delorier had a keen helper in Rouville, who claimed to be skilled in cooking, and grabbing a fork, he eagerly joined in preparing dinner. In fact, Rouville saw himself as a jack-of-all-trades, and he seized every chance to showcase his various talents. He had been a circus rider in St. Louis and once wowed the Indians by riding upside down around Fort Laramie. He was also known as the funny guy at the Fort; with his sharp wit and lively energy, he added more to the camp’s fun that night than everyone else combined. One moment he would be kneeling next to Delorier, teaching him how to fry antelope steaks, and the next he’d come over to sit with us, going on about the proper way to braid a horse’s tail, spinning tall tales about killing a buffalo bull with a knife after cutting off its tail at full gallop, or sharing amusing stories about the bourgeois Papin. Eventually, he grabbed a volume of Shakespeare lying on the grass and struggled through a line or two to show he could read. He bounced around the camp, chattering like a playful monkey; whatever he was doing one moment, you could bet he wouldn’t be doing it the next. His companion Troche sat quietly on the grass, saying nothing, but keeping a watchful eye on a rather unattractive little Utah squaw, of whom he was extremely jealous.

On the next day we traveled farther, crossing the wide sterile basin called Goche’s Hole. Toward night we became involved among deep ravines; and being also unable to find water, our journey was protracted to a very late hour. On the next morning we had to pass a long line of bluffs, whose raw sides, wrought upon by rains and storms, were of a ghastly whiteness most oppressive to the sight. As we ascended a gap in these hills, the way was marked by huge foot-prints, like those of a human giant. They were the track of the grizzly bear; and on the previous day also we had seen abundance of them along the dry channels of the streams we had passed. Immediately after this we were crossing a barren plain, spreading in long and gentle undulations to the horizon. Though the sun was bright, there was a light haze in the atmosphere. The distant hills assumed strange, distorted forms, and the edge of the horizon was continually changing its aspect. Shaw and I were riding together, and Henry Chatillon was alone, a few rods before us; he stopped his horse suddenly, and turning round with the peculiar eager and earnest expression which he always wore when excited, he called to us to come forward. We galloped to his side. Henry pointed toward a black speck on the gray swell of the prairie, apparently about a mile off. “It must be a bear,” said he; “come, now, we shall all have some sport. Better fun to fight him than to fight an old buffalo bull; grizzly bear so strong and smart.”

The next day, we traveled further, crossing the vast, barren area known as Goche’s Hole. By evening, we found ourselves lost among deep ravines and couldn't locate any water, which made our journey stretch into the late hours. The next morning, we had to pass a long line of bluffs, their raw sides, shaped by rain and storms, a ghastly white that was hard to look at. As we climbed a gap in the hills, we noticed huge footprints on the ground, resembling those of a giant. They were from a grizzly bear, and the day before, we had seen plenty of them along the dry riverbeds we passed. Soon after, we crossed a barren plain that rolled gently towards the horizon. Although the sun was bright, a light haze hung in the air. The distant hills looked strange and distorted, and the horizon kept changing shape. Shaw and I were riding together, while Henry Chatillon was ahead of us, riding alone. He suddenly stopped his horse and turned around with that eager and intense look he always had when excited, calling us to come over. We quickly rode to his side. Henry pointed towards a small black spot on the gray prairie, about a mile away. “It must be a bear,” he said; “let's go have some fun. It’s way better to fight him than to tackle an old buffalo bull; grizzly bears are so strong and clever.”

So we all galloped forward together, prepared for a hard fight; for these bears, though clumsy in appearance and extremely large, are incredibly fierce and active. The swell of the prairie concealed the black object from our view. Immediately after it appeared again. But now it seemed quite near to us; and as we looked at it in astonishment, it suddenly separated into two parts, each of which took wing and flew away. We stopped our horses and looked round at Henry, whose face exhibited a curious mixture of mirth and mortification. His hawk’s eye had been so completely deceived by the peculiar atmosphere that he had mistaken two large crows at the distance of fifty rods for a grizzly bear a mile off. To the journey’s end Henry never heard the last of the grizzly bear with wings.

So we all hurried forward together, ready for a tough fight; because these bears, despite their clumsy looks and massive size, are surprisingly fierce and quick. The rise of the prairie hid the black object from our sight. It reappeared right away. But now it seemed much closer to us, and as we stared at it in disbelief, it suddenly split into two parts, each taking off and flying away. We stopped our horses and turned to Henry, whose face showed a strange mix of amusement and embarrassment. His sharp eye had been totally tricked by the unusual atmosphere, causing him to mistake two large crows fifty yards away for a grizzly bear a mile off. From that point on, Henry never heard the end of the flying grizzly bear.

In the afternoon we came to the foot of a considerable hill. As we ascended it Rouville began to ask questions concerning our conditions and prospects at home, and Shaw was edifying him with a minute account of an imaginary wife and child, to which he listened with implicit faith. Reaching the top of the hill we saw the windings of Horse Creek on the plains below us, and a little on the left we could distinguish the camp of Bisonette among the trees and copses along the course of the stream. Rouville’s face assumed just then a most ludicrously blank expression. We inquired what was the matter, when it appeared that Bisonette had sent him from this place to Fort Laramie with the sole object of bringing back a supply of tobacco. Our rattle-brain friend, from the time of his reaching the Fort up to the present moment, had entirely forgotten the object of his journey, and had ridden a dangerous hundred miles for nothing. Descending to Horse Creek we forded it, and on the opposite bank a solitary Indian sat on horseback under a tree. He said nothing, but turned and led the way toward the camp. Bisonette had made choice of an admirable position. The stream, with its thick growth of trees, inclosed on three sides a wide green meadow, where about forty Dakota lodges were pitched in a circle, and beyond them half a dozen lodges of the friendly Cheyenne. Bisonette himself lived in the Indian manner. Riding up to his lodge, we found him seated at the head of it, surrounded by various appliances of comfort not common on the prairie. His squaw was near him, and rosy children were scrambling about in printed-calico gowns; Paul Dorion also, with his leathery face and old white capote, was seated in the lodge, together with Antoine Le Rouge, a half-breed Pawnee, Sibille, a trader, and several other white men.

In the afternoon, we reached the bottom of a significant hill. As we climbed it, Rouville started asking questions about our situation and prospects back home, and Shaw was entertaining him with a detailed story about an imaginary wife and child, which Rouville believed completely. When we reached the top of the hill, we could see the winding Horse Creek on the plains below us, and a little to the left, we spotted Bisonette's camp among the trees along the stream. At that moment, Rouville's face went completely blank, which made us curious about what was wrong. It turned out that Bisonette had sent him from this spot to Fort Laramie just to bring back some tobacco. Our scatterbrained friend had completely forgotten the purpose of his journey since arriving at the Fort and had ridden a risky hundred miles for no reason. We descended to Horse Creek and forded it, and on the other side, a lone Indian was sitting on horseback under a tree. He didn't say anything but turned and led the way toward the camp. Bisonette had chosen a great spot. The stream, surrounded by dense trees, enclosed a wide green meadow on three sides, where about forty Dakota lodges were arranged in a circle, along with half a dozen lodges of the friendly Cheyenne just beyond them. Bisonette himself lived in a way similar to the Indians. When we rode up to his lodge, we found him sitting at the front, surrounded by various comforts not usually found on the prairie. His wife was nearby, and rosy-cheeked children were playing around in printed-calico dresses; Paul Dorion, with his weathered face and old white coat, was also sitting in the lodge, along with Antoine Le Rouge, a half-breed Pawnee, Sibille, a trader, and several other white men.

“It will do you no harm,” said Bisonette, “to stay here with us for a day or two, before you start for the Pueblo.”

“It won't hurt you,” said Bisonette, “to hang out with us for a day or two before you head to the Pueblo.”

We accepted the invitation, and pitched our tent on a rising ground above the camp and close to the edge of the trees. Bisonette soon invited us to a feast, and we suffered abundance of the same sort of attention from his Indian associates. The reader may possibly recollect that when I joined the Indian village, beyond the Black Hills, I found that a few families were absent, having declined to pass the mountains along with the rest. The Indians in Bisonette’s camp consisted of these very families, and many of them came to me that evening to inquire after their relatives and friends. They were not a little mortified to learn that while they, from their own timidity and indolence, were almost in a starving condition, the rest of the village had provided their lodges for the next season, laid in a great stock of provisions, and were living in abundance and luxury. Bisonette’s companions had been sustaining themselves for some time on wild cherries, which the squaws pounded up, stones and all, and spread on buffalo robes, to dry in the sun; they were then eaten without further preparation, or used as an ingredient in various delectable compounds.

We accepted the invitation and set up our tent on higher ground above the camp, close to the edge of the trees. Bisonette soon invited us to a feast, and we received plenty of the same kind of attention from his Indian associates. You might remember that when I joined the Indian village beyond the Black Hills, a few families were missing because they chose not to cross the mountains with everyone else. The Indians in Bisonette’s camp were these very families, and many of them came to me that evening to ask about their relatives and friends. They were quite embarrassed to find out that while they were nearly starving due to their own hesitation and laziness, the rest of the village had already prepared their lodges for the next season, stockpiled a lot of food, and were living comfortably and luxuriously. Bisonette’s companions had been surviving for a while on wild cherries, which the women pounded up, pits and all, and spread on buffalo robes to dry in the sun; they were then eaten as is or used as an ingredient in various delicious dishes.

On the next day the camp was in commotion with a new arrival. A single Indian had come with his family the whole way from the Arkansas. As he passed among the lodges he put on an expression of unusual dignity and importance, and gave out that he had brought great news to tell the whites. Soon after the squaws had erected his lodge, he sent his little son to invite all the white men, and all the most distinguished Indians, to a feast. The guests arrived and sat wedged together, shoulder to shoulder, within the hot and suffocating lodge. The Stabber, for that was our entertainer’s name, had killed an old buffalo bull on his way. This veteran’s boiled tripe, tougher than leather, formed the main item of the repast. For the rest, it consisted of wild cherries and grease boiled together in a large copper kettle. The feast was distributed, and for a moment all was silent, strenuous exertion; then each guest, with one or two exceptions, however, turned his wooden dish bottom upward to prove that he had done full justice to his entertainer’s hospitality. The Stabber next produced his chopping board, on which he prepared the mixture for smoking, and filled several pipes, which circulated among the company. This done, he seated himself upright on his couch, and began with much gesticulation to tell his story. I will not repeat his childish jargon. It was so entangled, like the greater part of an Indian’s stories, with absurd and contradictory details, that it was almost impossible to disengage from it a single particle of truth. All that we could gather was the following:

The next day, the camp was buzzing with excitement over a new arrival. An Indian had traveled all the way from Arkansas with his family. As he walked through the lodges, he wore an expression of unusual dignity and significance, announcing that he had important news for the white people. Shortly after the women set up his lodge, he sent his young son to invite all the white men and the most notable Indians to a feast. The guests arrived and sat tightly packed, shoulder to shoulder, in the hot and stuffy lodge. The Stabber, which was our host's name, had killed an old buffalo bull during his journey. The main dish was the bull's boiled tripe, tougher than leather. Along with that, there were wild cherries cooked together in a large copper pot. The feast was served, and for a brief moment, there was silence as everyone focused on eating; then each guest, except for one or two, turned their wooden dish upside down to show they had fully enjoyed their host's hospitality. The Stabber then took out his chopping board, prepared some mixture for smoking, and filled several pipes, which were passed around the group. After that, he sat upright on his couch and began to tell his story with a lot of hand gestures. I won't repeat his childish language. It was so tangled, like most Indian stories, with absurd and contradictory details, that it was nearly impossible to pull out even a shred of truth. All we could gather was the following:

He had been on the Arkansas, and there he had seen six great war parties of whites. He had never believed before that the whole world contained half so many white men. They all had large horses, long knives, and short rifles, and some of them were attired alike in the most splendid war dresses he had ever seen. From this account it was clear that bodies of dragoons and perhaps also of volunteer cavalry had been passing up the Arkansas. The Stabber had also seen a great many of the white lodges of the Meneaska, drawn by their long-horned buffalo. These could be nothing else than covered ox-wagons used no doubt in transporting stores for the troops. Soon after seeing this, our host had met an Indian who had lately come from among the Comanches. The latter had told him that all the Mexicans had gone out to a great buffalo hunt. That the Americans had hid themselves in a ravine. When the Mexicans had shot away all their arrows, the Americans had fired their guns, raised their war-whoop, rushed out, and killed them all. We could only infer from this that war had been declared with Mexico, and a battle fought in which the Americans were victorious. When, some weeks after, we arrived at the Pueblo, we heard of General Kearny’s march up the Arkansas and of General Taylor’s victories at Matamoras.

He had been on the Arkansas, where he saw six large groups of white soldiers. He had never believed before that there were this many white people in the world. They all had big horses, long knives, and short rifles, and some of them were dressed in the most impressive war outfits he had ever seen. From this, it was obvious that battalions of dragoons and possibly some volunteer cavalry were moving up the Arkansas. The Stabber also observed a lot of the white camps of the Meneaska, drawn by their long-horned buffalo. These could only be covered ox-wagons, likely used to transport supplies for the troops. Shortly after this, our host met an Indian who had recently come from the Comanches. The Comanche had told him that all the Mexicans had gone out on a big buffalo hunt. The Americans had hidden in a ravine. After the Mexicans had shot all their arrows, the Americans fired their guns, shouted their war cry, charged out, and killed them all. We could only conclude from this that war had been declared with Mexico, and a battle had taken place in which the Americans came out on top. When we arrived at the Pueblo a few weeks later, we heard about General Kearny’s march up the Arkansas and General Taylor’s victories at Matamoras.

As the sun was setting that evening a great crowd gathered on the plain by the side of our tent, to try the speed of their horses. These were of every shape, size, and color. Some came from California, some from the States, some from among the mountains, and some from the wild bands of the prairie. They were of every hue—white, black, red, and gray, or mottled and clouded with a strange variety of colors. They all had a wild and startled look, very different from the staid and sober aspect of a well-bred city steed. Those most noted for swiftness and spirit were decorated with eagle-feathers dangling from their manes and tails. Fifty or sixty Dakotas were present, wrapped from head to foot in their heavy robes of whitened hide. There were also a considerable number of the Cheyenne, many of whom wore gaudy Mexican ponchos swathed around their shoulders, but leaving the right arm bare. Mingled among the crowd of Indians were a number of Canadians, chiefly in the employ of Bisonette; men, whose home is in the wilderness, and who love the camp fire better than the domestic hearth. They are contented and happy in the midst of hardship, privation, and danger. Their cheerfulness and gayety is irrepressible, and no people on earth understand better how “to daff the world aside and bid it pass.” Besides these, were two or three half-breeds, a race of rather extraordinary composition, being according to the common saying half Indian, half white man, and half devil. Antoine Le Rouge was the most conspicuous among them, with his loose pantaloons and his fluttering calico skirt. A handkerchief was bound round his head to confine his black snaky hair, and his small eyes twinkled beneath it, with a mischievous luster. He had a fine cream-colored horse whose speed he must needs try along with the rest. So he threw off the rude high-peaked saddle, and substituting a piece of buffalo robe, leaped lightly into his seat. The space was cleared, the word was given, and he and his Indian rival darted out like lightning from among the crowd, each stretching forward over his horse’s neck and plying his heavy Indian whip with might and main. A moment, and both were lost in the gloom; but Antoine soon came riding back victorious, exultingly patting the neck of his quivering and panting horse.

As the sun was setting that evening, a huge crowd gathered on the plain next to our tent to test the speed of their horses. These horses came in all shapes, sizes, and colors. Some were from California, some from other states, some from the mountains, and some from wild prairie bands. They varied in color—white, black, red, gray, or a mix of strange shades. They all had a wild, startled look, very different from the calm and serious appearance of a well-bred city horse. The horses known for their speed and spirit were adorned with eagle feathers hanging from their manes and tails. Fifty or sixty Dakotas were there, wrapped from head to toe in their heavy white-hide robes. There were also quite a few Cheyenne, many wearing bright Mexican ponchos draped over their shoulders, leaving their right arms bare. Among the crowd of Indians were several Canadians, mostly working for Bisonette; men whose home is the wilderness and who prefer the campfire over the domestic hearth. They are happy and content despite hardships, shortages, and dangers. Their cheerfulness and joy are unstoppable, and no one understands better how to shrug off the world and let it go. In addition, there were a few half-breeds, a unique mix, often described as half Indian, half white man, and half devil. Antoine Le Rouge stood out among them, wearing loose pants and a fluttering calico skirt. A handkerchief was wrapped around his head to keep his black, snaky hair in place, and his small eyes sparkled mischievously from beneath it. He had a beautiful cream-colored horse whose speed he wanted to test along with the others. So, he took off the rough, high-peaked saddle and replaced it with a piece of buffalo robe, leaping lightly onto his horse. The space was cleared, the signal was given, and he and his Indian rival shot out like lightning from the crowd, each leaning forward over his horse’s neck and using his heavy Indian whip with all their strength. In a moment, both were lost in the darkness; but soon Antoine came back riding victoriously, joyfully patting the neck of his trembling, panting horse.

About midnight, as I lay asleep, wrapped in a buffalo robe on the ground by the side of our cart, Raymond came up and woke me. Something he said, was going forward which I would like to see. Looking down into camp I saw, on the farther side of it, a great number of Indians gathered around a fire, the bright glare of which made them visible through the thick darkness; while from the midst of them proceeded a loud, measured chant which would have killed Paganini outright, broken occasionally by a burst of sharp yells. I gathered the robe around me, for the night was cold, and walked down to the spot. The dark throng of Indians was so dense that they almost intercepted the light of the flame. As I was pushing among them with but little ceremony, a chief interposed himself, and I was given to understand that a white man must not approach the scene of their solemnities too closely. By passing round to the other side, where there was a little opening in the crowd, I could see clearly what was going forward, without intruding my unhallowed presence into the inner circle. The society of the “Strong Hearts” were engaged in one of their dances. The Strong Hearts are a warlike association, comprising men of both the Dakota and Cheyenne nations, and entirely composed, or supposed to be so, of young braves of the highest mettle. Its fundamental principle is the admirable one of never retreating from any enterprise once commenced. All these Indian associations have a tutelary spirit. That of the Strong Hearts is embodied in the fox, an animal which a white man would hardly have selected for a similar purpose, though his subtle and cautious character agrees well enough with an Indian’s notions of what is honorable in warfare. The dancers were circling round and round the fire, each figure brightly illumined at one moment by the yellow light, and at the next drawn in blackest shadow as it passed between the flame and the spectator. They would imitate with the most ludicrous exactness the motions and the voice of their sly patron the fox. Then a startling yell would be given. Many other warriors would leap into the ring, and with faces upturned toward the starless sky, they would all stamp, and whoop, and brandish their weapons like so many frantic devils.

Around midnight, as I lay asleep, wrapped in a buffalo robe on the ground next to our cart, Raymond came over and woke me up. He mentioned that something was happening that I should see. Looking down into the camp, I noticed a large group of Indians gathered around a fire, its bright light making them visible through the thick darkness. From the crowd, a loud, rhythmic chant filled the air, occasionally interrupted by sharp yells that could have stunned Paganini. I pulled the robe tighter around me since the night was cold and walked toward the scene. The dark mass of Indians was so dense that they nearly blocked out the fire's light. As I moved through them without much hesitation, a chief stepped in, making it clear that a white man shouldn't get too close to their sacred ceremony. By moving to the other side, where there was a small opening in the crowd, I could see everything happening without intruding into the inner circle. The society of the “Strong Hearts” was performing one of their dances. The Strong Hearts are a militant group made up of young warriors from both the Dakota and Cheyenne nations, comprised, or at least believed to be, of the bravest young men. Their core principle is admirable: to never back down from any undertaking once started. All Indian societies have a guardian spirit, and for the Strong Hearts, that spirit is represented by the fox — an animal a white man might not typically choose for such a role, yet its cunning and cautious nature aligns well with an Indian's view of honor in battle. The dancers circled the fire, each figure momentarily illuminated by the yellow light before falling into deep shadow as it moved between the flame and me. They mimicked, with exaggerated precision, the motions and sounds of their clever guardian, the fox. Then a piercing yell would erupt, prompting many other warriors to leap into the circle, their faces turned toward the starless sky, stamping, whooping, and waving their weapons like frenzied spirits.

Until the next afternoon we were still remaining with Bisonette. My companion and I with our three attendants then left his camp for the Pueblo, a distance of three hundred miles, and we supposed the journey would occupy about a fortnight. During this time we all earnestly hoped that we might not meet a single human being, for should we encounter any, they would in all probability be enemies, ferocious robbers and murderers, in whose eyes our rifles would be our only passports. For the first two days nothing worth mentioning took place. On the third morning, however, an untoward incident occurred. We were encamped by the side of a little brook in an extensive hollow of the plain. Delorier was up long before daylight, and before he began to prepare breakfast he turned loose all the horses, as in duty bound. There was a cold mist clinging close to the ground, and by the time the rest of us were awake the animals were invisible. It was only after a long and anxious search that we could discover by their tracks the direction they had taken. They had all set off for Fort Laramie, following the guidance of a mutinous old mule, and though many of them were hobbled they had driven three miles before they could be overtaken and driven back.

Until the next afternoon, we were still with Bisonette. My companion and I, along with our three attendants, then left his camp for the Pueblo, which was three hundred miles away, and we figured the journey would take about two weeks. During this time, we all really hoped not to run into a single person because if we did, they would likely be enemies—vicious robbers and murderers—who would only see our rifles as our tickets to safety. The first two days passed without anything noteworthy happening. However, on the third morning, an unfortunate incident occurred. We were camped beside a small brook in a broad hollow of the plain. Delorier was up long before dawn, and before preparing breakfast, he let all the horses loose, as he was supposed to do. There was a cold mist hanging low to the ground, and by the time the rest of us woke up, the horses were nowhere to be seen. It took a long and tense search before we could find out where they had gone based on their tracks. They had all headed off towards Fort Laramie, following a rebellious old mule, and even though many were hobbled, they had made it three miles before we could catch up and bring them back.

For the following two or three days we were passing over an arid desert. The only vegetation was a few tufts of short grass, dried and shriveled by the heat. There was an abundance of strange insects and reptiles. Huge crickets, black and bottle green, and wingless grasshoppers of the most extravagant dimensions, were tumbling about our horses’ feet, and lizards without numbers were darting like lightning among the tufts of grass. The most curious animal, however, was that commonly called the horned frog. I caught one of them and consigned him to the care of Delorier, who tied him up in a moccasin. About a month after this I examined the prisoner’s condition, and finding him still lively and active, I provided him with a cage of buffalo hide, which was hung up in the cart. In this manner he arrived safely at the settlements. From thence he traveled the whole way to Boston packed closely in a trunk, being regaled with fresh air regularly every night. When he reached his destination he was deposited under a glass case, where he sat for some months in great tranquillity and composure, alternately dilating and contracting his white throat to the admiration of his visitors. At length, one morning, about the middle of winter, he gave up the ghost. His death was attributed to starvation, a very probable conclusion, since for six months he had taken no food whatever, though the sympathy of his juvenile admirers had tempted his palate with a great variety of delicacies. We found also animals of a somewhat larger growth. The number of prairie dogs was absolutely astounding. Frequently the hard and dry prairie would be thickly covered, for many miles together, with the little mounds which they make around the mouth of their burrows, and small squeaking voices yelping at us as we passed along. The noses of the inhabitants would be just visible at the mouth of their holes, but no sooner was their curiosity satisfied than they would instantly vanish. Some of the bolder dogs—though in fact they are no dogs at all, but little marmots rather smaller than a rabbit—would sit yelping at us on the top of their mounds, jerking their tails emphatically with every shrill cry they uttered. As the danger grew nearer they would wheel about, toss their heels into the air, and dive in a twinkling down into their burrows. Toward sunset, and especially if rain were threatening, the whole community would make their appearance above ground. We would see them gathered in large knots around the burrow of some favorite citizen. There they would all sit erect, their tails spread out on the ground, and their paws hanging down before their white breasts, chattering and squeaking with the utmost vivacity upon some topic of common interest, while the proprietor of the burrow, with his head just visible on the top of his mound, would sit looking down with a complacent countenance on the enjoyment of his guests. Meanwhile, others would be running about from burrow to burrow, as if on some errand of the last importance to their subterranean commonwealth. The snakes were apparently the prairie dog’s worst enemies, at least I think too well of the latter to suppose that they associate on friendly terms with these slimy intruders, who may be seen at all times basking among their holes, into which they always retreat when disturbed. Small owls, with wise and grave countenances, also make their abode with the prairie dogs, though on what terms they live together I could never ascertain. The manners and customs, the political and domestic economy of these little marmots is worthy of closer attention than one is able to give when pushing by forced marches through their country, with his thoughts engrossed by objects of greater moment.

For the next two or three days, we traveled through a dry desert. The only plants were a few patches of short grass, dried and shriveled from the heat. There was a lot of strange insects and reptiles. Huge crickets, black and bottle green, along with wingless grasshoppers of impressive sizes, were tumbling around our horses' feet, and countless lizards were darting like lightning among the grass. The oddest creature, though, was one commonly called the horned frog. I caught one and gave it to Delorier, who put it in a moccasin. About a month later, I checked on the little guy and found him still lively, so I built him a cage from buffalo hide and hung it in the cart. This way, he safely made it to the settlements. From there, he traveled all the way to Boston packed snugly in a trunk, getting fresh air every night. When he arrived, he was placed under a glass case, where he sat for months in peace, puffing and contracting his white throat to the delight of onlookers. Finally, one winter morning, he passed away. His death was thought to be due to starvation, which makes sense since he hadn't eaten anything for six months, though the kids trying to win his affection had offered him all sorts of treats. We also encountered larger animals. The number of prairie dogs was absolutely astounding. Often the hard, dry prairie was dotted with their little mounds for miles, accompanied by their small squeaky voices yelping at us as we passed. The tops of their noses would be just visible at their burrow entrances, but as soon as they were satisfied with their curiosity, they would disappear instantly. Some of the braver prairie dogs—though they're not dogs at all, but little marmots slightly smaller than rabbits—would yelp at us from the tops of their mounds, wagging their tails emphatically with every sharp cry. As danger approached, they would spin around, kick their heels into the air, and quickly dive back into their burrows. Toward sunset, especially if rain was coming, the whole group would emerge above ground. We would see them gather in large clusters around the burrow of a favored member. There they would all sit upright, their tails spread out on the ground, and their paws hanging down in front of their white chests, chattering and squeaking energetically about something of common interest, while the owner of the burrow, with his head just above the mound, looked down with a satisfied expression at the enjoyment of his guests. Meanwhile, others would scurry from burrow to burrow as if on some crucial mission for their underground community. Snakes were clearly the prairie dogs' worst enemies; I think too highly of the later to believe they could associate amicably with these slippery intruders, who can always be seen basking near their holes, retreating as soon as they're disturbed. Small owls with wise and serious expressions also live among the prairie dogs, though I could never figure out how they coexist. The habits and customs, the social and domestic lives of these little marmots deserve more attention than one can give when rushing through their territory, distracted by more pressing matters.

On the fifth day after leaving Bisonette’s camp we saw late in the afternoon what we supposed to be a considerable stream, but on our approaching it we found to our mortification nothing but a dry bed of sand into which all the water had sunk and disappeared. We separated, some riding in one direction and some in another along its course. Still we found no traces of water, not even so much as a wet spot in the sand. The old cotton-wood trees that grew along the bank, lamentably abused by lightning and tempest, were withering with the drought, and on the dead limbs, at the summit of the tallest, half a dozen crows were hoarsely cawing like birds of evil omen as they were. We had no alternative but to keep on. There was no water nearer than the South Fork of the Platte, about ten miles distant. We moved forward, angry and silent, over a desert as flat as the outspread ocean.

On the fifth day after leaving Bisonette’s camp, we saw late in the afternoon what we thought was a significant stream, but as we got closer, we were disappointed to find it was just a dry bed of sand where all the water had sunk and disappeared. We split up, some riding in one direction and some in another along its path. Still, we found no signs of water, not even a wet patch in the sand. The old cottonwood trees along the bank, sadly damaged by lightning and storms, were withering from the drought, and on the dead branches of the tallest tree, a few crows were hoarsely cawing like birds of bad luck. We had no choice but to keep going. The nearest water was at the South Fork of the Platte, about ten miles away. We moved forward, frustrated and silent, across a desert as flat as the open ocean.

The sky had been obscured since the morning by thin mists and vapors, but now vast piles of clouds were gathered together in the west. They rose to a great height above the horizon, and looking up toward them I distinguished one mass darker than the rest and of a peculiar conical form. I happened to look again and still could see it as before. At some moments it was dimly seen, at others its outline was sharp and distinct; but while the clouds around it were shifting, changing, and dissolving away, it still towered aloft in the midst of them, fixed and immovable. It must, thought I, be the summit of a mountain, and yet its heights staggered me. My conclusion was right, however. It was Long’s Peak, once believed to be one of the highest of the Rocky Mountain chain, though more recent discoveries have proved the contrary. The thickening gloom soon hid it from view and we never saw it again, for on the following day and for some time after, the air was so full of mist that the view of distant objects was entirely intercepted.

The sky had been covered in thin mists and fog since morning, but now, big clouds were gathering in the west. They rose high above the horizon, and when I looked up at them, I noticed one mass that was darker than the others and had a unique conical shape. I glanced again and still saw it as before. Sometimes it appeared faint, and other times its outline was clear and defined; yet while the clouds around it were shifting, changing, and disappearing, it remained towering and solid. I thought it must be the top of a mountain, but its height was overwhelming. However, I was right. It was Long’s Peak, once thought to be one of the highest in the Rocky Mountains, although more recent findings have shown otherwise. The thickening darkness soon obscured it from view, and we never saw it again because the next day and for a while after that, the air was so filled with mist that distant objects were completely hidden.

It grew very late. Turning from our direct course we made for the river at its nearest point, though in the utter darkness it was not easy to direct our way with much precision. Raymond rode on one side and Henry on the other. We could hear each of them shouting that he had come upon a deep ravine. We steered at random between Scylla and Charybdis, and soon after became, as it seemed, inextricably involved with deep chasms all around us, while the darkness was such that we could not see a rod in any direction. We partially extricated ourselves by scrambling, cart and all, through a shallow ravine. We came next to a steep descent down which we plunged without well knowing what was at the bottom. There was a great crackling of sticks and dry twigs. Over our heads were certain large shadowy objects, and in front something like the faint gleaming of a dark sheet of water. Raymond ran his horse against a tree; Henry alighted, and feeling on the ground declared that there was grass enough for the horses. Before taking off his saddle each man led his own horses down to the water in the best way he could. Then picketing two or three of the evil-disposed we turned the rest loose and lay down among the dry sticks to sleep. In the morning we found ourselves close to the South Fork of the Platte on a spot surrounded by bushes and rank grass. Compensating ourselves with a hearty breakfast for the ill fare of the previous night, we set forward again on our journey. When only two or three rods from the camp I saw Shaw stop his mule, level his gun, and after a long aim fire at some object in the grass. Delorier next jumped forward and began to dance about, belaboring the unseen enemy with a whip. Then he stooped down and drew out of the grass by the neck an enormous rattlesnake, with his head completely shattered by Shaw’s bullet. As Delorier held him out at arm’s length with an exulting grin his tail, which still kept slowly writhing about, almost touched the ground, and the body in the largest part was as thick as a stout man’s arm. He had fourteen rattles, but the end of his tail was blunted, as if he could once have boasted of many more. From this time till we reached the Pueblo we killed at least four or five of these snakes every day as they lay coiled and rattling on the hot sand. Shaw was the St. Patrick of the party, and whenever he or any one else killed a snake he always pulled off his tail and stored it away in his bullet-pouch, which was soon crammed with an edifying collection of rattles, great and small. Delorier, with his whip, also came in for a share of the praise. A day or two after this he triumphantly produced a small snake about a span and a half long, with one infant rattle at the end of his tail.

It got really late. We changed direction and headed for the river at its closest point, but it was tough to find our way in complete darkness. Raymond rode on one side and Henry on the other. We could hear both of them yelling that they had found a deep ravine. We navigated randomly between two dangers and soon felt completely surrounded by steep chasms, unable to see anything in any direction. We managed to free ourselves by scrambling, cart and all, through a shallow ravine. Next, we came to a steep drop that we plunged down without knowing what was at the bottom. We heard sticks and dry twigs cracking around us. Overhead were some large shadowy shapes, and in front was the faint shimmer of a dark sheet of water. Raymond’s horse collided with a tree; Henry got off and felt the ground, claiming there was enough grass for the horses. Before removing his saddle, each man led his horse down to the water as best as he could. After securing two or three fractious ones, we let the rest roam free and lay down among the dry sticks to sleep. In the morning, we found ourselves near the South Fork of the Platte, in a place surrounded by bushes and thick grass. Making up for the poor meal we had the previous night, we had a hearty breakfast and set off again on our journey. Just two or three rods from the camp, I saw Shaw stop his mule, aim his gun, and fire at something in the grass. Delorier jumped forward, dancing around, whipping at the unseen enemy. Then he bent down and pulled out a massive rattlesnake by the neck, its head completely smashed by Shaw’s bullet. As Delorier held it out at arm’s length with a triumphant grin, its tail, which was still slowly moving, almost touched the ground, and the thickest part of its body was as big around as a muscular man's arm. It had fourteen rattles, but the end of its tail was broken off, as if it used to have many more. From then until we reached the Pueblo, we killed at least four or five of these snakes every day as they coiled up and rattled on the hot sand. Shaw was the St. Patrick of our group, and whenever he or anyone else killed a snake, he always cut off its tail and stored it in his bullet pouch, which soon filled up with a collection of impressive rattles, big and small. Delorier, with his whip, also earned some praise. A day or two later, he proudly showed off a small snake about a foot and a half long, with one tiny rattle at the end of its tail.

We forded the South Fork of the Platte. On its farther bank were the traces of a very large camp of Arapahoes. The ashes of some three hundred fires were visible among the scattered trees, together with the remains of sweating lodges, and all the other appurtenances of a permanent camp. The place however had been for some months deserted. A few miles farther on we found more recent signs of Indians; the trail of two or three lodges, which had evidently passed the day before, where every foot-print was perfectly distinct in the dry, dusty soil. We noticed in particular the track of one moccasin, upon the sole of which its economical proprietor had placed a large patch. These signs gave us but little uneasiness, as the number of the warriors scarcely exceeded that of our own party. At noon we rested under the walls of a large fort, built in these solitudes some years since by M. St. Vrain. It was now abandoned and fast falling into ruin. The walls of unbaked bricks were cracked from top to bottom. Our horses recoiled in terror from the neglected entrance, where the heavy gates were torn from their hinges and flung down. The area within was overgrown with weeds, and the long ranges of apartments, once occupied by the motley concourse of traders, Canadians, and squaws, were now miserably dilapidated. Twelve miles further on, near the spot where we encamped, were the remains of still another fort, standing in melancholy desertion and neglect.

We crossed the South Fork of the Platte. On the other bank were signs of a very large Arapahoe camp. Ashes from about three hundred fires were visible among the scattered trees, along with the remains of sweat lodges and all the other belongings of a permanent camp. However, the place had been deserted for several months. A few miles further, we found more recent signs of Indians; the trail of two or three lodges that had clearly passed the day before, with every footprint easily seen in the dry, dusty ground. We particularly noticed the track of one moccasin, which had a large patch on the sole, showing its careful owner. These signs didn’t worry us much, as the number of warriors was hardly more than our own group. At noon, we took a break by the walls of a large fort that M. St. Vrain had built in these remote areas several years earlier. It was now abandoned and rapidly falling apart. The walls made of unbaked bricks were cracked from top to bottom. Our horses were frightened by the neglected entrance, where the heavy gates were ripped from their hinges and lying on the ground. The area inside was overgrown with weeds, and the long rows of rooms, once filled with traders, Canadians, and women, were now in disrepair. Twelve miles further on, near where we set up camp, we found the remains of yet another fort, standing in sad abandonment and neglect.

Early on the following morning we made a startling discovery. We passed close by a large deserted encampment of Arapahoes. There were about fifty fires still smouldering on the ground, and it was evident from numerous signs that the Indians must have left the place within two hours of our reaching it. Their trail crossed our own at right angles, and led in the direction of a line of hills half a mile on our left. There were women and children in the party, which would have greatly diminished the danger of encountering them. Henry Chatillon examined the encampment and the trail with a very professional and businesslike air.

Early the next morning, we made a surprising discovery. We passed by a large, abandoned campsite of Arapahoes. About fifty fires were still smoldering on the ground, and it was clear from various signs that the Indians had left the place within two hours of our arrival. Their trail crossed ours at a right angle and led towards a line of hills half a mile to our left. The group included women and children, which would have significantly reduced the risk of running into them. Henry Chatillon inspected the campsite and the trail with a very professional and businesslike demeanor.

“Supposing we had met them, Henry?” said I.

“Let’s say we had met them, Henry?” I asked.

“Why,” said he, “we hold out our hands to them, and give them all we’ve got; they take away everything, and then I believe they no kill us. Perhaps,” added he, looking up with a quiet, unchanged face, “perhaps we no let them rob us. Maybe before they come near, we have a chance to get into a ravine, or under the bank of the river; then, you know, we fight them.”

“Why,” he said, “we reach out our hands to them and give them everything we have; they take it all away, and then I think they won’t kill us. Maybe,” he added, looking up with a calm, expressionless face, “maybe we won’t let them rob us. Perhaps before they get close, we have a chance to slip into a ravine or hide under the riverbank; then, you know, we fight them.”

About noon on that day we reached Cherry Creek. Here was a great abundance of wild cherries, plums, gooseberries, and currants. The stream, however, like most of the others which we passed, was dried up with the heat, and we had to dig holes in the sand to find water for ourselves and our horses. Two days after, we left the banks of the creek which we had been following for some time, and began to cross the high dividing ridge which separates the waters of the Platte from those of the Arkansas. The scenery was altogether changed. In place of the burning plains we were passing now through rough and savage glens and among hills crowned with a dreary growth of pines. We encamped among these solitudes on the night of the 16th of August. A tempest was threatening. The sun went down among volumes of jet-black cloud, edged with a bloody red. But in spite of these portentous signs, we neglected to put up the tent, and being extremely fatigued, lay down on the ground and fell asleep. The storm broke about midnight, and we erected the tent amid darkness and confusion. In the morning all was fair again, and Pike’s Peak, white with snow, was towering above the wilderness afar off.

Around noon that day, we arrived at Cherry Creek. There was a ton of wild cherries, plums, gooseberries, and currants. However, like most of the streams we had encountered, it was dried up from the heat, and we had to dig holes in the sand to find water for ourselves and our horses. Two days later, we left the banks of the creek we had been following for a while and started to cross the high ridge that separates the waters of the Platte from those of the Arkansas. The scenery had completely changed. Instead of the scorching plains, we were now navigating through rough and rugged glens and hills topped with a bleak growth of pines. We camped in this solitude on the night of August 16th. A storm was approaching. The sun set behind thick black clouds, tinged with bloody red. Despite these ominous signs, we forgot to set up the tent, and exhausted, lay down on the ground and fell asleep. The storm hit around midnight, and we put up the tent in the dark and chaos. By morning, everything was clear again, and Pike’s Peak, capped with snow, loomed majestically over the wilderness in the distance.

We pushed through an extensive tract of pine woods. Large black squirrels were leaping among the branches. From the farther edge of this forest we saw the prairie again, hollowed out before us into a vast basin, and about a mile in front we could discern a little black speck moving upon its surface. It could be nothing but a buffalo. Henry primed his rifle afresh and galloped forward. To the left of the animal was a low rocky mound, of which Henry availed himself in making his approach. After a short time we heard the faint report of the rifle. The bull, mortally wounded from a distance of nearly three hundred yards, ran wildly round and round in a circle. Shaw and I then galloped forward, and passing him as he ran, foaming with rage and pain, we discharged our pistols into his side. Once or twice he rushed furiously upon us, but his strength was rapidly exhausted. Down he fell on his knees. For one instant he glared up at his enemies with burning eyes through his black tangled mane, and then rolled over on his side. Though gaunt and thin, he was larger and heavier than the largest ox. Foam and blood flew together from his nostrils as he lay bellowing and pawing the ground, tearing up grass and earth with his hoofs. His sides rose and fell like a vast pair of bellows, the blood spouting up in jets from the bullet-holes. Suddenly his glaring eyes became like a lifeless jelly. He lay motionless on the ground. Henry stooped over him, and making an incision with his knife, pronounced the meat too rank and tough for use; so, disappointed in our hopes of an addition to our stock of provisions, we rode away and left the carcass to the wolves.

We pushed through a large area of pine woods. Big black squirrels were jumping around in the branches. From the far edge of the forest, we could see the prairie again, carved out in front of us like a vast bowl, and about a mile ahead, we spotted a small black dot moving on its surface. It had to be a buffalo. Henry reloaded his rifle and took off on his horse. To the left of the animal was a low rocky mound, which Henry used to get closer. After a little while, we heard the faint sound of the rifle. The bull, mortally wounded from nearly three hundred yards away, ran in wild circles. Shaw and I then rode up, passing him as he charged, frothing with rage and pain, and we shot our pistols into his side. A couple of times he charged at us furiously, but his strength was quickly fading. He dropped to his knees. For a moment, he glared up at his attackers with fiery eyes through his tangled black mane, and then he rolled over onto his side. Though skinny, he was larger and heavier than the biggest ox. Foam and blood sprayed from his nostrils as he lay bellowing and pawing the ground, ripping up grass and dirt with his hooves. His sides heaved like a giant bellows, blood jetting out from the bullet wounds. Suddenly, his fierce eyes turned into lifeless jelly. He lay still on the ground. Henry bent down over him, made a cut with his knife, and said the meat was too rank and tough to eat; so, disappointed that we wouldn’t be able to add to our supplies, we rode away and left the carcass for the wolves.

In the afternoon we saw the mountains rising like a gigantic wall at no great distance on our right. “Des sauvages! des sauvages!” exclaimed Delorier, looking round with a frightened face, and pointing with his whip toward the foot of the mountains. In fact, we could see at a distance a number of little black specks, like horsemen in rapid motion. Henry Chatillon, with Shaw and myself, galloped toward them to reconnoiter, when to our amusement we saw the supposed Arapahoes resolved into the black tops of some pine trees which grew along a ravine. The summits of these pines, just visible above the verge of the prairie, and seeming to move as we ourselves were advancing, looked exactly like a line of horsemen.

In the afternoon, we saw the mountains rising like a massive wall not far off to our right. “Savages! Savages!” shouted Delorier, looking around with a scared expression and pointing with his whip toward the base of the mountains. In fact, we could spot several tiny black shapes in the distance, like horsemen moving quickly. Henry Chatillon, Shaw, and I rode over to check it out, and to our amusement, what we thought were Arapahoes turned out to be the black tops of some pine trees growing along a ravine. The tops of these pines, barely visible over the edge of the prairie and appearing to move as we got closer, looked just like a line of horsemen.

We encamped among ravines and hollows, through which a little brook was foaming angrily. Before sunrise in the morning the snow-covered mountains were beautifully tinged with a delicate rose color. A noble spectacle awaited us as we moved forward. Six or eight miles on our right, Pike’s Peak and his giant brethren rose out of the level prairie, as if springing from the bed of the ocean. From their summits down to the plain below they were involved in a mantle of clouds, in restless motion, as if urged by strong winds. For one instant some snowy peak, towering in awful solitude, would be disclosed to view. As the clouds broke along the mountain, we could see the dreary forests, the tremendous precipices, the white patches of snow, the gulfs and chasms as black as night, all revealed for an instant, and then disappearing from the view. One could not but recall the stanza of “Childe Harold”:

We set up camp among ravines and hollows, where a small brook was bubbling angrily. Just before sunrise, the snow-covered mountains were beautifully lit with a soft rose color. An impressive sight awaited us as we moved on. Six or eight miles to our right, Pike’s Peak and its massive neighbors emerged from the flat prairie, as if rising from the ocean floor. From their peaks down to the plain below, they were wrapped in a swirling blanket of clouds, moving restlessly as if pushed by strong winds. For a moment, a snowy peak, standing in stark solitude, would come into view. As the clouds shifted along the mountain, we could see the gloomy forests, the sheer cliffs, the white patches of snow, and the dark gulfs and chasms, all revealed for just an instant before fading away. One couldn't help but remember the stanza from “Childe Harold”:

     Morn dawns, and with it stern Albania’s hills,
     Dark Suli’s rocks, and Pindus’ inland peak,
     Robed half in mist, bedewed with snowy rills,
     Array’d in many a dun and purple streak,
     Arise; and, as the clouds along them break,
     Disclose the dwelling of the mountaineer:
     Here roams the wolf, the eagle whets his beak,
     Birds, beasts of prey, and wilder men appear,
     And gathering storms around convulse the closing year.
     Morning breaks, and with it the rugged hills of Albania,
     The dark rocks of Suli, and the inland peak of Pindus,
     Half-covered in mist, refreshed by snowy streams,
     Dressed in various shades of brown and purple,
     They rise; and as the clouds clear,
     They reveal the home of the mountain dwellers:
     Here the wolf wanders, the eagle sharpens its beak,
     Birds, predators, and wild men show up,
     And brewing storms stir up the end of the year.

Every line save one of this description was more than verified here. There were no “dwellings of the mountaineer” among these heights. Fierce savages, restlessly wandering through summer and winter, alone invade them. “Their hand is against every man, and every man’s hand against them.”

Every line except one of this description was completely confirmed here. There were no “homes of the mountain people” among these heights. Fierce warriors, constantly roaming through summer and winter, are the only ones who invade them. “Their hand is against every man, and every man’s hand is against them.”

On the day after, we had left the mountains at some distance. A black cloud descended upon them, and a tremendous explosion of thunder followed, reverberating among the precipices. In a few moments everything grew black and the rain poured down like a cataract. We got under an old cotton-wood tree which stood by the side of a stream, and waited there till the rage of the torrent had passed.

The next day, we had moved far from the mountains. A dark cloud settled over them, and a huge clap of thunder echoed among the cliffs. In no time, everything turned dark, and the rain came down like a waterfall. We took shelter under an old cottonwood tree by a stream and stayed there until the storm passed.

The clouds opened at the point where they first had gathered, and the whole sublime congregation of mountains was bathed at once in warm sunshine. They seemed more like some luxurious vision of Eastern romance than like a reality of that wilderness; all were melted together into a soft delicious blue, as voluptuous as the sky of Naples or the transparent sea that washes the sunny cliffs of Capri. On the left the whole sky was still of an inky blackness; but two concentric rainbows stood in brilliant relief against it, while far in front the ragged cloud still streamed before the wind, and the retreating thunder muttered angrily.

The clouds parted where they had first gathered, and the entire stunning array of mountains was suddenly bathed in warm sunlight. They looked more like a luxurious scene from an Eastern fairy tale than a reality in that wilderness; everything blended together into a soft, enticing blue, as rich as the sky of Naples or the clear sea that laps against the sunny cliffs of Capri. To the left, the sky was still pitch black; however, two bright rainbows stood out brilliantly against it, while in the distance, the tattered cloud still raced before the wind, and the fading thunder growled angrily.

Through that afternoon and the next morning we were passing down the banks of the stream called La Fontaine qui Bouille, from the boiling spring whose waters flow into it. When we stopped at noon, we were within six or eight miles of the Pueblo. Setting out again, we found by the fresh tracks that a horseman had just been out to reconnoiter us; he had circled half round the camp, and then galloped back full speed for the Pueblo. What made him so shy of us we could not conceive. After an hour’s ride we reached the edge of a hill, from which a welcome sight greeted us. The Arkansas ran along the valley below, among woods and groves, and closely nestled in the midst of wide cornfields and green meadows where cattle were grazing rose the low mud walls of the Pueblo.

Through that afternoon and the next morning, we continued along the banks of the stream called La Fontaine qui Bouille, fed by the boiling spring where its waters come from. When we paused for lunch, we were about six or eight miles from the Pueblo. When we set out again, we noticed fresh tracks indicating that a horseman had just gone out to scout us; he had circled around the camp and then raced back at full speed to the Pueblo. We couldn't figure out why he was so nervous around us. After an hour of riding, we reached the edge of a hill, and a welcome sight met our eyes. The Arkansas River flowed through the valley below, surrounded by woods and groves, and nestled amid wide cornfields and green meadows where cattle were grazing were the low mud walls of the Pueblo.





CHAPTER XXI

THE PUEBLO AND BENT’S FORT

We approached the gate of the Pueblo. It was a wretched species of fort of most primitive construction, being nothing more than a large square inclosure, surrounded by a wall of mud, miserably cracked and dilapidated. The slender pickets that surmounted it were half broken down, and the gate dangled on its wooden hinges so loosely, that to open or shut it seemed likely to fling it down altogether. Two or three squalid Mexicans, with their broad hats, and their vile faces overgrown with hair, were lounging about the bank of the river in front of it. They disappeared as they saw us approach; and as we rode up to the gate a light active little figure came out to meet us. It was our old friend Richard. He had come from Fort Laramie on a trading expedition to Taos; but finding, when he reached the Pueblo, that the war would prevent his going farther, he was quietly waiting till the conquest of the country should allow him to proceed. He seemed to consider himself bound to do the honors of the place. Shaking us warmly by the hands, he led the way into the area.

We reached the gate of the Pueblo. It was a rundown kind of fort, built in a very basic style, just a large square enclosure surrounded by a wall made of mud that was badly cracked and falling apart. The thin pickets on top were mostly broken, and the gate hung loosely on its wooden hinges, making it likely to fall off entirely when opened or closed. A couple of shabby Mexicans, with their wide-brimmed hats and unkempt faces covered in hair, were hanging out by the riverbank in front of it. They vanished as we approached, and as we rode up to the gate, a small, lively figure came out to greet us. It was our old friend Richard. He had come from Fort Laramie on a trading trip to Taos but found out that the war would stop him from going further, so he was quietly waiting until the area was safe for him to continue. He seemed eager to show us around. Grabbing us warmly by the hands, he led the way into the area.

Here we saw his large Santa Fe wagons standing together. A few squaws and Spanish women, and a few Mexicans, as mean and miserable as the place itself, were lazily sauntering about. Richard conducted us to the state apartment of the Pueblo, a small mud room, very neatly finished, considering the material, and garnished with a crucifix, a looking-glass, a picture of the Virgin, and a rusty horse pistol. There were no chairs, but instead of them a number of chests and boxes ranged about the room. There was another room beyond, less sumptuously decorated, and here three or four Spanish girls, one of them very pretty, were baking cakes at a mud fireplace in the corner. They brought out a poncho, which they spread upon the floor by way of table-cloth. A supper, which seemed to us luxurious, was soon laid out upon it, and folded buffalo robes were placed around it to receive the guests. Two or three Americans, besides ourselves, were present. We sat down Turkish fashion, and began to inquire the news. Richard told us that, about three weeks before, General Kearny’s army had left Bent’s Fort to march against Santa Fe; that when last heard from they were approaching the mountainous defiles that led to the city. One of the Americans produced a dingy newspaper, containing an account of the battles of Palo Alto and Resaca de la Palma. While we were discussing these matters, the doorway was darkened by a tall, shambling fellow, who stood with his hands in his pockets taking a leisurely survey of the premises before he entered. He wore brown homespun pantaloons, much too short for his legs, and a pistol and bowie knife stuck in his belt. His head and one eye were enveloped in a huge bandage of white linen. Having completed his observations, he came slouching in and sat down on a chest. Eight or ten more of the same stamp followed, and very coolly arranging themselves about the room, began to stare at the company. Shaw and I looked at each other. We were forcibly reminded of the Oregon emigrants, though these unwelcome visitors had a certain glitter of the eye, and a compression of the lips, which distinguished them from our old acquaintances of the prairie. They began to catechise us at once, inquiring whence we had come, what we meant to do next, and what were our future prospects in life.

Here we saw his large Santa Fe wagons gathered together. A few Native American women, Spanish women, and a handful of Mexicans, as rough and downtrodden as the surroundings, were lazily wandering around. Richard took us to the main room of the Pueblo, a small mud room that was surprisingly well-finished for the materials used, decorated with a crucifix, a mirror, a picture of the Virgin, and a rusty horse pistol. There were no chairs; instead, various chests and boxes were scattered around the room. There was another room behind it, less elaborately decorated, where three or four Spanish girls, one notably pretty, were baking cakes at a mud fireplace in the corner. They laid out a poncho on the floor to serve as a tablecloth. A dinner that felt luxurious to us was soon set out on it, with folded buffalo robes placed around it for the guests. Two or three other Americans, along with us, were present. We sat down in a cross-legged style and began to ask about the news. Richard informed us that about three weeks prior, General Kearny’s army had left Bent’s Fort to head toward Santa Fe; when they were last reported, they were nearing the mountain passes leading to the city. One of the Americans pulled out a dirty newspaper that included an article about the battles of Palo Alto and Resaca de la Palma. While we were discussing these topics, the doorway was blocked by a tall, awkward-looking guy who stood with his hands in his pockets, slowly surveying the space before entering. He wore brown homespun pants that were much too short for his legs, with a pistol and a bowie knife tucked in his belt. His head and one eye were wrapped in a large bandage of white linen. After finishing his observations, he shuffled in and sat down on a chest. Eight or ten more individuals like him followed, casually positioning themselves around the room and starting to stare at the company. Shaw and I exchanged glances. We were strongly reminded of the Oregon emigrants, although these unwelcome guests had a certain glint in their eyes and a tightness of the lips that set them apart from our old acquaintances from the prairie. They immediately began to question us, asking where we had come from, what we planned to do next, and what our future prospects were.

The man with the bandaged head had met with an untoward accident a few days before. He was going down to the river to bring water, and was pushing through the young willows which covered the low ground, when he came unawares upon a grizzly bear, which, having just eaten a buffalo bull, had lain down to sleep off the meal. The bear rose on his hind legs, and gave the intruder such a blow with his paw that he laid his forehead entirely bare, clawed off the front of his scalp, and narrowly missed one of his eyes. Fortunately he was not in a very pugnacious mood, being surfeited with his late meal. The man’s companions, who were close behind, raised a shout and the bear walked away, crushing down the willows in his leisurely retreat.

The man with the bandaged head had been in a bad accident a few days earlier. He was heading down to the river to get water and was pushing through the young willows covering the low ground when he unexpectedly ran into a grizzly bear that had just eaten a buffalo bull and was lying down to nap. The bear stood up on its hind legs and gave the man such a hard blow with its paw that it completely ripped off the front of his scalp and barely missed one of his eyes. Luckily, the bear wasn't in a fighting mood since it was full from its recent meal. The man's friends, who were close behind him, yelled out, and the bear wandered off, breaking down the willows as it slowly left.

These men belonged to a party of Mormons, who, out of a well-grounded fear of the other emigrants, had postponed leaving the settlements until all the rest were gone. On account of this delay they did not reach Fort Laramie until it was too late to continue their journey to California. Hearing that there was good land at the head of the Arkansas, they crossed over under the guidance of Richard, and were now preparing to spend the winter at a spot about half a mile from the Pueblo.

These men were part of a group of Mormons who, due to their legitimate fear of other travelers, decided to leave the settlements only after everyone else had already departed. Because of this delay, they didn't arrive at Fort Laramie until it was too late to proceed to California. After learning there was good land at the head of the Arkansas, they crossed over with Richard as their guide and were now getting ready to spend the winter at a location about half a mile from the Pueblo.

When we took leave of Richard, it was near sunset. Passing out of the gate, we could look down the little valley of the Arkansas; a beautiful scene, and doubly so to our eyes, so long accustomed to deserts and mountains. Tall woods lined the river, with green meadows on either hand; and high bluffs, quietly basking in the sunlight, flanked the narrow valley. A Mexican on horseback was driving a herd of cattle toward the gate, and our little white tent, which the men had pitched under a large tree in the meadow, made a very pleasing feature in the scene. When we reached it, we found that Richard had sent a Mexican to bring us an abundant supply of green corn and vegetables, and invite us to help ourselves to whatever we wished from the fields around the Pueblo.

When we said goodbye to Richard, it was close to sunset. As we walked out of the gate, we could see down the small valley of the Arkansas—a beautiful view, especially for us, so used to deserts and mountains. Tall trees lined the river, with green meadows on either side; and high bluffs, soaking up the sunlight, bordered the narrow valley. A Mexican on a horse was herding a group of cattle toward the gate, and our little white tent, which the men had set up under a large tree in the meadow, added a nice touch to the scene. When we arrived, we found that Richard had sent a Mexican to bring us plenty of green corn and vegetables and to invite us to help ourselves to whatever we wanted from the fields around the Pueblo.

The inhabitants were in daily apprehensions of an inroad from more formidable consumers than ourselves. Every year at the time when the corn begins to ripen, the Arapahoes, to the number of several thousands, come and encamp around the Pueblo. The handful of white men, who are entirely at the mercy of this swarm of barbarians, choose to make a merit of necessity; they come forward very cordially, shake them by the hand, and intimate that the harvest is entirely at their disposal. The Arapahoes take them at their word, help themselves most liberally, and usually turn their horses into the cornfields afterward. They have the foresight, however, to leave enough of the crops untouched to serve as an inducement for planting the fields again for their benefit in the next spring.

The residents constantly worried about an invasion from more powerful consumers than themselves. Every year, when the corn starts to ripen, thousands of Arapahoes arrive and camp around the Pueblo. The few white men, who are completely at the mercy of this group of outsiders, choose to act as if it’s all fine; they greet them warmly, shake their hands, and suggest that the harvest is entirely theirs to take. The Arapahoes take them up on that offer, help themselves generously, and usually let their horses roam in the cornfields afterward. However, they wisely leave enough of the crops untouched to encourage replanting for their benefit the following spring.

The human race in this part of the world is separated into three divisions, arranged in the order of their merits; white men, Indians, and Mexicans; to the latter of whom the honorable title of “whites” is by no means conceded.

The people in this part of the world are divided into three groups, ranked by their perceived value: white people, Indians, and Mexicans; the latter group is definitely not given the respectable title of “whites.”

In spite of the warm sunset of that evening the next morning was a dreary and cheerless one. It rained steadily, clouds resting upon the very treetops. We crossed the river to visit the Mormon settlement. As we passed through the water, several trappers on horseback entered it from the other side. Their buckskin frocks were soaked through by the rain, and clung fast to their limbs with a most clammy and uncomfortable look. The water was trickling down their faces, and dropping from the ends of their rifles, and from the traps which each carried at the pommel of his saddle. Horses and all, they had a most disconsolate and woebegone appearance, which we could not help laughing at, forgetting how often we ourselves had been in a similar plight.

Despite the warm sunset that evening, the next morning was gloomy and dull. It rained steadily, with clouds hovering over the treetops. We crossed the river to visit the Mormon settlement. As we entered the water, several trappers on horseback came in from the other side. Their buckskin jackets were soaked by the rain, clinging to their limbs in a damp and uncomfortable way. Water was trickling down their faces and dripping from the ends of their rifles and the traps hanging at the pommel of their saddles. They looked utterly miserable, which made us laugh, forgetting how often we had found ourselves in the same situation.

After half an hour’s riding we saw the white wagons of the Mormons drawn up among the trees. Axes were sounding, trees were falling, and log-huts going up along the edge of the woods and upon the adjoining meadow. As we came up the Mormons left their work and seated themselves on the timber around us, when they began earnestly to discuss points of theology, complain of the ill-usage they had received from the “Gentiles,” and sound a lamentation over the loss of their great temple at Nauvoo. After remaining with them an hour we rode back to our camp, happy that the settlements had been delivered from the presence of such blind and desperate fanatics.

After half an hour of riding, we spotted the white wagons of the Mormons set up among the trees. We could hear axes chopping, trees falling, and log cabins being built along the edge of the woods and in the nearby meadow. When we approached, the Mormons paused their work and sat down on the timber around us. They began discussing theological points passionately, complaining about the mistreatment they had received from the “Gentiles,” and lamenting the loss of their grand temple in Nauvoo. After spending an hour with them, we rode back to our camp, relieved that the settlements were free from the presence of such blind and desperate fanatics.

On the morning after this we left the Pueblo for Bent’s Fort. The conduct of Raymond had lately been less satisfactory than before, and we had discharged him as soon as we arrived at the former place; so that the party, ourselves included, was now reduced to four. There was some uncertainty as to our future course. The trail between Bent’s Fort and the settlements, a distance computed at six hundred miles, was at this time in a dangerous state; for since the passage of General Kearny’s army, great numbers of hostile Indians, chiefly Pawnees and Comanches, had gathered about some parts of it. A little after this time they became so numerous and audacious, that scarcely a single party, however large, passed between the fort and the frontier without some token of their hostility. The newspapers of the time sufficiently display this state of things. Many men were killed, and great numbers of horses and mules carried off. Not long since I met with the gentleman, who, during the autumn, came from Santa Fe to Bent’s Fort, when he found a party of seventy men, who thought themselves too weak to go down to the settlements alone, and were waiting there for a re-enforcement. Though this excessive timidity fully proves the ignorance and credulity of the men, it may also evince the state of alarm which prevailed in the country. When we were there in the month of August, the danger had not become so great. There was nothing very attractive in the neighborhood. We supposed, moreover, that we might wait there half the winter without finding any party to go down with us; for Mr. Sublette and the others whom we had relied upon had, as Richard told us, already left Bent’s Fort. Thus far on our journey Fortune had kindly befriended us. We resolved therefore to take advantage of her gracious mood and trusting for a continuance of her favors, to set out with Henry and Delorier, and run the gauntlet of the Indians in the best way we could.

On the morning after that, we left the Pueblo for Bent’s Fort. Raymond's behavior had recently been less impressive than before, and we let him go as soon as we got to the previous place, so our group, including ourselves, was now down to four. There was some uncertainty about what we should do next. The trail between Bent’s Fort and the settlements, roughly six hundred miles away, was particularly dangerous at that time; after General Kearny’s army passed through, a large number of hostile Indians, mainly Pawnees and Comanches, gathered in certain areas along it. Soon after, they became so numerous and bold that hardly any group, no matter how large, could travel between the fort and the frontier without encountering some sign of hostility. The newspapers from that period clearly reflected this situation. Many people were killed, and a lot of horses and mules were stolen. Not long ago, I met a gentleman who, during the autumn, traveled from Santa Fe to Bent’s Fort and found a group of seventy men who felt too weak to continue on to the settlements alone and were waiting there for reinforcements. While this extreme fear illustrates the ignorance and gullibility of those men, it also highlights the state of alarm that existed in the region. When we were there in August, the danger wasn't as severe. There wasn't anything particularly appealing in the area. We thought we might end up waiting there for half the winter without finding a group to travel down with us since Mr. Sublette and the others we had counted on had, as Richard told us, already left Bent’s Fort. Up to this point in our journey, Fortune had been kind to us. Therefore, we decided to take advantage of her generous mood and, trusting for her continued support, set out with Henry and Delorier, trying to navigate through the Indians in the best way we could.

Bent’s Fort stands on the river, about seventy-five miles below the Pueblo. At noon of the third day we arrived within three or four miles of it, pitched our tent under a tree, hung our looking-glasses against its trunk and having made our primitive toilet, rode toward the fort. We soon came in sight of it, for it is visible from a considerable distance, standing with its high clay walls in the midst of the scorching plains. It seemed as if a swarm of locusts had invaded the country. The grass for miles around was cropped close by the horses of General Kearny’s soldiery. When we came to the fort, we found that not only had the horses eaten up the grass, but their owners had made away with the stores of the little trading post; so that we had great difficulty in procuring the few articles which we required for our homeward journey. The army was gone, the life and bustle passed away, and the fort was a scene of dull and lazy tranquillity. A few invalid officers and soldiers sauntered about the area, which was oppressively hot; for the glaring sun was reflected down upon it from the high white walls around. The proprietors were absent, and we were received by Mr. Holt, who had been left in charge of the fort. He invited us to dinner, where, to our admiration, we found a table laid with a white cloth, with castors in the center and chairs placed around it. This unwonted repast concluded, we rode back to our camp.

Bent’s Fort is located by the river, about seventy-five miles downstream from the Pueblo. At noon on the third day, we got within three or four miles of it, set up our tent under a tree, hung our mirrors on its trunk, and after freshening up a bit, rode toward the fort. We quickly caught sight of it since it's visible from quite a distance, with its tall clay walls standing out in the blazing plains. It looked like a swarm of locusts had invaded the area. The grass for miles around had been closely cropped by the horses of General Kearny’s soldiers. When we arrived at the fort, we found that not only had the horses eaten all the grass, but their owners had taken the supplies from the little trading post, making it hard for us to get the few things we needed for our journey home. The army was gone, the lively atmosphere had faded, and the fort was now a picture of dull and lazy calm. A few sick officers and soldiers wandered around the area, which felt oppressively hot; the glaring sun was bouncing off the high white walls surrounding it. The owners were absent, and we were greeted by Mr. Holt, who had been left in charge of the fort. He invited us to dinner, where, to our surprise, we found a table set with a white cloth, centerpieces, and chairs arranged around it. After this unusual meal, we rode back to our camp.

Here, as we lay smoking round the fire after supper, we saw through the dusk three men approaching from the direction of the fort. They rode up and seated themselves near us on the ground. The foremost was a tall, well-formed man, with a face and manner such as inspire confidence at once. He wore a broad hat of felt, slouching and tattered, and the rest of his attire consisted of a frock and leggings of buckskin, rubbed with the yellow clay found among the mountains. At the heel of one of his moccasins was buckled a huge iron spur, with a rowel five or six inches in diameter. His horse, who stood quietly looking over his head, had a rude Mexican saddle, covered with a shaggy bearskin, and furnished with a pair of wooden stirrups of most preposterous size. The next man was a sprightly, active little fellow, about five feet and a quarter high, but very strong and compact. His face was swarthy as a Mexican’s and covered with a close, curly black beard. An old greasy calico handkerchief was tied round his head, and his close buckskin dress was blackened and polished by grease and hard service. The last who came up was a large strong man, dressed in the coarse homespun of the frontiers, who dragged his long limbs over the ground as if he were too lazy for the effort. He had a sleepy gray eye, a retreating chin, an open mouth and a protruding upper lip, which gave him an air of exquisite indolence and helplessness. He was armed with an old United States yager, which redoubtable weapon, though he could never hit his mark with it, he was accustomed to cherish as the very sovereign of firearms.

Here, as we sat around the fire after dinner, we saw three men approaching from the direction of the fort. They rode up and sat down near us on the ground. The first was a tall, well-built man with a face and demeanor that instantly inspired confidence. He wore a wide-brimmed felt hat that was slouchy and tattered, and the rest of his outfit consisted of a buckskin frock and leggings, which were rubbed with the yellow clay found in the mountains. On one of his moccasins, he had a large iron spur fastened, with a rowel five or six inches in diameter. His horse, standing quietly and looking over him, had a rough Mexican saddle covered with shaggy bearskin and equipped with a pair of oversized wooden stirrups. The next man was a lively, active little guy, about five feet one inch tall, but very strong and sturdy. His skin was dark like a Mexican’s and he had a close, curly black beard. An old greasy calico handkerchief was tied around his head, and his tight buckskin outfit was stained and polished from grease and hard work. The last man who approached was a large, strong guy, dressed in the rough homespun typical of the frontier, who dragged his long limbs over the ground as if he were too lazy to lift them. He had a sleepy gray eye, a receding chin, an open mouth, and a protruding upper lip, giving him an impression of remarkable laziness and helplessness. He was armed with an old United States yager, a weapon he cherished as the ultimate firearm, despite being unable to hit his target with it.

The first two men belonged to a party who had just come from California with a large band of horses, which they had disposed of at Bent’s Fort. Munroe, the taller of the two, was from Iowa. He was an excellent fellow, open, warm-hearted and intelligent. Jim Gurney, the short man, was a Boston sailor, who had come in a trading vessel to California, and taken the fancy to return across the continent. The journey had already made him an expert “mountain man,” and he presented the extraordinary phenomenon of a sailor who understood how to manage a horse. The third of our visitors named Ellis, was a Missourian, who had come out with a party of Oregon emigrants, but having got as far as Bridge’s Fort, he had fallen home-sick, or as Jim averred, love-sick—and Ellis was just the man to be balked in a love adventure. He thought proper to join the California men and return homeward in their company.

The first two men were part of a group that had just arrived from California with a large herd of horses, which they had sold at Bent’s Fort. Munroe, the taller of the two, was from Iowa. He was a great guy, friendly, warm-hearted, and smart. Jim Gurney, the shorter man, was a sailor from Boston who had come to California on a trading ship and decided to head back across the continent. The journey had turned him into a skilled “mountain man,” and he was the unusual case of a sailor who knew how to handle a horse. The third visitor, named Ellis, was from Missouri and had traveled out with a group of Oregon emigrants, but when he reached Bridge’s Fort, he became homesick, or as Jim put it, love-sick—and Ellis was definitely the type to get sidetracked by a romantic interest. He decided to join the California guys and head back home with them.

They now requested that they might unite with our party, and make the journey to the settlements in company with us. We readily assented, for we liked the appearance of the first two men, and were very glad to gain so efficient a re-enforcement. We told them to meet us on the next evening at a spot on the river side, about six miles below the fort. Having smoked a pipe together, our new allies left us, and we lay down to sleep.

They now asked if they could join our group and travel to the settlements with us. We happily agreed, as we liked the look of the first two men and were really pleased to have such a helpful addition to our team. We told them to meet us the following evening at a spot along the river, about six miles downstream from the fort. After sharing a pipe together, our new allies left us, and we settled down to sleep.





CHAPTER XXII

TETE ROUGE, THE VOLUNTEER

The next morning, having directed Delorier to repair with his cart to the place of meeting, we came again to the fort to make some arrangements for the journey. After completing these we sat down under a sort of perch, to smoke with some Cheyenne Indians whom we found there. In a few minutes we saw an extraordinary little figure approach us in a military dress. He had a small, round countenance, garnished about the eyes with the kind of wrinkles commonly known as crow’s feet and surrounded by an abundant crop of red curls, with a little cap resting on the top of them. Altogether, he had the look of a man more conversant with mint juleps and oyster suppers than with the hardships of prairie service. He came up to us and entreated that we would take him home to the settlements, saying that unless he went with us he should have to stay all winter at the fort. We liked our petitioner’s appearance so little that we excused ourselves from complying with his request. At this he begged us so hard to take pity on him, looked so disconsolate, and told so lamentable a story that at last we consented, though not without many misgivings.

The next morning, after telling Delorier to take his cart to the meeting spot, we returned to the fort to make some plans for the journey. Once we finished, we sat down under a kind of perch to smoke with some Cheyenne Indians we found there. In just a few minutes, we saw an unusual little figure come toward us in a military uniform. He had a small, round face, wrinkled around the eyes like crow’s feet, and was surrounded by a thick head of red curls, with a little cap perched on top. Overall, he looked more accustomed to mint juleps and oyster dinners than to the challenges of life on the prairie. He approached us and begged us to take him back to the settlements, saying that if we didn’t take him, he would have to stay at the fort all winter. We didn't find our petitioner very appealing, so we turned down his request. However, he pleaded so earnestly for our kindness, looked so miserable, and told such a sad story that eventually we agreed, though not without a lot of doubt.

The rugged Anglo-Saxon of our new recruit’s real name proved utterly unmanageable on the lips of our French attendants, and Henry Chatillon, after various abortive attempts to pronounce it, one day coolly christened him Tete Rouge, in honor of his red curls. He had at different times been clerk of a Mississippi steamboat, and agent in a trading establishment at Nauvoo, besides filling various other capacities, in all of which he had seen much more of “life” than was good for him. In the spring, thinking that a summer’s campaign would be an agreeable recreation, he had joined a company of St. Louis volunteers.

The tough Anglo-Saxon name of our new recruit was completely unpronounceable for our French attendants, and after several failed attempts, Henry Chatillon casually nicknamed him Tete Rouge because of his red curls. He had worked at different times as a clerk on a Mississippi steamboat and as an agent for a trading company in Nauvoo, along with taking on various other roles, in all of which he experienced far more of “life” than was healthy for him. In the spring, thinking that a summer campaign would be a nice break, he joined a group of St. Louis volunteers.

“There were three of us,” said Tete Rouge, “me and Bill Stevens and John Hopkins. We thought we would just go out with the army, and when we had conquered the country, we would get discharged and take our pay, you know, and go down to Mexico. They say there is plenty of fun going on there. Then we could go back to New Orleans by way of Vera Cruz.”

“There were three of us,” said Tete Rouge, “me, Bill Stevens, and John Hopkins. We thought we’d just join the army, and once we conquered the country, we’d get discharged, collect our pay, and head down to Mexico. They say there’s a lot of fun happening there. After that, we could come back to New Orleans through Vera Cruz.”

But Tete Rouge, like many a stouter volunteer, had reckoned without his host. Fighting Mexicans was a less amusing occupation than he had supposed, and his pleasure trip was disagreeably interrupted by brain fever, which attacked him when about halfway to Bent’s Fort. He jolted along through the rest of the journey in a baggage wagon. When they came to the fort he was taken out and left there, together with the rest of the sick. Bent’s Fort does not supply the best accommodations for an invalid. Tete Rouge’s sick chamber was a little mud room, where he and a companion attacked by the same disease were laid together, with nothing but a buffalo robe between them and the ground. The assistant surgeon’s deputy visited them once a day and brought them each a huge dose of calomel, the only medicine, according to his surviving victim, which he was acquainted with.

But Tete Rouge, like many other eager volunteers, had underestimated the situation. Fighting Mexicans was a lot less fun than he thought, and his vacation was harshly interrupted by a brain fever that struck him around halfway to Bent’s Fort. He jostled through the rest of the trip in a baggage wagon. When they finally reached the fort, he was taken out and left there with the other sick people. Bent’s Fort doesn’t offer the best conditions for someone who is unwell. Tete Rouge’s sickroom was a small mud hut where he and another patient with the same illness were placed together, with nothing but a buffalo robe between them and the ground. The assistant surgeon’s deputy checked on them once a day and brought each of them a large dose of calomel, the only medicine he knew of, according to the one who survived.

Tete Rouge woke one morning, and turning to his companion, saw his eyes fixed upon the beams above with the glassy stare of a dead man. At this the unfortunate volunteer lost his senses outright. In spite of the doctor, however, he eventually recovered; though between the brain fever and the calomel, his mind, originally none of the strongest, was so much shaken that it had not quite recovered its balance when we came to the fort. In spite of the poor fellow’s tragic story, there was something so ludicrous in his appearance, and the whimsical contrast between his military dress and his most unmilitary demeanor, that we could not help smiling at them. We asked him if he had a gun. He said they had taken it from him during his illness, and he had not seen it since; “but perhaps,” he observed, looking at me with a beseeching air, “you will lend me one of your big pistols if we should meet with any Indians.” I next inquired if he had a horse; he declared he had a magnificent one, and at Shaw’s request a Mexican led him in for inspection. He exhibited the outline of a good horse, but his eyes were sunk in the sockets, and every one of his ribs could be counted. There were certain marks too about his shoulders, which could be accounted for by the circumstance, that during Tete Rouge’s illness, his companions had seized upon the insulted charger, and harnessed him to a cannon along with the draft horses. To Tete Rouge’s astonishment we recommended him by all means to exchange the horse, if he could, for a mule. Fortunately the people at the fort were so anxious to get rid of him that they were willing to make some sacrifice to effect the object, and he succeeded in getting a tolerable mule in exchange for the broken-down steed.

Tete Rouge woke up one morning and turned to his companion, who was staring blankly at the beams above like a lifeless person. This sight caused the poor volunteer to completely lose his senses. Despite the doctor’s efforts, he eventually recovered; however, between the brain fever and the mercury treatment, his mind, which was never very strong to begin with, was so shaken that it hadn't fully regained its balance by the time we arrived at the fort. Despite the tragic nature of his story, there was something so funny about his appearance and the odd contrast between his military uniform and his completely un-military behavior that we couldn't help but smile at him. We asked if he had a gun. He replied that they had taken it from him during his illness and that he hadn’t seen it since; “but maybe,” he said, looking at me with hopeful eyes, “you could lend me one of your big pistols if we run into any Indians.” I then asked if he had a horse; he claimed he had a magnificent one, and at Shaw’s request, a Mexican brought it out for us to see. It had the shape of a good horse, but its eyes were sunken, and you could count every rib. There were also some marks on its shoulders, which were a result of Tete Rouge’s illness, as his companions had used the poor horse to pull a cannon along with the draft horses. To Tete Rouge’s surprise, we strongly advised him to trade the horse for a mule if he could. Luckily, the people at the fort were eager to get rid of him, so they were willing to make some sacrifices to do so. He ended up successfully trading the worn-out horse for a decent mule.

A man soon appeared at the gate, leading in the mule by a cord which he placed in the hands of Tete Rouge, who, being somewhat afraid of his new acquisition, tried various flatteries and blandishments to induce her to come forward. The mule, knowing that she was expected to advance, stopped short in consequence, and stood fast as a rock, looking straight forward with immovable composure. Being stimulated by a blow from behind she consented to move, and walked nearly to the other side of the fort before she stopped again. Hearing the by-standers laugh, Tete Rouge plucked up spirit and tugged hard at the rope. The mule jerked backward, spun herself round, and made a dash for the gate. Tete Rouge, who clung manfully to the rope, went whisking through the air for a few rods, when he let go and stood with his mouth open, staring after the mule, who galloped away over the prairie. She was soon caught and brought back by a Mexican, who mounted a horse and went in pursuit of her with his lasso.

A man soon showed up at the gate, leading the mule by a rope that he handed to Tete Rouge. Feeling a bit intimidated by his new responsibility, Tete Rouge tried various compliments and coaxing to get her to come forward. The mule, fully aware that she was supposed to move, stubbornly stood still, looking straight ahead with unflinching calm. After a nudge from behind, she decided to move and walked almost to the other side of the fort before stopping again. Hearing the crowd laugh, Tete Rouge gained some confidence and pulled hard on the rope. The mule jerked back, turned around, and bolted for the gate. Tete Rouge, gripping the rope tightly, was pulled through the air for a short distance before he let go and stood there with his mouth hanging open, watching the mule gallop away across the prairie. A Mexican quickly caught up with her, mounted a horse, and rode after her with his lasso.

Having thus displayed his capacity for prairie travel, Tete Rouge proceeded to supply himself with provisions for the journey, and with this view he applied to a quartermaster’s assistant who was in the fort. This official had a face as sour as vinegar, being in a state of chronic indignation because he had been left behind the army. He was as anxious as the rest to get rid of Tete Rouge. So, producing a rusty key, he opened a low door which led to a half-subterranean apartment, into which the two disappeared together. After some time they came out again, Tete Rouge greatly embarrassed by a multiplicity of paper parcels containing the different articles of his forty days’ rations. They were consigned to the care of Delorier, who about that time passed by with the cart on his way to the appointed place of meeting with Munroe and his companions.

After showing he could travel across the prairie, Tete Rouge went to stock up on supplies for his journey. He asked a quartermaster’s assistant stationed at the fort for help. This guy had a face as sour as vinegar, always grumpy because he had been left behind with the army. Like everyone else, he was eager to get Tete Rouge out of his hair. So, he pulled out a rusty key and unlocked a low door that led to a half-subterranean room, and the two of them went inside together. After a while, they emerged, with Tete Rouge looking flustered by the many paper parcels filled with his forty days' worth of rations. These were handed over to Delorier, who happened to be passing by with the cart on his way to meet Munroe and his crew.

We next urged Tete Rouge to provide himself, if he could, with a gun. He accordingly made earnest appeals to the charity of various persons in the fort, but totally without success, a circumstance which did not greatly disturb us, since in the event of a skirmish he would be much more apt to do mischief to himself or his friends than to the enemy. When all these arrangements were completed we saddled our horses and were preparing to leave the fort, when looking round we discovered that our new associate was in fresh trouble. A man was holding the mule for him in the middle of the fort, while he tried to put the saddle on her back, but she kept stepping sideways and moving round and round in a circle until he was almost in despair. It required some assistance before all his difficulties could be overcome. At length he clambered into the black war saddle on which he was to have carried terror into the ranks of the Mexicans.

We then encouraged Tete Rouge to find a gun if he could. He earnestly asked several people in the fort for help, but he was completely unsuccessful. This didn’t really worry us since, in the event of a fight, he would likely cause more harm to himself or his friends than to the enemy. Once all these plans were sorted out, we saddled our horses and got ready to leave the fort when we noticed that our new companion was in trouble again. A man was holding the mule for him in the middle of the fort while he struggled to put the saddle on her back, but she kept sidestepping and moving in circles until he was almost in despair. He needed some help to sort out all his issues. Finally, he managed to climb into the black war saddle that he was supposed to use to bring fear to the Mexican ranks.

“Get up,” said Tete Rouge, “come now, go along, will you.”

“Get up,” said Tete Rouge, “come on, let’s go, okay?”

The mule walked deliberately forward out of the gate. Her recent conduct had inspired him with so much awe that he never dared to touch her with his whip. We trotted forward toward the place of meeting, but before he had gone far we saw that Tete Rouge’s mule, who perfectly understood her rider, had stopped and was quietly grazing, in spite of his protestations, at some distance behind. So getting behind him, we drove him and the contumacious mule before us, until we could see through the twilight the gleaming of a distant fire. Munroe, Jim, and Ellis were lying around it; their saddles, packs, and weapons were scattered about and their horses picketed near them. Delorier was there too with our little cart. Another fire was soon blazing high. We invited our new allies to take a cup of coffee with us. When both the others had gone over to their side of the camp, Jim Gurney still stood by the blaze, puffing hard at his little black pipe, as short and weather-beaten as himself.

The mule walked slowly out of the gate. Her recent behavior had made him so cautious that he never dared to tap her with his whip. We moved forward toward the meeting spot, but before he had gone very far, we noticed that Tete Rouge’s mule, who completely understood her rider, had stopped and was calmly grazing, despite his complaints, some distance behind. So, we got behind him and pushed him and the stubborn mule ahead of us until we could see the glow of a distant fire in the twilight. Munroe, Jim, and Ellis were sitting around it; their saddles, packs, and weapons were scattered nearby, and their horses were tied up close by. Delorier was there too with our little cart. Soon, another fire was blazing brightly. We invited our new allies to have a cup of coffee with us. When the others had moved to their side of the camp, Jim Gurney remained by the fire, puffing hard on his little black pipe, as short and weathered as he was.

“Well!” he said, “here are eight of us; we’ll call it six—for them two boobies, Ellis over yonder, and that new man of yours, won’t count for anything. We’ll get through well enough, never fear for that, unless the Comanches happen to get foul of us.”

“Well!” he said, “there are eight of us; let’s call it six—those two idiots, Ellis over there, and that new guy of yours won’t count for anything. We’ll manage just fine, don’t worry about that, unless the Comanches decide to mess with us.”





CHAPTER XXIII

INDIAN ALARMS

We began our journey for the frontier settlements on the 27th of August, and certainly a more ragamuffin cavalcade never was seen on the banks of the Upper Arkansas. Of the large and fine horses with which we had left the frontier in the spring, not one remained; we had supplied their place with the rough breed of the prairie, as hardy as mules and almost as ugly; we had also with us a number of the latter detestable animals. In spite of their strength and hardihood, several of the band were already worn down by hard service and hard fare, and as none of them were shod, they were fast becoming foot-sore. Every horse and mule had a cord of twisted bull-hide coiled around his neck, which by no means added to the beauty of his appearance. Our saddles and all our equipments were by this time lamentably worn and battered, and our weapons had become dull and rusty. The dress of the riders fully corresponded with the dilapidated furniture of our horses, and of the whole party none made a more disreputable appearance than my friend and I. Shaw had for an upper garment an old red flannel shirt, flying open in front and belted around him like a frock; while I, in absence of other clothing, was attired in a time-worn suit of leather.

We started our journey to the frontier settlements on August 27th, and honestly, you wouldn’t find a more ragtag group on the banks of the Upper Arkansas. None of the large, nice horses we left the frontier with in the spring were still with us; we had replaced them with tough prairie breeds that were as hardy as mules and almost as unattractive. We also had a number of those horrible mules with us. Despite their strength and endurance, several of the animals were already worn out from hard work and rough food, and since none of them had shoes, their feet were becoming sore. Each horse and mule had a thick, twisted bullhide cord around their necks, which didn’t help their looks at all. By this time, our saddles and gear were unfortunately battered and worn, and our weapons had become dull and rusty. The riders’ clothing matched the shabby state of our gear, and of the whole group, none looked more disreputable than my friend and me. Shaw was wearing an old red flannel shirt that was open in front and belted like a frock, while I, lacking other clothes, was dressed in a worn-out leather suit.

Thus, happy and careless as so many beggars, we crept slowly from day to day along the monotonous banks of the Arkansas. Tete Rouge gave constant trouble, for he could never catch his mule, saddle her, or indeed do anything else without assistance. Every day he had some new ailment, real or imaginary, to complain of. At one moment he would be woebegone and disconsolate, and the next he would be visited with a violent flow of spirits, to which he could only give vent by incessant laughing, whistling, and telling stories. When other resources failed, we used to amuse ourselves by tormenting him; a fair compensation for the trouble he cost us. Tete Rouge rather enjoyed being laughed at, for he was an odd compound of weakness, eccentricity, and good-nature. He made a figure worthy of a painter as he paced along before us, perched on the back of his mule, and enveloped in a huge buffalo-robe coat, which some charitable person had given him at the fort. This extraordinary garment, which would have contained two men of his size, he chose, for some reason best known to himself, to wear inside out, and he never took it off, even in the hottest weather. It was fluttering all over with seams and tatters, and the hide was so old and rotten that it broke out every day in a new place. Just at the top of it a large pile of red curls was visible, with his little cap set jauntily upon one side, to give him a military air. His seat in the saddle was no less remarkable than his person and equipment. He pressed one leg close against his mule’s side, and thrust the other out at an angle of 45 degrees. His pantaloons were decorated with a military red stripe, of which he was extremely vain; but being much too short, the whole length of his boots was usually visible below them. His blanket, loosely rolled up into a large bundle, dangled at the back of his saddle, where he carried it tied with a string. Four or five times a day it would fall to the ground. Every few minutes he would drop his pipe, his knife, his flint and steel, or a piece of tobacco, and have to scramble down to pick them up. In doing this he would contrive to get in everybody’s way; and as the most of the party were by no means remarkable for a fastidious choice of language, a storm of anathemas would be showered upon him, half in earnest and half in jest, until Tete Rouge would declare that there was no comfort in life, and that he never saw such fellows before.

So, carefree and content like many beggars, we moved slowly from day to day along the dull banks of the Arkansas. Tete Rouge was always causing trouble because he could never catch his mule, saddle her, or really do anything without help. Every day, he had some new complaint, whether real or made up. One moment he’d be gloomy and sad, and the next, he’d be filled with energy, which he would express by laughing, whistling, and telling stories non-stop. When we ran out of things to do, we entertained ourselves by teasing him, which seemed fair given the trouble he caused us. Tete Rouge actually enjoyed being the butt of the jokes, as he was a strange mix of weakness, quirks, and a good heart. He looked like something out of a painting as he strolled in front of us, sitting on his mule, wrapped in a huge buffalo robe that someone kind had given him at the fort. This bizarre garment, which could have fit two men his size, he decided for reasons only he understood to wear inside out, and he never took it off, even in the heat. It was frayed all over with seams and rips, and the hide was so old and worn that it tore in a new spot every day. Peeking out from underneath was a mass of red curls, with his little cap perched jauntily on one side, giving him a military vibe. His posture in the saddle was just as noteworthy as his appearance and gear. He pressed one leg tightly against his mule’s side while sticking the other leg out at a sharp angle. His pants had a military red stripe, which he was very proud of, but they were way too short, so the entire length of his boots was usually visible beneath them. His blanket, loosely rolled into a big bundle, hung from the back of his saddle, tied with a string. It would drop to the ground four or five times a day. Every few minutes, he’d drop his pipe, knife, flint and steel, or a piece of tobacco, and have to jump down to pick them up. In doing this, he somehow got in everyone’s way; and since most of the group wasn’t known for being picky about their language, a storm of curses would rain down on him, half serious and half joking, until Tete Rouge would insist that life had no comfort and that he had never met such a crowd before.

Only a day or two after leaving Bent’s Fort Henry Chatillon rode forward to hunt, and took Ellis along with him. After they had been some time absent we saw them coming down the hill, driving three dragoon-horses, which had escaped from their owners on the march, or perhaps had given out and been abandoned. One of them was in tolerable condition, but the others were much emaciated and severely bitten by the wolves. Reduced as they were we carried two of them to the settlements, and Henry exchanged the third with the Arapahoes for an excellent mule.

Only a day or two after leaving Bent’s Fort, Henry Chatillon rode out to hunt and brought Ellis with him. After they had been gone for a while, we saw them coming down the hill, herding three dragoon horses that had either escaped from their owners during the march or had worn out and been left behind. One of the horses was in decent shape, but the others were pretty skinny and had been badly bitten by wolves. Even though they were in rough shape, we brought two of them back to the settlements, and Henry traded the third one to the Arapahoes for a great mule.

On the day after, when we had stopped to rest at noon, a long train of Santa Fe wagons came up and trailed slowly past us in their picturesque procession. They belonged to a trader named Magoffin, whose brother, with a number of other men, came over and sat down around us on the grass. The news they brought was not of the most pleasing complexion. According to their accounts, the trail below was in a very dangerous state. They had repeatedly detected Indians prowling at night around their camps; and the large party which had left Bent’s Fort a few weeks previous to our own departure had been attacked, and a man named Swan, from Massachusetts, had been killed. His companions had buried the body; but when Magoffin found his grave, which was near a place called the Caches, the Indians had dug up and scalped him, and the wolves had shockingly mangled his remains. As an offset to this intelligence, they gave us the welcome information that the buffalo were numerous at a few days’ journey below.

The next day, while we were resting at noon, a long line of Santa Fe wagons rolled by us in a colorful procession. They belonged to a trader named Magoffin, and his brother, along with a few other men, came over and sat down on the grass around us. The news they shared wasn’t very comforting. According to them, the trail ahead was quite dangerous. They had spotted Indians lurking at night near their camps several times, and a large group that left Bent’s Fort a few weeks before us had been attacked, resulting in the death of a man named Swan from Massachusetts. His companions buried him, but when Magoffin found the grave near a spot called the Caches, the Indians had dug him up and scalped him, and wolves had horrifically mangled his remains. On a brighter note, they informed us that there were plenty of buffalo just a few days' journey ahead.

On the next afternoon, as we moved along the bank of the river, we saw the white tops of wagons on the horizon. It was some hours before we met them, when they proved to be a train of clumsy ox-wagons, quite different from the rakish vehicles of the Santa Fe traders, and loaded with government stores for the troops. They all stopped, and the drivers gathered around us in a crowd. I thought that the whole frontier might have been ransacked in vain to furnish men worse fitted to meet the dangers of the prairie. Many of them were mere boys, fresh from the plow, and devoid of knowledge and experience. In respect to the state of the trail, they confirmed all that the Santa Fe men had told us. In passing between the Pawnee Fork and the Caches, their sentinels had fired every night at real or imaginary Indians. They said also that Ewing, a young Kentuckian in the party that had gone down before us, had shot an Indian who was prowling at evening about the camp. Some of them advised us to turn back, and others to hasten forward as fast as we could; but they all seemed in such a state of feverish anxiety, and so little capable of cool judgment, that we attached slight weight to what they said. They next gave us a more definite piece of intelligence; a large village of Arapahoes was encamped on the river below. They represented them to be quite friendly; but some distinction was to be made between a party of thirty men, traveling with oxen, which are of no value in an Indian’s eyes and a mere handful like ourselves, with a tempting band of mules and horses. This story of the Arapahoes therefore caused us some anxiety.

On the next afternoon, as we walked along the riverbank, we spotted the white tops of wagons on the horizon. It took us a few hours to reach them, and when we did, we found a line of awkward ox-wagons, completely different from the stylish vehicles used by the Santa Fe traders, loaded with supplies for the troops. They all came to a stop, and the drivers crowded around us. I thought the entire frontier might have been searched in vain to find men less suited to face the dangers of the prairie. Many were just boys, freshly pulled from the farm, lacking knowledge and experience. Regarding the condition of the trail, they confirmed everything the Santa Fe traders had told us. As they passed between Pawnee Fork and the Caches, their lookouts had fired shots every night at real or imagined Indians. They also mentioned that Ewing, a young guy from Kentucky in the party that went ahead of us, had shot an Indian who was lurking around the camp in the evening. Some suggested we turn back, while others insisted we should hurry forward as fast as possible; however, they all seemed to be in a state of frantic worry, not capable of clear thinking, so we didn’t take their advice seriously. Then they provided us with more specific information: a large village of Arapahoes was camped downriver. They claimed the Arapahoes were friendly, but noted that there was a difference between a group of thirty men traveling with oxen, which held no value for Indians, and a small group like ours, with a tempting array of mules and horses. This news about the Arapahoes made us a bit anxious.

Just after leaving the government wagons, as Shaw and I were riding along a narrow passage between the river bank and a rough hill that pressed close upon it, we heard Tete Rouge’s voice behind us. “Hallo!” he called out; “I say, stop the cart just for a minute, will you?”

Just after leaving the government wagons, as Shaw and I were riding along a narrow path between the riverbank and a steep hill that was close to it, we heard Tete Rouge’s voice behind us. “Hey!” he called out; “Can you stop the cart for a minute?”

“What’s the matter, Tete?” asked Shaw, as he came riding up to us with a grin of exultation. He had a bottle of molasses in one hand, and a large bundle of hides on the saddle before him, containing, as he triumphantly informed us, sugar, biscuits, coffee, and rice. These supplies he had obtained by a stratagem on which he greatly plumed himself, and he was extremely vexed and astonished that we did not fall in with his views of the matter. He had told Coates, the master-wagoner, that the commissary at the fort had given him an order for sick-rations, directed to the master of any government train which he might meet upon the road. This order he had unfortunately lost, but he hoped that the rations would not be refused on that account, as he was suffering from coarse fare and needed them very much. As soon as he came to camp that night Tete Rouge repaired to the box at the back of the cart, where Delorier used to keep his culinary apparatus, took possession of a saucepan, and after building a little fire of his own, set to work preparing a meal out of his ill-gotten booty. This done, he seized on a tin plate and spoon, and sat down under the cart to regale himself. His preliminary repast did not at all prejudice his subsequent exertions at supper; where, in spite of his miniature dimensions, he made a better figure than any of us. Indeed, about this time his appetite grew quite voracious. He began to thrive wonderfully. His small body visibly expanded, and his cheeks, which when we first took him were rather yellow and cadaverous, now dilated in a wonderful manner, and became ruddy in proportion. Tete Rouge, in short, began to appear like another man.

“What’s wrong, Tete?” asked Shaw as he rode up to us, grinning with excitement. He held a bottle of molasses in one hand and a big bundle of hides on the saddle in front of him, which he proudly told us contained sugar, biscuits, coffee, and rice. He had obtained these supplies through a scheme he was very proud of and was quite annoyed and surprised that we didn’t share his perspective on it. He had told Coates, the master-wagoner, that the commissary at the fort had given him an order for sick rations, addressed to the master of any government train he might encounter on the road. Unfortunately, he had lost the order, but he hoped the rations wouldn’t be refused because he was struggling with poor food and really needed them. Once he arrived at camp that night, Tete Rouge went to the box at the back of the cart where Delorier kept his cooking supplies, grabbed a saucepan, and after making a small fire, began to cook a meal from his ill-gotten gains. After that, he grabbed a tin plate and spoon and sat down under the cart to enjoy his feast. His pre-meal snack didn’t affect his performance at supper; despite his small size, he outshone all of us. In fact, around this time, his appetite became quite strong. He started to thrive dramatically. His small body visibly grew, and his cheeks, which were rather yellow and skeletal when we first took him in, now plumped up impressively and turned rosy as well. Tete Rouge, in short, started to look like a different person.

Early in the afternoon of the next day, looking along the edge of the horizon in front, we saw that at one point it was faintly marked with pale indentations, like the teeth of a saw. The lodges of the Arapahoes, rising between us and the sky, caused this singular appearance. It wanted still two or three hours of sunset when we came opposite their camp. There were full two hundred lodges standing in the midst of a grassy meadow at some distance beyond the river, while for a mile around and on either bank of the Arkansas were scattered some fifteen hundred horses and mules grazing together in bands, or wandering singly about the prairie. The whole were visible at once, for the vast expanse was unbroken by hills, and there was not a tree or a bush to intercept the view.

Early in the afternoon the next day, as we looked out across the horizon, we noticed a section that was faintly marked with pale indentations, resembling the teeth of a saw. The Arapahoe lodges, rising between us and the sky, created this unique sight. It was still two or three hours before sunset when we reached their camp. There were over two hundred lodges situated in the middle of a grassy meadow, a little ways beyond the river, while around a mile in every direction on both banks of the Arkansas, about fifteen hundred horses and mules grazed in groups or wandered alone across the prairie. Everything was visible at once because the vast landscape was completely flat, with no hills, trees, or bushes obstructing the view.

Here and there walked an Indian, engaged in watching the horses. No sooner did we see them than Tete Rouge begged Delorier to stop the cart and hand him his little military jacket, which was stowed away there. In this he instantly invested himself, having for once laid the old buffalo coat aside, assumed a most martial posture in the saddle, set his cap over his left eye with an air of defiance, and earnestly entreated that somebody would lend him a gun or a pistol only for half an hour. Being called upon to explain these remarkable proceedings, Tete Rouge observed that he knew from experience what effect the presence of a military man in his uniform always had upon the mind of an Indian, and he thought the Arapahoes ought to know that there was a soldier in the party.

Here and there walked a Native American, watching the horses. As soon as we spotted them, Tete Rouge asked Delorier to stop the cart and get him his little military jacket, which was packed away. He quickly put it on, having temporarily set aside his old buffalo coat, took on a very soldier-like posture in the saddle, tipped his cap over his left eye with a defiant look, and earnestly asked if anyone could lend him a gun or a pistol for just half an hour. When asked to explain his unusual behavior, Tete Rouge said he knew from experience how the presence of a soldier in uniform would affect an Indian's mindset, and he thought the Arapahoes should be aware that there was a soldier in the group.

Meeting Arapahoes here on the Arkansas was a very different thing from meeting the same Indians among their native mountains. There was another circumstance in our favor. General Kearny had seen them a few weeks before, as he came up the river with his army, and renewing his threats of the previous year, he told them that if they ever again touched the hair of a white man’s head he would exterminate their nation. This placed them for the time in an admirable frame of mind, and the effect of his menaces had not yet disappeared. I was anxious to see the village and its inhabitants. We thought it also our best policy to visit them openly, as if unsuspicious of any hostile design; and Shaw and I, with Henry Chatillon, prepared to cross the river. The rest of the party meanwhile moved forward as fast as they could, in order to get as far as possible from our suspicious neighbors before night came on.

Meeting the Arapahoes here on the Arkansas River was a very different experience compared to meeting the same tribe in their native mountains. There was another advantage on our side. General Kearny had encountered them a few weeks earlier while traveling up the river with his army. He renewed his threats from the previous year, telling them that if they ever laid a hand on a white man again, he would wipe out their nation. This put them in a particularly uneasy state of mind, and the impact of his threats hadn’t faded yet. I was eager to see the village and its people. We believed it was also in our best interest to approach them openly, as if we had no hostile intentions, so Shaw and I, along with Henry Chatillon, got ready to cross the river. Meanwhile, the rest of the group hurried ahead to distance themselves from our wary neighbors before nightfall.

The Arkansas at this point, and for several hundred miles below, is nothing but a broad sand-bed, over which a few scanty threads of water are swiftly gliding, now and then expanding into wide shallows. At several places, during the autumn, the water sinks into the sand and disappears altogether. At this season, were it not for the numerous quicksands, the river might be forded almost anywhere without difficulty, though its channel is often a quarter of a mile wide. Our horses jumped down the bank, and wading through the water, or galloping freely over the hard sand-beds, soon reached the other side. Here, as we were pushing through the tall grass, we saw several Indians not far off; one of them waited until we came up, and stood for some moments in perfect silence before us, looking at us askance with his little snakelike eyes. Henry explained by signs what we wanted, and the Indian, gathering his buffalo robe about his shoulders, led the way toward the village without speaking a word.

The Arkansas River at this point, and for several hundred miles downstream, is nothing but a wide sand bed, with a few thin streams of water flowing quickly, sometimes widening into shallow areas. In several places during the autumn, the water sinks into the sand and completely disappears. At this time of year, if it weren't for the many quicksands, the river could be crossed almost anywhere without much trouble, even though its channel is often a quarter of a mile wide. Our horses jumped down the bank, and by wading through the water or galloping over the hard sand beds, we quickly reached the other side. Here, as we were pushing through the tall grass, we spotted several Indians nearby; one of them waited for us to approach and stood silently in front of us, eyeing us sideways with his small, snake-like eyes. Henry gestured to explain what we wanted, and the Indian, wrapping his buffalo robe around his shoulders, led the way to the village without saying a word.

The language of the Arapahoes is so difficult, and its pronunciations so harsh and guttural, that no white man, it is said, has ever been able to master it. Even Maxwell the trader, who has been most among them, is compelled to resort to the curious sign language common to most of the prairie tribes. With this Henry Chatillon was perfectly acquainted.

The Arapahoe language is really tough, and its pronunciations are so rough and throaty that no white person, it’s said, has ever been able to learn it. Even Maxwell the trader, who has spent a lot of time with them, has to rely on the unique sign language that most prairie tribes use. Henry Chatillon was completely familiar with this.

Approaching the village, we found the ground all around it strewn with great piles of waste buffalo meat in incredible quantities. The lodges were pitched in a very wide circle. They resembled those of the Dakota in everything but cleanliness and neatness. Passing between two of them, we entered the great circular area of the camp, and instantly hundreds of Indians, men, women and children, came flocking out of their habitations to look at us; at the same time, the dogs all around the village set up a fearful baying. Our Indian guide walked toward the lodge of the chief. Here we dismounted; and loosening the trail-ropes from our horses’ necks, held them securely, and sat down before the entrance, with our rifles laid across our laps. The chief came out and shook us by the hand. He was a mean-looking fellow, very tall, thin-visaged, and sinewy, like the rest of the nation, and with scarcely a vestige of clothing. We had not been seated half a minute before a multitude of Indians came crowding around us from every part of the village, and we were shut in by a dense wall of savage faces. Some of the Indians crouched around us on the ground; others again sat behind them; others, stooping, looked over their heads; while many more stood crowded behind, stretching themselves upward, and peering over each other’s shoulders, to get a view of us. I looked in vain among this multitude of faces to discover one manly or generous expression; all were wolfish, sinister, and malignant, and their complexions, as well as their features, unlike those of the Dakota, were exceedingly bad. The chief, who sat close to the entrance, called to a squaw within the lodge, who soon came out and placed a wooden bowl of meat before us. To our surprise, however, no pipe was offered. Having tasted of the meat as a matter of form, I began to open a bundle of presents—tobacco, knives, vermilion, and other articles which I had brought with me. At this there was a grin on every countenance in the rapacious crowd; their eyes began to glitter, and long thin arms were eagerly stretched toward us on all sides to receive the gifts.

As we approached the village, we saw the ground around it covered with large piles of waste buffalo meat in enormous amounts. The lodges were arranged in a wide circle. They looked like those of the Dakota, except for their lack of cleanliness and neatness. Passing between two lodges, we entered the large circular area of the camp, and immediately, hundreds of men, women, and children came rushing out of their homes to see us; at the same time, the dogs around the village began barking loudly. Our Indian guide walked toward the chief's lodge. We dismounted, loosened the ropes from our horses’ necks, held them securely, and sat down in front of the entrance with our rifles resting on our laps. The chief came out and shook our hands. He was a rough-looking guy, very tall and thin, like the rest of his people, with hardly any clothing. We hadn’t been seated for long before a crowd of Indians gathered around us from every direction, creating a thick wall of fierce faces. Some crouched on the ground around us, others sat behind them, some stooped to look over their heads, while many more stood behind, stretching up and peering over each other’s shoulders to get a better view. I searched among the many faces for a single kind or generous expression, but all I saw were wolfish, sinister, and malicious looks, their skin and features, unlike those of the Dakota, were notably harsh. The chief, who sat near the entrance, called for a woman inside the lodge, and she soon came out with a wooden bowl of meat for us. To our surprise, no pipe was offered. After tasting the meat as a formality, I started to unwrap a bundle of gifts—tobacco, knives, vermilion, and other items I had brought. At this, every face in the greedy crowd broke into a grin; their eyes began to sparkle, and long, thin arms reached out eagerly toward us from all sides to receive the gifts.

The Arapahoes set great value upon their shields, which they transmit carefully from father to son. I wished to get one of them; and displaying a large piece of scarlet cloth, together with some tobacco and a knife, I offered them to any one who would bring me what I wanted. After some delay a tolerable shield was produced. They were very anxious to know what we meant to do with it, and Henry told them that we were going to fight their enemies, the Pawnees. This instantly produced a visible impression in our favor, which was increased by the distribution of the presents. Among these was a large paper of awls, a gift appropriate to the women; and as we were anxious to see the beauties of the Arapahoe village Henry requested that they might be called to receive them. A warrior gave a shout as if he were calling a pack of dogs together. The squaws, young and old, hags of eighty and girls of sixteen, came running with screams and laughter out of the lodges; and as the men gave way for them they gathered round us and stretched out their arms, grinning with delight, their native ugliness considerably enhanced by the excitement of the moment.

The Arapahoes placed a lot of importance on their shields, which they carefully passed down from father to son. I wanted to get one of them, so I showed a large piece of scarlet cloth, along with some tobacco and a knife, and offered these to anyone who could bring me what I was looking for. After a bit of a wait, they produced a decent shield. They were really curious about what we planned to do with it, and Henry told them that we were going to fight their enemies, the Pawnees. This immediately made a positive impression on us, which grew stronger when we handed out the gifts. Among these was a large packet of awls, a gesture meant for the women; and since we were eager to see the lovely women of the Arapahoe village, Henry asked that they be called to receive them. A warrior shouted as if he were calling a bunch of dogs. The women, young and old, grannies of eighty and girls of sixteen, came running out of the lodges, screaming and laughing. As the men stepped aside for them, they gathered around us, stretching out their arms and grinning with joy, their natural unattractiveness made more noticeable by the excitement of the moment.

Mounting our horses, which during the whole interview we had held close to us, we prepared to leave the Arapahoes. The crowd fell back on each side and stood looking on. When we were half across the camp an idea occurred to us. The Pawnees were probably in the neighborhood of the Caches; we might tell the Arapahoes of this and instigate them to send down a war party and cut them off, while we ourselves could remain behind for a while and hunt the buffalo. At first thought this plan of setting our enemies to destroy one another seemed to us a masterpiece of policy; but we immediately recollected that should we meet the Arapahoe warriors on the river below they might prove quite as dangerous as the Pawnees themselves. So rejecting our plan as soon as it presented itself, we passed out of the village on the farther side. We urged our horses rapidly through the tall grass which rose to their necks. Several Indians were walking through it at a distance, their heads just visible above its waving surface. It bore a kind of seed as sweet and nutritious as oats; and our hungry horses, in spite of whip and rein, could not resist the temptation of snatching at this unwonted luxury as we passed along. When about a mile from the village I turned and looked back over the undulating ocean of grass. The sun was just set; the western sky was all in a glow, and sharply defined against it, on the extreme verge of the plain, stood the numerous lodges of the Arapahoe camp.

Mounting our horses, which we had kept close to us during the whole meeting, we got ready to leave the Arapahoes. The crowd stepped back on either side and watched us. As we were halfway across the camp, an idea struck us. The Pawnees were probably nearby at the Caches; we could tell the Arapahoes about this and urge them to send a war party to attack the Pawnees while we stayed behind for a bit to hunt buffalo. At first, the idea of having our enemies wipe each other out seemed like a brilliant strategy; but then we remembered that if we encountered Arapahoe warriors downriver, they could be just as dangerous as the Pawnees. So we quickly dismissed our plan and left the village on the far side. We urged our horses to move quickly through the tall grass, which was up to their necks. Several Indians were walking through it at a distance, their heads just visible above the waving grass. It held seeds that were as sweet and nutritious as oats, and our hungry horses, despite the whip and reins, couldn’t resist the temptation to grab this unexpected treat as we passed by. When we were about a mile from the village, I turned to look back over the rolling sea of grass. The sun had just set; the western sky was glowing, and sharply outlined against it, at the far edge of the plain, were the numerous lodges of the Arapahoe camp.

Reaching the bank of the river, we followed it for some distance farther, until we discerned through the twilight the white covering of our little cart on the opposite bank. When we reached it we found a considerable number of Indians there before us. Four or five of them were seated in a row upon the ground, looking like so many half-starved vultures. Tete Rouge, in his uniform, was holding a close colloquy with another by the side of the cart. His gesticulations, his attempts at sign-making, and the contortions of his countenance, were most ludicrous; and finding all these of no avail, he tried to make the Indian understand him by repeating English words very loudly and distinctly again and again. The Indian sat with his eye fixed steadily upon him, and in spite of the rigid immobility of his features, it was clear at a glance that he perfectly understood his military companion’s character and thoroughly despised him. The exhibition was more amusing than politic, and Tete Rouge was directed to finish what he had to say as soon as possible. Thus rebuked, he crept under the cart and sat down there; Henry Chatillon stopped to look at him in his retirement, and remarked in his quiet manner that an Indian would kill ten such men and laugh all the time.

When we reached the riverbank, we followed it for a while longer until we saw the white cover of our little cart on the opposite bank in the fading light. When we got there, we found quite a few Indians waiting for us. Four or five of them sat on the ground in a row, looking like starving vultures. Tete Rouge, dressed in his uniform, was having an intense conversation with another person next to the cart. His exaggerated gestures, his attempts to communicate through signs, and his facial expressions were all quite funny; and when none of that worked, he tried to get the Indian to understand him by shouting English words very loudly and clearly over and over. The Indian stared at him with unwavering focus, and despite his expressionless face, it was obvious that he fully understood the military man’s personality and looked down on him. The whole scene was more entertaining than effective, and Tete Rouge was told to wrap up his speech as quickly as he could. Feeling reprimanded, he crawled under the cart and sat down there; Henry Chatillon paused to look at him in his hiding spot and remarked calmly that an Indian would kill ten such men and laugh the whole time.

One by one our visitors rose and stalked away. As the darkness thickened we were saluted by dismal sounds. The wolves are incredibly numerous in this part of the country, and the offal around the Arapahoe camp had drawn such multitudes of them together that several hundred were howling in concert in our immediate neighborhood. There was an island in the river, or rather an oasis in the midst of the sands at about the distance of a gunshot, and here they seemed gathered in the greatest numbers. A horrible discord of low mournful wailings, mingled with ferocious howls, arose from it incessantly for several hours after sunset. We could distinctly see the wolves running about the prairie within a few rods of our fire, or bounding over the sand-beds of the river and splashing through the water. There was not the slightest danger to be feared from them, for they are the greatest cowards on the prairie.

One by one, our visitors got up and left. As the darkness settled in, we were met with eerie sounds. The wolves are incredibly plentiful in this part of the country, and the trash around the Arapahoe camp had attracted so many of them that several hundred were howling together nearby. There was an island in the river, or more like an oasis in the midst of the sands, about a gunshot away, and there they seemed to gather in the largest numbers. A chilling mix of mournful wailings and fierce howls rose from it continuously for several hours after sunset. We could see the wolves running around the prairie just a few yards from our fire or leaping over the sandbanks of the river and splashing through the water. There was no real danger from them because they are the biggest cowards on the prairie.

In respect to the human wolves in our neighborhood, we felt much less at our ease. We seldom erected our tent except in bad weather, and that night each man spread his buffalo robe upon the ground with his loaded rifle laid at his side or clasped in his arms. Our horses were picketed so close around us that one of them repeatedly stepped over me as I lay. We were not in the habit of placing a guard, but every man that night was anxious and watchful; there was little sound sleeping in camp, and some one of the party was on his feet during the greater part of the time. For myself, I lay alternately waking and dozing until midnight. Tete Rouge was reposing close to the river bank, and about this time, when half asleep and half awake, I was conscious that he shifted his position and crept on all-fours under the cart. Soon after I fell into a sound sleep from which I was aroused by a hand shaking me by the shoulder. Looking up, I saw Tete Rouge stooping over me with his face quite pale and his eyes dilated to their utmost expansion.

In regard to the dangerous people in our neighborhood, we felt much less comfortable. We rarely set up our tent except in bad weather, and that night, each man spread his buffalo blanket on the ground with his loaded rifle beside him or in his arms. Our horses were tied so close around us that one of them kept stepping over me as I lay there. We usually didn't have a guard, but every man that night was anxious and alert; there was hardly any sound sleeping in camp, and someone from our group was on their feet for most of the night. As for me, I lay there alternating between waking and dozing until midnight. Tete Rouge was resting near the riverbank, and around that time, when I was half asleep and half awake, I noticed him shift his position and crawl on all fours under the cart. Soon after, I fell into a deep sleep, from which I was awakened by someone shaking my shoulder. Looking up, I saw Tete Rouge bending over me, his face quite pale and his eyes wide with fear.

“What’s the matter?” said I.

"What's wrong?" I asked.

Tete Rouge declared that as he lay on the river bank, something caught his eye which excited his suspicions. So creeping under the cart for safety’s sake he sat there and watched, when he saw two Indians, wrapped in white robes, creep up the bank, seize upon two horses and lead them off. He looked so frightened, and told his story in such a disconnected manner, that I did not believe him, and was unwilling to alarm the party. Still it might be true, and in that case the matter required instant attention. There would be no time for examination, and so directing Tete Rouge to show me which way the Indians had gone, I took my rifle, in obedience to a thoughtless impulse, and left the camp. I followed the river back for two or three hundred yards, listening and looking anxiously on every side. In the dark prairie on the right I could discern nothing to excite alarm; and in the dusky bed of the river, a wolf was bounding along in a manner which no Indian could imitate. I returned to the camp, and when within sight of it, saw that the whole party was aroused. Shaw called out to me that he had counted the horses, and that every one of them was in his place. Tete Rouge, being examined as to what he had seen, only repeated his former story with many asseverations, and insisted that two horses were certainly carried off. At this Jim Gurney declared that he was crazy; Tete Rouge indignantly denied the charge, on which Jim appealed to us. As we declined to give our judgment on so delicate a matter, the dispute grew hot between Tete Rouge and his accuser, until he was directed to go to bed and not alarm the camp again if he saw the whole Arapahoe village coming.

Tete Rouge said that while he was lying on the riverbank, something caught his eye that made him suspicious. So, he crawled under the cart for safety and watched, seeing two Indians wrapped in white robes creep up the bank, grab two horses, and lead them away. He looked so scared and told his story in such a jumbled way that I didn't believe him and didn’t want to freak out the group. Still, it could be true, and if so, we needed to act fast. There wasn't time to investigate, so I told Tete Rouge to show me which way the Indians had gone, grabbed my rifle on a sudden impulse, and left the camp. I followed the river back for a couple of hundred yards, anxiously listening and looking around. In the dark prairie to my right, I didn’t see anything alarming; and in the shadowy riverbed, I spotted a wolf bounding along in a way that no Indian could mimic. I went back to the camp, and as I approached, I saw that everyone was awake. Shaw shouted to me that he had counted the horses and that they were all where they should be. When Tete Rouge was questioned about what he had seen, he just repeated his story with a lot of insistence, claiming that two horses were definitely taken. At that, Jim Gurney said he was out of his mind; Tete Rouge angrily denied it, prompting Jim to turn to us. Since we didn’t want to weigh in on such a sensitive issue, the argument heated up between Tete Rouge and Jim until he was told to go to bed and not to panic the camp again, even if he saw the entire Arapahoe village coming.





CHAPTER XXIV

THE CHASE

The country before us was now thronged with buffalo, and a sketch of the manner of hunting them will not be out of place. There are two methods commonly practiced, “running” and “approaching.” The chase on horseback, which goes by the name of “running,” is the more violent and dashing mode of the two. Indeed, of all American wild sports, this is the wildest. Once among the buffalo, the hunter, unless long use has made him familiar with the situation, dashes forward in utter recklessness and self-abandonment. He thinks of nothing, cares for nothing but the game; his mind is stimulated to the highest pitch, yet intensely concentrated on one object. In the midst of the flying herd, where the uproar and the dust are thickest, it never wavers for a moment; he drops the rein and abandons his horse to his furious career; he levels his gun, the report sounds faint amid the thunder of the buffalo; and when his wounded enemy leaps in vain fury upon him, his heart thrills with a feeling like the fierce delight of the battlefield. A practiced and skillful hunter, well mounted, will sometimes kill five or six cows in a single chase, loading his gun again and again as his horse rushes through the tumult. An exploit like this is quite beyond the capacities of a novice. In attacking a small band of buffalo, or in separating a single animal from the herd and assailing it apart from the rest, there is less excitement and less danger. With a bold and well trained horse the hunter may ride so close to the buffalo that as they gallop side by side he may reach over and touch him with his hand; nor is there much danger in this as long as the buffalo’s strength and breath continue unabated; but when he becomes tired and can no longer run at ease, when his tongue lolls out and foam flies from his jaws, then the hunter had better keep at a more respectful distance; the distressed brute may turn upon him at any instant; and especially at the moment when he fires his gun. The wounded buffalo springs at his enemy; the horse leaps violently aside; and then the hunter has need of a tenacious seat in the saddle, for if he is thrown to the ground there is no hope for him. When he sees his attack defeated the buffalo resumes his flight, but if the shot be well directed he soon stops; for a few moments he stands still, then totters and falls heavily upon the prairie.

The landscape in front of us was now filled with buffalo, so it makes sense to describe how they are hunted. There are two common methods: “running” and “approaching.” The chase on horseback, known as “running,” is the more intense and exhilarating of the two. In fact, out of all American outdoor sports, this is the wildest. Once in the midst of the buffalo, the hunter, unless he’s used to the situation, dashes forward without a care for his safety. He thinks of nothing else, cares for nothing except the game; his mind is fired up yet intensely focused on one target. Amid the chaos of the stampeding herd, where the noise and dust are thickest, his focus never wavers; he drops the reins and lets his horse run wild; he aims his gun, and the shot sounds faint against the roaring buffalo. When his injured target charges at him in a desperate rage, his heart races with a thrill similar to that of battle. A skilled and experienced hunter, who has a well-trained horse, can sometimes take down five or six cows in a single run, reloading his gun over and over while racing through the chaos. Achieving this feat is far beyond what a beginner can manage. When attacking a small group of buffalo or trying to isolate a single animal from the herd, there’s less excitement and danger. With a brave and well-trained horse, the hunter can ride so close to the buffalo that he can reach out and touch it as they run side by side; there’s not much risk as long as the buffalo isn’t exhausted. But when it tires and can no longer maintain its speed, with its tongue hanging out and foam flying from its mouth, the hunter should keep a safer distance; the distressed animal might charge at any moment, especially when he fires his gun. The injured buffalo lunges at him; the horse jumps violently to the side; and then the hunter needs to hold on tightly in the saddle, because if he falls, there’s no chance of survival. If the buffalo realizes it’s been attacked and tries to escape, it will run off, but if the shot was well-aimed, it will soon come to a halt; it may stand for a moment, then stagger and crash heavily onto the prairie.

The chief difficulty in running buffalo, as it seems to me, is that of loading the gun or pistol at full gallop. Many hunters for convenience’ sake carry three or four bullets in the mouth; the powder is poured down the muzzle of the piece, the bullet dropped in after it, the stock struck hard upon the pommel of the saddle, and the work is done. The danger of this method is obvious. Should the blow on the pommel fail to send the bullet home, or should the latter, in the act of aiming, start from its place and roll toward the muzzle, the gun would probably burst in discharging. Many a shattered hand and worse casualties besides have been the result of such an accident. To obviate it, some hunters make use of a ramrod, usually hung by a string from the neck, but this materially increases the difficulty of loading. The bows and arrows which the Indians use in running buffalo have many advantages over fire arms, and even white men occasionally employ them.

The main challenge in hunting buffalo, in my opinion, is loading a gun or pistol while riding at full speed. Many hunters, for convenience, carry three or four bullets in their mouths; they pour the powder down the gun's muzzle, drop in the bullet, hit the stock hard against the saddle's pommel, and it's done. The risks of this method are clear. If the blow on the pommel doesn't fully seat the bullet, or if it shifts while aiming and rolls toward the muzzle, the gun could easily explode when fired. Many have suffered shattered hands and worse injuries from such accidents. To avoid this, some hunters use a ramrod, usually hung by a string around their neck, but this makes loading much more complicated. The bows and arrows that the Native Americans use to hunt buffalo have several advantages over firearms, and even white hunters sometimes use them.

The danger of the chase arises not so much from the onset of the wounded animal as from the nature of the ground which the hunter must ride over. The prairie does not always present a smooth, level, and uniform surface; very often it is broken with hills and hollows, intersected by ravines, and in the remoter parts studded by the stiff wild-sage bushes. The most formidable obstructions, however, are the burrows of wild animals, wolves, badgers, and particularly prairie dogs, with whose holes the ground for a very great extent is frequently honeycombed. In the blindness of the chase the hunter rushes over it unconscious of danger; his horse, at full career, thrusts his leg deep into one of the burrows; the bone snaps, the rider is hurled forward to the ground and probably killed. Yet accidents in buffalo running happen less frequently than one would suppose; in the recklessness of the chase, the hunter enjoys all the impunity of a drunken man, and may ride in safety over the gullies and declivities where, should he attempt to pass in his sober senses, he would infallibly break his neck.

The danger of the chase comes not just from the wounded animal but from the uneven ground the hunter has to ride over. The prairie isn't always smooth and flat; it's often marked by hills and valleys, cut through by ravines, and in more remote areas, dotted with tough wild-sage bushes. However, the most serious hazards are the burrows of wild animals like wolves, badgers, and especially prairie dogs, which create a web of holes throughout the ground. In the heat of the chase, the hunter rushes forward, unaware of the risks. His horse, racing at full speed, can easily step into one of these burrows; the bone can break, the rider can be thrown off, and he might end up seriously injured or killed. Still, accidents during buffalo hunts are less common than you might think; in the fervor of the pursuit, the hunter feels invincible, allowing him to ride safely over gullies and slopes that would surely end in disaster if he were more cautious.

The method of “approaching,” being practiced on foot, has many advantages over that of “running”; in the former, one neither breaks down his horse nor endangers his own life; instead of yielding to excitement he must be cool, collected, and watchful; he must understand the buffalo, observe the features of the country and the course of the wind, and be well skilled, moreover, in using the rifle. The buffalo are strange animals; sometimes they are so stupid and infatuated that a man may walk up to them in full sight on the open prairie, and even shoot several of their number before the rest will think it necessary to retreat. Again at another moment they will be so shy and wary, that in order to approach them the utmost skill, experience, and judgment are necessary. Kit Carson, I believe, stands pre-eminent in running buffalo; in approaching, no man living can bear away the palm from Henry Chatillon.

The method of "approaching," which is done on foot, has many advantages over "running." When you approach on foot, you don’t wear out your horse or risk your own safety; instead of giving in to excitement, you have to stay calm, composed, and alert. You need to understand the buffalo, pay attention to the landscape and the wind direction, and be skilled in using a rifle. Buffalo can be quite strange; sometimes they are so oblivious and foolish that a person can walk right up to them in plain view on the open prairie and even shoot several before the rest realize they should run away. At other times, they are so cautious and alert that approaching them requires utmost skill, experience, and judgment. Kit Carson is incredibly skilled at running buffalo, but when it comes to approaching them, no one can match Henry Chatillon.

To resume the story: After Tete Rouge had alarmed the camp, no further disturbance occurred during the night. The Arapahoes did not attempt mischief, or if they did the wakefulness of the party deterred them from effecting their purpose. The next day was one of activity and excitement, for about ten o’clock the men in advance shouted the gladdening cry of “Buffalo, buffalo!” and in the hollow of the prairie just below us, a band of bulls were grazing. The temptation was irresistible, and Shaw and I rode down upon them. We were badly mounted on our traveling horses, but by hard lashing we overtook them, and Shaw, running alongside of a bull, shot into him both balls of his double-barreled gun. Looking round as I galloped past, I saw the bull in his mortal fury rushing again and again upon his antagonist, whose horse constantly leaped aside, and avoided the onset. My chase was more protracted, but at length I ran close to the bull and killed him with my pistols. Cutting off the tails of our victims by way of trophy, we rejoined the party in about a quarter of an hour after we left it. Again and again that morning rang out the same welcome cry of “Buffalo, buffalo!” Every few moments in the broad meadows along the river, we would see bands of bulls, who, raising their shaggy heads, would gaze in stupid amazement at the approaching horsemen, and then breaking into a clumsy gallop, would file off in a long line across the trail in front, toward the rising prairie on the left. At noon, the whole plain before us was alive with thousands of buffalo—bulls, cows, and calves—all moving rapidly as we drew near; and far-off beyond the river the swelling prairie was darkened with them to the very horizon. The party was in gayer spirits than ever. We stopped for a nooning near a grove of trees by the river side.

To continue the story: After Tete Rouge had startled the camp, there were no more disturbances that night. The Arapahoes didn’t try anything mischievous, or if they did, the vigilance of the group kept them from succeeding. The next day was filled with activity and excitement, as around ten o’clock the men in front shouted the joyful cry of "Buffalo, buffalo!" and in the hollow of the prairie just below us, a herd of bulls was grazing. The temptation was too strong to resist, so Shaw and I rode down towards them. We were on our regular travel horses, which weren't great for this, but with some effort, we caught up. Shaw ran alongside a bull and shot both barrels of his double-barreled gun into it. As I galloped past, I glanced back and saw the bull, in a furious rage, charging again and again at Shaw’s horse, which kept dodging to avoid the attack. My chase lasted longer, but eventually, I got close enough to the bull and killed it with my pistols. We cut off the tails of our trophies and rejoined the group about fifteen minutes after we left. Again and again, that morning we heard the same welcoming shout of "Buffalo, buffalo!" Every few moments in the wide meadows along the river, we spotted groups of bulls, who, raising their shaggy heads, looked on in dumb amazement at the approaching riders, and then they would clumsily gallop off in a long line across the path in front of us, heading towards the rising prairie to the left. By noon, the entire plain ahead was teeming with thousands of buffalo—bulls, cows, and calves—all moving swiftly as we approached; and far beyond the river, the rolling prairie was darkened with them all the way to the horizon. The group was in even better spirits than before. We stopped for lunch near a grove of trees by the riverbank.

“Tongues and hump ribs to-morrow,” said Shaw, looking with contempt at the venison steaks which Delorier placed before us. Our meal finished, we lay down under a temporary awning to sleep. A shout from Henry Chatillon aroused us, and we saw him standing on the cartwheel stretching his tall figure to its full height while he looked toward the prairie beyond the river. Following the direction of his eyes we could clearly distinguish a large dark object, like the black shadow of a cloud, passing rapidly over swell after swell of the distant plain; behind it followed another of similar appearance though smaller. Its motion was more rapid, and it drew closer and closer to the first. It was the hunters of the Arapahoe camp pursuing a band of buffalo. Shaw and I hastily sought and saddled our best horses, and went plunging through sand and water to the farther bank. We were too late. The hunters had already mingled with the herd, and the work of slaughter was nearly over. When we reached the ground we found it strewn far and near with numberless black carcasses, while the remnants of the herd, scattered in all directions, were flying away in terror, and the Indians still rushing in pursuit. Many of the hunters, however, remained upon the spot, and among the rest was our yesterday’s acquaintance, the chief of the village. He had alighted by the side of a cow, into which he had shot five or six arrows, and his squaw, who had followed him on horseback to the hunt, was giving him a draught of water out of a canteen, purchased or plundered from some volunteer soldier. Recrossing the river we overtook the party, who were already on their way.

“Tongues and hump ribs tomorrow,” Shaw said, looking with disdain at the venison steaks Delorier served us. After finishing our meal, we lay down under a makeshift awning to sleep. A shout from Henry Chatillon woke us up, and we saw him standing on the cartwheel, stretching his tall figure to its full height as he looked toward the prairie beyond the river. Following his gaze, we could clearly make out a large dark shape, like the shadow of a cloud, moving quickly over the rises of the distant plain; behind it was another similar shape, though smaller. Its movement was faster, getting closer and closer to the first. It was the hunters from the Arapahoe camp chasing a herd of buffalo. Shaw and I quickly grabbed and saddled our best horses, rushing through sand and water to the opposite bank. We were too late. The hunters had already merged with the herd, and the slaughter was nearly done. When we arrived, we found the ground scattered with countless black carcasses, while what was left of the herd fled in all directions in terror, with the Indians still chasing after them. Many of the hunters stayed behind, including our acquaintance from yesterday, the chief of the village. He had dismounted beside a cow, into which he had shot five or six arrows, and his wife, who had followed him on horseback to the hunt, was giving him a sip of water from a canteen, either bought or taken from some volunteer soldier. After crossing the river again, we caught up with the party, who were already on their way.

We had scarcely gone a mile when an imposing spectacle presented itself. From the river bank on the right, away over the swelling prairie on the left, and in front as far as we could see, extended one vast host of buffalo. The outskirts of the herd were within a quarter of a mile. In many parts they were crowded so densely together that in the distance their rounded backs presented a surface of uniform blackness; but elsewhere they were more scattered, and from amid the multitude rose little columns of dust where the buffalo were rolling on the ground. Here and there a great confusion was perceptible, where a battle was going forward among the bulls. We could distinctly see them rushing against each other, and hear the clattering of their horns and their hoarse bellowing. Shaw was riding at some distance in advance, with Henry Chatillon; I saw him stop and draw the leather covering from his gun. Indeed, with such a sight before us, but one thing could be thought of. That morning I had used pistols in the chase. I had now a mind to try the virtue of a gun. Delorier had one, and I rode up to the side of the cart; there he sat under the white covering, biting his pipe between his teeth and grinning with excitement.

We had hardly gone a mile when an impressive sight appeared. From the riverbank on the right, across the rolling prairie on the left, and straight ahead as far as we could see, there was one massive herd of buffalo. The edge of the herd was only a quarter of a mile away. In many spots, they were so tightly packed that from a distance, their rounded backs created a solid black surface; but in other areas, they were more spread out, and little clouds of dust rose up where the buffalo were rolling on the ground. Here and there, there was noticeable chaos as bulls clashed with each other. We could clearly see them charging at one another and hear the sound of their horns clashing along with their deep bellows. Shaw was riding a little way ahead with Henry Chatillon; I noticed him stop and take the leather cover off his gun. With such a view in front of us, there was only one thing on my mind. That morning, I had used pistols while hunting. Now, I wanted to see how effective a gun would be. Delorier had one, so I rode up to the cart where he was sitting under the white cover, biting his pipe and grinning with excitement.

“Lend me your gun, Delorier,” said I.

“Give me your gun, Delorier,” I said.

“Oui, monsieur, oui,” said Delorier, tugging with might and main to stop the mule, which seemed obstinately bent on going forward. Then everything but his moccasins disappeared as he crawled into the cart and pulled at the gun to extricate it.

“Yeah, sir, yeah,” Delorier said, pulling with all his strength to stop the mule, which seemed stubbornly determined to keep going. Then everything except his moccasins vanished as he crawled into the cart and yanked at the gun to get it out.

“Is it loaded?” I asked.

"Is it loaded?" I asked.

“Oui, bien charge; you’ll kill, mon bourgeois; yes, you’ll kill—c’est un bon fusil.”

“Yeah, for sure; you’ll definitely kill it, my friend; yep, you’ll kill it—it’s a good gun.”

I handed him my rifle and rode forward to Shaw.

I gave him my rifle and rode ahead to Shaw.

“Are you ready?” he asked.

“Are you ready?” he asked.

“Come on,” said I.

"Come on," I said.

“Keep down that hollow,” said Henry, “and then they won’t see you till you get close to them.”

“Stay low in that spot,” said Henry, “and then they won’t see you until you’re right up on them.”

The hollow was a kind of ravine very wide and shallow; it ran obliquely toward the buffalo, and we rode at a canter along the bottom until it became too shallow, when we bent close to our horses’ necks, and then finding that it could no longer conceal us, came out of it and rode directly toward the herd. It was within gunshot; before its outskirts, numerous grizzly old bulls were scattered, holding guard over their females. They glared at us in anger and astonishment, walked toward us a few yards, and then turning slowly round retreated at a trot which afterward broke into a clumsy gallop. In an instant the main body caught the alarm. The buffalo began to crowd away from the point toward which we were approaching, and a gap was opened in the side of the herd. We entered it, still restraining our excited horses. Every instant the tumult was thickening. The buffalo, pressing together in large bodies, crowded away from us on every hand. In front and on either side we could see dark columns and masses, half hidden by clouds of dust, rushing along in terror and confusion, and hear the tramp and clattering of ten thousand hoofs. That countless multitude of powerful brutes, ignorant of their own strength, were flying in a panic from the approach of two feeble horsemen. To remain quiet longer was impossible.

The hollow was a wide, shallow ravine that sloped toward the buffalo, and we rode at a canter along the bottom until it became too shallow. We leaned close to our horses’ necks, and when we realized it could no longer hide us, we came out and rode directly toward the herd. They were within shooting distance; at the edge, numerous grizzly old bulls were scattered, watching over their females. They stared at us in anger and surprise, moved a few yards closer, and then slowly turned around to trot away, which quickly turned into an awkward gallop. In an instant, the main herd panicked. The buffalo started to move away from the direction we were approaching, creating a gap in the side of the herd. We entered it, still holding back our excited horses. The chaos was escalating every moment. The buffalo, clustering together in large groups, pressed away from us in all directions. In front and on either side, we could see dark columns and masses, half obscured by clouds of dust, rushing in fear and confusion, and we could hear the pounding and clattering of thousands of hooves. That countless crowd of powerful animals, unaware of their own strength, was fleeing in panic from just two weak horsemen. It was impossible to stay quiet any longer.

“Take that band on the left,” said Shaw; “I’ll take these in front.”

“Take that group on the left,” Shaw said; “I’ll take the ones in front.”

He sprang off, and I saw no more of him. A heavy Indian whip was fastened by a band to my wrist; I swung it into the air and lashed my horse’s flank with all the strength of my arm. Away she darted, stretching close to the ground. I could see nothing but a cloud of dust before me, but I knew that it concealed a band of many hundreds of buffalo. In a moment I was in the midst of the cloud, half suffocated by the dust and stunned by the trampling of the flying herd; but I was drunk with the chase and cared for nothing but the buffalo. Very soon a long dark mass became visible, looming through the dust; then I could distinguish each bulky carcass, the hoofs flying out beneath, the short tails held rigidly erect. In a moment I was so close that I could have touched them with my gun. Suddenly, to my utter amazement, the hoofs were jerked upward, the tails flourished in the air, and amid a cloud of dust the buffalo seemed to sink into the earth before me. One vivid impression of that instant remains upon my mind. I remember looking down upon the backs of several buffalo dimly visible through the dust. We had run unawares upon a ravine. At that moment I was not the most accurate judge of depth and width, but when I passed it on my return, I found it about twelve feet deep and not quite twice as wide at the bottom. It was impossible to stop; I would have done so gladly if I could; so, half sliding, half plunging, down went the little mare. I believe she came down on her knees in the loose sand at the bottom; I was pitched forward violently against her neck and nearly thrown over her head among the buffalo, who amid dust and confusion came tumbling in all around. The mare was on her feet in an instant and scrambling like a cat up the opposite side. I thought for a moment that she would have fallen back and crushed me, but with a violent effort she clambered out and gained the hard prairie above. Glancing back I saw the huge head of a bull clinging as it were by the forefeet at the edge of the dusty gulf. At length I was fairly among the buffalo. They were less densely crowded than before, and I could see nothing but bulls, who always run at the rear of the herd. As I passed amid them they would lower their heads, and turning as they ran, attempt to gore my horse; but as they were already at full speed there was no force in their onset, and as Pauline ran faster than they, they were always thrown behind her in the effort. I soon began to distinguish cows amid the throng. One just in front of me seemed to my liking, and I pushed close to her side. Dropping the reins I fired, holding the muzzle of the gun within a foot of her shoulder. Quick as lightning she sprang at Pauline; the little mare dodged the attack, and I lost sight of the wounded animal amid the tumultuous crowd. Immediately after I selected another, and urging forward Pauline, shot into her both pistols in succession. For a while I kept her in view, but in attempting to load my gun, lost sight of her also in the confusion. Believing her to be mortally wounded and unable to keep up with the herd, I checked my horse. The crowd rushed onward. The dust and tumult passed away, and on the prairie, far behind the rest, I saw a solitary buffalo galloping heavily. In a moment I and my victim were running side by side. My firearms were all empty, and I had in my pouch nothing but rifle bullets, too large for the pistols and too small for the gun. I loaded the latter, however, but as often as I leveled it to fire, the little bullets would roll out of the muzzle and the gun returned only a faint report like a squib, as the powder harmlessly exploded. I galloped in front of the buffalo and attempted to turn her back; but her eyes glared, her mane bristled, and lowering her head, she rushed at me with astonishing fierceness and activity. Again and again I rode before her, and again and again she repeated her furious charge. But little Pauline was in her element. She dodged her enemy at every rush, until at length the buffalo stood still, exhausted with her own efforts; she panted, and her tongue hung lolling from her jaws.

He took off, and I didn't see him again. A heavy Indian whip was attached to my wrist by a strap; I swung it up and lashed my horse’s side with all my strength. She shot forward, almost touching the ground. I could only see a cloud of dust in front of me, but I knew it hid hundreds of buffalo. In a moment, I was in the thick of the dust, half choking and stunned by the stampede; but I was exhilarated by the chase and focused only on the buffalo. Soon, a long dark mass appeared through the dust; then I could make out the bulky bodies, their hooves flying beneath them, short tails held straight up. Suddenly, I was so close I could have touched them with my gun. To my shock, their hooves shot up, their tails waved in the air, and in a cloud of dust, the buffalo seemed to vanish into the ground in front of me. One vivid image from that moment sticks in my mind. I remember looking down at several buffalo partially visible through the dust. We had unexpectedly discovered a ravine. At that moment, I wasn’t exactly the best judge of how deep or wide it was, but when I went back, I found it was about twelve feet deep and not quite twice as wide at the bottom. There was no way to stop; I would have if I could; so, half sliding, half falling, down went the little mare. I think she landed on her knees in the loose sand at the bottom; I was thrown forward violently against her neck and almost toppled over her head among the buffalo, who were all around me in the dust and chaos. The mare was up in an instant and climbing up the opposite side like a cat. For a moment, I thought she would fall back and crush me, but with a tremendous effort, she made it out and reached the solid prairie above. Looking back, I saw the massive head of a bull hanging on the edge of that dusty drop. Finally, I was truly among the buffalo. They were less crowded now, and there were only bulls, who always run at the back of the herd. As I passed among them, they would lower their heads and try to but my horse as they turned and ran, but since they were already going full speed, their charges lacked power, and because Pauline ran faster than them, they were always left behind. Soon, I began to see cows mixed in with them. One just in front of me caught my eye, so I moved closer to her side. Dropping the reins, I fired, holding the muzzle of my gun just a foot from her shoulder. In a flash, she jumped at Pauline; the little mare dodged the attack, and I lost sight of the injured animal in the chaotic crowd. Immediately, I picked out another buffalo and, urging Pauline forward, shot her with both pistols in succession. For a bit, I kept her in sight, but when I tried to reload my gun, I lost her too in the confusion. Thinking she was mortally wounded and wouldn’t be able to keep up with the herd, I slowed my horse. The crowd surged onward. The dust and noise faded away, and on the prairie, far behind the others, I spotted a lone buffalo running heavily. In an instant, I was racing alongside my prey. My firearms were all empty, and I had only rifle bullets in my pouch, too big for the pistols and too small for the gun. I loaded the gun, but whenever I aimed to fire, the little bullets rolled out of the muzzle, and the gun gave nothing more than a weak sound like a firecracker as the powder harmlessly burned. I rode in front of the buffalo and tried to turn her back; but her eyes flashed, her mane stood up, and lowering her head, she charged at me with incredible energy and speed. Time and again, I rode before her, and every time she charged furiously again. But little Pauline was in her element. She dodged the buffalo at every rush until finally, the buffalo stood still, tiring from her efforts; she was panting, and her tongue hung out of her mouth.

Riding to a little distance I alighted, thinking to gather a handful of dry grass to serve the purpose of wadding, and load the gun at my leisure. No sooner were my feet on the ground than the buffalo came bounding in such a rage toward me that I jumped back again into the saddle with all possible dispatch. After waiting a few minutes more, I made an attempt to ride up and stab her with my knife; but the experiment proved such as no wise man would repeat. At length, bethinking me of the fringes at the seams of my buckskin pantaloons, I jerked off a few of them, and reloading my gun, forced them down the barrel to keep the bullet in its place; then approaching, I shot the wounded buffalo through the heart. Sinking to her knees, she rolled over lifeless on the prairie. To my astonishment, I found that instead of a fat cow I had been slaughtering a stout yearling bull. No longer wondering at the fierceness he had shown, I opened his throat and cutting out his tongue, tied it at the back of my saddle. My mistake was one which a more experienced eye than mine might easily make in the dust and confusion of such a chase.

Riding a short distance, I got off my horse, planning to grab some dry grass for wadding and take my time loading the gun. As soon as my feet hit the ground, a buffalo charged at me in a furious rage, so I quickly jumped back into the saddle. After waiting a few more minutes, I tried to ride up and stab her with my knife, but that didn’t go well and was something I’d never want to do again. Finally, remembering the fringes on my buckskin pants, I tore off a few, reloaded my gun, and stuffed them down the barrel to hold the bullet in place. Then I approached and shot the wounded buffalo through the heart. She sank to her knees and rolled over dead on the prairie. To my surprise, I realized that instead of a fat cow, I had killed a sturdy yearling bull. Understanding now why he’d been so aggressive, I opened his throat and cut out his tongue, tying it to the back of my saddle. This was a mistake that someone with more experience than me could easily make in the dust and chaos of such a chase.

Then for the first time I had leisure to look at the scene around me. The prairie in front was darkened with the retreating multitude, and on the other hand the buffalo came filing up in endless unbroken columns from the low plains upon the river. The Arkansas was three or four miles distant. I turned and moved slowly toward it. A long time passed before, far down in the distance, I distinguished the white covering of the cart and the little black specks of horsemen before and behind it. Drawing near, I recognized Shaw’s elegant tunic, the red flannel shirt, conspicuous far off. I overtook the party, and asked him what success he had met with. He had assailed a fat cow, shot her with two bullets, and mortally wounded her. But neither of us were prepared for the chase that afternoon, and Shaw, like myself, had no spare bullets in his pouch; so he abandoned the disabled animal to Henry Chatillon, who followed, dispatched her with his rifle, and loaded his horse with her meat.

Then, for the first time, I had the chance to take in the scene around me. The prairie in front was darkened by the retreating crowd, while on the other side, the buffalo marched in endless, unbroken lines from the low plains by the river. The Arkansas was three or four miles away. I turned and walked slowly toward it. A long time went by before, far in the distance, I recognized the white covering of the cart and the tiny black figures of riders in front and behind it. As I got closer, I spotted Shaw’s stylish tunic and the bright red flannel shirt, which stood out from afar. I caught up with the group and asked him how it had gone. He had targeted a fat cow, shot her twice, and seriously injured her. But neither of us were ready for a chase that afternoon, and Shaw, like me, had no spare bullets in his pouch; so he left the hurt animal to Henry Chatillon, who followed, finished her off with his rifle, and loaded his horse with her meat.

We encamped close to the river. The night was dark, and as we lay down we could hear mingled with the howling of wolves the hoarse bellowing of the buffalo, like the ocean beating upon a distant coast.

We set up camp near the river. The night was dark, and as we lay down, we could hear the howling of wolves mixed with the deep bellowing of the buffalo, like the ocean crashing against a distant shore.





CHAPTER XXV

THE BUFFALO CAMP

No one in the camp was more active than Jim Gurney, and no one half so lazy as Ellis. Between these two there was a great antipathy. Ellis never stirred in the morning until he was compelled to, but Jim was always on his feet before daybreak; and this morning as usual the sound of his voice awakened the party.

No one in the camp was more energetic than Jim Gurney, and no one lazier than Ellis. There was a strong dislike between the two. Ellis never got up in the morning until he had to, but Jim was always up before sunrise; and this morning, like usual, the sound of his voice woke everyone up.

“Get up, you booby! up with you now, you’re fit for nothing but eating and sleeping. Stop your grumbling and come out of that buffalo robe or I’ll pull it off for you.”

“Get up, you fool! Get moving now, you’re good for nothing but eating and sleeping. Stop complaining and come out of that blanket or I’ll take it off you.”

Jim’s words were interspersed with numerous expletives, which gave them great additional effect. Ellis drawled out something in a nasal tone from among the folds of his buffalo robe; then slowly disengaged himself, rose into sitting posture, stretched his long arms, yawned hideously, and finally, raising his tall person erect, stood staring round him to all the four quarters of the horizon. Delorier’s fire was soon blazing, and the horses and mules, loosened from their pickets, were feeding in the neighboring meadow. When we sat down to breakfast the prairie was still in the dusky light of morning; and as the sun rose we were mounted and on our way again.

Jim's words were filled with a lot of swear words, which made them even more impactful. Ellis lazily said something in a nasal voice from inside his buffalo robe; then he slowly pulled himself up, sat up straight, stretched his long arms, let out a huge yawn, and finally, standing tall, looked around at all four corners of the horizon. Delorier's fire quickly started blazing, and the horses and mules, freed from their pickets, were grazing in the nearby meadow. When we sat down to breakfast, the prairie was still in the shadowy light of morning; and as the sun rose, we were back on our horses and on our way again.

“A white buffalo!” exclaimed Munroe.

“A white buffalo!” Munroe exclaimed.

“I’ll have that fellow,” said Shaw, “if I run my horse to death after him.”

“I’ll get that guy,” said Shaw, “even if I have to run my horse into the ground to catch him.”

He threw the cover of his gun to Delorier and galloped out upon the prairie.

He tossed his gun cover to Delorier and rode out onto the prairie.

“Stop, Mr. Shaw, stop!” called out Henry Chatillon, “you’ll run down your horse for nothing; it’s only a white ox.”

“Stop, Mr. Shaw, stop!” shouted Henry Chatillon, “you’ll tire out your horse for no reason; it’s just a white ox.”

But Shaw was already out of hearing. The ox, who had no doubt strayed away from some of the government wagon trains, was standing beneath some low hills which bounded the plain in the distance. Not far from him a band of veritable buffalo bulls were grazing; and startled at Shaw’s approach, they all broke into a run, and went scrambling up the hillsides to gain the high prairie above. One of them in his haste and terror involved himself in a fatal catastrophe. Along the foot of the hills was a narrow strip of deep marshy soil, into which the bull plunged and hopelessly entangled himself. We all rode up to the spot. The huge carcass was half sunk in the mud, which flowed to his very chin, and his shaggy mane was outspread upon the surface. As we came near the bull began to struggle with convulsive strength; he writhed to and fro, and in the energy of his fright and desperation would lift himself for a moment half out of the slough, while the reluctant mire returned a sucking sound as he strained to drag his limbs from its tenacious depths. We stimulated his exertions by getting behind him and twisting his tail; nothing would do. There was clearly no hope for him. After every effort his heaving sides were more deeply imbedded and the mire almost overflowed his nostrils; he lay still at length, and looking round at us with a furious eye, seemed to resign himself to his fate. Ellis slowly dismounted, and deliberately leveling his boasted yager, shot the old bull through the heart; then he lazily climbed back again to his seat, pluming himself no doubt on having actually killed a buffalo. That day the invincible yager drew blood for the first and last time during the whole journey.

But Shaw was already out of earshot. The ox, which had likely wandered away from one of the government wagon trains, was standing beneath some low hills that framed the plain in the distance. Not far from him, a group of real buffalo bulls were grazing, and startled by Shaw’s approach, they all took off running, scrambling up the hillsides to reach the high prairie above. One of them, in his haste and panic, got himself into a deadly situation. At the base of the hills was a narrow stretch of deep, marshy ground, which the bull plunged into, getting hopelessly stuck. We all rode up to the spot. The massive carcass was half-sunk in the mud, which rose to his chin, and his shaggy mane floated on the surface. As we got closer, the bull began to struggle with frantic strength; he writhed back and forth, and in his fear and desperation, would lift himself partially out of the muck, while the stubborn mud made a sucking sound as he tried to pull his legs from its grasp. We tried to encourage him by getting behind him and twisting his tail, but nothing worked. It was clear there was no hope for him. After each effort, his sides sank deeper, and the mud nearly covered his nostrils; eventually, he lay still, glaring at us with fury, as if he had accepted his fate. Ellis slowly dismounted and, after carefully aiming his prized rifle, shot the old bull through the heart; then he lazily climbed back into his seat, no doubt feeling proud of having actually killed a buffalo. That day, the legendary rifle drew blood for the first and last time during the entire journey.

The morning was a bright and gay one, and the air so clear that on the farthest horizon the outline of the pale blue prairie was sharply drawn against the sky. Shaw felt in the mood for hunting; he rode in advance of the party, and before long we saw a file of bulls galloping at full speed upon a vast green swell of the prairie at some distance in front. Shaw came scouring along behind them, arrayed in his red shirt, which looked very well in the distance; he gained fast on the fugitives, and as the foremost bull was disappearing behind the summit of the swell, we saw him in the act of assailing the hindmost; a smoke sprang from the muzzle of his gun, and floated away before the wind like a little white cloud; the bull turned upon him, and just then the rising ground concealed them both from view.

The morning was bright and cheerful, with such clear air that the outline of the pale blue prairie stood out sharply against the sky on the far horizon. Shaw was in the mood for hunting; he rode ahead of the group, and soon we spotted a line of bulls galloping at full speed across a vast green swell of the prairie a little way in front. Shaw charged after them, dressed in his red shirt, which looked great from a distance; he quickly caught up to the fleeing bulls, and as the lead bull was disappearing behind the top of the swell, we saw him charging at the last one; a puff of smoke erupted from the muzzle of his gun, drifting away before the wind like a small white cloud; the bull turned to face him, and just then the rising ground hid them both from our view.

We were moving forward until about noon, when we stopped by the side of the Arkansas. At that moment Shaw appeared riding slowly down the side of a distant hill; his horse was tired and jaded, and when he threw his saddle upon the ground, I observed that the tails of two bulls were dangling behind it. No sooner were the horses turned loose to feed than Henry, asking Munroe to go with him, took his rifle and walked quietly away. Shaw, Tete Rouge, and I sat down by the side of the cart to discuss the dinner which Delorier placed before us; we had scarcely finished when we saw Munroe walking toward us along the river bank. Henry, he said, had killed four fat cows, and had sent him back for horses to bring in the meat. Shaw took a horse for himself and another for Henry, and he and Munroe left the camp together. After a short absence all three of them came back, their horses loaded with the choicest parts of the meat; we kept two of the cows for ourselves and gave the others to Munroe and his companions. Delorier seated himself on the grass before the pile of meat, and worked industriously for some time to cut it into thin broad sheets for drying. This is no easy matter, but Delorier had all the skill of an Indian squaw. Long before night cords of raw hide were stretched around the camp, and the meat was hung upon them to dry in the sunshine and pure air of the prairie. Our California companions were less successful at the work; but they accomplished it after their own fashion, and their side of the camp was soon garnished in the same manner as our own.

We were making good progress until around noon when we stopped by the Arkansas River. At that moment, Shaw appeared, riding slowly down a distant hill; his horse looked exhausted, and when he tossed his saddle onto the ground, I noticed the tails of two bulls hanging behind it. As soon as we let the horses go to graze, Henry asked Munroe to join him, grabbed his rifle, and walked off quietly. Shaw, Tete Rouge, and I settled down next to the cart to enjoy the meal Delorier had prepared for us; we had barely finished when we spotted Munroe walking toward us along the riverbank. He said that Henry had killed four fat cows and had sent him back for horses to haul the meat. Shaw took one horse for himself and another for Henry, and he and Munroe headed off together. After a short time, all three returned, their horses loaded with the best cuts of meat; we kept two of the cows for ourselves and gave the others to Munroe and his friends. Delorier sat down on the grass in front of the pile of meat and worked hard for a while, cutting it into thin strips for drying. This isn’t an easy job, but Delorier had the skill of an Indian woman. Long before nightfall, we had rawhide cords strung around the camp, and the meat was hung on them to dry in the sunshine and fresh air of the prairie. Our companions from California were less successful with the task, but they managed it in their own way, and their side of the camp was soon set up similarly to ours.

We meant to remain at this place long enough to prepare provisions for our journey to the frontier, which as we supposed might occupy about a month. Had the distance been twice as great and the party ten times as large, the unerring rifle of Henry Chatillon would have supplied meat enough for the whole within two days; we were obliged to remain, however, until it should be dry enough for transportation; so we erected our tent and made the other arrangements for a permanent camp. The California men, who had no such shelter, contented themselves with arranging their packs on the grass around their fire. In the meantime we had nothing to do but amuse ourselves. Our tent was within a rod of the river, if the broad sand-beds, with a scanty stream of water coursing here and there along their surface, deserve to be dignified with the name of river. The vast flat plains on either side were almost on a level with the sand-beds, and they were bounded in the distance by low, monotonous hills, parallel to the course of the Arkansas. All was one expanse of grass; there was no wood in view, except some trees and stunted bushes upon two islands which rose from amid the wet sands of the river. Yet far from being dull and tame this boundless scene was often a wild and animated one; for twice a day, at sunrise and at noon, the buffalo came issuing from the hills, slowly advancing in their grave processions to drink at the river. All our amusements were too at their expense. Except an elephant, I have seen no animal that can surpass a buffalo bull in size and strength, and the world may be searched in vain to find anything of a more ugly and ferocious aspect. At first sight of him every feeling of sympathy vanishes; no man who has not experienced it can understand with what keen relish one inflicts his death wound, with what profound contentment of mind he beholds him fall. The cows are much smaller and of a gentler appearance, as becomes their sex. While in this camp we forebore to attack them, leaving to Henry Chatillon, who could better judge their fatness and good quality, the task of killing such as we wanted for use; but against the bulls we waged an unrelenting war. Thousands of them might be slaughtered without causing any detriment to the species, for their numbers greatly exceed those of the cows; it is the hides of the latter alone which are used for purpose of commerce and for making the lodges of the Indians; and the destruction among them is therefore altogether disproportioned.

We planned to stay at this spot long enough to gather supplies for our journey to the frontier, which we thought would take about a month. Even if the distance had been twice as long and our group ten times bigger, Henry Chatillon’s reliable rifle could have provided enough meat for everyone within two days. However, we had to wait until the area was dry enough for transport, so we set up our tent and organized everything for a permanent campsite. The men from California, who didn’t have any shelter, made do by arranging their packs on the grass around their fire. In the meantime, we had little to do but entertain ourselves. Our tent was about a rod from the river, if the wide sandy areas, with a thin stream of water meandering here and there, could be called a river. The vast flat plains on either side were nearly even with the sandbanks, and they were bordered in the distance by low, dull hills running parallel to the Arkansas River. The scene was one continuous stretch of grass; there were no trees in sight, apart from some trees and scraggly bushes on two islands that rose from the wet sand of the river. Yet, far from being boring and dull, this endless landscape was often lively and dramatic; twice a day, at sunrise and noon, the buffalo emerged from the hills, slowly making their way in serious groups to drink at the river. All our fun came at their expense. Except for an elephant, I haven’t seen an animal that matches the size and strength of a buffalo bull, and you won’t find anything more ugly and fierce. At first glance, all feelings of sympathy disappear; no one who hasn’t experienced it can understand how intensely satisfying it is to deal the fatal blow and how content one feels watching it fall. The cows are much smaller and look gentler, as is fitting for their gender. During our time in this camp, we refrained from hunting them, leaving it to Henry Chatillon, who could better assess which ones were fat and good for us, to kill the ones we needed; but we relentlessly attacked the bulls. Thousands of them could be killed without harming the species, as their numbers greatly outnumber those of the cows; only the hides of the cows are used for commerce and to make the lodges for the Indians, so the destruction of them is quite disproportionate.

Our horses were tired, and we now usually hunted on foot. The wide, flat sand-beds of the Arkansas, as the reader will remember, lay close by the side of our camp. While we were lying on the grass after dinner, smoking, conversing, or laughing at Tete Rouge, one of us would look up and observe, far out on the plains beyond the river, certain black objects slowly approaching. He would inhale a parting whiff from the pipe, then rising lazily, take his rifle, which leaned against the cart, throw over his shoulder the strap of his pouch and powder-horn, and with his moccasins in his hand walk quietly across the sand toward the opposite side of the river. This was very easy; for though the sands were about a quarter of a mile wide, the water was nowhere more than two feet deep. The farther bank was about four or five feet high, and quite perpendicular, being cut away by the water in spring. Tall grass grew along its edge. Putting it aside with his hand, and cautiously looking through it, the hunter can discern the huge shaggy back of the buffalo slowly swaying to and fro, as with his clumsy swinging gait he advances toward the water. The buffalo have regular paths by which they come down to drink. Seeing at a glance along which of these his intended victim is moving, the hunter crouches under the bank within fifteen or twenty yards, it may be, of the point where the path enters the river. Here he sits down quietly on the sand. Listening intently, he hears the heavy monotonous tread of the approaching bull. The moment after he sees a motion among the long weeds and grass just at the spot where the path is channeled through the bank. An enormous black head is thrust out, the horns just visible amid the mass of tangled mane. Half sliding, half plunging, down comes the buffalo upon the river-bed below. He steps out in full sight upon the sands. Just before him a runnel of water is gliding, and he bends his head to drink. You may hear the water as it gurgles down his capacious throat. He raises his head, and the drops trickle from his wet beard. He stands with an air of stupid abstraction, unconscious of the lurking danger. Noiselessly the hunter cocks his rifle. As he sits upon the sand, his knee is raised, and his elbow rests upon it, that he may level his heavy weapon with a steadier aim. The stock is at his shoulder; his eye ranges along the barrel. Still he is in no haste to fire. The bull, with slow deliberation, begins his march over the sands to the other side. He advances his foreleg, and exposes to view a small spot, denuded of hair, just behind the point of his shoulder; upon this the hunter brings the sight of his rifle to bear; lightly and delicately his finger presses upon the hair-trigger. Quick as thought the spiteful crack of the rifle responds to his slight touch, and instantly in the middle of the bare spot appears a small red dot. The buffalo shivers; death has overtaken him, he cannot tell from whence; still he does not fall, but walks heavily forward, as if nothing had happened. Yet before he has advanced far out upon the sand, you see him stop; he totters; his knees bend under him, and his head sinks forward to the ground. Then his whole vast bulk sways to one side; he rolls over on the sand, and dies with a scarcely perceptible struggle.

Our horses were tired, so we mostly hunted on foot now. The wide, flat sandbanks of the Arkansas, as you might remember, were right next to our camp. While we relaxed on the grass after dinner, smoking and chatting or laughing at Tete Rouge, one of us would look up and see some black shapes slowly moving out on the plains beyond the river. He would take a last puff from the pipe, then, lazily getting up, grab his rifle leaning against the cart, throw the strap of his pouch and powder horn over his shoulder, and quietly walk across the sand toward the other side of the river, barefoot. This was pretty simple; the sands were about a quarter of a mile wide, and the water was never more than two feet deep. The far bank was about four or five feet high and fairly steep, eroded by the spring waters. Tall grass grew along the edge. Pushing the grass aside with his hand and peering through it cautiously, the hunter could see the huge shaggy back of the buffalo swaying back and forth as it clumsily made its way to the water. The buffalo have specific paths they use to come down to drink. Recognizing at a glance which path his target is taking, the hunter crouches under the bank, within fifteen or twenty yards of where the path leads into the river. He quietly sits down on the sand. Listening intently, he hears the heavy, monotonous footsteps of the approaching bull. Moments later, he notices movement among the long grass and weeds just where the path channels through the bank. An enormous black head emerges, with horns barely visible through the tangled mane. The buffalo slides and plunges down onto the riverbed below. It steps into full view on the sand. Just in front of it, a stream of water flows, and it lowers its head to drink. You can hear the water gurgling down its large throat. It lifts its head, and drops trickle from its wet beard. It stands there in a state of obliviousness, unaware of the hidden danger. The hunter quietly cocks his rifle. Sitting on the sand, he raises his knee and rests his elbow on it to steady his aim with the heavy weapon. The stock is at his shoulder; his eye follows the barrel. Still, he takes his time to fire. The bull slowly starts walking over the sand to the other side. It moves its foreleg forward, revealing a small patch of skin just behind its shoulder; the hunter lines up his rifle's sights on that spot and lightly presses the hair-trigger with his finger. In an instant, the sharp crack of the rifle echoes in response, and suddenly a small red dot appears in the middle of the bare patch. The buffalo shivers; death has found it, but it can't tell from where; still, it doesn't collapse, but continues heavily forward as if nothing happened. Yet as it moves farther out onto the sand, it stops; it wobbles; its knees buckle, and its head droops toward the ground. Then its massive body sways to one side; it rolls over onto the sand and dies with barely a struggle.

Waylaying the buffalo in this manner, and shooting them as they come to water, is the easiest and laziest method of hunting them. They may also be approached by crawling up ravines, or behind hills, or even over the open prairie. This is often surprisingly easy; but at other times it requires the utmost skill of the most experienced hunter. Henry Chatillon was a man of extraordinary strength and hardihood; but I have seen him return to camp quite exhausted with his efforts, his limbs scratched and wounded, and his buckskin dress stuck full of the thorns of the prickly-pear among which he had been crawling. Sometimes he would lay flat upon his face, and drag himself along in this position for many rods together.

Waiting for the buffalo like this and shooting them as they come to drink is the easiest and laziest way to hunt them. You can also get close by crawling through ravines, hiding behind hills, or even moving across the open prairie. Sometimes this is surprisingly easy, but other times it demands the highest level of skill from the most experienced hunters. Henry Chatillon was an incredibly strong and tough man, yet I've seen him return to camp completely worn out, his limbs scratched and injured, and his buckskin outfit covered in the thorns of the prickly pear he crawled through. Sometimes he would lay flat on his stomach and pull himself along like that for a long distance.

On the second day of our stay at this place, Henry went out for an afternoon hunt. Shaw and I remained in camp until, observing some bulls approaching the water upon the other side of the river, we crossed over to attack them. They were so near, however, that before we could get under cover of the bank our appearance as we walked over the sands alarmed them. Turning round before coming within gunshot, they began to move off to the right in a direction parallel to the river. I climbed up the bank and ran after them. They were walking swiftly, and before I could come within gunshot distance they slowly wheeled about and faced toward me. Before they had turned far enough to see me I had fallen flat on my face. For a moment they stood and stared at the strange object upon the grass; then turning away, again they walked on as before; and I, rising immediately, ran once more in pursuit. Again they wheeled about, and again I fell prostrate. Repeating this three or four times, I came at length within a hundred yards of the fugitives, and as I saw them turning again I sat down and leveled my rifle. The one in the center was the largest I had ever seen. I shot him behind the shoulder. His two companions ran off. He attempted to follow, but soon came to a stand, and at length lay down as quietly as an ox chewing the cud. Cautiously approaching him, I saw by his dull and jellylike eye that he was dead.

On the second day of our stay here, Henry went out for an afternoon hunt. Shaw and I stayed at camp until we spotted some bulls approaching the water on the other side of the river and decided to cross over to go after them. However, they were so close that our movement across the sand startled them before we could hide behind the bank. They turned around and started moving off to the right, parallel to the river. I climbed up the bank and chased after them. They were walking quickly, and before I got within range, they turned around to face me. Before they could see me properly, I dropped flat on my stomach. For a moment, they just stood there, staring at me lying on the grass, then they turned away and continued walking. I got up right away and ran after them again. They turned around once more, and I fell down again. After repeating this three or four times, I finally got within a hundred yards of them. When I saw them turn again, I sat down and aimed my rifle. The one in the center was the biggest I had ever seen. I shot him behind the shoulder. His two companions ran off. He tried to follow, but soon stopped and lay down quietly like an ox chewing its cud. As I approached cautiously, I noticed by his dull, jellylike eye that he was dead.

When I began the chase, the prairie was almost tenantless; but a great multitude of buffalo had suddenly thronged upon it, and looking up, I saw within fifty rods a heavy, dark column stretching to the right and left as far as I could see. I walked toward them. My approach did not alarm them in the least. The column itself consisted entirely of cows and calves, but a great many old bulls were ranging about the prairie on its flank, and as I drew near they faced toward me with such a shaggy and ferocious look that I thought it best to proceed no farther. Indeed I was already within close rifle-shot of the column, and I sat down on the ground to watch their movements. Sometimes the whole would stand still, their heads all facing one way; then they would trot forward, as if by a common impulse, their hoofs and horns clattering together as they moved. I soon began to hear at a distance on the left the sharp reports of a rifle, again and again repeated; and not long after, dull and heavy sounds succeeded, which I recognized as the familiar voice of Shaw’s double-barreled gun. When Henry’s rifle was at work there was always meat to be brought in. I went back across the river for a horse, and returning, reached the spot where the hunters were standing. The buffalo were visible on the distant prairie. The living had retreated from the ground, but ten or twelve carcasses were scattered in various directions. Henry, knife in hand, was stooping over a dead cow, cutting away the best and fattest of the meat.

When I started the chase, the prairie was almost empty; but suddenly a huge herd of buffalo appeared, and looking up, I saw a thick, dark line stretching out to the sides as far as I could see. I walked towards them. My approach didn’t scare them at all. The line was made up entirely of cows and calves, but many old bulls were roaming around the edge of the prairie, and as I got closer, they turned to face me with such a shaggy and fierce look that I decided it was best not to go any further. In fact, I was already within close shooting range of the herd, so I sat down on the ground to watch their movements. Sometimes they would all stand still, heads pointed in the same direction; then they'd trot forward as if they moved in unison, their hooves and horns clattering together. I soon started hearing sharp rifle shots in the distance on my left, repeating again and again; then, not long after, I heard dull and heavy sounds, which I recognized as Shaw’s double-barreled gun. Whenever Henry was shooting, there was always meat to be had. I went back across the river for a horse, and when I returned, I reached the spot where the hunters were standing. The buffalo could be seen on the distant prairie. The living had moved away, but ten or twelve carcasses were scattered around. Henry, knife in hand, was bent over a dead cow, cutting away the best and fattest meat.

When Shaw left me he had walked down for some distance under the river bank to find another bull. At length he saw the plains covered with the host of buffalo, and soon after heard the crack of Henry’s rifle. Ascending the bank, he crawled through the grass, which for a rod or two from the river was very high and rank. He had not crawled far before to his astonishment he saw Henry standing erect upon the prairie, almost surrounded by the buffalo. Henry was in his appropriate element. Nelson, on the deck of the Victory, hardly felt a prouder sense of mastery than he. Quite unconscious that any one was looking at him, he stood at the full height of his tall, strong figure, one hand resting upon his side, and the other arm leaning carelessly on the muzzle of his rifle. His eyes were ranging over the singular assemblage around him. Now and then he would select such a cow as suited him, level his rifle, and shoot her dead; then quietly reloading, he would resume his former position. The buffalo seemed no more to regard his presence than if he were one of themselves; the bulls were bellowing and butting at each other, or else rolling about in the dust. A group of buffalo would gather about the carcass of a dead cow, snuffing at her wounds; and sometimes they would come behind those that had not yet fallen, and endeavor to push them from the spot. Now and then some old bull would face toward Henry with an air of stupid amazement, but none seemed inclined to attack or fly from him. For some time Shaw lay among the grass, looking in surprise at this extraordinary sight; at length he crawled cautiously forward, and spoke in a low voice to Henry, who told him to rise and come on. Still the buffalo showed no sign of fear; they remained gathered about their dead companions. Henry had already killed as many cows as we wanted for use, and Shaw, kneeling behind one of the carcasses, shot five bulls before the rest thought it necessary to disperse.

When Shaw left me, he walked a good distance along the riverbank to find another bull. Eventually, he spotted the plains filled with a herd of buffalo, and soon after, he heard the crack of Henry’s rifle. Climbing up the bank, he crawled through some tall, thick grass that grew for a few yards from the river. He hadn’t crawled far when, to his surprise, he saw Henry standing proudly on the prairie, nearly surrounded by buffalo. Henry was right where he belonged. Nelson, on the deck of the Victory, probably felt hardly any prouder. Unaware that anyone was watching him, he stood tall and confidently, one hand on his hip and the other resting casually on the barrel of his rifle. His eyes scanned the unusual gathering around him. Occasionally, he would pick out a cow that caught his fancy, aim his rifle, and take her down; then he would reload calmly and return to his previous stance. The buffalo seemed to ignore his presence as if he were just one of them; the bulls were bellowing and butting heads or rolling in the dust. A group of buffalo would gather around the carcass of a dead cow, sniffing at her wounds, and sometimes they would push against those that were still alive, trying to nudge them away. Every so often, an old bull would face Henry with a look of clueless astonishment, but none showed any intention to attack or flee from him. After a while, Shaw lay in the grass, amazed by this incredible scene; finally, he crawled forward carefully and spoke in a low voice to Henry, who told him to get up and join him. The buffalo still showed no signs of fear; they stayed gathered around their dead companions. Henry had already killed enough cows for our needs, and Shaw, kneeling behind one of the carcasses, managed to shoot five bulls before the rest decided it was time to scatter.

The frequent stupidity and infatuation of the buffalo seems the more remarkable from the contrast it offers to their wildness and wariness at other times. Henry knew all their peculiarities; he had studied them as a scholar studies his books, and he derived quite as much pleasure from the occupation. The buffalo were a kind of companions to him, and, as he said, he never felt alone when they were about him. He took great pride in his skill in hunting. Henry was one of the most modest of men; yet, in the simplicity and frankness of his character, it was quite clear that he looked upon his pre-eminence in this respect as a thing too palpable and well established ever to be disputed. But whatever may have been his estimate of his own skill, it was rather below than above that which others placed upon it. The only time that I ever saw a shade of scorn darken his face was when two volunteer soldiers, who had just killed a buffalo for the first time, undertook to instruct him as to the best method of “approaching.” To borrow an illustration from an opposite side of life, an Eton boy might as well have sought to enlighten Porson on the formation of a Greek verb, or a Fleet Street shopkeeper to instruct Chesterfield concerning a point of etiquette. Henry always seemed to think that he had a sort of prescriptive right to the buffalo, and to look upon them as something belonging peculiarly to himself. Nothing excited his indignation so much as any wanton destruction committed among the cows, and in his view shooting a calf was a cardinal sin.

The constant foolishness and obsession of the buffalo is even more surprising because of the contrast to their wildness and caution at other times. Henry understood all their quirks; he studied them like a scholar studies his books, and he found just as much enjoyment in it. The buffalo were like companions to him, and as he said, he never felt lonely when they were around. He took great pride in his hunting skills. Henry was one of the most humble men; however, in the straightforwardness and openness of his character, it was evident that he considered his superiority in this area as something too obvious and well-established to be challenged. But no matter how he viewed his own abilities, it was usually more modest than how others regarded them. The only time I ever saw a hint of contempt on his face was when two volunteer soldiers, who had just killed a buffalo for the first time, tried to advise him on the best way to "approach" them. To use an analogy from a different context, it would be like an Eton boy attempting to teach Porson about Greek verb formation, or a Fleet Street shopkeeper trying to educate Chesterfield about etiquette. Henry always seemed to believe he had a sort of inherent right to the buffalo, viewing them as something that uniquely belonged to him. Nothing angered him more than unnecessary destruction among the cows, and in his eyes, shooting a calf was a serious offense.

Henry Chatillon and Tete Rouge were of the same age; that is, about thirty. Henry was twice as large, and fully six times as strong as Tete Rouge. Henry’s face was roughened by winds and storms; Tete Rouge’s was bloated by sherry cobblers and brandy toddy. Henry talked of Indians and buffalo; Tete Rouge of theaters and oyster cellars. Henry had led a life of hardship and privation; Tete Rouge never had a whim which he would not gratify at the first moment he was able. Henry moreover was the most disinterested man I ever saw; while Tete Rouge, though equally good-natured in his way, cared for nobody but himself. Yet we would not have lost him on any account; he admirably served the purpose of a jester in a feudal castle; our camp would have been lifeless without him. For the past week he had fattened in a most amazing manner; and indeed this was not at all surprising, since his appetite was most inordinate. He was eating from morning till night; half the time he would be at work cooking some private repast for himself, and he paid a visit to the coffee-pot eight or ten times a day. His rueful and disconsolate face became jovial and rubicund, his eyes stood out like a lobster’s, and his spirits, which before were sunk to the depths of despondency, were now elated in proportion; all day he was singing, whistling, laughing, and telling stories. Being mortally afraid of Jim Gurney, he kept close in the neighborhood of our tent. As he had seen an abundance of low dissipated life, and had a considerable fund of humor, his anecdotes were extremely amusing, especially since he never hesitated to place himself in a ludicrous point of view, provided he could raise a laugh by doing so. Tete Rouge, however, was sometimes rather troublesome; he had an inveterate habit of pilfering provisions at all times of the day. He set ridicule at utter defiance; and being without a particle of self-respect, he would never have given over his tricks, even if they had drawn upon him the scorn of the whole party. Now and then, indeed, something worse than laughter fell to his share; on these occasions he would exhibit much contrition, but half an hour after we would generally observe him stealing round to the box at the back of the cart and slyly making off with the provisions which Delorier had laid by for supper. He was very fond of smoking; but having no tobacco of his own, we used to provide him with as much as he wanted, a small piece at a time. At first we gave him half a pound together, but this experiment proved an entire failure, for he invariably lost not only the tobacco, but the knife intrusted to him for cutting it, and a few minutes after he would come to us with many apologies and beg for more.

Henry Chatillon and Tete Rouge were about the same age, around thirty. Henry was twice as big and six times as strong as Tete Rouge. Henry’s face was rough from the wind and storms, while Tete Rouge’s was puffy from sherry cobblers and brandy. Henry talked about Indians and buffalo; Tete Rouge preferred discussing theaters and oyster bars. Henry had lived a life of hardship and struggle; Tete Rouge never hesitated to indulge his every whim as soon as he could. Moreover, Henry was the most selfless person I’d ever met, while Tete Rouge, although friendly in his own way, only cared about himself. Yet we wouldn’t have wanted to lose him; he served perfectly as the jester in our camp, which would have felt dull without him. Over the past week, he had put on weight in astonishing ways, which wasn’t surprising given his huge appetite. He was eating from morning till night; half the time, he was busy cooking something for himself and would check the coffee pot eight or ten times a day. His previously sad and gloomy face became cheerful and rosy, his eyes bulging like a lobster’s, and his spirits, which had been at an all-time low, soared proportionately. All day long, he was singing, whistling, laughing, and telling stories. Mortally afraid of Jim Gurney, he stayed close to our tent. Having seen a lot of low, reckless living and possessing a good sense of humor, his stories were very entertaining, especially since he never shied away from making himself look silly if it would get a laugh. However, Tete Rouge could be quite troublesome; he had a relentless habit of stealing food at all hours. He completely disregarded ridicule, and lacking any self-respect, he wouldn’t have stopped his antics even if it made the whole group scorn him. Sometimes, though, he faced more than just laughter; in those moments, he’d show a bit of regret, but half an hour later, you’d usually catch him sneaking back to the box at the back of the cart, quietly taking the food that Delorier had saved for supper. He loved to smoke, but without any tobacco of his own, we supplied him with small bits at a time. At first, we gave him half a pound all at once, but that was a complete failure, as he would always manage to not only lose the tobacco but also the knife we’d given him to cut it, and a few minutes later, he’d come back to us with lots of apologies asking for more.

We had been two days at this camp, and some of the meat was nearly fit for transportation, when a storm came suddenly upon us. About sunset the whole sky grew as black as ink, and the long grass at the river’s edge bent and rose mournfully with the first gusts of the approaching hurricane. Munroe and his two companions brought their guns and placed them under cover of our tent. Having no shelter for themselves, they built a fire of driftwood that might have defied a cataract, and wrapped in their buffalo robes, sat on the ground around it to bide the fury of the storm. Delorier ensconced himself under the cover of the cart. Shaw and I, together with Henry and Tete Rouge, crowded into the little tent; but first of all the dried meat was piled together, and well protected by buffalo robes pinned firmly to the ground. About nine o’clock the storm broke, amid absolute darkness; it blew a gale, and torrents of rain roared over the boundless expanse of open prairie. Our tent was filled with mist and spray beating through the canvas, and saturating everything within. We could only distinguish each other at short intervals by the dazzling flash of lightning, which displayed the whole waste around us with its momentary glare. We had our fears for the tent; but for an hour or two it stood fast, until at length the cap gave way before a furious blast; the pole tore through the top, and in an instant we were half suffocated by the cold and dripping folds of the canvas, which fell down upon us. Seizing upon our guns, we placed them erect, in order to lift the saturated cloth above our heads. In this disagreeable situation, involved among wet blankets and buffalo robes, we spent several hours of the night during which the storm would not abate for a moment, but pelted down above our heads with merciless fury. Before long the ground beneath us became soaked with moisture, and the water gathered there in a pool two or three inches deep; so that for a considerable part of the night we were partially immersed in a cold bath. In spite of all this, Tete Rouge’s flow of spirits did not desert him for an instant, he laughed, whistled, and sung in defiance of the storm, and that night he paid off the long arrears of ridicule which he owed us. While we lay in silence, enduring the infliction with what philosophy we could muster, Tete Rouge, who was intoxicated with animal spirits, was cracking jokes at our expense by the hour together. At about three o’clock in the morning, “preferring the tyranny of the open night” to such a wretched shelter, we crawled out from beneath the fallen canvas. The wind had abated, but the rain fell steadily. The fire of the California men still blazed amid the darkness, and we joined them as they sat around it. We made ready some hot coffee by way of refreshment; but when some of the party sought to replenish their cups, it was found that Tete Rouge, having disposed of his own share, had privately abstracted the coffee-pot and drank up the rest of the contents out of the spout.

We had been at this camp for two days, and some of the meat was almost ready for transport when a storm suddenly hit us. Around sunset, the sky turned pitch black, and the tall grass by the river began to bend and sway sadly with the first gusts of the approaching hurricane. Munroe and his two friends brought their guns and put them under the shelter of our tent. Without any cover for themselves, they built a fire out of driftwood that could have withstood a waterfall, and wrapped in their buffalo robes, they sat on the ground around it to weather the storm. Delorier settled himself under the cover of the cart. Shaw, Henry, Tete Rouge, and I crowded into the small tent; but first, we piled the dried meat together, protecting it well with buffalo robes pinned securely to the ground. Around nine o’clock, the storm hit, plunging us into complete darkness; the wind howled, and torrents of rain hammered down on the vast open prairie. Our tent was filled with mist and spray that forced its way through the canvas, soaking everything inside. We could only see each other briefly by the brilliant flashes of lightning, which illuminated the wasteland around us for a moment. We were worried about the tent; but for an hour or two, it held strong until finally, the top gave way to a fierce gust; the pole tore through, and in an instant, we were half suffocated by the cold, dripping canvas that collapsed on us. Grabbing our guns, we stood them upright to lift the soaked fabric above our heads. In this uncomfortable situation, tangled among wet blankets and buffalo robes, we spent several hours of the night while the storm showed no sign of easing, relentlessly pouring down on us. Soon, the ground beneath us became drenched, forming a pool of water two or three inches deep; so for a significant part of the night, we were partially submerged in a cold bath. Despite the discomfort, Tete Rouge didn’t lose his spirits for a second; he laughed, whistled, and sang defiantly against the storm, and that night he finally got back at us for all the teasing he had put up with. While we lay in silence, trying to endure the misery as best we could, Tete Rouge, full of energy, spent the whole time cracking jokes at our expense. Around three in the morning, “preferring the tyranny of the open night” over such a miserable shelter, we crawled out from under the fallen canvas. The wind had calmed down, but the rain continued to fall steadily. The fire of the California men still burned brightly in the darkness, and we joined them as they sat around it. We prepared some hot coffee for refreshment; however, when some of the group went to refill their cups, they discovered that Tete Rouge, having finished his share, had secretly taken the coffee pot and drained the rest of it right from the spout.

In the morning, to our great joy, an unclouded sun rose upon the prairie. We presented rather a laughable appearance, for the cold and clammy buckskin, saturated with water, clung fast to our limbs; the light wind and warm sunshine soon dried them again, and then we were all incased in armor of intolerable rigidity. Roaming all day over the prairie and shooting two or three bulls, were scarcely enough to restore the stiffened leather to its usual pliancy.

In the morning, to our great joy, a clear sun rose over the prairie. We looked pretty ridiculous, as the cold, damp buckskin soaked with water stuck tightly to our bodies; however, the light wind and warm sunshine quickly dried us out, leaving us all trapped in rigid armor. Spending the day wandering the prairie and shooting two or three bulls barely helped the stiff leather regain its usual flexibility.

Besides Henry Chatillon, Shaw and I were the only hunters in the party. Munroe this morning made an attempt to run a buffalo, but his horse could not come up to the game. Shaw went out with him, and being better mounted soon found himself in the midst of the herd. Seeing nothing but cows and calves around him, he checked his horse. An old bull came galloping on the open prairie at some distance behind, and turning, Shaw rode across his path, leveling his gun as he passed, and shooting him through the shoulder into the heart. The heavy bullets of Shaw’s double-barreled gun made wild work wherever they struck.

Besides Henry Chatillon, Shaw and I were the only hunters in the group. Munroe made an attempt to chase a buffalo this morning, but his horse couldn't keep up with it. Shaw joined him and, being on a better horse, quickly found himself in the middle of the herd. Noticing only cows and calves around him, he slowed down. Suddenly, an old bull came charging across the open prairie a bit behind him, and Shaw turned to ride in front of it, aiming his gun as he passed and shooting it through the shoulder into the heart. The heavy bullets from Shaw’s double-barreled gun caused chaos wherever they hit.

A great flock of buzzards were usually soaring about a few trees that stood on the island just below our camp. Throughout the whole of yesterday we had noticed an eagle among them; to-day he was still there; and Tete Rouge, declaring that he would kill the bird of America, borrowed Delorier’s gun and set out on his unpatriotic mission. As might have been expected, the eagle suffered no great harm at his hands. He soon returned, saying that he could not find him, but had shot a buzzard instead. Being required to produce the bird in proof of his assertion he said he believed he was not quite dead, but he must be hurt, from the swiftness with which he flew off.

A large group of buzzards often circled around a few trees on the island just below our camp. All of yesterday, we had spotted an eagle among them; today, he was still there. Tete Rouge, claiming he would kill the American bird, borrowed Delorier’s gun and set off on his unpatriotic mission. As expected, he failed to harm the eagle. He soon came back, saying he couldn’t find it but had shot a buzzard instead. When asked to show the bird as proof, he said he thought it wasn’t quite dead, but it must have been hurt because of how quickly it flew away.

“If you want,” said Tete Rouge, “I’ll go and get one of his feathers; I knocked off plenty of them when I shot him.”

“If you want,” said Tete Rouge, “I can go and grab one of his feathers; I knocked off a bunch of them when I shot him.”

Just opposite our camp was another island covered with bushes, and behind it was a deep pool of water, while two or three considerable streams course’d over the sand not far off. I was bathing at this place in the afternoon when a white wolf, larger than the largest Newfoundland dog, ran out from behind the point of the island, and galloped leisurely over the sand not half a stone’s throw distant. I could plainly see his red eyes and the bristles about his snout; he was an ugly scoundrel, with a bushy tail, large head, and a most repulsive countenance. Having neither rifle to shoot nor stone to pelt him with, I was looking eagerly after some missile for his benefit, when the report of a gun came from the camp, and the ball threw up the sand just beyond him; at this he gave a slight jump, and stretched away so swiftly that he soon dwindled into a mere speck on the distant sand-beds. The number of carcasses that by this time were lying about the prairie all around us summoned the wolves from every quarter; the spot where Shaw and Henry had hunted together soon became their favorite resort, for here about a dozen dead buffalo were fermenting under the hot sun. I used often to go over the river and watch them at their meal; by lying under the bank it was easy to get a full view of them. Three different kinds were present; there were the white wolves and the gray wolves, both extremely large, and besides these the small prairie wolves, not much bigger than spaniels. They would howl and fight in a crowd around a single carcass, yet they were so watchful, and their senses so acute, that I never was able to crawl within a fair shooting distance; whenever I attempted it, they would all scatter at once and glide silently away through the tall grass. The air above this spot was always full of buzzards or black vultures; whenever the wolves left a carcass they would descend upon it, and cover it so densely that a rifle-bullet shot at random among the gormandizing crowd would generally strike down two or three of them. These birds would now be sailing by scores just about our camp, their broad black wings seeming half transparent as they expanded them against the bright sky. The wolves and the buzzards thickened about us with every hour, and two or three eagles also came into the feast. I killed a bull within rifle-shot of the camp; that night the wolves made a fearful howling close at hand, and in the morning the carcass was completely hollowed out by these voracious feeders.

Just across from our camp was another island covered in bushes, and behind it was a deep pool of water, while two or three sizable streams flowed over the sand nearby. I was bathing there in the afternoon when a white wolf, bigger than the largest Newfoundland dog, ran out from behind the island and trotted leisurely over the sand less than a stone's throw away. I could clearly see his red eyes and the bristles around his snout; he looked like a nasty character, with a bushy tail, a large head, and a really unattractive face. Without a rifle to shoot or a stone to throw at him, I was eagerly searching for something to use against him when a gun went off from the camp, and the bullet kicked up sand just beyond him; at that, he jumped slightly and took off so fast that he quickly became just a tiny dot on the distant sandbanks. The number of carcasses lying around the prairie by that time had attracted wolves from all directions; the spot where Shaw and Henry had hunted together soon turned into their favorite hangout, as about a dozen dead buffalo were rotting under the hot sun. I often crossed the river to watch them eat; by lying under the bank, it was easy to get a good view. Three different kinds of wolves were present; there were the white wolves and the gray wolves, both very large, and in addition, the small prairie wolves, not much bigger than spaniels. They would howl and fight around a single carcass, yet they were so alert and their senses so sharp that I never managed to sneak within a reasonable shooting distance; whenever I tried, they would all scatter at once and slip silently away through the tall grass. The air above that spot was always filled with buzzards or black vultures; whenever the wolves left a carcass, the birds would swoop down and cover it so thickly that a random rifle shot aimed at the feeding crowd would usually take down two or three of them. These birds would be flying in scores around our camp, their broad black wings appearing almost transparent as they stretched them against the bright sky. The wolves and the buzzards gathered around us more with each passing hour, and a couple of eagles also joined the feast. I shot a bull within rifle range of the camp; that night the wolves howled terrifyingly close, and by morning, the carcass was completely picked clean by these greedy feeders.

After we had remained four days at this camp we prepared to leave it. We had for our own part about five hundred pounds of dried meat, and the California men had prepared some three hundred more; this consisted of the fattest and choicest parts of eight or nine cows, a very small quantity only being taken from each, and the rest abandoned to the wolves. The pack animals were laden, the horses were saddled, and the mules harnessed to the cart. Even Tete Rouge was ready at last, and slowly moving from the ground, we resumed our journey eastward. When we had advanced about a mile, Shaw missed a valuable hunting knife and turned back in search of it, thinking that he had left it at the camp. He approached the place cautiously, fearful that Indians might be lurking about, for a deserted camp is dangerous to return to. He saw no enemy, but the scene was a wild and dreary one; the prairie was overshadowed by dull, leaden clouds, for the day was dark and gloomy. The ashes of the fires were still smoking by the river side; the grass around them was trampled down by men and horses, and strewn with all the litter of a camp. Our departure had been a gathering signal to the birds and beasts of prey; Shaw assured me that literally dozens of wolves were prowling about the smoldering fires, while multitudes were roaming over the prairie around; they all fled as he approached, some running over the sand-beds and some over the grassy plains. The vultures in great clouds were soaring overhead, and the dead bull near the camp was completely blackened by the flock that had alighted upon it; they flapped their broad wings, and stretched upward their crested heads and long skinny necks, fearing to remain, yet reluctant to leave their disgusting feast. As he searched about the fires he saw the wolves seated on the distant hills waiting for his departure. Having looked in vain for his knife, he mounted again, and left the wolves and the vultures to banquet freely upon the carrion of the camp.

After we had stayed at this camp for four days, we got ready to leave. We had about five hundred pounds of dried meat, and the California guys had prepared around three hundred more; this included the best and fattiest parts of eight or nine cows, with only a small amount taken from each, while the rest was left for the wolves. The pack animals were loaded up, the horses were saddled, and the mules were hitched to the cart. Even Tete Rouge was finally ready, and as we got moving again, we headed east. After about a mile, Shaw realized he had lost a valuable hunting knife and turned back to look for it, thinking he might have left it at the camp. He approached the spot cautiously, worried that Indians could be lurking nearby since a deserted camp is dangerous to return to. He saw no enemies, but the scene was wild and bleak; the prairie was covered by dull, gray clouds, making the day dark and gloomy. The ashes of the fires were still smoldering by the river, the grass around them trampled down by men and horses, and littered with the remnants of a camp. Our departure seemed to signal the birds and beasts of prey; Shaw told me that literally dozens of wolves were roaming around the smoldering campfires, while many more were scouring the prairie nearby; they all fled as he got closer, some across the sandy areas and others over the grassy plains. Large groups of vultures were flying overhead, and the dead bull near the camp was completely covered by the flock that had settled on it; they flapped their wide wings and lifted their crested heads and long, skinny necks, hesitant to stay but reluctant to give up their disgusting feast. As he searched around the fires, he noticed the wolves sitting on the distant hills, waiting for him to leave. After searching in vain for his knife, he got back on his horse and left the wolves and vultures to feast freely on the remains at the camp.





CHAPTER XXVI

DOWN THE ARKANSAS

In the summer of 1846 the wild and lonely banks of the Upper Arkansas beheld for the first time the passage of an army. General Kearny, on his march to Santa Fe, adopted this route in preference to the old trail of the Cimarron. When we came down the main body of the troops had already passed on; Price’s Missouri regiment, however, was still on the way, having left the frontier much later than the rest; and about this time we began to meet them moving along the trail, one or two companies at a time. No men ever embarked upon a military expedition with a greater love for the work before them than the Missourians; but if discipline and subordination be the criterion of merit, these soldiers were worthless indeed. Yet when their exploits have rung through all America, it would be absurd to deny that they were excellent irregular troops. Their victories were gained in the teeth of every established precedent of warfare; they were owing to a singular combination of military qualities in the men themselves. Without discipline or a spirit of subordination, they knew how to keep their ranks and act as one man. Doniphan’s regiment marched through New Mexico more like a band of free companions than like the paid soldiers of a modern government. When General Taylor complimented Doniphan on his success at Sacramento and elsewhere, the colonel’s reply very well illustrates the relations which subsisted between the officers and men of his command:

In the summer of 1846, the wild and isolated banks of the Upper Arkansas witnessed the passage of an army for the first time. General Kearny chose this route on his way to Santa Fe instead of the old Cimarron trail. By the time we arrived, the main body of troops had already moved on; however, Price’s Missouri regiment was still on its way, having departed from the frontier later than the rest. It was around this time that we started encountering them along the trail, one or two companies at a time. No soldiers ever set out on a military campaign with more enthusiasm for their mission than the Missourians; however, if discipline and obedience are the measures of merit, these soldiers fell short. Yet, when their achievements are celebrated throughout America, it would be ridiculous to deny that they were outstanding irregular troops. Their victories were won in defiance of every conventional military strategy and were due to a unique mix of military skills inherent in the men themselves. Without discipline or a sense of hierarchy, they still managed to maintain their ranks and act together as one. Doniphan’s regiment moved through New Mexico more like a group of free comrades than paid soldiers of a modern government. When General Taylor praised Doniphan for his successes at Sacramento and elsewhere, the colonel's response perfectly illustrated the relationship between the officers and the men in his command:

“I don’t know anything of the maneuvers. The boys kept coming to me, to let them charge; and when I saw a good opportunity, I told them they might go. They were off like a shot, and that’s all I know about it.”

“I don’t know anything about the tactics. The guys kept coming to me, asking to charge; and when I saw a good opportunity, I told them they could go. They took off like a shot, and that’s all I know about it.”

The backwoods lawyer was better fitted to conciliate the good-will than to command the obedience of his men. There were many serving under him, who both from character and education could better have held command than he.

The country lawyer was better at winning the goodwill of his team than at enforcing their obedience. Many who worked under him, due to their character and education, could have led more effectively than he could.

At the battle of Sacramento his frontiersmen fought under every possible disadvantage. The Mexicans had chosen their own position; they were drawn up across the valley that led to their native city of Chihuahua; their whole front was covered by intrenchments and defended by batteries of heavy cannon; they outnumbered the invaders five to one. An eagle flew over the Americans, and a deep murmur rose along their lines. The enemy’s batteries opened; long they remained under fire, but when at length the word was given, they shouted and ran forward. In one of the divisions, when midway to the enemy, a drunken officer ordered a halt; the exasperated men hesitated to obey.

At the battle of Sacramento, his frontiersmen fought under every possible disadvantage. The Mexicans had picked their position; they were lined up across the valley leading to their hometown of Chihuahua; their entire front was fortified and protected by heavy cannons; they outnumbered the attackers five to one. An eagle flew overhead, and a deep murmur spread along the American lines. The enemy's artillery opened fire; they endured the bombardment for a long time, but when the signal was finally given, they shouted and charged forward. In one of the divisions, halfway to the enemy, a drunk officer ordered a stop; the frustrated men hesitated to follow his command.

“Forward, boys!” cried a private from the ranks; and the Americans, rushing like tigers upon the enemy, bounded over the breastwork. Four hundred Mexicans were slain upon the spot and the rest fled, scattering over the plain like sheep. The standards, cannon, and baggage were taken, and among the rest a wagon laden with cords, which the Mexicans, in the fullness of their confidence, had made ready for tying the American prisoners.

“Forward, boys!” shouted a private from the ranks; and the Americans, charging like wildcats at the enemy, leaped over the breastwork. Four hundred Mexicans were killed on the spot, and the rest fled, scattering across the plain like sheep. The flags, cannons, and supplies were captured, including a wagon loaded with ropes that the Mexicans had prepared, feeling overconfident, for tying up the American prisoners.

Doniphan’s volunteers, who gained this victory, passed up with the main army; but Price’s soldiers, whom we now met, were men from the same neighborhood, precisely similar in character, manner, and appearance. One forenoon, as we were descending upon a very wide meadow, where we meant to rest for an hour or two, we saw a dark body of horsemen approaching at a distance. In order to find water, we were obliged to turn aside to the river bank, a full half mile from the trail. Here we put up a kind of awning, and spreading buffalo robes on the ground, Shaw and I sat down to smoke beneath it.

Doniphan’s volunteers, who achieved this victory, joined the main army; but Price’s soldiers, whom we encountered, were local men, very similar in character, demeanor, and appearance. One morning, while we were heading into a wide meadow where we planned to rest for an hour or two, we noticed a group of horsemen approaching from a distance. To find water, we had to veer off to the riverbank, which was a good half mile from the trail. There, we set up a makeshift awning and, laying buffalo robes on the ground, Shaw and I sat down to smoke underneath it.

“We are going to catch it now,” said Shaw; “look at those fellows, there’ll be no peace for us here.”

“We're going to catch it now,” Shaw said. “Look at those guys; there’ll be no peace for us here.”

And in good truth about half the volunteers had straggled away from the line of march, and were riding over the meadow toward us.

And honestly, about half the volunteers had wandered off from the line of march and were riding over the meadow toward us.

“How are you?” said the first who came up, alighting from his horse and throwing himself upon the ground. The rest followed close, and a score of them soon gathered about us, some lying at full length and some sitting on horseback. They all belonged to a company raised in St. Louis. There were some ruffian faces among them, and some haggard with debauchery; but on the whole they were extremely good-looking men, superior beyond measure to the ordinary rank and file of an army. Except that they were booted to the knees, they wore their belts and military trappings over the ordinary dress of citizens. Besides their swords and holster pistols, they carried slung from their saddles the excellent Springfield carbines, loaded at the breech. They inquired the character of our party, and were anxious to know the prospect of killing buffalo, and the chance that their horses would stand the journey to Santa Fe. All this was well enough, but a moment after a worse visitation came upon us.

“How's it going?” asked the first one who approached, jumping off his horse and landing on the ground. The others quickly followed, and soon a group of around twenty gathered around us, some stretched out and some still on horseback. They were all part of a company raised in St. Louis. There were a few rough-looking faces among them, and some showing signs of excess, but overall they were really good-looking men, far above the usual soldiers in an army. Aside from their knee-high boots, they wore their belts and military gear over regular civilian clothes. In addition to their swords and holster pistols, they had excellent Springfield carbines slung from their saddles, loaded from the back. They asked about our group and were curious about the chances of hunting buffalo, as well as whether their horses could handle the trip to Santa Fe. All of that was fine, but shortly after, we were hit with a worse situation.

“How are you, strangers? whar are you going and whar are you from?” said a fellow, who came trotting up with an old straw hat on his head. He was dressed in the coarsest brown homespun cloth. His face was rather sallow from fever-and-ague, and his tall figure, though strong and sinewy was quite thin, and had besides an angular look, which, together with his boorish seat on horseback, gave him an appearance anything but graceful. Plenty more of the same stamp were close behind him. Their company was raised in one of the frontier counties, and we soon had abundant evidence of their rustic breeding; dozens of them came crowding round, pushing between our first visitors and staring at us with unabashed faces.

“How are you doing, strangers? Where are you going and where are you from?” said a guy who trotted up wearing an old straw hat. He was dressed in the coarsest brown homespun fabric. His face looked a bit sickly from fever and chills, and his tall figure, although strong and muscular, was quite thin, giving him an angular look. This, combined with his awkward posture on the horse, made him appear anything but graceful. There were plenty more like him right behind. They were from one of the frontier counties, and it quickly became clear that they had a rural background; dozens of them crowded around, pushing in between our initial visitors and staring at us with unabashed expressions.

“Are you the captain?” asked one fellow.

“Are you the captain?” one guy asked.

“What’s your business out here?” asked another.

“What are you doing out here?” asked another.

“Whar do you live when you’re at home?” said a third.

"Where do you live when you're at home?" asked a third.

“I reckon you’re traders,” surmised a fourth; and to crown the whole, one of them came confidentially to my side and inquired in a low voice, “What’s your partner’s name?”

“I guess you’re traders,” guessed a fourth; and to top it all off, one of them leaned over to me and quietly asked, “What’s your partner’s name?”

As each newcomer repeated the same questions, the nuisance became intolerable. Our military visitors were soon disgusted at the concise nature of our replies, and we could overhear them muttering curses against us. While we sat smoking, not in the best imaginable humor, Tete Rouge’s tongue was never idle. He never forgot his military character, and during the whole interview he was incessantly busy among his fellow-soldiers. At length we placed him on the ground before us, and told him that he might play the part of spokesman for the whole. Tete Rouge was delighted, and we soon had the satisfaction of seeing him talk and gabble at such a rate that the torrent of questions was in a great measure diverted from us. A little while after, to our amazement, we saw a large cannon with four horses come lumbering up behind the crowd; and the driver, who was perched on one of the animals, stretching his neck so as to look over the rest of the men, called out:

As each newcomer asked the same questions, it became unbearable. Our military guests quickly grew frustrated with our brief answers, and we could hear them muttering curses about us. While we sat smoking, not in the best mood, Tete Rouge never stopped talking. He never forgot he was in the military, and throughout the entire meeting, he was constantly engaged with his fellow soldiers. Eventually, we had him sit on the ground in front of us and told him he could act as the spokesperson for everyone. Tete Rouge was thrilled, and soon we were pleased to see him chatting away so much that the flood of questions was largely directed away from us. A little while later, to our surprise, we spotted a large cannon being pulled by four horses making its way up behind the crowd; the driver, who was sitting on one of the horses and craning his neck to see over the rest of the men, shouted out:

“Whar are you from, and what’s your business?”

“Where are you from, and what do you do?”

The captain of one of the companies was among our visitors, drawn by the same curiosity that had attracted his men. Unless their faces belied them, not a few in the crowd might with great advantage have changed places with their commander.

The captain of one of the companies was among our visitors, attracted by the same curiosity that drew his men. If their faces were anything to go by, quite a few people in the crowd could have easily swapped places with their commander.

“Well, men,” said he, lazily rising from the ground where he had been lounging, “it’s getting late, I reckon we had better be moving.”

"Well, guys," he said, lazily getting up from the ground where he had been lounging, "it's getting late, so I think we should get going."

“I shan’t start yet anyhow,” said one fellow, who was lying half asleep with his head resting on his arm.

“I won’t start yet anyway,” said one guy, who was lying half asleep with his head resting on his arm.

“Don’t be in a hurry, captain,” added the lieutenant.

“Don’t rush, captain,” the lieutenant added.

“Well, have it your own way, we’ll wait a while longer,” replied the obsequious commander.

"Well, do it your way; we'll wait a little longer," replied the overly eager commander.

At length however our visitors went straggling away as they had come, and we, to our great relief, were left alone again.

At last, our guests drifted away just like they had arrived, and we, feeling a huge sense of relief, were alone once more.

No one can deny the intrepid bravery of these men, their intelligence and the bold frankness of their character, free from all that is mean and sordid. Yet for the moment the extreme roughness of their manners half inclines one to forget their heroic qualities. Most of them seem without the least perception of delicacy or propriety, though among them individuals may be found in whose manners there is a plain courtesy, while their features bespeak a gallant spirit equal to any enterprise.

No one can deny the fearless bravery of these men, their intelligence, and the straightforward honesty of their character, free from anything petty or dishonorable. However, their rough manners can make it easy to overlook their heroic qualities. Most of them seem completely unaware of delicacy or propriety, although there are individuals among them whose manners show clear courtesy, and their features reveal a courageous spirit ready for any challenge.

No one was more relieved than Delorier by the departure of the volunteers; for dinner was getting colder every moment. He spread a well-whitened buffalo hide upon the grass, placed in the middle the juicy hump of a fat cow, ranged around it the tin plates and cups, and then acquainted us that all was ready. Tete Rouge, with his usual alacrity on such occasions, was the first to take his seat. In his former capacity of steamboat clerk, he had learned to prefix the honorary MISTER to everybody’s name, whether of high or low degree; so Jim Gurney was Mr. Gurney, Henry was Mr. Henry, and even Delorier, for the first time in his life, heard himself addressed as Mr. Delorier. This did not prevent his conceiving a violent enmity against Tete Rouge, who, in his futile though praiseworthy attempts to make himself useful used always to intermeddle with cooking the dinners. Delorier’s disposition knew no medium between smiles and sunshine and a downright tornado of wrath; he said nothing to Tete Rouge, but his wrongs rankled in his breast. Tete Rouge had taken his place at dinner; it was his happiest moment; he sat enveloped in the old buffalo coat, sleeves turned up in preparation for the work, and his short legs crossed on the grass before him; he had a cup of coffee by his side and his knife ready in his hand and while he looked upon the fat hump ribs, his eyes dilated with anticipation. Delorier sat just opposite to him, and the rest of us by this time had taken our seats.

No one was more relieved than Delorier when the volunteers left; dinner was getting colder by the second. He spread a nicely cleaned buffalo hide on the grass, placed the juicy hump of a fat cow in the center, arranged the tin plates and cups around it, and then let us know that everything was ready. Tete Rouge, always eager in these situations, was the first to take his seat. Having previously worked as a steamboat clerk, he had learned to add the honorary MISTER to everyone’s name, no matter their status; so Jim Gurney became Mr. Gurney, Henry was Mr. Henry, and even Delorier, for the first time in his life, heard himself called Mr. Delorier. This didn’t stop him from developing a strong dislike for Tete Rouge, who, in his well-meaning but annoying attempts to be helpful, always interfered with cooking the dinners. Delorier's mood swung from smiles and sunshine to an outright storm of anger; he said nothing to Tete Rouge, but his grievances festered inside him. Tete Rouge had settled down for dinner; it was his favorite moment. He was wrapped up in the old buffalo coat, sleeves rolled up and ready for action, with his short legs crossed on the grass in front of him. He had a cup of coffee beside him and his knife ready in his hand, his eyes widening with anticipation as he gazed at the fat hump ribs. Delorier sat directly across from him, and by this time the rest of us had found our seats.

“How is this, Delorier? You haven’t given us bread enough.”

“How is this, Delorier? You haven’t given us enough bread.”

At this Delorier’s placid face flew instantly into a paroxysm of contortions. He grinned with wrath, chattered, gesticulated, and hurled forth a volley of incoherent words in broken English at the astonished Tete Rouge. It was just possible to make out that he was accusing him of having stolen and eaten four large cakes which had been laid by for dinner. Tete Rouge, utterly confounded at this sudden attack, stared at Delorier for a moment in dumb amazement, with mouth and eyes wide open. At last he found speech, and protested that the accusation was false; and that he could not conceive how he had offended Mr. Delorier, or provoked him to use such ungentlemanly expressions. The tempest of words raged with such fury that nothing else could be heard. But Tete Rouge, from his greater command of English, had a manifest advantage over Delorier, who after sputtering and grimacing for a while, found his words quite inadequate to the expression of his wrath. He jumped up and vanished, jerking out between his teeth one furious sacre enfant de grace, a Canadian title of honor, made doubly emphatic by being usually applied together with a cut of the whip to refractory mules and horses.

At that, Delorier’s calm face immediately twisted into a fit of rage. He grinned angrily, jabbered, waved his arms around, and threw a bunch of jumbled words in broken English at the stunned Tete Rouge. It was possible to catch that he was accusing him of stealing and eating four large cakes that had been set aside for dinner. Tete Rouge, completely taken aback by this sudden attack, stared at Delorier in silent shock, his mouth and eyes wide open. Finally, he managed to speak and protested that the accusation was untrue, saying he couldn't understand how he had offended Mr. Delorier or caused him to use such rude language. The storm of words raged on so fiercely that nothing else could be heard. However, Tete Rouge, with his better grasp of English, clearly had the upper hand over Delorier, who, after sputtering and grimacing for a bit, found his words inadequate to express his anger. He jumped up and stormed off, muttering a furious sacre enfant de grace, a Canadian honorific typically used for misbehaving mules and horses, which only emphasized his frustration.

The next morning we saw an old buffalo escorting his cow with two small calves over the prairie. Close behind came four or five large white wolves, sneaking stealthily through the long meadow-grass, and watching for the moment when one of the children should chance to lag behind his parents. The old bull kept well on his guard, and faced about now and then to keep the prowling ruffians at a distance.

The next morning, we saw an old buffalo leading his cow and their two small calves across the prairie. Right behind them were four or five large white wolves, sneaking quietly through the tall grass and waiting for the moment when one of the calves might fall behind their parents. The old bull stayed alert, turning around from time to time to keep the lurking predators at bay.

As we approached our nooning place, we saw five or six buffalo standing at the very summit of a tall bluff. Trotting forward to the spot where we meant to stop, I flung off my saddle and turned my horse loose. By making a circuit under cover of some rising ground, I reached the foot of the bluff unnoticed, and climbed up its steep side. Lying under the brow of the declivity, I prepared to fire at the buffalo, who stood on the flat surface about not five yards distant. Perhaps I was too hasty, for the gleaming rifle-barrel leveled over the edge caught their notice; they turned and ran. Close as they were, it was impossible to kill them when in that position, and stepping upon the summit I pursued them over the high arid tableland. It was extremely rugged and broken; a great sandy ravine was channeled through it, with smaller ravines entering on each side like tributary streams. The buffalo scattered, and I soon lost sight of most of them as they scuttled away through the sandy chasms; a bull and a cow alone kept in view. For a while they ran along the edge of the great ravine, appearing and disappearing as they dived into some chasm and again emerged from it. At last they stretched out upon the broad prairie, a plain nearly flat and almost devoid of verdure, for every short grass-blade was dried and shriveled by the glaring sun. Now and then the old bull would face toward me; whenever he did so I fell to the ground and lay motionless. In this manner I chased them for about two miles, until at length I heard in front a deep hoarse bellowing. A moment after a band of about a hundred bulls, before hidden by a slight swell of the plain, came at once into view. The fugitives ran toward them. Instead of mingling with the band, as I expected, they passed directly through, and continued their flight. At this I gave up the chase, and kneeling down, crawled to within gunshot of the bulls, and with panting breath and trickling brow sat down on the ground to watch them; my presence did not disturb them in the least. They were not feeding, for, indeed, there was nothing to eat; but they seemed to have chosen the parched and scorching desert as the scene of their amusements. Some were rolling on the ground amid a cloud of dust; others, with a hoarse rumbling bellow, were butting their large heads together, while many stood motionless, as if quite inanimate. Except their monstrous growth of tangled grizzly mane, they had no hair; for their old coat had fallen off in the spring, and their new one had not as yet appeared. Sometimes an old bull would step forward, and gaze at me with a grim and stupid countenance; then he would turn and butt his next neighbor; then he would lie down and roll over in the dirt, kicking his hoofs in the air. When satisfied with this amusement he would jerk his head and shoulders upward, and resting on his forelegs stare at me in this position, half blinded by his mane, and his face covered with dirt; then up he would spring upon all-fours, and shake his dusty sides; turning half round, he would stand with his beard touching the ground, in an attitude of profound abstraction, as if reflecting on his puerile conduct. “You are too ugly to live,” thought I; and aiming at the ugliest, I shot three of them in succession. The rest were not at all discomposed at this; they kept on bellowing and butting and rolling on the ground as before. Henry Chatillon always cautioned us to keep perfectly quiet in the presence of a wounded buffalo, for any movement is apt to excite him to make an attack; so I sat still upon the ground, loading and firing with as little motion as possible. While I was thus employed, a spectator made his appearance; a little antelope came running up with remarkable gentleness to within fifty yards; and there it stood, its slender neck arched, its small horns thrown back, and its large dark eyes gazing on me with a look of eager curiosity. By the side of the shaggy and brutish monsters before me, it seemed like some lovely young girl wandering near a den of robbers or a nest of bearded pirates. The buffalo looked uglier than ever. “Here goes for another of you,” thought I, feeling in my pouch for a percussion cap. Not a percussion cap was there. My good rifle was useless as an old iron bar. One of the wounded bulls had not yet fallen, and I waited for some time, hoping every moment that his strength would fail him. He still stood firm, looking grimly at me, and disregarding Henry’s advice I rose and walked away. Many of the bulls turned and looked at me, but the wounded brute made no attack. I soon came upon a deep ravine which would give me shelter in case of emergency; so I turned round and threw a stone at the bulls. They received it with the utmost indifference. Feeling myself insulted at their refusal to be frightened, I swung my hat, shouted, and made a show of running toward them; at this they crowded together and galloped off, leaving their dead and wounded upon the field. As I moved toward the camp I saw the last survivor totter and fall dead. My speed in returning was wonderfully quickened by the reflection that the Pawnees were abroad, and that I was defenseless in case of meeting with an enemy. I saw no living thing, however, except two or three squalid old bulls scrambling among the sand-hills that flanked the great ravine. When I reached camp the party was nearly ready for the afternoon move.

As we got closer to our lunchtime stop, we spotted five or six buffalo standing at the top of a tall bluff. I trotted ahead to the place where we intended to stop, tossed off my saddle, and let my horse go free. I made a detour behind some rising ground, reached the base of the bluff without being seen, and climbed its steep side. Lying down at the edge, I got ready to shoot at the buffalo, who were located on a flat area less than five yards away. Maybe I was too eager, because the glint of my rifle barrel over the edge caught their attention; they turned and ran. Even though they were so close, it was impossible to hit them from that position, so I went up to the top and chased them across the dry, high tableland. The terrain was really rocky; a large sandy ravine cut through it, with smaller ravines branching off like tributary streams. The buffalo scattered, and I quickly lost sight of most of them as they darted away through the sandy gaps; only a bull and a cow remained in sight. For a while, they ran along the edge of the big ravine, appearing and disappearing as they plunged into one gap and then re-emerged. Eventually, they stretched out over the wide prairie, a nearly flat expanse almost devoid of greenery, as every blade of short grass was dried and shriveled from the blazing sun. Occasionally, the old bull would face me; whenever he did, I dropped to the ground and lay still. I chased them this way for about two miles, until I finally heard a deep, hoarse bellowing ahead. Moments later, a group of around a hundred bulls, hidden until then by a slight rise in the land, burst into view. The fleeing buffalo ran toward them. Instead of mingling with the group as I expected, they went straight through and kept running. At this point, I gave up the chase, knelt down, crawled within gunshot distance of the bulls, and out of breath and sweating, sat down to observe them; they didn’t seem bothered by my presence at all. They weren’t feeding since there was nothing to eat, but they appeared to have picked the parched desert as their playground. Some rolled around in the dust; others, bellowing hoarsely, were butting their massive heads against each other, while many just stood still as if lifeless. Except for their huge tangled manes, they had no hair, as their old coats had shed in the spring and their new ones hadn’t come in yet. Sometimes an old bull would step forward, staring at me with a grim and vacant expression; then he’d turn and butt his neighbor; then he’d lie down and roll around in the dirt, kicking his legs in the air. Once satisfied with this fun, he’d jerk his head and shoulders back, resting on his front legs, staring at me with half-closed eyes, his face covered in dirt. Then he’d jump up, shake off the dust, and stand with his beard touching the ground, as if deep in thought about his silly behavior. “You’re too ugly to live,” I thought, and picked the ugliest one to shoot three times in a row. The others weren’t fazed at all; they kept bellowing and butting heads and rolling on the ground just as before. Henry Chatillon always warned us to stay perfectly still around a wounded buffalo, as any movement could provoke an attack; so I remained seated on the ground, loading and firing with minimal motion. While I was busy, a little antelope appeared, running gently toward me within fifty yards; it stood there with its slender neck arched, its small horns tucked back, and its large dark eyes focused on me with eager curiosity. Next to the shaggy, brutish buffalo, it looked like a lovely young girl wandering near a den of robbers or a nest of bearded pirates. The buffalo appeared uglier than ever. “Here goes for another one of you,” I thought, reaching into my pouch for a percussion cap. There were no percussion caps. My good rifle was as useful as an old iron bar. One of the wounded bulls hadn’t fallen yet, so I waited for a while, hoping he would eventually weaken. He remained standing, glaring at me, and despite Henry’s advice, I got up and walked away. Many of the bulls turned to look at me, but the injured one didn’t attack. I soon discovered a deep ravine that would give me cover in an emergency; so I turned back and threw a stone at the bulls. They ignored it completely. Feeling insulted by their indifference, I waved my hat, shouted, and pretended to run toward them; they huddled together and galloped off, leaving their dead and wounded behind. As I made my way back to camp, I saw the last survivor stumble and collapse. The thought that the Pawnees were around and that I was defenseless if I ran into an enemy made me hurry back. However, I didn’t see anything else living, except a few scraggly old bulls scrambling among the sandhills bordering the big ravine. When I finally reached camp, the group was nearly set for the afternoon move.

We encamped that evening at a short distance from the river bank. About midnight, as we all lay asleep on the ground, the man nearest to me gently reaching out his hand, touched my shoulder, and cautioned me at the same time not to move. It was bright starlight. Opening my eyes and slightly turning I saw a large white wolf moving stealthily around the embers of our fire, with his nose close to the ground. Disengaging my hand from the blanket, I drew the cover from my rifle, which lay close at my side; the motion alarmed the wolf, and with long leaps he bounded out of the camp. Jumping up, I fired after him when he was about thirty yards distant; the melancholy hum of the bullet sounded far away through the night. At the sharp report, so suddenly breaking upon the stillness, all the men sprang up.

We set up camp that evening not far from the riverbank. Around midnight, while we were all asleep on the ground, the guy next to me gently touched my shoulder and whispered for me not to move. The stars were bright. When I opened my eyes and turned slightly, I saw a big white wolf creeping around the ashes of our fire, sniffing the ground. I pulled my hand out from under the blanket and uncovered my rifle, which was right beside me; the movement startled the wolf, and he quickly jumped out of the camp. I jumped up and fired at him when he was about thirty yards away; the bullet's melancholy whine echoed into the night. At the loud bang that suddenly broke the silence, all the men jumped up.

“You’ve killed him,” said one of them.

“You’ve killed him,” one of them said.

“No, I haven’t,” said I; “there he goes, running along the river.

“No, I haven’t,” I said; “there he goes, running along the river.

“Then there’s two of them. Don’t you see that one lying out yonder?”

“Then there are two of them. Don’t you see the one lying over there?”

We went to it, and instead of a dead white wolf found the bleached skull of a buffalo. I had missed my mark, and what was worse, had grossly violated a standing law of the prairie. When in a dangerous part of the country, it is considered highly imprudent to fire a gun after encamping, lest the report should reach the ears of the Indians.

We went to it, and instead of a dead white wolf, we found the bleached skull of a buffalo. I had missed my target, and even worse, I had seriously broken an important rule of the prairie. In dangerous areas, it’s very unwise to fire a gun after setting up camp, since the sound could reach the Indians.

The horses were saddled in the morning, and the last man had lighted his pipe at the dying ashes of the fire. The beauty of the day enlivened us all. Even Ellis felt its influence, and occasionally made a remark as we rode along, and Jim Gurney told endless stories of his cruisings in the United States service. The buffalo were abundant, and at length a large band of them went running up the hills on the left.

The horses were saddled in the morning, and the last guy had lit his pipe with the dying embers of the fire. The beauty of the day lifted everyone's spirits. Even Ellis felt its impact and occasionally chimed in as we rode along, while Jim Gurney shared endless stories about his time in the United States service. The buffalo were everywhere, and eventually, a large herd of them ran up the hills on the left.

“Do you see them buffalo?” said Ellis, “now I’ll bet any man I’ll go and kill one with my yager.”

“Do you see those buffalo?” said Ellis, “now I’ll bet anyone that I’ll go and kill one with my rifle.”

And leaving his horse to follow on with the party, he strode up the hill after them. Henry looked at us with his peculiar humorous expression, and proposed that we should follow Ellis to see how he would kill a fat cow. As soon as he was out of sight we rode up the hill after him, and waited behind a little ridge till we heard the report of the unfailing yager. Mounting to the top, we saw Ellis clutching his favorite weapon with both hands, and staring after the buffalo, who one and all were galloping off at full speed. As we descended the hill we saw the party straggling along the trail below. When we joined them, another scene of amateur hunting awaited us. I forgot to say that when we met the volunteers Tete Rouge had obtained a horse from one of them, in exchange for his mule, whom he feared and detested. The horse he christened James. James, though not worth so much as the mule, was a large and strong animal. Tete Rouge was very proud of his new acquisition, and suddenly became ambitious to run a buffalo with him. At his request, I lent him my pistols, though not without great misgivings, since when Tete Rouge hunted buffalo the pursuer was in more danger than the pursued. He hung the holsters at his saddle bow; and now, as we passed along, a band of bulls left their grazing in the meadow and galloped in a long file across the trail in front.

And leaving his horse to follow along with the group, he strode up the hill after them. Henry looked at us with his typical humorous expression and suggested that we should follow Ellis to see how he would take down a fat cow. As soon as he was out of sight, we rode up the hill after him and waited behind a small ridge until we heard the loud bang of the reliable rifle. Climbing to the top, we saw Ellis gripping his favorite weapon with both hands and staring after the buffalo, which were all bolting away at full speed. As we went down the hill, we noticed the group trailing along the path below. When we joined them, another scene of amateur hunting awaited us. I forgot to mention that when we met the volunteers, Tete Rouge had traded his mule, whom he feared and disliked, for a horse from one of them. He named the horse James. James, while not worth nearly as much as the mule, was a large and strong animal. Tete Rouge was very proud of his new acquisition and suddenly wanted to chase a buffalo with him. At his request, I lent him my pistols, even though I was quite worried, since when Tete Rouge went after buffalo, the hunter was often in more danger than the hunted. He attached the holsters to his saddle; and now, as we passed by, a group of bulls left their grazing in the meadow and raced in a long line across the trail in front of us.

“Now’s your chance, Tete; come, let’s see you kill a bull.” Thus urged, the hunter cried, “Get up!” and James, obedient to the signal, cantered deliberately forward at an abominably uneasy gait. Tete Rouge, as we contemplated him from behind; made a most remarkable figure. He still wore the old buffalo coat; his blanket, which was tied in a loose bundle behind his saddle, went jolting from one side to the other, and a large tin canteen half full of water, which hung from his pommel, was jerked about his leg in a manner which greatly embarrassed him.

“Now’s your chance, Tete; come on, let’s see you take down a bull.” Urged on like that, the hunter shouted, “Get up!” and James, responding to the signal, moved forward at a very awkward pace. From our viewpoint behind him, Tete Rouge presented a striking appearance. He still wore the old buffalo coat; his blanket, which was loosely tied in a bundle behind his saddle, swung back and forth, and a large tin canteen half full of water, hanging from his pommel, bounced against his leg in a way that clearly made him uncomfortable.

“Let out your horse, man; lay on your whip!” we called out to him. The buffalo were getting farther off at every instant. James, being ambitious to mend his pace, tugged hard at the rein, and one of his rider’s boots escaped from the stirrup.

“Let your horse go, man; give it some gas!” we shouted at him. The buffalo were getting farther away with every moment. James, eager to pick up speed, pulled hard on the reins, and one of his riding boots slipped out of the stirrup.

“Woa! I say, woa!” cried Tete Rouge, in great perturbation, and after much effort James’ progress was arrested. The hunter came trotting back to the party, disgusted with buffalo running, and he was received with overwhelming congratulations.

“Whoa! I say, whoa!” shouted Tete Rouge, very upset, and after a lot of struggle, James' progress was stopped. The hunter trotted back to the group, fed up with chasing buffalo, and he was met with enthusiastic cheers.

“Too good a chance to lose,” said Shaw, pointing to another band of bulls on the left. We lashed our horses and galloped upon them. Shaw killed one with each barrel of his gun. I separated another from the herd and shot him. The small bullet of the rifled pistol, striking too far back, did not immediately take effect, and the bull ran on with unabated speed. Again and again I snapped the remaining pistol at him. I primed it afresh three or four times, and each time it missed fire, for the touch-hole was clogged up. Returning it to the holster, I began to load the empty pistol, still galloping by the side of the bull. By this time he was grown desperate. The foam flew from his jaws and his tongue lolled out. Before the pistol was loaded he sprang upon me, and followed up his attack with a furious rush. The only alternative was to run away or be killed. I took to flight, and the bull, bristling with fury, pursued me closely. The pistol was soon ready, and then looking back, I saw his head five or six yards behind my horse’s tail. To fire at it would be useless, for a bullet flattens against the adamantine skull of a buffalo bull. Inclining my body to the left, I turned my horse in that direction as sharply as his speed would permit. The bull, rushing blindly on with great force and weight, did not turn so quickly. As I looked back, his neck and shoulders were exposed to view; turning in the saddle, I shot a bullet through them obliquely into his vitals. He gave over the chase and soon fell to the ground. An English tourist represents a situation like this as one of imminent danger; this is a great mistake; the bull never pursues long, and the horse must be wretched indeed that cannot keep out of his way for two or three minutes.

“Too good a chance to lose,” Shaw said, pointing to another group of bulls on the left. We spurred our horses and galloped toward them. Shaw shot one with each barrel of his gun. I isolated another from the herd and shot him. The small bullet from my pistol hit too far back, so it didn’t take effect right away, and the bull kept running. I kept snapping the remaining pistol at him. I reloaded it three or four times, but it wouldn’t fire because the touch-hole was clogged. I put it back in the holster and started loading the empty pistol while still galloping next to the bull. By then, he was desperate. Foam flew from his mouth, and his tongue hung out. Before I could finish loading, he lunged at me and charged furiously. My only option was to run or be killed. I took off, and the bull, filled with rage, chased me closely. The pistol was ready soon, and when I looked back, I saw his head just five or six yards behind my horse’s tail. Shooting at it would be pointless because a bullet would just bounce off a buffalo's thick skull. Leaning to the left, I sharply turned my horse in that direction as fast as I could. The bull, charging forward with a lot of force and weight, didn’t turn as quickly. When I glanced back, his neck and shoulders became visible; I turned in the saddle and shot a bullet through them at an angle into his vital organs. He stopped chasing me and soon collapsed. An English tourist might think this situation is extremely dangerous, but that’s a big mistake; the bull doesn’t chase for long, and any horse that can’t stay out of his way for two or three minutes must be in terrible shape.

We were now come to a part of the country where we were bound in common prudence to use every possible precaution. We mounted guard at night, each man standing in his turn; and no one ever slept without drawing his rifle close to his side or folding it with him in his blanket. One morning our vigilance was stimulated by our finding traces of a large Comanche encampment. Fortunately for us, however, it had been abandoned nearly a week. On the next evening we found the ashes of a recent fire, which gave us at the time some uneasiness. At length we reached the Caches, a place of dangerous repute; and it had a most dangerous appearance, consisting of sand-hills everywhere broken by ravines and deep chasms. Here we found the grave of Swan, killed at this place, probably by the Pawnees, two or three weeks before. His remains, more than once violated by the Indians and the wolves, were suffered at length to remain undisturbed in their wild burial place.

We had now arrived at a part of the country where we had to be extra cautious. We took turns keeping watch at night, and nobody ever slept without keeping their rifle close or wrapped up in their blanket with them. One morning, our alertness was heightened when we discovered signs of a large Comanche camp. Luckily for us, it had been abandoned for almost a week. The next evening, we found the ashes of a recent fire, which made us uneasy at the time. Eventually, we reached the Caches, an area known for its dangers, and it looked quite treacherous, with sandhills scattered everywhere, broken up by ravines and deep gaps. Here, we found the grave of Swan, who had been killed here, likely by the Pawnees, a couple of weeks earlier. His remains, disturbed multiple times by the Indians and wolves, were finally left undisturbed in their wild burial site.

For several days we met detached companies of Price’s regiment. Horses would often break loose at night from their camps. One afternoon we picked up three of these stragglers quietly grazing along the river. After we came to camp that evening, Jim Gurney brought news that more of them were in sight. It was nearly dark, and a cold, drizzling rain had set in; but we all turned out, and after an hour’s chase nine horses were caught and brought in. One of them was equipped with saddle and bridle; pistols were hanging at the pommel of the saddle, a carbine was slung at its side, and a blanket rolled up behind it. In the morning, glorying in our valuable prize, we resumed our journey, and our cavalcade presented a much more imposing appearance than ever before. We kept on till the afternoon, when, far behind, three horsemen appeared on the horizon. Coming on at a hand-gallop, they soon overtook us, and claimed all the horses as belonging to themselves and others of their company. They were of course given up, very much to the mortification of Ellis and Jim Gurney.

For several days, we encountered separate groups from Price's regiment. Horses would often break loose at night from their camps. One afternoon, we found three of these stragglers quietly grazing by the river. After we got back to camp that evening, Jim Gurney brought news that more of them were in sight. It was almost dark, and a cold, drizzly rain had started; but we all got ready, and after an hour of chasing, we caught nine horses and brought them in. One of them was saddled and bridled; pistols hung at the pommel, a carbine was slung at its side, and a rolled-up blanket was behind it. In the morning, proudly showing off our valuable prize, we continued our journey, and our group looked much more impressive than ever before. We kept going until the afternoon when, far behind us, three horsemen appeared on the horizon. Coming at a fast gallop, they soon caught up to us and claimed all the horses as theirs and those of their company. They were, of course, surrendered, much to Ellis and Jim Gurney's dismay.

Our own horses now showed signs of fatigue, and we resolved to give them half a day’s rest. We stopped at noon at a grassy spot by the river. After dinner Shaw and Henry went out to hunt; and while the men lounged about the camp, I lay down to read in the shadow of the cart. Looking up, I saw a bull grazing alone on the prairie more than a mile distant. I was tired of reading, and taking my rifle I walked toward him. As I came near, I crawled upon the ground until I approached to within a hundred yards; here I sat down upon the grass and waited till he should turn himself into a proper position to receive his death-wound. He was a grim old veteran. His loves and his battles were over for that season, and now, gaunt and war-worn, he had withdrawn from the herd to graze by himself and recruit his exhausted strength. He was miserably emaciated; his mane was all in tatters; his hide was bare and rough as an elephant’s, and covered with dried patches of the mud in which he had been wallowing. He showed all his ribs whenever he moved. He looked like some grizzly old ruffian grown gray in blood and violence, and scowling on all the world from his misanthropic seclusion. The old savage looked up when I first approached, and gave me a fierce stare; then he fell to grazing again with an air of contemptuous indifference. The moment after, as if suddenly recollecting himself, he threw up his head, faced quickly about, and to my amazement came at a rapid trot directly toward me. I was strongly impelled to get up and run, but this would have been very dangerous. Sitting quite still I aimed, as he came on, at the thin part of the skull above the nose. After he had passed over about three-quarters of the distance between us, I was on the point of firing, when, to my great satisfaction, he stopped short. I had full opportunity of studying his countenance; his whole front was covered with a huge mass of coarse matted hair, which hung so low that nothing but his two forefeet were visible beneath it; his short thick horns were blunted and split to the very roots in his various battles, and across his nose and forehead were two or three large white scars, which gave him a grim and at the same time a whimsical appearance. It seemed to me that he stood there motionless for a full quarter of an hour, looking at me through the tangled locks of his mane. For my part, I remained as quiet as he, and looked quite as hard; I felt greatly inclined to come to term with him. “My friend,” thought I, “if you’ll let me off, I’ll let you off.” At length he seemed to have abandoned any hostile design. Very slowly and deliberately he began to turn about; little by little his side came into view, all be-plastered with mud. It was a tempting sight. I forgot my prudent intentions, and fired my rifle; a pistol would have served at that distance. Round spun old bull like a top, and away he galloped over the prairie. He ran some distance, and even ascended a considerable hill, before he lay down and died. After shooting another bull among the hills, I went back to camp.

Our horses were starting to show signs of tiredness, so we decided to give them a half day’s rest. We stopped at noon at a grassy spot by the river. After lunch, Shaw and Henry went out hunting; while the men hung out around the camp, I lay down to read in the shade of the cart. Looking up, I spotted a bull grazing alone on the prairie over a mile away. I was tired of reading, so I grabbed my rifle and walked toward him. As I got closer, I crawled through the grass until I was about a hundred yards away. I sat down in the grass and waited for him to turn in a better position to take my shot. He was a tough old veteran. His romantic escapades and battles were over for the season, and now, gaunt and worn from fight, he had separated from the herd to graze by himself and regain his strength. He was painfully thin; his mane was in shambles; his hide was bare and rough like an elephant’s, covered in dried mud from wallowing. You could see his ribs move with every step. He looked like a grizzled old thug, worn out from violence, glaring at the world from his lonely spot. The old bull noticed me when I first approached and gave me a fierce look; then he went back to grazing with an air of contempt. A moment later, as if he remembered my presence, he lifted his head, turned around quickly, and to my surprise, trotted directly toward me. I felt a strong urge to get up and run, but that would have been very risky. Staying perfectly still, I aimed for the thin part of his skull above the nose. After he closed about three-quarters of the distance between us, I was about to fire when, much to my relief, he stopped suddenly. This gave me plenty of time to study his face; his entire front was covered with thick, tangled hair that hung so low that only his two front feet were visible beneath it. His short, thick horns were worn and split from various battles, and he had a few large white scars across his nose and forehead, giving him a tough yet quirky look. It felt like he stood there silent for a full fifteen minutes, staring at me through his mane. I stayed as still as he was, staring just as intently; I felt a strange urge to negotiate with him. “My friend,” I thought, “if you let me go, I’ll let you go.” Eventually, he seemed to give up any hostile intentions. Very slowly and deliberately, he began to turn around; little by little, his side came into view, caked with mud. It was an enticing sight. I forgot my cautious thoughts and fired my rifle; a pistol would have sufficed at that range. The old bull spun around like a top and galloped away across the prairie. He ran quite a distance and even climbed a steep hillside before he finally lay down and died. After shooting another bull among the hills, I headed back to camp.

At noon, on the 14th of September, a very large Santa Fe caravan came up. The plain was covered with the long files of their white-topped wagons, the close black carriages in which the traders travel and sleep, large droves of animals, and men on horseback and on foot. They all stopped on the meadow near us. Our diminutive cart and handful of men made but an insignificant figure by the side of their wide and bustling camp. Tete Rouge went over to visit them, and soon came back with half a dozen biscuits in one hand and a bottle of brandy in the other. I inquired where he got them. “Oh,” said Tete Rouge, “I know some of the traders. Dr. Dobbs is there besides.” I asked who Dr. Dobbs might be. “One of our St. Louis doctors,” replied Tete Rouge. For two days past I had been severely attacked by the same disorder which had so greatly reduced my strength when at the mountains; at this time I was suffering not a little from the sudden pain and weakness which it occasioned. Tete Rouge, in answer to my inquiries, declared that Dr. Dobbs was a physician of the first standing. Without at all believing him, I resolved to consult this eminent practitioner. Walking over to the camp, I found him lying sound asleep under one of the wagons. He offered in his own person but an indifferent specimen of his skill, for it was five months since I had seen so cadaverous a face.

At noon on September 14th, a huge Santa Fe caravan arrived. The plain was filled with long lines of their white-topped wagons, the close black carriages traders use for travel and sleep, large herds of animals, and men on horseback and on foot. They all stopped in the meadow near us. Our small cart and handful of men looked pretty insignificant next to their large and bustling camp. Tete Rouge went over to visit them and soon returned with half a dozen biscuits in one hand and a bottle of brandy in the other. I asked where he got them. “Oh,” said Tete Rouge, “I know some of the traders. Dr. Dobbs is there too.” I asked who Dr. Dobbs was. “One of our St. Louis doctors,” replied Tete Rouge. For the past two days, I had been hit hard by the same illness that had drained my strength while we were in the mountains; at that moment, I was really suffering from the sudden pain and weakness it caused. Tete Rouge, in response to my questions, claimed that Dr. Dobbs was a highly regarded physician. Without believing him entirely, I decided to consult this esteemed doctor. When I walked over to the camp, I found him sound asleep under one of the wagons. He didn't provide a great example of his skills, as it had been five months since I’d seen a face that looked as pale as his.

His hat had fallen off, and his yellow hair was all in disorder; one of his arms supplied the place of a pillow; his pantaloons were wrinkled halfway up to his knees, and he was covered with little bits of grass and straw, upon which he had rolled in his uneasy slumber. A Mexican stood near, and I made him a sign that he should touch the doctor. Up sprang the learned Dobbs, and, sitting upright, rubbed his eyes and looked about him in great bewilderment. I regretted the necessity of disturbing him, and said I had come to ask professional advice. “Your system, sir, is in a disordered state,” said he solemnly, after a short examination.

His hat had fallen off, and his yellow hair was a complete mess; one of his arms was being used as a pillow; his pants were wrinkled halfway up to his knees, and he was covered in little bits of grass and straw from rolling around during his restless sleep. A Mexican stood nearby, and I signaled for him to touch the doctor. Up jumped the learned Dobbs, and as he sat up, he rubbed his eyes and looked around in confusion. I felt bad for having to wake him and mentioned that I had come to ask for professional advice. “Your system, sir, is in a disordered state,” he said seriously after a brief examination.

I inquired what might be the particular species of disorder.

I asked what specific type of disorder it might be.

“Evidently a morbid action of the liver,” replied the medical man; “I will give you a prescription.”

“Clearly a problematic issue with the liver,” replied the doctor; “I’ll write you a prescription.”

Repairing to the back of one of the covered wagons, he scrambled in; for a moment I could see nothing of him but his boots. At length he produced a box which he had extracted from some dark recess within, and opening it, he presented me with a folded paper of some size. “What is it?” said I. “Calomel,” said the doctor.

Repairing to the back of one of the covered wagons, he scrambled in; for a moment I could see nothing of him but his boots. At last, he pulled out a box from some dark corner inside, and when he opened it, he handed me a folded piece of paper. “What is it?” I asked. “Calomel,” the doctor replied.

Under the circumstances I would have taken almost anything. There was not enough to do me much harm, and it might possibly do good; so at camp that night I took the poison instead of supper.

Under the circumstances, I would have accepted just about anything. It wasn't enough to seriously harm me, and it might actually help; so at camp that night, I chose the poison over dinner.

That camp is worthy of notice. The traders warned us not to follow the main trail along the river, “unless,” as one of them observed, “you want to have your throats cut!” The river at this place makes a bend; and a smaller trail, known as the Ridge-path, leads directly across the prairie from point to point, a distance of sixty or seventy miles.

That camp is worth mentioning. The traders warned us not to take the main trail along the river, “unless,” as one of them said, “you want to get your throats cut!” The river bends at this spot, and there's a smaller trail, called the Ridge-path, that goes straight across the prairie from point to point, covering about sixty or seventy miles.

We followed this trail, and after traveling seven or eight miles, we came to a small stream, where we encamped. Our position was not chosen with much forethought or military skill. The water was in a deep hollow, with steep, high banks; on the grassy bottom of this hollow we picketed our horses, while we ourselves encamped upon the barren prairie just above. The opportunity was admirable either for driving off our horses or attacking us. After dark, as Tete Rouge was sitting at supper, we observed him pointing with a face of speechless horror over the shoulder of Henry, who was opposite to him. Aloof amid the darkness appeared a gigantic black apparition; solemnly swaying to and fro, it advanced steadily upon us. Henry, half vexed and half amused, jumped up, spread out his arms, and shouted. The invader was an old buffalo bull, who with characteristic stupidity, was walking directly into camp. It cost some shouting and swinging of hats before we could bring him first to a halt and then to a rapid retreat.

We followed this trail, and after traveling seven or eight miles, we came to a small stream where we set up camp. We didn’t really think through our position or pick a strategic spot. The water was in a deep hollow with steep, high banks; we tethered our horses on the grassy bottom of this hollow while we camped on the barren prairie just above it. This setup was perfect for either stealing our horses or launching an attack on us. After dark, when Tete Rouge was sitting down for dinner, we saw him pointing with a look of pure horror over Henry’s shoulder, who was sitting across from him. Amid the darkness stood a huge black figure, swaying solemnly as it moved closer to us. Henry, half annoyed and half amused, jumped up, spread his arms, and shouted. The intruder turned out to be an old buffalo bull, who, in typical fashion, was walking straight into our camp. It took a lot of shouting and waving of hats before we could stop him and get him to retreat quickly.

That night the moon was full and bright; but as the black clouds chased rapidly over it, we were at one moment in light and at the next in darkness. As the evening advanced, a thunderstorm came up; it struck us with such violence that the tent would have been blown over if we had not interposed the cart to break the force of the wind. At length it subsided to a steady rain. I lay awake through nearly the whole night, listening to its dull patter upon the canvas above. The moisture, which filled the tent and trickled from everything in it, did not add to the comfort of the situation. About twelve o’clock Shaw went out to stand guard amid the rain and pitch darkness. Munroe, the most vigilant as well as one of the bravest among us, was also on the alert. When about two hours had passed, Shaw came silently in, and touching Henry, called him in a low quick voice to come out. “What is it?” I asked. “Indians, I believe,” whispered Shaw; “but lie still; I’ll call you if there’s a fight.”

That night the moon was full and bright, but as black clouds quickly moved in front of it, we were suddenly in light one moment and in darkness the next. As the evening went on, a thunderstorm rolled in; it hit us with such force that the tent would have been blown away if we hadn't used the cart to block the wind. Eventually, it calmed down to a steady rain. I lay awake for most of the night, listening to the dull patter on the canvas above. The moisture that filled the tent and dripped from everything inside definitely didn’t help the situation. Around midnight, Shaw went outside to stand guard in the rain and total darkness. Munroe, the most alert and one of the bravest among us, was also on watch. After about two hours, Shaw slipped back in and lightly touched Henry, urging him in a low, quick voice to come out. “What’s going on?” I asked. “I think it’s Indians,” Shaw whispered; “but stay quiet; I’ll call you if there’s a fight.”

He and Henry went out together. I took the cover from my rifle, put a fresh percussion cap upon it, and then, being in much pain, lay down again. In about five minutes Shaw came in again. “All right,” he said, as he lay down to sleep. Henry was now standing guard in his place. He told me in the morning the particulars of the alarm. Munroe’ s watchful eye discovered some dark objects down in the hollow, among the horses, like men creeping on all fours. Lying flat on their faces, he and Shaw crawled to the edge of the bank, and were soon convinced that what they saw were Indians. Shaw silently withdrew to call Henry, and they all lay watching in the same position. Henry’s eye is of the best on the prairie. He detected after a while the true nature of the moving objects; they were nothing but wolves creeping among the horses.

He and Henry went out together. I took the cover off my rifle, put a fresh percussion cap on it, and then, in a lot of pain, lay down again. About five minutes later, Shaw came back in. “All right,” he said, as he lay down to sleep. Henry was now standing guard in his spot. He told me in the morning what had happened. Munroe’s sharp eye spotted some dark shapes in the hollow, among the horses, moving like men on all fours. Lying flat on their stomachs, he and Shaw crawled to the edge of the bank and soon realized that what they were seeing were Indians. Shaw quietly went back to get Henry, and they all lay in the same position, watching. Henry has the best eyesight on the prairie. After a while, he figured out the truth about the moving shapes; they were just wolves creeping among the horses.

It is very singular that when picketed near a camp horses seldom show any fear of such an intrusion. The wolves appear to have no other object than that of gnawing the trail-ropes of raw hide by which the animals are secured. Several times in the course of the journey my horse’s trail-rope was bitten in two by these nocturnal visitors.

It's quite unusual that when tied near a campsite, horses rarely seem scared of such an intrusion. The wolves seem to have no other goal than to chew on the rawhide ropes that secure the animals. Several times during the journey, my horse's trail rope was bitten in half by these nighttime visitors.





CHAPTER XXVII

THE SETTLEMENTS

The next day was extremely hot, and we rode from morning till night without seeing a tree or a bush or a drop of water. Our horses and mules suffered much more than we, but as sunset approached they pricked up their ears and mended their pace. Water was not far off. When we came to the descent of the broad shallowy valley where it lay, an unlooked-for sight awaited us. The stream glistened at the bottom, and along its banks were pitched a multitude of tents, while hundreds of cattle were feeding over the meadows. Bodies of troops, both horse and foot, and long trains of wagons with men, women, and children, were moving over the opposite ridge and descending the broad declivity in front. These were the Mormon battalion in the service of government, together with a considerable number of Missouri volunteers. The Mormons were to be paid off in California, and they were allowed to bring with them their families and property. There was something very striking in the half-military, half-patriarchal appearance of these armed fanatics, thus on their way with their wives and children, to found, if might be, a Mormon empire in California. We were much more astonished than pleased at the sight before us. In order to find an unoccupied camping ground, we were obliged to pass a quarter of a mile up the stream, and here we were soon beset by a swarm of Mormons and Missourians. The United States officer in command of the whole came also to visit us, and remained some time at our camp.

The next day was incredibly hot, and we rode from morning to night without seeing a tree, a bush, or a drop of water. Our horses and mules suffered much more than we did, but as sunset approached, they perked up and quickened their pace. Water wasn’t far off. When we reached the descent into the broad shallow valley where it lay, an unexpected sight greeted us. The stream shimmered at the bottom, and along its banks was a multitude of tents, while hundreds of cattle grazed in the meadows. Groups of troops, both mounted and on foot, along with long lines of wagons carrying men, women, and children, were moving over the opposite ridge and descending the broad slope in front of us. These were the Mormon battalion serving the government, along with a significant number of Missouri volunteers. The Mormons were set to be paid in California and were allowed to bring their families and belongings with them. There was something striking about the half-military, half-patriarchal look of these armed individuals, traveling with their wives and children, possibly to establish a Mormon empire in California. We were much more shocked than pleased by the sight before us. To find an unoccupied camping spot, we had to go a quarter of a mile up the stream, and soon after, we were surrounded by a swarm of Mormons and Missourians. The United States officer in charge of the whole operation also came to visit us and stayed at our camp for some time.

In the morning the country was covered with mist. We were always early risers, but before we were ready the voices of men driving in the cattle sounded all around us. As we passed above their camp, we saw through the obscurity that the tents were falling and the ranks rapidly forming; and mingled with the cries of women and children, the rolling of the Mormon drums and the clear blast of their trumpets sounded through the mist.

In the morning, the countryside was shrouded in mist. We were always up early, but before we were ready, we heard the voices of men rounding up the cattle all around us. As we passed over their camp, we could see through the fog that the tents were coming down and the groups were quickly forming. Along with the cries of women and children, the deep sound of the Mormon drums and the sharp blast of their trumpets echoed through the mist.

From that time to the journey’s end, we met almost every day long trains of government wagons, laden with stores for the troops and crawling at a snail’s pace toward Santa Fe.

From that time until the end of our journey, we encountered almost daily long lines of government wagons, packed with supplies for the troops and moving at a snail’s pace toward Santa Fe.

Tete Rouge had a mortal antipathy to danger, but on a foraging expedition one evening, he achieved an adventure more perilous than had yet befallen any man in the party. The night after we left the Ridge-path we encamped close to the river. At sunset we saw a train of wagons encamping on the trail about three miles off; and though we saw them distinctly, our little cart, as it afterward proved, entirely escaped their view. For some days Tete Rouge had been longing eagerly after a dram of whisky. So, resolving to improve the present opportunity, he mounted his horse James, slung his canteen over his shoulder, and set forth in search of his favorite liquor. Some hours passed without his returning. We thought that he was lost, or perhaps that some stray Indian had snapped him up. While the rest fell asleep I remained on guard. Late at night a tremulous voice saluted me from the darkness, and Tete Rouge and James soon became visible, advancing toward the camp. Tete Rouge was in much agitation and big with some important tidings. Sitting down on the shaft of the cart, he told the following story:

Tete Rouge had a deep fear of danger, but one evening during a foraging trip, he found himself in a situation more dangerous than anything any man in the group had faced. The night after we left the Ridge-path, we set up camp near the river. At sunset, we noticed a line of wagons camping along the trail about three miles away; even though we could see them clearly, our little cart somehow went unnoticed by them. For several days, Tete Rouge had been craving a shot of whisky. So, wanting to take advantage of the moment, he hopped on his horse, James, slung his canteen over his shoulder, and went out in search of his favorite drink. Hours passed without him returning. We feared he had gotten lost or that a wandering Indian had taken him. While everyone else fell asleep, I stayed awake on guard. Late at night, a shaky voice called out to me from the darkness, and soon Tete Rouge and James appeared, approaching the camp. Tete Rouge was visibly shaken and brimming with important news. Sitting on the edge of the cart, he shared the following story:

When he left the camp he had no idea, he said, how late it was. By the time he approached the wagoners it was perfectly dark; and as he saw them all sitting around their fires within the circle of wagons, their guns laid by their sides, he thought he might as well give warning of his approach, in order to prevent a disagreeable mistake. Raising his voice to the highest pitch, he screamed out in prolonged accents, “Camp, ahoy!” This eccentric salutation produced anything but the desired result. Hearing such hideous sounds proceeding from the outer darkness, the wagoners thought that the whole Pawnee nation were about to break in and take their scalps. Up they sprang staring with terror. Each man snatched his gun; some stood behind the wagons; some threw themselves flat on the ground, and in an instant twenty cocked muskets were leveled full at the horrified Tete Rouge, who just then began to be visible through the darkness.

When he left the camp, he had no idea, he said, how late it was. By the time he got close to the wagoners, it was completely dark; and as he saw them all sitting around their fires inside the circle of wagons, their guns resting by their sides, he thought it would be smart to warn them of his approach to avoid any mistakes. Raising his voice as loud as he could, he shouted, “Camp, ahoy!” This strange greeting had the opposite effect of what he intended. Hearing such terrifying sounds coming from the darkness, the wagoners thought the entire Pawnee nation was about to attack and scalp them. They jumped up, eyes wide with fear. Each man grabbed his gun; some hid behind the wagons; some dropped flat on the ground, and in an instant, twenty cocked muskets were aimed right at the terrified Tete Rouge, who was just starting to become visible through the darkness.

“Thar they come,” cried the master wagoner, “fire, fire! shoot that feller.”

“Here they come,” shouted the master wagon driver, “fire, fire! Shoot that guy.”

“No, no!” screamed Tete Rouge, in an ecstasy of fright; “don’t fire, don’t! I’m a friend, I’m an American citizen!”

“No, no!” screamed Tete Rouge, in a state of panic; “don’t shoot, don’t! I’m a friend, I’m an American citizen!”

“You’re a friend, be you?” cried a gruff voice from the wagons; “then what are you yelling out thar for, like a wild Injun. Come along up here if you’re a man.”

“Are you a friend or what?” shouted a rough voice from the wagons. “Then why are you yelling out there like a crazy Indian? Come on up here if you’re a man.”

“Keep your guns p’inted at him,” added the master wagoner, “maybe he’s a decoy, like.”

“Keep your guns aimed at him,” added the master wagoner, “he might be a decoy or something.”

Tete Rouge in utter bewilderment made his approach, with the gaping muzzles of the muskets still before his eyes. He succeeded at last in explaining his character and situation, and the Missourians admitted him into camp. He got no whisky; but as he represented himself as a great invalid, and suffering much from coarse fare, they made up a contribution for him of rice, biscuit, and sugar from their own rations.

Tete Rouge, completely confused, approached, with the open barrels of the muskets still in his sight. He finally managed to explain who he was and his situation, and the Missourians allowed him into the camp. He didn't get any whiskey, but since he described himself as a seriously ill person suffering from bad food, they collected some rice, biscuits, and sugar from their own supplies to help him out.

In the morning at breakfast, Tete Rouge once more related this story. We hardly knew how much of it to believe, though after some cross-questioning we failed to discover any flaw in the narrative. Passing by the wagoner’s camp, they confirmed Tete Rouge’s account in every particular.

In the morning at breakfast, Tete Rouge told this story again. We weren’t sure how much of it to believe, but after some probing questions, we couldn’t find any inconsistencies in the tale. When we passed the wagoner’s camp, they backed up Tete Rouge’s story in every detail.

“I wouldn’t have been in that feller’s place,” said one of them, “for the biggest heap of money in Missouri.”

“I wouldn’t want to be in that guy’s position,” said one of them, “for all the money in Missouri.”

To Tete Rouge’s great wrath they expressed a firm conviction that he was crazy. We left them after giving them the advice not to trouble themselves about war-whoops in future, since they would be apt to feel an Indian’s arrow before they heard his voice.

To Tete Rouge’s great anger, they confidently stated that he was crazy. We left them after advising them not to worry about war cries in the future, as they might feel an Indian’s arrow before they heard him speak.

A day or two after, we had an adventure of another sort with a party of wagoners. Henry and I rode forward to hunt. After that day there was no probability that we should meet with buffalo, and we were anxious to kill one for the sake of fresh meat. They were so wild that we hunted all the morning in vain, but at noon as we approached Cow Creek we saw a large band feeding near its margin. Cow Creek is densely lined with trees which intercept the view beyond, and it runs, as we afterward found, at the bottom of a deep trench. We approached by riding along the bottom of a ravine. When we were near enough, I held the horses while Henry crept toward the buffalo. I saw him take his seat within shooting distance, prepare his rifle, and look about to select his victim. The death of a fat cow was certain, when suddenly a great smoke arose from the bed of the Creek with a rattling volley of musketry. A score of long-legged Missourians leaped out from among the trees and ran after the buffalo, who one and all took to their heels and vanished. These fellows had crawled up the bed of the Creek to within a hundred yards of the buffalo. Never was there a fairer chance for a shot. They were good marksmen; all cracked away at once, and yet not a buffalo fell. In fact, the animal is so tenacious of life that it requires no little knowledge of anatomy to kill it, and it is very seldom that a novice succeeds in his first attempt at approaching. The balked Missourians were excessively mortified, especially when Henry told them if they had kept quiet he would have killed meat enough in ten minutes to feed their whole party. Our friends, who were at no great distance, hearing such a formidable fusillade, thought the Indians had fired the volley for our benefit. Shaw came galloping on to reconnoiter and learn if we were yet in the land of the living.

A day or two later, we had a different kind of adventure with a group of wagoners. Henry and I rode ahead to hunt. After that day, it seemed unlikely that we would encounter any buffalo, and we were eager to kill one for fresh meat. They were so skittish that we hunted all morning without success, but at noon, as we neared Cow Creek, we spotted a large group grazing by the water's edge. Cow Creek is heavily lined with trees that blocked our view beyond it, and it runs, as we later discovered, at the bottom of a deep ravine. We approached by riding along the bottom of a gully. When we got close enough, I held the horses while Henry crept toward the buffalo. I saw him settle into a spot within shooting distance, ready his rifle, and scan the area to pick his target. The death of a fat cow seemed certain, when suddenly a huge cloud of smoke rose from the creek bed, followed by a barrage of gunfire. A group of tall Missourians jumped out from the trees and rushed after the buffalo, who all bolted and disappeared. These guys had crept up the creek bed to within a hundred yards of the buffalo. It was a perfect chance for a shot. They were skilled marksmen; they all fired at once, but not a single buffalo fell. In reality, the buffalo is so tough that it takes quite a bit of knowledge about anatomy to kill one, and it's very rare for a beginner to succeed on their first attempt. The frustrated Missourians were incredibly disappointed, especially when Henry told them that if they had stayed quiet, he could have killed enough meat in ten minutes to feed their entire group. Our friends, who were not far away, hearing such a loud gunfight, thought the Indians had fired the shots for our sake. Shaw came galloping over to check on us and see if we were still alive.

At Cow Creek we found the very welcome novelty of ripe grapes and plums, which grew there in abundance. At the Little Arkansas, not much farther on, we saw the last buffalo, a miserable old bull, roaming over the prairie alone and melancholy.

At Cow Creek, we discovered the refreshing sight of ripe grapes and plums, which were plentiful there. Not far ahead at the Little Arkansas, we spotted the last buffalo, a sad old bull wandering the prairie all alone and feeling down.

From this time forward the character of the country was changing every day. We had left behind us the great arid deserts, meagerly covered by the tufted buffalo grass, with its pale green hue, and its short shriveled blades. The plains before us were carpeted with rich and verdant herbage sprinkled with flowers. In place of buffalo we found plenty of prairie hens, and we bagged them by dozens without leaving the trail. In three or four days we saw before us the broad woods and the emerald meadows of Council Grove, a scene of striking luxuriance and beauty. It seemed like a new sensation as we rode beneath the resounding archs of these noble woods. The trees were ash, oak, elm, maple, and hickory, their mighty limbs deeply overshadowing the path, while enormous grape vines were entwined among them, purple with fruit. The shouts of our scattered party, and now and then a report of a rifle, rang amid the breathing stillness of the forest. We rode forth again with regret into the broad light of the open prairie. Little more than a hundred miles now separated us from the frontier settlements. The whole intervening country was a succession of verdant prairies, rising in broad swells and relieved by trees clustering like an oasis around some spring, or following the course of a stream along some fertile hollow. These are the prairies of the poet and the novelist. We had left danger behind us. Nothing was to be feared from the Indians of this region, the Sacs and Foxes, the Kansas and the Osages. We had met with signal good fortune. Although for five months we had been traveling with an insufficient force through a country where we were at any moment liable to depredation, not a single animal had been stolen from us, and our only loss had been one old mule bitten to death by a rattlesnake. Three weeks after we reached the frontier the Pawnees and the Comanches began a regular series of hostilities on the Arkansas trail, killing men and driving off horses. They attacked, without exception, every party, large or small, that passed during the next six months.

From this point on, the landscape was changing every day. We had left behind the vast dry deserts, sparsely covered by the tufted buffalo grass, with its pale green color and short, shriveled blades. The plains ahead of us were lush and vibrant, dotted with flowers. Instead of buffalo, we found an abundance of prairie chickens, which we caught in dozens without straying from the path. In three or four days, we came upon the broad woods and green meadows of Council Grove, a sight of remarkable richness and beauty. It felt like a new experience as we rode beneath the echoing arches of these majestic trees. The trees were ash, oak, elm, maple, and hickory, their strong limbs casting deep shadows over the trail, while huge grapevines twisted among them, heavy with purple fruit. The calls of our scattered group, along with the occasional sound of a rifle, broke the peaceful stillness of the forest. We reluctantly rode back into the bright light of the open prairie. Now, we were little over a hundred miles from the frontier settlements. The entire area in between was a series of lush prairies, rising in broad swells and dotted with trees clustering like oases around springs or following the paths of streams in fertile hollows. These are the prairies celebrated by poets and novelists. We had left danger behind us. There was nothing to fear from the local tribes, the Sacs and Foxes, the Kansas, and the Osages. We had encountered remarkable luck. Though we had been traveling for five months with a small group through a region where we could have faced attacks at any moment, not a single animal had been stolen from us, and our only loss was one old mule that a rattlesnake bit to death. Three weeks after we reached the frontier, the Pawnees and Comanches launched a series of attacks along the Arkansas trail, killing people and stealing horses. They targeted every group, big or small, that passed through over the next six months.

Diamond Spring, Rock Creek, Elder Grove, and other camping places besides, were passed all in quick succession. At Rock Creek we found a train of government provision wagons, under the charge of an emaciated old man in his seventy-first year. Some restless American devil had driven him into the wilderness at a time when he should have been seated at his fireside with his grandchildren on his knees. I am convinced that he never returned; he was complaining that night of a disease, the wasting effects of which upon a younger and stronger man, I myself had proved from severe experience. Long ere this no doubt the wolves have howled their moonlight carnival over the old man’s attenuated remains.

Diamond Spring, Rock Creek, Elder Grove, and several other campgrounds were passed in quick succession. At Rock Creek, we came across a line of government supply wagons, overseen by a frail old man in his seventy-first year. Some restless American spirit had driven him into the wilderness when he should have been at home with his grandchildren on his lap. I'm convinced he never made it back; that night he was complaining about an illness, the debilitating effects of which I had experienced firsthand on a younger and stronger man. By now, no doubt the wolves have howled their moonlit festivities over the old man’s withered remains.

Not long after we came to a small trail leading to Fort Leavenworth, distant but one day’s journey. Tete Rouge here took leave of us. He was anxious to go to the fort in order to receive payment for his valuable military services. So he and his horse James, after bidding an affectionate farewell, set out together, taking with them as much provision as they could conveniently carry, including a large quantity of brown sugar. On a cheerless rainy evening we came to our last encamping ground. Some pigs belonging to a Shawnee farmer were grunting and rooting at the edge of the grove.

Not long after, we found a small trail leading to Fort Leavenworth, just a day’s journey away. Tete Rouge said goodbye to us here. He was eager to get to the fort to get paid for his valuable military services. So he and his horse, James, after a heartfelt farewell, set off together, taking with them as much food as they could carry, including a lot of brown sugar. On a gloomy, rainy evening, we arrived at our final camping spot. Some pigs belonging to a Shawnee farmer were grunting and digging at the edge of the grove.

“I wonder how fresh pork tastes,” murmured one of the party, and more than one voice murmured in response. The fiat went forth, “That pig must die,” and a rifle was leveled forthwith at the countenance of the plumpest porker. Just then a wagon train, with some twenty Missourians, came out from among the trees. The marksman suspended his aim, deeming it inexpedient under the circumstances to consummate the deed of blood.

“I wonder how fresh pork tastes,” whispered one of the group, and several voices echoed back. The decision was made, “That pig has to go,” and a rifle was quickly aimed at the face of the plumpest pig. At that moment, a wagon train with about twenty Missourians emerged from the trees. The shooter paused, deciding it wasn’t smart to go through with the killing given the situation.

In the morning we made our toilet as well as circumstances would permit, and that is saying but very little. In spite of the dreary rain of yesterday, there never was a brighter and gayer autumnal morning than that on which we returned to the settlements. We were passing through the country of the half-civilized Shawanoes. It was a beautiful alternation of fertile plains and groves, whose foliage was just tinged with the hues of autumn, while close beneath them rested the neat log-houses of the Indian farmers. Every field and meadow bespoke the exuberant fertility of the soil. The maize stood rustling in the wind, matured and dry, its shining yellow ears thrust out between the gaping husks. Squashes and enormous yellow pumpkins lay basking in the sun in the midst of their brown and shriveled leaves. Robins and blackbirds flew about the fences; and everything in short betokened our near approach to home and civilization. The forests that border on the Missouri soon rose before us, and we entered the wide tract of shrubbery which forms their outskirts. We had passed the same road on our outward journey in the spring, but its aspect was totally changed. The young wild apple trees, then flushed with their fragrant blossoms, were now hung thickly with ruddy fruit. Tall grass flourished by the roadside in place of the tender shoots just peeping from the warm and oozy soil. The vines were laden with dark purple grapes, and the slender twigs of the maple, then tasseled with their clusters of small red flowers, now hung out a gorgeous display of leaves stained by the frost with burning crimson. On every side we saw the tokens of maturity and decay where all had before been fresh and beautiful. We entered the forest, and ourselves and our horses were checkered, as we passed along, by the bright spots of sunlight that fell between the opening boughs. On either side the dark rich masses of foliage almost excluded the sun, though here and there its rays could find their way down, striking through the broad leaves and lighting them with a pure transparent green. Squirrels barked at us from the trees; coveys of young partridges ran rustling over the leaves below, and the golden oriole, the blue jay, and the flaming red-bird darted among the shadowy branches. We hailed these sights and sounds of beauty by no means with an unmingled pleasure. Many and powerful as were the attractions which drew us toward the settlements, we looked back even at that moment with an eager longing toward the wilderness of prairies and mountains behind us. For myself I had suffered more that summer from illness than ever before in my life, and yet to this hour I cannot recall those savage scenes and savage men without a strong desire again to visit them.

In the morning, we got ourselves ready as best as we could, which isn’t saying much. Despite the dreary rain from yesterday, there has never been a brighter and cheerier autumn morning than the one when we returned to the settlements. We were traveling through the territory of the partly civilized Shawanoes. It was a beautiful mix of fertile plains and groves, with their leaves just beginning to show autumn colors, while neatly kept log houses of the Indian farmers sat nearby. Every field and meadow showcased the rich fertility of the land. The corn stood rustling in the wind, ripe and dry, with shiny yellow ears peeking out from between the open husks. Squashes and giant yellow pumpkins lay soaking up the sun amidst their brown, withered leaves. Robins and blackbirds flitted around the fences; everything signaled that we were getting closer to home and civilization. The forests edging the Missouri River soon appeared before us as we entered the wide area of shrubs that marked their edge. We had taken the same road on our way out in the spring, but it looked completely different now. The young wild apple trees, which had been blooming with fragrant blossoms, were now heavy with bright red fruit. Tall grass flourished along the roadside instead of the delicate shoots that had just started to poke through the warm, muddy soil. The vines were loaded with dark purple grapes, and the slender branches of the maple, once adorned with clusters of small red flowers, now showcased a stunning array of leaves stained by frost in brilliant crimson. Everywhere we saw signs of maturity and decay where everything had once been fresh and beautiful. We entered the forest, and both we and our horses were dappled by the bright patches of sunlight filtering through the openings in the branches. On either side, the thick, dark foliage nearly blocked out the sun, although here and there, its rays managed to break through, shining down on the broad leaves and illuminating them with a bright, clear green. Squirrels chattered at us from the trees; groups of young partridges rustled through the leaves below, and the golden oriole, blue jay, and vivid red bird flitted among the shadowy branches. We greeted these beautiful sights and sounds with mixed feelings. Despite the strong pull of the settlements, we looked back with a longing toward the wilderness of prairies and mountains behind us. Personally, I had suffered more from illness that summer than ever before in my life, and even now, I can’t think of those wild scenes and savage men without a deep desire to visit them again.

At length, for the first time during about half a year, we saw the roof of a white man’s dwelling between the opening trees. A few moments after we were riding over the miserable log bridge that leads into the center of Westport. Westport had beheld strange scenes, but a rougher looking troop than ours, with our worn equipments and broken-down horses, was never seen even there. We passed the well-remembered tavern, Boone’s grocery and old Vogel’s dram shop, and encamped on a meadow beyond. Here we were soon visited by a number of people who came to purchase our horses and equipage. This matter disposed of, we hired a wagon and drove on to Kansas Landing. Here we were again received under the hospitable roof of our old friend Colonel Chick, and seated on his porch we looked down once more on the eddies of the Missouri.

Finally, for the first time in about six months, we spotted the roof of a white person's house through the trees. Moments later, we crossed the shabby log bridge leading into the heart of Westport. Westport had seen some unusual sights, but a rougher-looking group than ours—with our worn gear and tired horses—had probably never been seen, even there. We passed the familiar tavern, Boone’s grocery store, and old Vogel’s bar, then set up camp in a meadow beyond. Soon, we were approached by several people who came to buy our horses and gear. Once that was taken care of, we rented a wagon and continued on to Kansas Landing. There, we were welcomed once again into the friendly home of our old friend Colonel Chick, and sitting on his porch, we looked down once more at the swirling waters of the Missouri.

Delorier made his appearance in the morning, strangely transformed by the assistance of a hat, a coat, and a razor. His little log-house was among the woods not far off. It seemed he had meditated giving a ball on the occasion of his return, and had consulted Henry Chatillon as to whether it would do to invite his bourgeois. Henry expressed his entire conviction that we would not take it amiss, and the invitation was now proffered, accordingly, Delorier adding as a special inducement that Antoine Lejeunesse was to play the fiddle. We told him we would certainly come, but before the evening arrived a steamboat, which came down from Fort Leavenworth, prevented our being present at the expected festivities. Delorier was on the rock at the landing place, waiting to take leave of us.

Delorier showed up in the morning, looking oddly different thanks to a hat, a coat, and a razor. His small log cabin was nestled among the nearby woods. It seemed he had thought about throwing a party to celebrate his return and had asked Henry Chatillon whether it would be okay to invite his middle-class friends. Henry was completely convinced it wouldn’t be a problem, so the invitation was extended, with Delorier mentioning as an extra perk that Antoine Lejeunesse would be playing the fiddle. We told him we would definitely come, but before the evening arrived, a steamboat coming down from Fort Leavenworth stopped us from attending the party. Delorier was at the dock, waiting to say goodbye to us.

“Adieu! mes bourgeois; adieu! adieu!” he cried out as the boat pulled off; “when you go another time to de Rocky Montagnes I will go with you; yes, I will go!”

“Goodbye, my friends; goodbye! goodbye!” he shouted as the boat set off; “next time you go to the Rocky Mountains, I’ll go with you; yes, I will go!”

He accompanied this patronizing assurance by jumping about swinging his hat, and grinning from ear to ear. As the boat rounded a distant point, the last object that met our eyes was Delorier still lifting his hat and skipping about the rock. We had taken leave of Munroe and Jim Gurney at Westport, and Henry Chatillon went down in the boat with us.

He backed up this condescending assurance by jumping around, swinging his hat, and grinning widely. As the boat rounded a distant point, the last thing we saw was Delorier still lifting his hat and skipping around the rock. We had said goodbye to Munroe and Jim Gurney at Westport, and Henry Chatillon joined us in the boat.

The passage to St. Louis occupied eight days, during about a third of which we were fast aground on sand-bars. We passed the steamer Amelia crowded with a roaring crew of disbanded volunteers, swearing, drinking, gambling, and fighting. At length one evening we reached the crowded levee of St. Louis. Repairing to the Planters’ House, we caused diligent search to be made for our trunks, which after some time were discovered stowed away in the farthest corner of the storeroom. In the morning we hardly recognized each other; a frock of broadcloth had supplanted the frock of buckskin; well-fitted pantaloons took the place of the Indian leggings, and polished boots were substituted for the gaudy moccasins.

The trip to St. Louis took eight days, during which we were stuck on sandbars for about a third of the time. We passed the steamer Amelia, filled with a loud group of disbanded volunteers who were swearing, drinking, gambling, and fighting. Finally, one evening we arrived at the busy levee of St. Louis. We went to the Planters’ House and had a thorough search done for our trunks, which were eventually found in the back corner of the storeroom. In the morning, we barely recognized each other; a broadcloth coat had replaced the buckskin one, well-fitted pants had taken the place of the Indian leggings, and polished boots had substituted the flashy moccasins.

After we had been several days at St. Louis we heard news of Tete Rouge. He had contrived to reach Fort Leavenworth, where he had found the paymaster and received his money. As a boat was just ready to start for St. Louis, he went on board and engaged his passage. This done, he immediately got drunk on shore, and the boat went off without him. It was some days before another opportunity occurred, and meanwhile the sutler’s stores furnished him with abundant means of keeping up his spirits. Another steamboat came at last, the clerk of which happened to be a friend of his, and by the advice of some charitable person on shore he persuaded Tete Rouge to remain on board, intending to detain him there until the boat should leave the fort. At first Tete Rouge was well contented with this arrangement, but on applying for a dram, the barkeeper, at the clerk’s instigation, refused to let him have it. Finding them both inflexible in spite of his entreaties, he became desperate and made his escape from the boat. The clerk found him after a long search in one of the barracks; a circle of dragoons stood contemplating him as he lay on the floor, maudlin drunk and crying dismally. With the help of one of them the clerk pushed him on board, and our informant, who came down in the same boat, declares that he remained in great despondency during the whole passage. As we left St. Louis soon after his arrival, we did not see the worthless, good-natured little vagabond again.

After we spent several days in St. Louis, we heard news about Tete Rouge. He managed to get to Fort Leavenworth, where he found the paymaster and got his money. Since a boat was just about to leave for St. Louis, he boarded and secured his passage. After that, he promptly got drunk on shore, and the boat left without him. It took a few days for another chance to come up, and in the meantime, the sutler's supplies gave him plenty of ways to keep his spirits up. Finally, another steamboat arrived, and the clerk happened to be a friend of his. At the suggestion of a kind person on shore, he convinced Tete Rouge to stay on board, planning to keep him there until the boat departed from the fort. At first, Tete Rouge was happy with this plan, but when he asked for a drink, the barkeeper, following the clerk's orders, refused to serve him. When he found them both unyielding despite his pleas, he got desperate and escaped from the boat. After a long search, the clerk found him in one of the barracks; a group of soldiers was staring at him as he lay on the floor, incredibly drunk and crying uncontrollably. With the help of one of the soldiers, the clerk managed to get him back on board, and our source, who traveled on the same boat, says that Tete Rouge was in a deep state of despair throughout the journey. Since we left St. Louis shortly after he arrived, we never saw the good-hearted little troublemaker again.

On the evening before our departure Henry Chatillon came to our rooms at the Planters’ House to take leave of us. No one who met him in the streets of St. Louis would have taken him for a hunter fresh from the Rocky Mountains. He was very neatly and simply dressed in a suit of dark cloth; for although, since his sixteenth year, he had scarcely been for a month together among the abodes of men, he had a native good taste and a sense of propriety which always led him to pay great attention to his personal appearance. His tall athletic figure, with its easy flexible motions, appeared to advantage in his present dress; and his fine face, though roughened by a thousand storms, was not at all out of keeping with it. We took leave of him with much regret; and unless his changing features, as he shook us by the hand, belied him, the feeling on his part was no less than on ours. Shaw had given him a horse at Westport. My rifle, which he had always been fond of using, as it was an excellent piece, much better than his own, is now in his hands, and perhaps at this moment its sharp voice is startling the echoes of the Rocky Mountains. On the next morning we left town, and after a fortnight of railroads and steamboat we saw once more the familiar features of home.

On the evening before we left, Henry Chatillon came to our rooms at the Planters’ House to say goodbye. No one who saw him on the streets of St. Louis would think he was a hunter just back from the Rocky Mountains. He was neatly and simply dressed in a dark suit; even though he had spent hardly any time among people since he was sixteen, he had a natural good taste and a sense of propriety that made him pay close attention to his appearance. His tall, athletic build, with its easy, flexible movements, looked great in his outfit, and his handsome face, though weathered by countless storms, fit right in. We said goodbye with a lot of regret, and unless his changing expression as he shook our hands was deceiving, he felt just as we did. Shaw had given him a horse at Westport. My rifle, which he loved using since it was a much better piece than his own, is now in his hands, and maybe right now it's echoing through the Rocky Mountains. The next morning, we left town, and after a couple of weeks of trains and steamboats, we saw the familiar sights of home again.






Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!